The Doctrine of LIFE, OR OF MAN'S redemption, BY The Seed of Eve, the Seed of Abraham; the Seed of David, etc. as it was taught in several Periods of Time, from Gen. 3.15. till Christ came in the Flesh, to fulfil all Typical Prefigurations of him by his Death. WHEREIN ALSO Sundry other Fundamental Points are discussed and cleared from some common mistakes. As daniel's Chronologie of SEVENTY SEVENS, which is cleared from the uncertainty which too many Expositors have unadvisedly cast upon it. And about the Jews calling; that it must not be understood of any Return to Canaan, or of their Restauration to a perspicuous Common wealth any more, but of the calling of a Remnant of them to the Faith, in the Countries where they live dispersed. And with the true nature of our LORDS SUFFERINGS: with sundry other such like Points, as may be seen in the TABLE. Propounded by way of Question and Answer, with Annotations thereunto annexed; Divided into three Parts. By Edward Holyoke of New-England. Come and see, John 1.46. LONDON, Printed by T. R. for Nath. Ekins, and are to be sold at his Shop at the Gun in St. Paul's Churchyard, 1658. To his Beloved, and much Honoured Brother John Bridges of Hackney Esquire, and to his dearly Beloved Sister his wife, and to their Religious and well deserving Sons Colonel John Bridges, Captain Robert Bridges, Major William Bridges, Matthew Bridges, Brook Bridges, and Francis Bridges Esquires, peace be multipli●●● BEloved and much honoured Brother, though the Lord Jesus to whom all things are made subject, hath separated us by the great Deep, yet I have you oft in remembrance, and cannot forget our alliance, and endeared love and acquaintance that hath been between us from our childhood, both in the Country, and in the City of London. You have a great Family, and like to have, through the Lord's blessing, a numerous posterity, and my desire is to show that I have some interest in them, being also my bone and my flesh, as Laban said to Jacob: and I suppose you will be well pleased, if I endeavour in any thing to further them in the knowledge of the Son of God. This I now present unto you and them, was done many years ago for the most part, as I think, you may remember, and then I made some marginal notes to attend upon the several answers to the several questions that are propounded in the two first parts: some things I have since added concerning the Covenant of God in Christ, made with our Fathers in Gen 3.15 and Gen. 9 and Gen 12.1, 2, 3. and in Gen. 17. This I did because of the errors that get quickening in these times, and for the same cause I have affixed divers other weighty and profitable points in the third part of this Treatise. I hope the whole will be a means to show, that the Covenant of God in Christ, is one and the same in all ages, though the outward administration differ, and that the Covenant to Israel of old was not only in the carnal, and fleshly promise and covenant, but also in the spiritual promise and Covenant, even the same that is now made with us in the new Testament of the Lord Jesus Christ, the Son of God. Dear Brother, and Nephews, you have known my manner of life, studies, and endeavours, and I bless the Lord, I have had comfortable experience of that course of study which I have followed: I mean chief of the book called the Consent of Scripture. And let me speak as I think, If men would use that course of study, together with the blessed Scriptures, it would settle in us and in our posterity, the true knowledge of religion, and the certainty of everlasting salvation. The whole Scripture and all learning should be contrived unto Christ, as God's servant did in the Consent of Scripture, and so Stephen did; he drew all the holy story to Christ in Acts 7. and so the Apostle Paul, he drew all the Law to Christ, as Rom. 10 doth make it evident, being conferred with Deut. 30. Some in New England have seen this frame of mine, and have desired that it might be made more common by printing, and indeed I cannot write so many Copies, as to communicate it to you and to that generation, except it be by Printing. It may be you will marvel I dare be so bold as to Print it in this evil time, but indeed I dare not but do it, and I believe this labour of mine will talk with many sorts of spirits, and I hope that God's people will judge the best of this my undertaking: other things I have, if the Lords providence please so to order it, that must be made more public, because I have a great desire thereby to provoke others to the diligent study of the blessed Scriptures. Dear Brother, and much honoured Nephews, as Salus populi is the care of Magistracy; so the edification of the Churches ought to be the painful care of godly Teachers: and we ought to know that Families are little Churches and commonweals, and the Seminaries of greater Corporations; & that Parents are entrusted with children and servants: it is not a small honour that Christ hath conferred this trust on them: and verily, if Families be neglected, the Churches will fail. Let us with all godly industry make this promise good to ourselves and posterity, in Isa 59.21. As for me, this is my Covenant with them, saith Jehovah, my spirit that is upon thee, and my words which I have put in thy mouth, shall not departed out of thy mouth, nor out of the mouth of thy seed, nor out of the mouth of thy seeds seed, saith Jehovah, from henceforth, and for ever: and that this promise and covenant may be conferred on you, and on your posterities for ever, is the affectionate prayer of. Your assured and ever loving brother In the surest bonds, Ed. Holyoke. Some DIRECTIONS TO THE GODLY READER. For the Reading of the Holy SCRIPTURES. LEt me be bold, as having obtained mercy of the Lord, to give some advice to godly Families. 1. Let children be brought up constantly to read all the five books of Moses knowing it was the Son of God, the Angel of his presence, the Angel of the covenant that gave Moses the lively Oracles for his Israel. Omit not one chapter, and that which some think not so useful, read somewhat the more carefully, believing the Apostles Doctrine, 2 Tim. 3.15, 16, 17. 2. Read the 12. first Chapters of Gen. often, and after every book of Moses, read the Epistles to the Romans, and to the Hebrews, or one of them, sometimes the one, sometimes the other, because it is said, the Scriptures of the Prophets is the faith of the Nations, Rom. 1, 2, 3. and 16.25, 26. etc. etc. 3. Know that Moses is the Text, and that the holy history of the Prophets is an Exposition of Moses, and when children, or any young man, though a Scholar, is well versed in Moses, and the Prophets, they will more clearly understand the New Testament, that it hath no new Principles, but then they will see that the Son of God came to be a Second Adam, and an holy Witness and Teacher of the Truth, sent down from the Father to be confirmed in his Office of Mediation, and that as Eternal God he taught Moses and the Prophets, and in this Seat they shall behold the face of Christ to shine like the Sun, through all the Bible. 4. Observe, that the Apostles do prove their Doctrine from the Old Testament, as in the Epistle to the Romans, chap. 1. and 2. and 3, 4. in all the chapters he handles the corruption of our nature, and that great point of the Justification of a sinner, from Genesis 15. by the evidence of Abraham's faith, and from Psalm 32. from David's Testimony, and in Rom. 10. 5●6. etc. from Deuteronomie 30.11, 12, 13, 14. where he opens to us all Moses, as I have showed in the Dialogue. And he handleth the Doctrine of Election, and rejection, from Genesis, Exodus, Deuteronomie, and Job● etc. 5. Observe, that the Epistle to the Gal●thians doth largely: expound Genesis 12, 1, 2, 3. and know, that Abraham could Teach, and gather Observations, and Deductions out of the Promise in Genesis 12. as well as the Apostle, and it is evident also, that he did so, for the instruction and comfort of all his Household and posterity, as the book of Job with Genesis doth witness. 6. Observe, that the Epistle to the Hebrews doth lead us through all the old Testament from the first of Genesis to Malachy, yea further even to the stories of the faithful Martyrs, in the Macchabees, and from Dan. 7.8, 10, 11, and 12 chapters: the events of which chapters for a great part are after the Prophecy of Malachy, in the story of the Macchabees. etc. 7. Observe, that the Apostle Peter, being an Apostle of the Circumcision, doth in his Epistles allude much to the phrases of the old Testament, and so doth Judas Thaddaeus in his Epistle, and both Peter and Thaddeus do show, that as there were false Prophets of old, that spoke from the old Serpent, so there should be such under the New Testament, that would resist Christ and his Mediatorian Kingdom, as Cain, Balaam and Kore did. 8. Observe, that the Apocalypse doth exceed in this way of expressing things, by selected words and sentences, from the old Testament, and from old events, and from the low Jerusalem, to open new matters, concerning the Church of the new Jerusalem from heaven, and of the destruction of the enemies thereof, and thus all the Revelation must be expounded, and whosoever doth not so will miss. 9 I would yet give further direction to young men, yea to young Scholars. First reading of the blessed Book of God, as it lies in order, by 14 chapters a day, by which means the Bible is read over in three months. In the second reading, confer the Genealogy, and the Chronologie, as in the Table prefixed, which will show you what principal men lived in such a state of time, and most of the men are Fathers to our Lord Jesus Christ, of whom he took humanity, and it should delight us to know his Genealogy: and all the other names of persons are considerable as attendants on his stories. And I wish that young men would transcribe the Table of our Lord's Genealogy, twice or thrice over, it would teach them more than they are ware of, and imprint things in their mind. It is but one page, no great matter to do. 10. Then to make use of the Genealogy of Noah's sons, and Nephews for Geography, which will much help the understanding, so that one month's Meditation at times upon these two Tables, will furnish you with plentiful nation's, and with such a ground work, that you cannot but make use of them all the days of your life▪ and in this manner read it the third time, and the fourth, and by thus doing you will come to a sweet taste and relish of the phrase of the holy Scriptures, which will be of more use to your mind and heart, than you can at first conceive, I know this counsel and exhortation is of God, and to help your proceeding, you have the holy Chronologie set down in many varieties of expressions, to stir delight in the study of the Scriptures. 11. in the Table of Genealogy, you have the times (though briefly) set down, in which are showed, what Prophets lived in the times of the Kings of Judah: in your second, and third, and fourth reading the Bible, endeavour to bring the Prophets to their proper times with the Psalms, it will be much to edification. And remember that, because men mind not Genealogy, Chronologie, and the Geography of the Scriptures, they fail commonly in their Narrations. 12. The Dialogue Will show you what was the Doctrine of Chrift touching man's Redemption in every age, to the vessels of mercy, his severity to the seed of the serpent, for despising and persecuting the Professors of this blessed Doctrine. 13. Consider, that the Kingdom of God in Christ, the seed of the woman, and the second Adam is the matter of all the Bible: Adam had that theme to preach on for 930 years, and Sem, the sacrificer to Jehovah, God most high, taught this Doctrine 500 years after the Flood, and confirmed Abraham in that Doctrine 75 years, and consider that all the larger writings that were breathed by the holy spirit teach no other matter but this, and giveth promises of grace for accepting this, and punishments for contempt of this all cain's posterity perished in the Flood, than the Babel-builders, than Jeroboam, and the ten Tribes, and the people of Judah were afterwards burned by the wrath of Christ for despising this Doctrine of life: and after this great salvation was preached by the Lord himself, and confirmed by his hearers with all gifts, of the spirit: the Jews for contempt thereof were cast off, and the world was given over to Arrius, Turk and Pope. Objection, If a man read so much at a time, as you have now prescribed, he will not remember, and so not pref●●, and a man had better read a chapter in a day, and meditate on it. Answer, I know it is a most sweet and heavenly mercy to understand what we read, but if a godly heart endued with courage will take this course for one year, in his youth, the phrase and course of the holy Scriptures will be the more familiar to him, and his knowledge, understanding, and affections will far more increase (through mercy) then in reading a chapter or two in a day, and at last he will remember ten times more, than reading a little. 2, And let none say, that fourteen chapters a day will hinder time in our callings, for an hour and a quarter in a day will read fourteen chapters and Psalms one with another, and what is that? we may purchase wisdom with the loss of a little sleep, especially in a morning, it is said, Buy the truth, bu● sell it not, etc. and redeem the time, for the days are evil. I doubt not he that will be constant, will say, it is as profitable an hour, as ever he spent. 3 I take it for granted, that he that will hearken to this counsel must be godly disposed and full of courage, for Christ our Lord doth give to his servants, not the spirit of fear and slothfulness, but of courage, of love, and of a sound judgement: I confess that God's people had need be backed with heavenly strength in this degenerating time to meditate in the Law of God day and night: But a good heart must mind what Christ said to Joshua, chap. 1. (and he had as much business in his hand as any man that now liveth) Oh that I could persuade young men to trace me in all these directions, I know the Lord would then bless them. 4 I have heard of a godly man in London, that did read over the ●ib●e twelve times in one year, and that made him so prompt as he was in the holy Scriptures, and yet he was diligent in his calling, and died wealthy: he pleased not himself in much steep, and shunned unnecessary prattling discourses, and vain, frothy company: he was of a sober, and stayed conversation, his name was Mr. Roger Cotton, a Woollen Draper in Canning street. But alas, there are but few at this day, that do search into God's word, the wealthy, and principal of state, remit that work over unto others, as a base work for themselves to regard, but God doth greatly chastise the world for this neglect, and Hosea from God, doth thus complain of the people of Israel. I have written to him the great things of my Law, but they were counted as a strange thing, Hosea 8. read chap. 4. 5. I pray the beloved Reader to consider, that these days, are days of trial, of shaking and winnowing, both of the outward and inner man, and that Satan, is a great Malignant, both of godly parents, and their children, and that he labours to plunder them of an able, godly, and learned Ministry, and of the Sabbath, and of the seals of the Covenant, yea, of the Covenant itself (as touching their infants) and Satan would not have children catechised by forms (which was yet the prctise of the Apostles times, Heb. 6.1, 2, 3.) that so they might be a prey to every foul spirit, but the Lord our God will rebuke Satan and all his instruments. 6. Consider there hath been ever, and in these days is an aptness to departed from the Gospel of Christ, but that neither we, nor our posterity should apostate public and private ordinances must with all godly care be attended. All cannot be Angels of Churches, and the Angels of Churches receive gifts and graces from Christ for the good of the Church. It was an holy wish in Moses, to say, I would all the Lords people were Prophets, and that he would put his spirit upon them, and who is but would so wish? but yet ever since the world began, Christ in his administrations never did it, nor ever will, therefore they that despise ordinances, it is of Satan, and also for men to think they are above the holy Scriptures, and need them not, and that therefore they look for new Apostles, this is also most certainly of Satan the old liar and deceiver. 7. Let all such at neglect the Ordinances of Christ and the blessed Scriptures, pretend never so much illuminations, and Revelations of the Spirit, and new light, etc. all such vanity, is but Ignis fa●●●s, thus, even thus did the old Serpent deal with our first Parents, but Christ, that restoreth all things, saith to his disciples and children, To the Law, Isa. 8.28, 19.20. and to the testimony, and if men speak not according to it, there is no morning light in them, it is also said. Psal. 138. ●. The Lord hath magnified his word above all his name, and also hath said in his new Testament, Search the Scriptures John 5. etc. etc. They are not worthy the new name, by which God hath called his chosen, I mean the Christian name, that set light by the word of Christ, and a godly, learned, teaching Ministry. 8. They that look for new Apostles, and are not content with the Scriptures of the Prophets and Apostles, Christ never prayed for such, he prayed for them that believe in him, through their word and preaching, John 17. that makes the Spirit of Christ, (he foresaw this evil) to admonish us to be mindful of the words and commandments of the Apostles, and he that knoweth God, heareth the Apostles, and they know not God that do not hear their doctrine, and the apostle Paul saith, That he with the other were the last Apostles, 2 Pet. 3.2.1 John 4.6. 1 Cor. 4.9. Judas Thaddeus 17. 9 Their faith is not worth a rush that neglect or reject the Scriptures of the Prophets and Apostles, Ephes. 2.20. the holy doctrine of our Lord Jesus Christ with which he inspired, and sent his apostles to preach to all nations, is most pure, glorious, and full of all consolation, and they filled the world with the fruit of their doctrine, which hath remained to this day, and shall to the end by a faithful succession of an holy ministry, 1 Cor: 11: 26. Brethren, beloved, you know who saith, What singular thing do ye? An unbeliever; and a misbeliever will provide meat, drink and clothing, and lay u● what they can for their children, and will give wages to their ●●●●●●ts, and it is well so to do, but what singular thing do ye● do that which none of the● will do, let your children which Christ hath trusted you with, and which you have born to him (let Satanical spirits blaterate what they will) be precious to you, 2 john 4. Ezek. 23.37. Deur. 6.6, 7. train them up in the blessed Scriptures, that you and they may be blessed, as those two blessed and godly Matrons, the mother and grandmother of Timothy, and also be careful of your servants, that they may bless God for you, when God shall visit their hearts: and know this ye godly Parents and Masters, * An acute aphorism of that R●man of God Mr. John Trap Ye are really, what ye are relatively. 10. You see what leaven is laid by the marked of the Beast, the Papist, and by the Anabaptist, and the wretched Gorton, etc. etc. If the honour of the word of God, the blessed Scriptures be glorious with you, if the glory of the Churches of Christ be of any value with you, if the glory and comfort of the Covenant of God in Christ, be of account with you, teach your children unweariedly the sweet Scriptures, that they may be delivered from the vanities and idols of these enchanters. 11. But above all, Popery is to be taken heed of, and indeed the Dialogue was and is chief intended against it, It is the greatest mystery of iniquity in the world, and the most bewitching; for there is nothing in it, but will please an unregenerate and carnal heart. The Papist will have people to believe the Church of Rome is the mother of all Churches, and all must be subject to her, and they have great shows, and outward glory to persuade, and false authority to compel men so to esteem her. It is true, at the first the Church in Rome was a famous Church & a worthy daughter of the heavenly Jerusalem (which is the mother of all true Churches) and she was a noble off spring of the most high Sacrificer, Rom. 16.17. but when she would not keep her place, but caused scandala from the Apostles and Prophet's doctrine and would be above her Father, and her mother, and all her sisters, by playing the imperious whore in her Father's house, Leu. 21.9. than she lost her true glory, and burning shall be her end. But yet Papists will plead for their mother, but we must not yield them motherhood in that sense as they would have it, we may yield them by the authority of the Scriptures, that Rome is called a Woman, a Mother, and set forth by outward ornanaments most glorious and dazelling to the carnal eye: but yet further, (and that mars all) she is called a Whore, and mother of fornications. I will transcribe the Scripture, Apoc, 17: 4. And the Woman-Whore (verse 1.) was arrayed in purple and scarlet-colour, and decked with gold and precious stones, and pearls, having a golden cup in her hand full of abominations and filthiness of her fornication, and upon her forehead a name written, Mystery: Babylon the great, the mother of fornications, and abominations of the earth. That chapter is against the seven-Mountain city, which city, when Saint John wrote, reigned over the Kings of the earth, Revel- ●ation 17. ult. Thus the Spirit spoke to the seven Churches of Asia, of Rome's motherhood, and it is best, that all people take motherhood in that sense, as the spirit taught the churches: so it is charged upon us, Apoc. 2. and 3. for if we do not, better we had never been born. The true mother of all the faithful is not so manifest to be known, but the mother of fornications and abominations is as apertly described by the Spirit, that it is a wonder, (but that God's counsel must stand, Ap c. 13 8.) how men should miss to know the one or the other? But why do I say a wonder, whereas the truth of the Gospel of Christ is called a Mystery: and so the falsehood of the Kingdom of Satan in the Beast like a Lamb, is called a Mystery, and so much the more it is a mystery, because in the false Church, there is a deepness of Satan, in managing his Kingdom, that he doth in many things assimilate the true Church, there is a notable instance of this in Prov: 8. and 9 Prov. 8. Wisdom (in the true Church) standeth in the top of the high places, by the way, in the Places of the paths, Jer. 7.2 and 17.19. she crieth at the gates, at the entry of the city, at the coming in at the doors, O ye simple, understand wisdom, chap. 9 Who so is simple, let him turn in hither, as for him that wanteth understanding, she saith to him, Come eat of my bread and drink of the wine which I have mingled; forsake the foolish and live, and go in the way of understanding, etc. etc. Prov. 9.13. A foolish woman is clamourous she is simple, and knows nothing, notwithstanding, she sitteth at the door of her house, on a seat in the high places of the city, to call Passengers, who go right on their way. Who so is simple, let him turn in hither; and as for him that wanteth understanding, she saith to him, Stolen waters are sweet, and bread eaten in secret is pleasant: but he knoweth not, that the dead are there, and that her guests are in the depths of Hell. Wisdom standeth in the high places of the city, in the places of the paths. So doth the foolish woman sit at the door of her house, on a Seat in the high places of the city (the more is the pity that she hath such toleration) the false Church will advance herself to be more eminent, and too often she is so esteemed of all those that follow the Lusts of the flesh, the Lusts of the eye, and Pride of life. Wisdom sweetly inviteth, and cryeth to the sons of Men, to hearken to sound wisdom and understanding. The foolish woman will exceed, for she will be clamorous, consider the ten Tribes, 1 Kings 15. they all protested, they worshipped God that brought them out of the Land of Egypt, when they worshipped the Devils of Dan and Bethel. Will you behold another clamorous company of the foolish Woman, Achabs, and Jezabels Prophets. And yet lift up your eyes, that you may behold another company, but they were learned Reconcilers, and Moderatours of Baal's and the Temples Religion: therefore I may not call them fools, for they were Priests Prophets, Dreamers, Diviners, Enchanters, Sorcerers, Jeremiah 26. Jer. 7. They could bu●n incense to Baal, and yet come to worship in the Temple. 8, 9, 10, 11, and 27.9 And I should do them wrong, if I should not remember another multitude of clamorous fools, the worshippers of Diana, Acts 19 read Apocalyps 13.12.13, 14, 15, 16, 17. Wisdom saith, she will teach the simple understanding: And so the foolish woman of the ten Tribes pretends to teach the simple understanding (babbling against Judah) that they had the truth. Wisdom, saith she hath bread and wine for those that do attend her. The false company saith, they want not pleasant bread and sweet waters for their guests. The ten Tribes thought the Religion of Jeroboams Calves better, sweeter, and pleasanter, than the Eternal wisdom's Religion of the Temple, unto which they were so earnestly and Pathetically, and comfortably invited, in the nine former chapters of the Proverbs, and by all the Prophets, and were Proud, Scornful, and stubborn Despisers of all the Prophet's Admonitions. But what came of all the guests that followed this clamorous foolish woman? What became of Jerobams' house, of Baasaes of Omries, of Jehues, etc. Thus, as the Apostle speaketh in his days, so it hath been ever, and will be still, That Satan transformeth himself into an Angel of light: So it is not a strange thing, that his Ministers can transform themselves, as if they were the Ministers of Righteousness. Thus we have a brief Compendium of the mystery of godliness, and of the mystery of iniquity, and nothing in the world can describe these two unto us, but the Holy and Blessed Scriptures, and to this day this hath been the Controversy between Christ's two faithful Witnesses in the Reformed Churches, in their Teaching, Writing, Profession, and Sufferings against the false Lamb, and his worshippers. Now in this case, what should we do, say unstable and carnal hearts; we know not what course to take, we are in a staggering condition: truly unstable Souls, are ever ready for the wolves mouth, a fit prey for the smooth, subtle Serpent, and his seed. People must be constantly admonished: weaken Popery, weaken all: this the Layalans know well enough. Turkism is no mystery, and all the unclean spirits of error, is no mystery. Therefore in few words, O ye godly Families, study the holy Scriptures, they are the Inheritance of all the Israel of God. And verily, the most faithful Witness hath said, (and then he spoke of the old Testament) Ye err not knowing the Scriptures, nor the Power of God. Misbelievers know not God: Wherefore, if ye cry after knowledge, and lift up your voice for understanding, Prov. ●. if ye seek wisdom as Silver, and search for understanding as for hid Treasures, then certainly you shall understand the fear of the Lord, and find the knowledge of God; for the Lord giveth wisdom, and out of his Mouth in his holy Scriptures cometh knowledge and understanding. And this also will follow, That no weapon that is form against you shall prosper, and every tongue that riseth in Judgement against you, you shall condemn: this is the * This is a rich and great heritage. Heritage of the servants of Jehovah, and their Rghteousnesse is of me saith JEHOVAH, Isaiah 54.17. To conclude, it is said, he that asketh receiveth, he that seeketh findeth, Mat. 7. and to him that knocketh it shall be opened. The secret of Jehovah (that is, the Mystery of Christ) is with them that sear him, and his Covenant to make them know it. He will cause the meek to go according to right, and teach the humble his way, Psalms 25. Two or three Directions concerning the reading of the following Dialogue. First read the Text of it often, to see how things in the course of the Bible follow one another; then the margins at your leisure for explication. 2. Let none be discouraged at the largeness of this Dialogue, for it is not intended, that children or any should learn it without book, but the substance of it they will have in their minds before they be ware. For, 1. Hereby a faithful mind, that hath his wits exercised in the word of righteousness, will often in a day run over all the Bible in sundry varieties, if he mark the Chronologie, and the chief persons in the Genealogy: for by marking the times, and the persons that lived in those times, he will remember their stories, as it is common to do in worldly affairs. 2. I have not cited every verse to the chapter I mention, because I would have the Reader to mark the coherence of things the better, and though the verse be not named, yet some part of the chapter is expressed: and you are to remember, that the holy Apostles, when they cite a Text, they name only the Prophet, or more generally the Scripture, not naming the Prophet, Rom. 9.13.15, 17.25. 1 Pet. 2.6 & c. &c. And observe that Speech, John 15.25. The Psalms are called their Law: that term hath deep Meditation; for the term Law comprehends all the Scriptures, and the Doctrine of salvation by Christ, and that saying of James 4.5. Do ye think, that the Scripture saith in vain, the spirit that dwelleth in us, lusteth to envy, but there is no one particular Text in all the Bible, that hath those words, and yet the whole Book of God (and I think every particular Prophet) doth show this corruption of our nature, that the Spirit, that dwelleth in us lusteth to envy. And where the verse is cited, you may miss of that edification which you may attain, unless you mark the scope, for the holy Spirit doth in divers verses drive to one chief Conclusion, therefore you must consider many verses, and it may be the whole chapter, before you find the true sense of a verse. I will not excuse my want herein, in not citing every verse, But beloved, all my labour is to gain this of you, to delight in all the Blessed Book of God. And if this effect be attained, I shall think my labour well bestowed: and out of this desire, I hope, it may come to pass, I may be encouraged to do you further service. E.H. CHAP. I. OF the UNITY of the GODHEAD, AND TRINITY of PERSONS. Also of their Properties and Works. Question, I. What Scriptures do show the Unity of the Godhead, and the Trinity of Persons, with their properties and works? Answ. very many, of which I will propound only some to consideration. Deut. 6.4. Hear O Israel, the Eternal our God, the Eternal is One. Gen. 1.1.2. In the beginning * If the knowledge of God in Trinity had not been the ground of life, God would never have declared himself to us in the plural number, for his eternal wisdom foresaw what wars would come for that, betwixt Jews, Turks, and Arrians, and his true faithful ones, and God the God of peace would never have placed a name plural in his first Scripture, but for peace to life, to the fallen Sons of Adam. Elohim [God's] he created the Heavens and the Earth; And the Earth was without form, and void, and darkness was upon the face of the * The Spirit of Elohim is sometimes called the Spirit of God, the Father, 1. Joh. 4.13. Apoc. 11.11. and sometimes the Spirit of the Son, Gal. 4.6. Rom. 8.9.1. Pet. 1.11. because it proceeds as well from the Son as from the Father, Joh 14.16.26. compared with Joh. 16.26. deep, and the Spirit of Elohim, [Gods] moved upon the face of the waters. In the beginning was the WORD, and the WORD was with God, and the WORD was God, the same was in the beginning with God. All things were made † A●● things were created by him, and for him, Col. 1.16. consider that Gen 1. & 2. shows that, and all the rest of the Bible shows this. by him, and without him was made nothing that was made: In him was life, and the life was the light of men, Joh. 1.1.2. And Elohim said, Let US make man according to OUR Image, Gen. 1.26. And Jehovah said, The man is become as one of US, Gen. 3.22. And Jehovah came down to see the City and Tower, and Jehovah said, let US go down, Gen. 11.7. And it came to pass, when they, God's [Elohim] caused me to wander, Gen. 20.13. He built an Altar there, and called the place El-Bethel, because there they, Gods, appeared unto him, Gen. 35. 7. But none say, where is the Puissant my Makers, Job. 35. see Braughton on Job. Let Israel rejoice in his Makers, Psal. 149.2 Thy Maker is thy Husbands, Esa. 54.5. Remember thy Creators, Eccl. 12.1. By the WORD of Jehovah were the Heavens made, and all the hosts of them by the SPIRIT of his mouth, Psal. 33.6. I am with you saith Jehovah of Hosts, with the WORD by whom I made a covenant with you, when ye departed out of Egypt, and my SPIRIT remaining among you, that ye should not fear, Hag. 2.5. Go and teach all Nations, baptising them in the name of the Feather, of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost, Mat. 28.19. For there are Three which bear record in Heaven the Father, the WORD, and the holy Ghost, and these three are one, 1. Joh. ●. 7. Ye worship ye know not what, we know what we worship, for salvation is of the Jews, but the hour cometh, and now is when the true Worshippers, shall worship the Father, in Spirit and truth, for the Father seeketh such to worship him; God is a Spirit, and they that worship him, must worship him, in spirit and truth, Joh. 4.22.23.24. Jer. 10.1. Hear ye the word which Jehovah speaketh unto you, O house of Israel. 2. Thus saith Jehovah, learn not the way of the Heathen, and be not dismayed at the signs of the Heavens, for the Heathens are dismayed at them. 3. For the customs of the people are vain, for one cutteth a Tree out of the Forest: the work of the hands of the workman with the axe. 4. They deck it with Silver and Gold, they fasten it with Nails and with Hammers; that it move not, 5. They are upright as the Palm Tree, but speak not, they must needs be borne because they cannot go, be not afraid of them, for they cannot do evil, neither is it in them to do good. 6. For as much as there is none like unto thee O Jehovah, thou art great, and thy name is great in power. 7. Who would not fear thee, O King of Nations? for to thee doth it appertain, for as much as among all the wise men of the Nations, and in all their Kingdoms there is none like unto thee .. 8. But they are altogether brutish and foolish; the stock is a Doctrine of vanities, 9 Silver spread into Plates is brought from Tharshish, and Gold from Vphaz; the work of the Workman, and the hands of the Founder, blue and purple is their clothing, they are all the works of cunning men. 10. But Jehovah is the true God, he is the the living God, and an everlasting King, at his wrath the earth shall tremble, and the Nations shall not be able to abide his indignation. 11. Thus shall ye say unto them, the Gods that have not made the Heavens and the Earth, even they shall perish from the Earth, and from under these Heavens. God gives rain, and he witholds rain, Deut. 11.14. Amos. 4.7. Psal. 147. Sing unto Jehovah who covereth the Heavens with clouds, read Job. 36. & 37. 12. HE hath made the Earth by his power, he hath established the world by his wisdom, and hath stretched out the Heavens by his discretion, 13. When he uttereth his voice, there is a multitude of waters in the Heavens, and he causeth the vapours to ascend from the ends of the earth, he maketh lightnings with rain, and bringeth the wind out of his Treasures. 14. Every man is brutish in his own † Vain man would be wise, though man be borne a wild ass colt, Job. 11.12. knowledge, every founder is confounded by the graven Image, for his molten Image is but falsehood, and there is no breath in them. 15. They are Unity, and the work of errors, in the time of their visitation, they shall perish. 16. * The Lord's portion is his people, Jacob is the lot of his inheritance, Deut. 32. how gracious is this reciprocation. See the uses that the Saints should and have made of it, Psal. 73.16. & 119.57 Lam. 3. Christ is the portion of the faithful, and they are his portion. The portion of Jacob is not like them, he is the former of all things, and Israel is the tribe of his inheritance, Jehovah of Hosts is his name. Jer. 23.23. Am I a God at hand saith Jehovah, and not a God afar off? can any hid himself in secret places, that I shall not see him, saith Jehovah? do not I fill Heaven and Earth, saith Jehovah? Psal. 135.6. Whatsoever pleaseth Jehovah he doth in the Heavens and in the Earth, in the Seas and in all deep places, vid Dan. 4.34.35 & Ephe. 1 11. Question, 2. What may be learned from these Texts. Answ. These Scriptures teach us to know the most glorious God in his nature and properties, in his works of Creation and providence: Also the Unity of his essence; and that there is a distinction in the unity of essence, by which description wemay plainly see that he cannot be likened to any thing, nor any thing made like to him; Therefore all Idols and Images of him are vanity and wicked, and are to be abhorred, and that he only is to be feared, believed in, worshipped. etc. And all this will more clearly appear by certain positions which may be gathered out of these Texts. QVest. 3. Which be they? Answ. 1. These Scriptures teach us that God is a Spirit most perfect and infinite, and therefore impossible to be conceived of us as he is in himself; and therefore we must content ourselves with such a knowledge as he hath, in his word, revealed to us, according to our capacity, in his names and properties. 1. His names are, * It is good to observe how the attributes and titles are taken one for the other, as Deut. 18.13. Mat. 5 48. So that Elohim, Jehovah, and Father are all one, and so we shall find in other Scriptures. These names, titles, and properties, do expound the proem of the decalogue, and the first commandment, and the Proem of the Lords prayer, and the first petition. Elohim. Jehovah, Adonaj, Shaddaj, Jah, Tzur, etc. which signify the Mighties; the eternal being of himself; and the giver of being to all things else; the Stay of the World; the All-sufficient the giver of life and breath; the Rock, etc. these and others are abridgements of the Bible, and the Bible a commentary on them, 2. His properties, some of them are incommunicable, and some communicable; the incommunicable are simpleness (or unmixednesse) infiniteness, eternity, omnipotency, unchangeableness, immeasurableness, etc. no creature hath these. 3. The properties communicable, are, being, life, goodness, power, wisdom, justice, holiness, truth, mercy, etc. These he communicateth to his creatures, yet they are but in a measure in them as qualities, but in God essential, in the creatures weak and imperfect, but in him each of them is infinite in all perfection, and by these things in the creatures which we see and perceive, the invisible things of God are understood; Some call these, names and properties, titles and attributes. 4. These Scriptures affirm that there is one God, and but one, for there can be but one infinite and eternal being, Creator and Governor. 5. The distinct persons in the Godhead, are from these Scriptures to be learned, the Father, the WORD, and the holy Spirit. Other Scriptures do further direct us how they are distinguished by their order, properties, an works. 1. By their order, the Father is the first person of himself, the Son is the second person, only of the Father, he holy Ghost is the third person from them both. 2. By their properties, Joh 1.14. Joh. 15.26. the Father from all eternity begetteth the Person of the Son, the Son from all eternity is begotten of the Father, the holy Spirit from all eternity proceedeth from them both; These are incommunicable properties in the Persons, the Father's relative property is to beget, and not to be begotten, and therefore he is the first person in order; so, for our better conceiving, we may say, a Person in the Godhead is a subsistence or a being, considered in his relative property. (A) 3. By their works, to the Father is ascribed creation, election, predestination, and adoption; to the Son redemption, to the holy Ghost sanctification. Again, the beginning of every action is given to the Father, the dispensation to the Son, the perfection and consummation to the holy Ghost, these in some respects may be said to be communicable properties in the persons. The reverend Mr. Richardson, Mr. Yates, and Mr. Antony Wotton, etc. Also it must be considered that every title, attribute, or property, that in general is spoken of the Deity, is spoken of, and attributed to each person; as the Father is Jehovah, so is the Son, so is the holy Ghost, Joh. 12.41. Act. 28.25. conferred with Esai. 6.3. to 10. The Father, the Son, the holy Spirit be one, coessential and coeternal, infinite and unchangeable, etc. And so in the attributes, just, holy, good, merciful, etc. each person is so infinitely and unchangably, etc. Also in respect of the Creatures, the attributes are communicable to each Person, as the Son is called Father, Esai. 9 So it may be said of the holy Spirit who begetteth and reneweth us by the word of truth, the Father is our teacher, and so the Son, and so the holy Spirit, the Father sanctifieth, the son sanctifieth, the holy spirit sanctifieth. Therefore it is very useful to observe two things in the persons, their co-operation, and distinct manner of working, the one is necessary in regard of this, that they have the same essence, and therefore cannot but co-worke in every thing; the other is, likewise, as necessary, because each person hath his distinct manner of subsisting. All operation flows from their essence, co-operation from their unity in it, and distinct manner, from the distinct manner of their subsisting. One essence, one operation: and Three being One, must needs work inseparably, and one being Three must needs work in a distinct manner. 6 Through faith we understand that the worlds were builded by the word of God, that the things which are seen, are not made of things which had appearance, Ebr. 11. 6 It is the thrice holy Jehovah, the Father, the Son, and their spirit, all Three one infinite nature, that hath created the heavens, and the Earth and Seas, and all things in them, whether visible or invisible, in a sweet dependency of order. And He the Eternal Being, gave them all their being with perfection of qualities that (B) was fit for each creature in its order and kind 7 It is the same everlasting God, that in his providence from the beginning to the ending, doth in a most holy, just, wise, and merciful order, preserve and govern all things with all their circumstances in the heavens, earth, seas. (C) Therefore called an everlasting King. But this King and (D) Kingdom is more specially to be understood of the son of God, as Mediator, to whom the Father hath committed all authority and power. infra, 8. The true God being thus glorious, and a spirit infinite, is therefore impossible to be perceived by our senses, or comprehended in the short span of our understanding; for he is like to nothing in heaven earth or seas, neither can all the wisest men of the world, make any thing like to him: but if any think so to do, they dote, and are foolish, and vain, (as Isui 40. and many more Chapters do speak) and their images are no Gods (E) nor resemblances of him, but works of errors and lies. They can do neither good nor evil, those that make them are like unto them, and so are all that put their trust in them. And all that worship God by them are (F) haters of the eternal God, and are hated and accursed of him. 9 Here it is showed that God's worship is chiefly spiritual, (G) and all outward worship, otherwise than he hath appointed, is hateful and abominable and uncomfortable; as here and in other scriptures, ceremonious, and superstitious, vanities and makers of images, are reproved as brutish senseless and hopeless. 10 God being One, and none other beside him the supreme Governor, whose is the Kingdom and power over all things, he is only to be feared, loved, trusted in, prayed unto and obeyed; therefore he hath given us ten commandments, with this entrance, That he is jehovah our (H) Elohim, the Eternal, the Mighty God, our creator and Redeemer, and he hath taught us to pray to him, who is the everlasting father, from whom all help comfort and defence cometh, and is to be praised and glorified in all his works of goodness, mercy, wisdom, justice etc. 11 God being a most simple, spiritual, eternal, and infinite Nature: It followeth that he seethe at one instant, and togegether, past, present, and to come, all things in heaven, earth and seas. There is nothing so invisible to our eyes in any place, or so spiritual to our understanding, but he seethe every particular. Nothing is so secret as the imaginations of our thoughts, yet God seethe them. Many uses hence, an understanding and believing heart will make for spiritual obedience, and careful watchfulness over his whole man. Psal. 139. all of it, and 119 168. Job 31.4. 1 Chron. 28.9. Men not understanding or not believing, say in heart, there is no God, or like the wicked in Job, chap. 22, and Psal. 94. Who say, Jehovah shall not see, the God of Jacob will not regard. But God doth both, as the Psalm is notable. Secondly, Hence a world of outward Christians, do show themselves but Atheists. Yea thirdly, The godly, not seriously and constantly considering this, fail much in their sincerity for holy and just obedience. 12. Another singular use is for afflictions, When we have any cause of fear, we may be preserved, that this passion do not too much assail us; by meditating often, we may be throughly acquainted with (I) our God, his titles, properties, and attributes, both incommunicable and communicable: Also of his works of creation, redemption, and Government; in any evil felt or feared, we may quickly turn and seek to god, and so may not fear above measure, as David saith, (K) They that know thy name will trust in thee, Psal. 9.10. Again, When I was afraid, I trusted in thee, Psal. 56.3. Remarkable also is this in Jehosaphat, 2 Chron. 20.12. Also transcendent in those three noble confessors, and Martyrs, Dan 3.16.17.18. So in all temptations, yea in death itself. These things when they are well graffed, and as nails fastened in our souls, will prepare us to contentedness in all adverse things. But let a man be careful always to keep a conscience void of offence, toward God and toward man, than he shall not need to fear for any sudden fear; for the Eternal Being will be for his assurance: But an unfaithful heart of unbeleif cannot tell whither to turn him in affliction and distress, this is manifest in Kain, Saul, Ishcariot and Achitophel. 13. The mighty Elohim, the eternal Being hath created and disposed all things in Christ for the good of his Elect. Therefore the Prophets show that Gods Jesurun, portion and inheritance should not be as the Idolatrous heathens and such like blind ignorant sots, (L) They must not learn their Abominations, nor to be afraid of any of the signs of the heavens, the constellations, eclipses, or strangeness of any of the fiery, eyrie, watery, or earthly Meteors: God hath ever used them (as all are his servants) for the good of his church and the world, and for the destruction of the wicked, as in the Flood, Sodom, Egypt, etc. so it is said, the Heavens fought, and the Stars in their course fought against (M) Sisera, Jud. 5. The stars by their influence in their Constellations raised storms, wind, rain, hail, inundations, etc. Compare with this Job 38.22.23. and Jos. 10.11. also Exod. 5. and the troubles of Pharaohs pursuit, of Israel in the Red sea, Exod. 14.24.25. Psal. 77.16.17.18.19. meditate on Psal. 18. and 28.3. etc. and Psal. 104. and 148. and 1 Sam. 7.10. and 12.17. and 14.15. and much of Jobs book. ANNOTATIONS upon Chapter 1. In Q. 3. N. 5. The same order of the persons in existence, is the same in operation, both in the creation, and in the new creation or regeneration. For the spirit of Elohim, first of the Father, and Secondly of the son, moved, hovered, or as one may say, sat (a Metaphor from birds that fit on their eggs,) on the face of the waters, to hatch or bring forth out of that created Chaos, all the visible and sensible creatures, as it follows in the sixth day's work. As for the other, the Love of the Father, draws on the son's redemption, and their spirit works it up by sanctification, etc. This is an irrefragable bond of working, which the creature cannot frustrate; and Jehovah changeth not, Eph. 1.2. to 16. 1 Cor. 8.6. 2 Cor. 4.4. 2 Cor. 13.13. Joh. 5.19. and 14.26. and 15.26. and 16.7. In N. 6. [That was fit for each cretaure] though the creatures do now groan under corruption, yet it is a miracle of beauty that things are placed to be so excellently subservient to each other. The base and inferior serve the next above them, the liveless serve the Vegetives, the Vegitive the sensitive, the sensitive the Rational, the Rational are to serve the eternal Lord God. In N. 7. [Therefore] who is he that saith that any thing falleth out which Jehovah commanded not? From the mouth of the highest proceedeth not the evil and the good? Lam. 3, 27.38. Broughton reads it, Are not two sparrows sold for a farthing, and one of them shall not fall on the Ground without the Father? Matth. 10. Is there evil in the City, and the Lord hath not done it, Amos? 3.6. Let us be humbled for our Atheism, that look so much to second causes, (God altars times and seasons, and overrules his means, as in the plague in 1636. it being most in winterly season.) And as for fretting and tormenting ourselves about events, every event is an Oracle of God, than no disputing: Yea, be the instruments what can be, it is just, wise, or a merciful event, and all to his glory. Why doth living man murmur? a man for the punishment of his sin, Lam. 3. Therefore David was in a sweet temper when he said, I opened not my mouth, because thou didst it, Psal. 39 2 Sam. 16.10. So than what ever be the second causes, yet the most high God ruleth all in all things in Heaven, earth, sea, and in all deep places, Psal. 135. His providence reacheth as far as his creation. We say it raines, it snows, it freezeth; it misteth, it thundereth, it bloweth, and that the stormy winds do raise the waves etc. We may so speak impersonally, for the holy scripture alloweth the Phrase: But yet we must look, and our children must be taught to look to Jehovah the Eternal Being. He saith to the snow be thou upon the Earth, and likewise to the small rain and the great rain of his strength; he thundereth, he raiseth the stormy wind etc. Job 17.38. and Psal. 104. and 107. These things should be in us from our infancy, that our Faith, Fear, Love, Joy, Hope, Patience, should abound towards him, who doth all things by his wise Counsels, and for the good of his chosen. In N 7. [Kingdom] Although the Kingdom of God be much spoken of in the holy scriptures, yet it hath a more retired and special sense, then is commonly thought upon, this Kigdome is that mediatorial Kingdom of Christ, and therefore all power in Heaven and Earth was not first given to him in Matth. 28.18. For God hath governed the world by his son ever since Adam lost the government by his fall, Gen. 3.15. And therefore it is said, Jehovah from Jehovah reigned fire and brimstone up- Sodom and Gomorrah, Gen. 19.24. In N. 8. [Nor resemblances] We ought to be very careful in prayer, etc. That we fashion not God in our conceptions to any shape. We ought not to think of the Godhead like sottish heathens, or superstitious Papists, Acts 17. Esa. 40, Rom. 1. Therefore let us help our children from the breasts with true knowledge. In N. 8. [Haters] For God saith, I will visit the iniquity of Fathers upon the third and fourth Generation of them that Hate me, as in Exod. chap. 20. In N. 9 [And all outward worship] Self-will worshippers are brutish wights, they worship they know not what, for all their babbling and prating, Act. 17. Joh. 4.22. Jeroboam and his Priests thought and taught that they worshipped the true God in his calves, but God hath told us that he worshipped Devils. A Papist thinks he worships Christ, when he kneels before a golden, silvery, wooden, stony, or painted Crucifix. But the spirit saith, It is the worship of Devils, 2 Chron. 11.25. Apoc. 9 20. In N. 10. [Our Elohim] Meditare ever more of God's Attributes and properties, as a help in Prayer, and as a means to preserve faith and obedience, and to prop us against all temptations to sin, and when through Weakness overtaken by sin, meditate on the same. This will be a means to make us that we shall not conceal or hid our sins: For by concealing we disgrace God's Attributes and properties, but by confession we give Glory to Jehovah, the God of Israel, that he sees us, knows us, that he is just, if he judge and condemn us, that he is holy and cannot abide iniquity, that he is mighty, and able to plague, save, and deliver. And this is a gracious way to make entrance to the Attributes of Mercy, Grace, Patience, loving kindness, Consolation, etc. etc. When men will conceal and hid their sins, they labour to make themselves no better than Atheists, Ezeck 9.10 Psal. 86.14. and 94 7. First, The Apostle saith thus of God's Attributes of strength: Do we provoke the Lord to anger, are we stronger than he? 1 Cor. 10. Jeremiah exhorteth not to glory in the wisdom, strength and riches of this world which come to naught, but in the wisdom, strength and riches that may be found in the true knowledge of God, Je●. 9.23.24. Job. 22.25. Apot. 3.18. and make the comfortable expression of an incommunicable Attribute, in Mal. 3.16. There is both terror and comfort in this Attribute, the living God, it is a fearful thing to fall into the hands of the living God, than it is a living wrath unto hypocrites, that shall last to all eternity, and observe how this is pressed by the Aopstle to the revolting Hebrews despising the blood of the covenant, and cleaving to the false Doctrine of the traditions of their Fathers, Ebr. 10.1. Pet. 1.18. Moses pressed this upon the deceitful hearts that were in Israel in his days: But to the godly this title of living God is as comfortable, for he is their living joy, living consolation, living peace, living glory with God after this life: and therefore while we live here let us meditate as. David did, Jehovah liveth, and blessed be my Rock, Psal. 18.46. This was his comfort in all the storms, floods and winds, that assaulted him in divers trials, as this Psalm and others show, he built on the Rock. This Psalm is expounded of the Son of God, who ruleth all, Rom. 15.9. And he saith to his Disciples, Joh. 14. Because I live, ye shall live also, lively stones built on him the living Rock, this he said to them and to us, because of the trials he foresaw would affront them. It is well for us that Jehovah liveth; Also observe how Moses dealeth in pressing his exhortations, Deut. 7.9. Again, he is wise in heart, and mighty in strength, who ever hardened himself against him and prospered? Job, 9.4.3. When a man addresseth himself to prayer, it is a ground of faith, to begin with some Attribute, and with all to remember some promise as is suitable to our petition, this is an high point of Christian wisdom and piety, the Saints have used so to do, Dan. 9.2.3.4. Rom. 15.5. Neh. 1.8. A man that hath not some knowledge of God in his attributes, and faith concerning them cannot pray with that profit to his inner man, as else he might do. What man can pray as he ought to do, if he believe not God's emnipotency, omnipresence, and omnisciency, and so of the other attributes, above noted. Oh what shall we say, we are not able to order our speech concerning the attributes and works of God, by reason of our darkness, Job. 37.19. N. 12. [Our God his titles etc.] Observe the sweet influences that some glorious stars have yielded (which have risen in the horizon of a Church) from the consideration of God's attributes, the (RR) Mr. Dod on Exo. & 34. D. Preston and others; oh we of little faith; God will set all his attributes on work for us, his attributes are of unspeakable consolation to an holy soul; so on the contrary they are of thundering terror to the Vessels of wrath and dishonour, Psal. 147.5.6. That worthy man, (though a private man) Mr. Henry Church is worthy of joyful memorial for his Miscellanea philo theologica speaking of the Attributes of God. N. 12. [they that know]. The holding of God by faith is better than our holding of him by reason. God is able to do, and doth exceeding abundantly above all that we can ask or think. God's name is as his nature is, secret, and not to be sought: this may wonderfully strengthen faith, for if God were not above, and greater than our apprehensions, he could not help us infinitely Eph. 3.29. and faith maketh a man to set too his seal, that God is true; faith giveth God the honour of all his properties and attributes. Assur shall not save us, we will not ride upon horses, neither will we say any more to the works of our hands, ye are our gods, for in thee the fatherless find mercy, Hos. 14. Again it is said, My defence is in God who saveth the upright in heart, Ps. 7. and 112.6, 7.8. Prov. 3.26. In N. 13. [They must not] The mystical Babylonians called the year 88 the climacterical year of the world, and trusting to their vain superstitions, took the opportunity of that fatal year, as they supposed, utterly to overthrow the Church of God in England and the State there, which before they could not do. The Angel of the pit, the false Prophet, and all his deceived worshippers, laid up all their hopes upon this years' destiny. But for Israel's and Jesu●uns sake, (as against old Babylon) God frustrated the tokens of the liars, and made the Diviners mad, and turned the wise men backward, and made their knowledge foolish: For they, as Balaam and Ha●man could not prevail with their enchantments and sorceries, & counsels, neither could their Astrologers, the star gazers, the Monthly Prognosticators, stand up & save them from the miseries that came on themselves. Foolish Idolaters mistake their Calculations, and do not consider, that the Eternal our holy one, the creator of Israel, our King, hath made the Earth, & created man upon it, and that his hand hath stretched out the Heavens, and that he commandeth all their Hosts for the service of his Redeemed. It is he that commandeth deliverances for jacob Isa. 44 45 47 Psal. 44. Vi. The thankful remembrances of God's mercies by the R.D. Carlton. pag. 130. In N. 13. [Sisera] So again consider for the year 88 for by allusion, the story of Sisera is Cited in Apoc. 16. to show like events against abaddon's kingdom. And while we make Christ our Judge, our Statute maker, and our King, He will be Lord Admiral of our Seas, that the Enemy shall not come with their ships against us, they shall not strengthen their Mast, nor spread their sails, etc. He will save us, Esa. 33. Deut. 33.29. And see how he will make the creatures bustle for us in our distress, Psal. 18.6.7. etc. Psal. 77.14, 1 15.16. and 114.1 Sam. 2.10. God hath no portion in the world or any inheritance but his Church, to which he will be a sun and shield, every man will plead for and defend his inheritance, much more will our Redeemer do it for his inheritance his Church and people. Beloved Reader it is said, This is life eternal that they know thee to be the only very God, and whom thou hast sent Jesus Christ. Joh. 17.3. This first Chapter, in some measure, hath spoken concerning the knowledge of God: Now all the rest of his book doth endeavour to declare the knowledge of the sending of Jesus Christ, and this knowledge should not be a thing indifferent with us, because the excellency of this knowledge tendeth to the enjoyment of life everlasting, 2 Tim. 3.15 16. CHAP. II. Hath divers Questions and Answers, with Annotations from Gen. 3.15. to the Flood of Noah. In which space of time, the Doctrine of Redemption by the promised seed of the woman is Explained. QVest. 1. What is the first promise concerning the sending of JESUS CHRIST for our Redemption? Answ. Gen, 3.15. I will put Enmity between [AA] thee and the woman, and between thy seed and her seed. HE shall break thy head, and thou shalt break his heel. QVest. 2. What do you observe out of this Text? Ans. That the Son of God who was before the beginning, and with the Father in the beginning, is here first promised to be manifested a second Adam, to dissolve the works of the Devil for man's Redemption. QVest. 3. Open the Text more largely. Ans. In this Text the Person & office of Christ is taught, his person, that he is as all other men (sin only excepted) the seed of the (a) woman That is the Son of God is made man, and as it is here prophesied, so it is also historyed, from what persons concerning the Flesh he came, and how the Son of God took man's nature, in Luke 3.23. he was (as men supposed the son of Joseph, but properly) the son of the blessed and beloved * Marry the blessed Virgin, the Mother of our Lord, is in namelest out of Luc. 3. but in matter certained, for the term son, through all these hath relation to our Lord Jesus. The spirits intent is to show, not joseph's, but Christ's natural line. Virgin Mary, of † Eli is not joseph's Father,! for Matthew saith, jacob begat Joseph, but thus it is, a married man hath two Fathers, his own proper Father, and the Father of his wife, as David had Jesse and Saul. Eli, of Matthae, of Levi, of Melchi, of Janna, of Joseph of Mattathas, of Amos, of Naum, of Esli of Nag, of Maath, of Mattathias, of Simei, of Joseph of Judah, of Joanna, of Rhesa, of Zorobabel. Of Salathiel, of Neri, of Melchi, of Addi, of Cosom, of Elmodam, of Er, of Jose, of Eliezer, of Jorim, of Matthat of Levi, of simeon, of Judah, of Joseph, of Jonan, of Eliakim, of Melea, of Mainan of Mattatha, of Nathan, of DAVID. Of Jessai, of Obed, of Boaz, of Solomon, of Naasson, of Amminadab, of Aram, of Esr●m, of Pharez, of Judah, of Jacob, of Isaac, of Abraham. Of Thara, of Nahor, of Saruch, of Regu, of Phaleg, of Eber, of Salah, of Cainan, of Arphaxad, of SHEM. Of Noah, of Lamech, of Methuselah, of Enoch; of Jared, of Malaleel, of Cainan, of Enos, of Seth, of Adam, (d) of GOD. QVest. What understand you by his Office? Ans. The first Adam not keeping for one day the government committed to him, the Son eternal would take man's nature that he might (e) govern, he was made (f) Heir of all, far above all principality and power, might, and Dominion, and every name that is named, not in this world only, but also in that to come. And all things in Heaven and Earth and Seas were subjected to him the second Adam, as indeed all things were created by HIM and FOR HIM. And he is before all things, and by him all things consist. And in him all the elect, both them which are in Heaven, and them which are in Earth, are reconciled, and gathered as under one head. He was consecrated by God the Father from the day of (g) man's fall to be Mediator, and head over all things to the Church, which office he did execute, as he is a Prophet, Priest, and King, in the time of the Old Testament in his Types both * Kings, Priests, Prophets, fi●st borne, etc. persons and things. And when the fullness of time was come for the making of the New Testament, be himself took unto him our Nature to do the Will of the Father. Quest 5. What are the benefits that come to us from the person and ●ffie of Christ? Answ. They are unsearchable, but I will name some principal. 1. Satan (h) brought man to offence, and so out of the favour of God, and to shame of face, and to the fear of Bondage; (i) Christ the second Adam procured Reconciliation, Justification, and (k) Adoption. 2. Satan brought man's soul to darkness, sinfulness, or to death in sin; (l) Christ the second Adam gives it knowledge, righteousness, and (m) the life of holiness. 3. Satan brought man's body to miseries, death and corruption; (n) Christ the second Adam sustaineth it in this its pilgrimage, and perfectly restoreth it to life and incorruption in the Resurrection. 4. Satan caused the first Adam to be expelled from the Tree of life, and the Paradise terrestrial, and brought all this world (o) under curse, and so subject to vanity, and (p) corruption: Christ the second Adam restoreth to the faithful a comfortable, and sanctified use and service of the (r) creatures, and will make a new world for his and their glory to dwell still with God, and to feed upon the Tree of life in the Paradise celestial, and command Satan with his seed into eternal flames. Add also unto this, that Christ the second Adam, the head of all principality and power, restoreth to them that are in him adopted, the attendance of the † Read Psal. 34. and 91, Ebr 1. Col. 1.16.2. Rom. 6.17. Esa. 37.36. Abraham's, Lots, and jacob's stories, and daniel's book Ebr. 13.2. holy Angels. Quest. What other observations out of this Texts Answ. 1. God hath decreed what shall be the estate of the corrupted mass * Hath not the Potter power over the clay to make of the same lump, one V●ssell to honour, and another to dishonour, who art thou, O man that disputest, Rom. 9 For the manifsstation of Justice and mercy, there are elect and reject in all ages. of mankind; that some shall be the seed of Satan, (t) and the children of perdition, and that some shall be elected, predestinated, and adopted Sons of God, by Faith in Christ, (u) and heirs of salvation. II. God out of his free love and mercy made this promise to our first Parents, of giving his only begotten Son, when they neither desired it, much less deserved it; nay this mystery of his will, and this way of salvation could not (y) enter into their heart, till God in whole eternal council and decree it was hid, did reveal it. And this is the State of all mankind, from the first Adam till the Spirit of Christ, by cherishing the waters of the LAW, beget in us, to a new light and life, even a new creation, 2 Cor. 4.6. III. The Son of God being promised, that he should destroy in man's nature as a second Adam, the (a) works of the Devil, the holy Spirit taught the Saints in all ages, that they should not allow or practise the dead works of darkness, or of the corrupt (b) nature of the old Adam, but labour for a new life by faith and regeneration in the second Adam, in whom we are (c) complete. And hitherto pertain many of the Lords † Read Ezek 16. & 36 Jer. 31. & 32. & 33. Esai. 42.1. to 17. etc. gracious promises, and all the commandments, exhortations, motives, examples, prayers, vows, covenant: to be heavenly, † Read Deut. 30.6. Jer. 32.38.39. to love the Lord and the word of his truth, to walk before him in godly fear in all well pleasing, and so all the Saints ever did: as Adam, Habel, Henoch, No, etc. also hitherto pertain the * Reduce all dehortations, as love not the World, nor the things of the world, 1. Joh. 2. set not your affections on the Earth, Col. 3. and on the contrary, ●educe the exhortations: as seek the things above, Eccl. 11. & 12. dehortations, threaten, curses, and examples of sin, and punishment in walking contrary. iv From this first preaching of the Gospel, we must attentively mind this, that Jehovah who was, who is, who will be still the same, (d) doth rule all ages to one sum of salvation in Christ. And to this faith he ever calleth his elect (e) by his word and Spirit, from the communion of Devils and the wicked world, to have communion with him and his Son Jesus Christ, our Lord by way of Ordinances. The reason that God hateth the wicked, is, God teaching this continually from the beginning, yet the wicked rebel and join with Sa●an, 2 Cor. 4.4. V * In all ages for teaching, ●ead Psal 44. & 79.1. Thes. 3.2. Col. 1.24. etc. for his S. observation. believing, and professing this glorious Doctrine of Christ (f) great disputations, contentions, sorrows, tentations, persecutions, in body, goods, name, and life, come unto Michael, Christ Jesus and his (g) Angels, by Satan and his Angels: yet Christ went through all conquering: and so faith in him and in his word doth make us conquerors. Many sweet promises belong to this head. VI The duty of all Christian beleivers, is to be unfeigned in brotherly love, (h) holding one another with a dear pure heart fervently, and to resist the Devil and his members, (i) and to have no fellowship with the workers, nor with the works of wickedness. Behold severity through all generations; when the Church walked contrary. VII. Because this Text of Gen. 3.15. is a promise of Christ, that he should take humanity, & destroy Satan's works, therefore in it, implicitly are the petitions of the Saints for all good concerning soul and body; Intercessions as respecting the communion of Saints, deprecations to be delivered and protected from all evil, and holy imprecations against the seed of the Serpent. Also hence issue, the (k) praises and thanksgivings, for receiving good for ourselves, or others, both in respect of spiritual blessings, and in that all (l) creatures of each days creation (whether visible or invisible) in Christ, are servants and friends to the elect. Hence also proceed praises and thanksgivings for (m) deliverance and protection from Satan, his seed and works. QUest. 7. Did God ordain any public worship to his name, presently after the fall of our first Parents, and after the promise? Answ. As God (n) taught our first Parents the Doctrine of faith, so he taught them prayer and sacrificing, and blessed the seventh day and sanctified it, for a day of rest, for study how God rested from Creation in the Redemption by Christ, he being promised to be Heir of all. (o) Sacrifice was used from the day of Adam's Apostasy, teaching of life coming by death. Adam taught his Sons, and his Sons Sons, to the eighth successive Child, and those that offered in faith discerning the blood of the covenant did please God, had peace, and reconciliation with God, and were made heirs of the righteousness that is by faith, the Church in Adam's family with God's † The Ordinances were the preaching of the word of faith. 2, Prayer. 3. the Seal of the promise. Ordinances is called (p) the presence of God. The * Mr. Ainsworth on Gen. 4.14.16. Presence of God in holy Ordinances is most glorious and comfortable, to which the faithful in all ages of the Church resorted with holy fear, exceeding joy, praise, and thanksgiving, Psal. 42. & 43. & 84. & 100 etc. QUest. 8. Who believed this report concerning the second Adam, and to whom was the arm of the Lord revealed? Answ. Adam and his Sons * Habel, Seth, Enos, and the rest of the godly Fathers, and their godly posterity to the Flood. QUest. 9 Who hated this Doctrine, and persecuted this way of life in Christ. Answ, Kain was the first that began the † War of the Serpent against the (q) holy seed. And this persecution by men that followed Kains ways, goes on to the end of the World. QUest. 10. Was there any apostasy from this faith and way of salvation afore the Flood? Answ. Christ the Light and Life shined in darkness, but he was not comprehended of the Sons of darkness: for beside the Doctrine and practice of bodily exercise in Kain, there was (r) a great apostasy, and that quickly of the Sons of the open Church, who having a form of godliness, but denying the power thereof, despised the Doctrine of regeneration, grieved the holy Spirit, and corrupted the calling on the name of the Eternal: And the chief occasion of all this was by (s) ungodly marriages, with Kains (t) worldly glorious house: from all which issued (u) a confluence of all iniquity, setting Light by Gods long suffering while the Ark was making, committing all ungodly deeds, and uttering hard and bitter speeches against the Heavens. And so it is in all apostasies. † Remember still, that in all apostasies of the Church, the faithful cannot be visibly glorious. QUest. 11. What came to the faithful that did first cleave to the faith, (which was once delivered to the Saints) and that walked with God? Answ. Through (x) faith, they obtained good † report with God, God was not ashamed to be called their God, and their Father, & they his Sons, & he accounted that the world was not worthy of them, and therefore he prepared for them an Heavenly (y) City and Country, for they had gracious promises of God's favour, through his covenant in Christ, the true Noah, who doth comfort us concerning our works, and concerning the sorrows of our hands, and concerning the earth which God hath cursed. † wherefore they had preservation and deliverance from the severe destruction of the World by Waters. Thus God was a rewarder of them, that by faith did diligently seek him. This doth teach us how precious faith is in the Son of God, that should come into the World. QUest. 12. What came on the (z) co: upters of the Faith, the despisers and wantoness, and feasters, and mockers, and murderers, the seed of the serpent, that walked after their own lusts? Answ. Kaine was cursed (a) and excommunicate, and Christ did execute Judgement, and bruised his posterity, and the Apostates in his fearful severity in the Flood, washing their bodies away, and cast their spirits into eternal prison, for their unbelieving, disobedient striving against the (b) Spirit of Christ in his Prophets, preaching the Gospel: So dangerous it is, when people will not be wise * Consider Psal. 2. through the whole volume, how Christ breaketh the plots, counsels etc. of the serpent's seed. and kiss the Son. The next general judgement of the world, and of wicked and ungodly men shall be by fire. God hates (c) the wicked, unbelievers and hyppocrites in all ages, like Devils, according to that most constant doctrinal position, 2 Joh. 9 Whosoever transgresseth and abideth not in the Doctrine of Christ, hath not God; he that abideth in the Doctrine of Christ, he hath both the Father and the Son. QUest. 13. How long was it from the first pronouncing of the curse upon the Earth, to the open manifection of it by the Flood of waters? Answ. It was sixteen hundred fifty and six years. Some Annotations upon this second Chapter, with References to the number of the Questions, and Letters of A, B, C, etc. In Answer to the first question in expounding Gen. 3.15. This scripture is the Basis of all the Doctrine of God's Counsel concerning Redemption by Christ; this scripture declares the decree of God's eternal counsel and covenant, as it was concluded and agreed on by the holy Trinity for man's Redemption from Satan's headplot. Satan's plot and purpose was to spoil man, and so consequently to have spoilt and undone the whole work of God in the Creation: But this that sets forth an heavy threatening against Satan, and the serpent his instrument, that one from the seed of the woman should break his headplot, and heal that misery which he brought on man, and because that should be done, a new heaven and a new earth should be made to the praise of God's counsels, which over reached the plot and project of Satan. So this scripture contains in it, a threatening to the serpent and his seed, and a promise to Eve & to all her believing seed of Christ. Beloved Reader, concerning this Text and the threatening in it to the terror of the serpent and his seed, be pleased to read Mr. Pynchons' book of the meritorious price of man's redemption, printed 1655. there you will have plentiful satisfaction; but for this little work I purpose chiefly to enlarge myself, not as it is a threatening, but as it is a promise concerning Christ. The refore I will further observe from Gen. 3.15. I. That in this Text, The eternal Gospel hid in God, before the foundation of the world, was now in Paradise manifested, even the hid wisdom. II. To this first and precious promise, the Apostle hath respect, when he saith, He was made an Apostle of the faith and truth, that is for the hope of eternal life, which God that cannot lie, promised before the times of the world, but made his word of promise manifest in due time by the sending of jesus Christ, Tit. 1.1, 2, 3.2 Tim. 1.9.2. Pet. 1.4. The times of the world are counted by the birth of the first ten Fathers to the flood, Thence by ten holy Fathers to the promise to Abraham. Thence to the coming from Egypt. Thence to the building of the Temple. Thence to the burning of it by Babel's King. Thence to the end of the captivity in Babel. Thence by seventy sevens of years to the death of Christ, or to the glorious redemption of man, by the death of our Lord Jesus Christ. III. This comprehendeth the Faith of Gods elect, which was once delivered, that is, first and once for all, delivered to the Saints, and never after to be changed. All other promises of Christ, are but commorations and expositions of this. The Doctrine of Faith can be but one, because there is but one God, and one Mediator, Eph. 4. Note this phrase again once delivered but still expounded. This is Genus generalissimum. And for this faith, the Saints of all ages have contended to keep and uphold it against the serpent and his seed, as all the Epistle of judas Thaddaeus is upon this argument. All sins and punishments come on the world for despising this faith, and comforts for embracing, 2 Thes. 1.8. iv From this first preaching of Christ till the mystery of God, which he hath spoken by his holy Prophets and Apostles be finished, we must mind this constantly, that God's purpose was not to bring man fallen, to life by the remains of any natural abilities; there was a Bar that we should not think of any hope in that, Gen. 3. ult. But by a new and living way in the second Adam. This is a Covenant of Grace, not to him that worketh, but to him that believeth and receiveth the Son of God as Mediator, him hath God exalted (in holy doctrine from the beginning) with his right hand to be a Prince and a Saviour, for to give change of mind and forgiveness of sins to all the Israel of God, Acts 3.21. & 5. 31. Now this new way is very foolishness to us naturally, therefore we dream of great excellencies in our corrupt, dead, stinking graves: But we must hear the voice of the Son of God in his own ordinances, john 5. and he must say to us, live, afore we can have the first Resurrection, as we cannot have the second without his powerful voice, joh. 5. Isa. 2.1, 2, 3, 4, 5, 6. V If the first Adam or any of him could help themselves, what need the Son of God to be promised from the beginning, to be a second Adam, and to appear to destroy the works of the Devil? 1 Joh. 1. and 3. he only knew how, and was only able to manage the whole offic● of mediation, and to perform all righteousness, according to covenant in his own person, without pressing, and by his glorious Ordinances effectually to call, and unquestionably to justify, and to prepare for glory all them of his mystical body which the Father gave him. Neither Adam nor any of his posterity had such abilities, and for any thing they could do, they should have born their own iniquities, which was such a yoke, that neither Patriarch nor Apostle were able to bear; change of mind and forgiveness of sins was ever preached to be by the second Adam, Luke 24.47. Be it known therefore to all men (saith this first promise) that through this blessed seed, the son of God made man is preached to us the forgiveness of sins, and by him all that believe are justified (that is, made free) from the guilt of sin and punishment, from which we could not be justified or made free by the Law of Moses, Acts 13. The world was 3960 years from the Apostasy of the first Adam, to the Redemption by the second Adam, and who in all that time saved himself from death, Death reigned over all, old and young; it is the second Adam that conquered death, the reward of original sin, and he risen again for the justification or freedom of all. God's Children from sin and fear of death. Oh that self conceited and proud iniquity would once stop its mouth; for every mouth shall be stopped, and all the world shall be subject to the judgement of God, Acts 13. and 15. Rom. 4 ult. What the Law of works could not do, the election hath obtained, Rom. 11. VI Mark that from this first and main free promise, God hath conveyed all comforts, of wisdom, justification, (or Freedom) Sanctification and Redemption, on fallen man, and no way else can or aught to be sought after: It could never have entered into the heart of man to think of this way, if God of his rich Grace had not first declared this rich mystery of his will in a free promise; how could our first fallen Parents have thought of a Redeemer, much less of the means of obtaining such a Redeemer at the hands of God. This mystery was ordained in God's eternal Council and providence, before the foundation of the world was laid, to be revealed upon Adam's fall, his ways are unsearchable, his wisdom, mercy, power, and love is passed finding out, and doubtless our first parents and all their faithful posterity, could but with admiration, say the Epitaph not seen, nor ear heard, neither hath entered into the heart of man the things that God ●ath prepared for them that love him 1 Co●. 2. Of him and through him, and to him are all things. To him be glory for ever Amen, Esa. 43.25. Esa. 48.9, 10, 11. Rom. 11. Jer. 31.33. Jer. 32.39. Ezek. 36.25.26. VII. Christ was promised a Redeemer, not only from the guilt and punishment of sin, but to make us in himself Sons of God; even new creatures. VIII. All outward comforts come by promise in Christ; several godly persons of late years have done well in composing Treatises of the promises. IX. It is to admiration, That Jehovah the eternal God, should seek to enter into a covenant of Grace with fallen man, with the slaves of the Devil, with enemies, and with children of wrath, that he should enter into a free promise and Covenant with us to be our God, and to make us to be his people. See his kindness to the polluted infant in Ezek. 16. X. All things are made subject to Christ, as the heir of all from the first day of Adam's fail, but Satan doth labour with all sedulity to withdraw man's Blind heart from the understanding of this doctrine, and doth labour to suggest fond imaginations of idolatry, superstition, bodily exercises and Fables etc. to corrupt it, and by persecution to hinder it; yea to abolish it: This is a Doctrine of Faith which no natural man can attain until his mind and divine illumination be regenerate and made capable to comprehnd this hid mystery of God in Christ. All precepts, promises and threaten, are ordained to bring fallen man to obey the Son of God as mediator. All the victory, administrations of Christ's Kingdom by the word, seals, censures, etc. are for this purpose till the mediatorian Kingdom be redelivered, 1 Cor. 15. But all things are chiefly intended for the Elect, 1 Cor. 14.32. 11. The second not on Gen. 12.13. may be of use here. 12. Thus from the first preaching of the Gospel, we must observe why Christ is called Alpha and Omega, the first and the last, not only in causes and effects, but also of all divine Revelation in the blessed scriptures, all runs on him. All the Promises, Threaten, Commandments, Examples, Chastisements, etc. all drive us to Christ, he also is Alpha and Omega in all the praises of the Church, he is also the main matter and mark of the holy Bible, All things were created by him and for him, and he is before all things, and by him all things consist, and he is the head of the body, the Church, Col 1.18. In 3. Q. [The seed of the woman] Hence Children should be first taught to read Gen 3. with Luke 3. and Luke 4 together for two principal ends, first, To know, how Jesus our Lord is of the blessed Virgin Mary of Eli, and of Adam and Eve naturally, and in this respect the Genealogy of men in Luke 3. are the glory of mankind, being all Fathers to the Son of God after the flesh. 2. The better to compare the sorrowful combat of Adam, being killed on his first day, from the life of the soul to death in sin, with the glorious combat and victory of our Lord the second Adam, driving Satan to flight, and the reason why the Son of God should take hold of man's nature, is purposely handled by the Apostle, in Ebr. 2. Ebr. 3. Ebr. 4. Ebr. 5. Great is the mystery of Godliness, God manifested in the flesh, It is most glorious to consider it, and how it hath been diligently taught in every age from Gen. 3.15. and for the better knowing of this mystery, the Law of Moses was made, the Tabernacle, and the frame of the world, and well might David and Solomon say with admiration, That God would dwell with man on earth, also in his apparitions to the Saints before the Flood, and to the Patriarches and Prophets,, he spoke with us, (mark this corporation speech in Hos. 12.4.) At Bethel, and dwelled among us, in his Tabernacle and Ordinances, then in the Temple till the captivity, then in the second Temple, and then at last he became very man, making our flesh his Tabernacle, and dwelled among us, Joh. 1.14. Cor. 6. but his special residence in us is in our hearts by Faith, These things made singing affections in the Saints of old, Ps. 40. Ps 100 Ps: 135. Ps. 147. Ps. 149. Ps. 149.1 Chr. 16.1 King. 8.2 Sam. 7. Joh. 17. Ex. 15. and any that duly consider this, cannot but sing praises to the God of our Salvation. In Q. 3. [Of Adam in the Genealogy] When the holy spirit bringeth Genealogies from the first man unto Jesus our Lord, it may teach all men that the world was made and had a beginning, so Moses Law taught Misgraim, that is the Egyptians and others in his time, and Ezra the Persians too, before Aristotle and such Athean praters, 1 Chron. 1.1. see Bro. in Manuscript. In Q 4. and Answ. [He might govern] Genesis showeth how that by the word of Jehovah the Heavens were made, all the settled Army of them by the spirit of his mouth, and when man fell, the word telleth, That for the destroying of the works of the Serpent, he would be made flesh, and have a Tabernacle in our nature, and so to be a second Adam to govern all things. In which point the Patriarches faith is evidenced by the charge of Joseph to carry his bones with theirs unto the Land of Canaan, where our Lord's Resurrection should be a testimony of a new world, see Bro. in Appo. 1.108. The government of the world to come (for so the Jewish Doctors did style the days of Messiah) is that meditorean Kingdom which the holy Prophet so magnifieth to endure through all ages and generations, Ps. 8. Ps. 45. Ps. 93. Ps. 145. etc. And this Kingdom of Christ the second Adam is handled in 1 Cor. 15. Ebr. 2. Eph. 1.22. from Ps. 8. Namely, That the Son eternal should rule as the mediator of his Church, till all things be restored, but then his Kingdom shall be delivered up when the last enemy's death & Satan are perfectly subdued and destroyed, Then all the elect which have been called, justified and adopted in Christ by the word of his kingdom & by the work of his spirit, shall be presented unto the father, and all prophesying, and all other new victory, sweet helps of our edification in the body of Christ, shall cease, for than shall be the fullness; Eph. 4.11.12.13. In Q 4. [Heir of all] David with great admiration doth handle this in Ps. 8. He the second Adam upholds all by the word of his power and this he shown in Noah, when all beasts and Elements obeyed him at the flood, and so at the destruction of Sodom, Jehovah from Jehovah reigned fire and brimstone, Gen. 16. and so in the days of Joshuah, 10.11 In like sort, those noble and excellent descriptions of Christ his person and Office (in the three fold Offices of Prophet, Priest, and King) are wonderful for all sorts of heavenly and terrible Doctrine, in Psal. 2. Psal. 45. Psal. 110. Esa 9 Dan. 7. Dan 9 Dan. 10. Daq. 12. and that in Apot. 1. may well comprehend the sum of them all, but all of them should first be minded as expounding, Gen. 3.15. Eph. 1.22.23. Col. 1.14.15. & the Epistle to the Ebr. all of it, He is the blessed & only potentate to the King of Kings and Lord of Lords, 1 Tim 6. Apoc 19 Joh 3.35. The Father loveth the Son and hath given all things into his hands, we must reverence the Heir, and beleevingly obey him, for Christ is appointed a Prince and a Saviour, to give change of mind and forgiveness of sins. This was taught from the beginning, that he should be this horn of Salvation, and of this Doctrine, there have been prophets to declare it ever since the world began, Luke 1.70. Act. 3.21. In Q. 4. [From the day of man's fall] All the time from the time of man's fall to the restoring of all things by the Messiah, is called, The World to come, and it is subjected to the Messiah, Ebr. 2.5. but the restitution of all things is first prophesied in Act. 3.21. In Q. and Answ. 5. [Satan brought man, n. 1.] Man was ever the object of Satan's harred: and as Christ was man of the seed of the deceived woman, and appointed to combat with Satan for man's Redemption: so Christ was the object of Satan's most deadly hatred: but such was the perfection of his obedience under his greatest enmity, that he spoilt principalities and powers, even in his death on the cross, Col 2.15. and this comfort also belongs to all the persecuted Saints, that this great Red Dragon is chained, Apoc. 20. and shall shortly be utterly trodden under our feet, Rom. 16. In Q. 5. [Christ the second Adam] Christ destroyeth Satan's works, not only in us, but from without us, and this is ●n unchangeable truth, in all those that are called according to God's purpose, Joh. 13.1. Christ is the restorer of all things, in him we have all things that appertain to life and godliness; he is the Corner stone that couples all the building, and there is no other name under Heaven whereby we can be saved, Act. 4 None but Christ, as blessed Lambard said, Him hath God the Father sealed, Joh. 6.27. Him hath God exalted with his right hand to be a Prince and a Saviour to give repentance to all the Israel of God, and forgiveness of sins, And this is a sure rule from the beginning, He that believeth on the Son hath everlasting life, and he that believeth not the son shall not see life, but the wrath of God abideth on him, Joh. 3●36. so then cursed was he that said, Si & illa, & illa colantur; neque esse noxium, si inter Gentilium arras & Dei Ecclesiam quis transiens, utraque v●nerc●ur; and little better are the Atheistical moderators of our days, 1631.1632.1633. 1634.1635.1636.1637. In Q. 5. [And Adoption] And now little Children abide in him (the second Adam) that when he shall appear, we may have boldness, and not be ashamed before him at his coming, 1 Joh. 2. By him we have adoption, Joh. 1.12. and his spirit doth enable us to cry Abba Father, mark these scriptures, Ebr. 4.14.15, 16. Rom. 8.15. Eph. 2.18. Rom. 5.1, 2. In Q 5. N. 11. [Christ the second Adam] Now Satan the old Serpent, spiritual weaknesses, and the God of this world, doth, by God's just judgement, make war against us, about supercelestial things, and wrestleth cunningly to hold us still in our most miserable estare of blindness, imprisonment, and bondage: but, by the power of the second Adam, and by the word of his Grace, we are set free, and such as are blind do receive their sight, and by his grace we are made able to stand, resist, and overcome: his Grace is in us and over us, and the Apostle of the Gentiles salutes them all thus, The grace of our Lord Jesus Christ be with you all, Amen. Esa. 42.6.7. Esa. 49.9. Ephes. 6.1. joh. 2, Rom 7. Esa. 45. 24. In Q. 5. [The life of holiness] In him was life, and the life was the light of men, joh 1. joh 8.12 The second Adam saith, I am the light of the world, he that followeth me shall not walk in darkness, but shall have the light of life, his Law restoreth the soul, Psal. 19 Ps. 23. Ephes. 2.1. Eph. 4.24. Col. 3.10.1. Co●. 15.49. Esa. 11 9.1 joh. 1. joh. 2 4. He is the true Shepherd and Bishop of our Souls. In Q 5. N. 3. [Christ the second Adam] The appearing of our Saviour Jesus Christ, as it was promised, hath brought life and immortality through the Gospel, 2 Tim. 1. Martha's and our Lord's conference was heavenly, the shows; that she expected life and immortality through him, joh. 11.21. and 1 Cor. 15.1 Thess. 4. And johs faith for this point is worthy of all consideration joh 19 Ps. 46.15. Ps. 17.15. Sin reigns to death through the first Adam, but grace reigns through Righteousness (or freedom) to eternal life through Christ the second Adam, R●m. 5. The comparisons of the first and second Adam, are most sweet, in Rom. 5. and 1 Cor. 15. Secondly, Consider further, how our Lord doth sustain us in this our pilgrimage, he is said to hold our souls in life, in him we live, he is our life and the length of our days he provides and gives means of life, meat to eat, and to put on, he is our preserver in all places, and at all times, he speaks to diseases to come and to go, and when he pleaseth to withhold his preservation we languish and die, the Godly have the feeling and knowledge of all this, they find they have their life from Jesus as from a common stock, even for the body, he is a second Adam to us, that his life might be made manifest in our mortal flesh, joh 7.20. Ps. 30.2. Cor. 4.8. Jehovah i.e. Christ is thy life through Israel, Deut. 30.20. not Moah, nor Ammon, nor Edom. In Q 5. N. 4 [under curse] All afflictions are comprehended in this and the like say, First, cursed is the earth for thy sake, for in sorrow thou shalt eat of it, Gen. 3 17. Secondly, I will greatly multiply thy sorrow, Gen. 3.16. Thirdly, I will put enmity between the Serpent and the woman, and thou, Satan, sh●lt bruise his footstool, Gen. 3.15. For the two former, see how Christ doth for his chosens sake destroy Satan's works in Ps. 8. Ps. 107. Ps. 128. joh 5.23. Hos. 2.18. 1 Tim. 4. Tit. 1.15. 1 Tim 2.14.15 The creatures are joyful to be employed for the church's uses, Ps. 65. Ps. 67. Es. 44.23. Hos. 2.21.22. They are purified from the usurpation of the curse, made useful, serviceable, and sanctified by the Covenant, and by the word of promise, and by holy and humble prayer, Ez●k. 36.37 But many cases of conscience do often arise for these things in our hearts, If Christ destroy Satan's works, how is it that there be so many afflictions, restraints, crosses, etc. in our persons labours and estates, whereas in the mean time the wicked do commonly prosper? All is answered in johs book and in Ps. 73. Ps. 30 Ps. 37. All the affliction of the godly is either for the trial of Graces, or for the purging of vices; by Christ the curse is removed and afflictions are sanctified, and by his discipline made wholesome medicines, the counsels of God are unsearchable, but what he doth is in wisdom, love, and righteousness, and in that respect he makes all to work together for good to them that love God, why then should we dispute, murmur, distrust, or judge hardly of ourselves or of others that fear God, or have an ill opinion of the Lord God; every event is an Oracle, Be dumb therefore before the shearer, the more we struggle the less we prevail, no wise Father doth grieve his child willingly, so God doth not afflict willingly, Lam 3.31. but when need is, 1 Pet. 1. Lay therefore thy face to the ground in a holy submission, that so there may be hope, Lam. 3.27. Esa. 28 23. And as for that third saying, That Satan shall be at enmity with the woman, and shall bruise, consider Psal. 129. Rom. 8.28.2 Thes. 1. etc. all these sums of afflictions must call to remembrance the sin of our first Parents, in whom all have sinned, Rom 5.12. In Q. 5. N. 4 [Vanity and corruption] All Ecclesiasts must here be considered, which showeth from a plentiful induction, the variety of God's Providences to find the instability and passing away of all under the Sun, that so we might be diligent all our life long, to see how the soul may stand in judgement for the hope of eternal comfort, God's aim is to bring us to this, saying nothing but Christ, Ps. 73. and to this not to love the world, nor the things that are in the world. 1 joh. 2.15. 1 Cor. 7. 31. In Q. 5. N. 4 [Service of the creatures] The very creatures do joy both in the temporal and spiritual good of the Church, (as hath been touched above) Luke 15.10. Ps. 65. Ps. 67. Es. 43.23. Apoc. 5.11.12.13. Ps. 24 Ps, 91. The Angels, the Stars, the Heavens, the Rivers, the Seas, the Earth with winds, storms, tempests, hail, etc. Ps. 18. jud. 5. Ps. 11 All these are ordered for the good of Christ and his Church. Ps. 96. Psal 98. And Christ's intercession doth mitigate the curse Gen. 8.21. Psal. 128. I will once more briefly sum up these four heads. The first old Adam was a figure, (but in a contrary way) of the second Adam that was to come, The first Adam by his sin was the corrupter of all things, the second Adam the restorer of all things, by his obedience procuring our Regeneration & Justification; the godly are a new creation, old things are passed away, all things through Christ are become new to them, and hence that speech is glorious, All things are yours, whether the world, life, or death; whether things present or things to come, all condi●●ons, all events are yours, all the Ordinances, all the Officers both of Church and Commonweal are yours, all the Angels are yours, all the promises and precepts are yours, Christ is yours, God is yours, ye are Christ's, and Christ is Gods, 1 Cor. 3. In Q. 6. N: 1 [The seed of Satan] This is the malignant Church, But observe through all the holy story, how the Son of God the second Adam hath whet his sword, bend his bow, and prepared his arrows against them, he hath both promised and sworn to the Church, that he will have war with him from generation to generation, even until Satan's headplot is wholly broken, Ps. 7. both by giving them over to spiritual judgements, and to outward plagues, Thou hast trodden all them that err from thy statutes, for their deceit is falsehood, thou puttest away all the wicked of the earth like dross, Therefore I love thy testimonies, Ps. 119.116. Jer. 6.30. And in the promise to Abraham, God doth curse them Gen. 12. and Leu. 26. The holy spirit doth also in detestation describe them by many infamous titles and comparisons, Seed of the Serpent, Gen. 3.15. Mal. 3. Angels of the Devil, Sons of Belial, etc. these are the multitude that go the broad way to destruction; as may be seen in the Apostasy of the old world, and in the Apostasy of Nimrod, and in the Apostasy of the ten Tribes, by the persuasion of Jeroboam, and of the two Tribes not long after: so liwkeise it fell out in the Kingdom of the King of Locusts. In Q. 6. [Adopted Sons of God] These are the Church militant, yet great is their glory in the Covenant and in the promises that are made to them in Christ; they have glorious Titles, They are called the Sons of God, the Angels of Christ, the truest of the living God, his spouse, his portion which God hath created for his promise, Es. 43. This is that Kingdom of Christ that endureth to the end, and that consumeth all other kingdoms that oppose the little flock that go the narrow way that leadeth unto life. In Q. 6. N. 11. [God made this promise] God was the first teacher of the glad tidings of the Doctrine of faith, to open the blind eyes, and to turn men from darkness to light, and from the power of Satan to God: When Adam was become poor, blind, miserable and naked, God was pleased to give his collyrion eye salve from the promise of Christ, for that declaration of Redemption by the seed of the woman was denounced as a threatening to the Serpent, but as it was spoken in the hearing of Adam and Eve, it employed a promise of Redemption to them from Satan's headplot, so the promise was also made to once ungodly Abraham before his calling, where now was free will, merits, works foreseen, etc. Read Esa. 42.7.16. Esa. 43 25. Psal. 103. All is of free Grace. In Q. 6 N 11. [Nay it could not enter] This made the Apostle to break forth into joy and praise, because God doth to us (not to the Angels that fell) above all that we can ask or think, Eph. 3.20.21. Christ saith, I was sound of them that sought me not, Es. 65.1. and of this wonderful mercy did David and Aethan sing; Psal 40. Psal. 89. Psal. 103. This is the great and wonderful thing of Christ's Law that David prayed that he might see with opened eyes, Psal. 119.18. and Paul for the Ephesians, Eph. 1.18. Great and glorious is the mystery of Godliness, that the Son of God should be manifested in the flesh for the effecting of all this, to the elect, Gen. 3-15. and Esa. 57.15. is very pertinent, yea all the blessed Scriptures are the Revelation of these glad tidings of the Gospel from Gen. 3.15. In Q. 6. N. 11. [Till the Spirit of Christ] The word is of no effect without the spirit, neither doth the spirit ordinarily work without the blessed means, (never contrary) to his own divine Revelation; as God commanded the light to shine out of darkness: so he gives a command to his word to be a light and a Lamp in our dark hearts, by the operation of his spirit, and by this means he makes his exhortations, covenants and promises to be effectual means for the reconciling of our enemy, cogitation: The learning of Christ's Law, doth work in us a new creation; Eph. 4.20, 21, 22, 23, 24. The Law of Christ the true shepherd is a Doctrine of restoring and converting the soul, Ps. 19 Ps. 23. of his own good will, begat he us with the word of truth, so sweet and precious is the Law of Christ. In Q. 6. N. 3. [The works of the Devil] from the First Adam we have his image and likeness, even corruption of corruption; corrupt we are in blood, in flesh, in will; this was the work of the Serpent, and that it might be destroyed, the eternal word became flesh, the second Adam, that so from his infinite fullness we might have grace for grace; being made Sons in him by faith, that speech is heavenly. As we have the image of the earthly Adam, so we shall bear the image of the heavenly Adam, not only in the second but also in the first Resurrection. The second Adam in both is a quickening spirit, the begotten is like unto him that begetteth; else no communion with God and Christ, and God is only the God of such, 1 Cor. 1.30.1 Cor 15.49.1 John 1.1. joh. 5.4. Parents are means to beget, and (with travail) to bring forth children after the image of the first sinful Adam, like the foal of a wild Ass,, so they should with all holy care and diligence travel in birth again till the second Adam be form in them; if any man be in Christ the second Adam, he is a new creature, and partaker of the divine nature, 2 Cor 5.17.1 joh. 4. 17.1 Pet. 1.22. Col. 3.10. and see how the old and new Adam are compared, in Eph. 4.17. etc. The scripture saith, that the second Adam had not the spirit by measure, but that all fullness pleased to dwell in him, and that he was filled with the spirit of the Lord; with the spirit of wisdom, counsel, strength, understanding, knowledge, and of the fear of Jehovah, and that of his fullness we all have, in some measure, answerable grace, Es. 11 2. Es 42.6, 7. Christ is the head of the body, Regegeneration by the matter of holy doctrine, and by the spirit was taught to Nicodemus to be from Christ the second Adam, joh. 3. Hence many cases of conscience may arise in the mind: If Christ have destroyed Satan's works in us, how is it that sin is of such force in us, All this is answered in Rom. 7. and Rom. 8. and Rom. 12.3. Gal. 5.16, 17, 18. Es. 42.3. Es. 57.15, In Q. 6. N. 3. [Of the corrupt nature] This state is in no wise to be rested in, be we never so formal in Religion outwardly: The unregenerate cannot please God. his prayer is turned into sin, his sacrifice is an abomination, his wisdom is enmity against God. The good works of the Heathens, yea of the Scribes and Pharisees, though materially good, were but splendida peccata, their hearing of the word, and shows of profession comes to no fruit; as in the three former sorts of ground, Mat. ●3. As in Kain a great heir, Achitophel a private counsellor, Herod a King, Iscariot an Apostle, Simon Magus a great Scholar, etc. etc. Their execution of Laws for civil policy, through Christ's overruling is turned to good for society of humane life, and sometime a wall of defence for the Church, as the Apostle Paul found Nero's authority long a defence against the Masters of traditions. Our Natures are so corrupt, that our spirits are most vile for hatred, enmity and fretting against God and Christ's Kingdom, evermore in war as enemies; bea●ing weapons against him, Rom. 6 Be●t to anger God, for Satan the Prince of darkness rules in the Children of disobedience, Eph. 2. Col. 1. Rom. 1.1 Cor. 1. Jam. 4. Rom. 8 7. In Q 6. N. 3. [In whom we are complete] If a man wade into the depth of all that is in the first old Adam, he cannot be complete, whether Philosophy, humane Traditions, commandments and Doctrines; but in Christ the second Adam, are all measures of height, depth, length, breadth yea and all treasures of Wisdom, Knowledge. Fortitude, Justice, Temperance, Friendship, Love, Patience, earning of Bowels, etc. And this we shall find if we measure it with a golden reed, Job 28.1 Cor. 2. and 3.2 Tim. 3.15, 16, 17. Esa. 11. to 9 Eph. 4.21.22. etc. 1 Job. 3. 8, 9, 10. He enlighteneth, changeth and guardeth both heart and mind, enlivens the conscience, makes the memory retentive of good things, sweetly turns & draws the will, mortifies the inordinacy of the passions, & rules the min all holy majesty, neither to be dull in want, nor wanton in fruition, casteth down vain imaginations, bringeth into captivity every thought, commands the senses, clears and settles the fantasy, teacheth to order speech and silence, subdueth the members of the body, to be weapons and servants unto righteousness and holiness. Briefly he liveth, he thinketh, he speaketh, he worketh all in us, Of him, and through him, and for him are all things, that God in him may be glorified. This is the influence that cometh from the second Adam, in his Ordinances public and private, to all the building of his mystical body, until we all reach unto the unity of faith, and the Knowledge of the Son of God, unto a perfect man, unto the measure of the stature of the fullness of Christ, without whom we are void and without form, darkness, dead, dry stakes, (2 Cor. 4.) and out of whom we neither have nor can do nothing. But following the truth in Love (as the truth of this healing Doctrine, is to be sought and found only in JESUS) we grow up in all points into him which is the head, even Christ himself, by whom all the body conveniently joined and fastened together by every point of the furuit●re according to the operation of the spirit, which is in measure of every several part, reneweth increase of the body unto the edifying of itself in Love. A proud Laodicean Arminian, thinks and speaks contrary, which shows he is not only ignorant of Christ and his learning, but of his own natural Philosophy, Nosce teipsum, What natural abilities did and would work, we see Jer, 4.22. Job 28. Rom. 1.1 Cor. 1. But no change of heart to fear God in Christ; here heathens who could say, Video meliora, deteriora sequor, might see further with the Apostle, Rom. 7.23. etc. But man sold unto sin, can neither hear nor see where God openeth not the eyes, and here the spirit teacheth the godly to groan, with sigh unspeakable, (See Mr. Bro. upon Lam. 1.11.) When we read in the holy scriptures, or elsewhere, of errors in judgement, and sins in practice in heathens and others, then refer all hither, to think upon the poison of the serpent, breathed into the natures of our first Parents, which could never by all humane learning be healed. The truth is, man is most adverse to be cured till Christ by his word and spirit illuminate and quicken, The Pharisees were the most excellent of all naturalists, yet they could not attain to the Law of Righteousness, (or freedom from sin and guilt) Rom. 7.8, 9, 10.11. chapters, Phil. 3.3, 4, 5. etc. The plain reason is, they despised to know this glorious hidden mystery of Christ the second Adam, and miss the meaning of the Law. In the 6. Quest. N. 3. [Doth rule all ages] The second Adam and his doctrine is the light, the way, the truth and the life to all generations The song of all ages is, Salvation is of our God, and of the Lamb Apoc 5 9 and Chap. 7.10, 11, 12. This is the true Catholic faith, faith in Christ ever one and the same, although the outward Administration did differ, Psal. 100.5. & 119.89. & 135.13.1 Pet. 1. JESUS CHRIST yesterday and to day is the same, also for ever. Christ the Rock of all ages Esa. 26 4. Ebr. 13.2 John 1.2. He that cometh to God must believe that he is, and that he is a rewarder of them that diligently (by faith in Christ Jesus) seek him. This is a ruled case from the beginning, No man cometh to the Father but by the Son, The cloud of witnesses from Habell to our Lords days confirmeth this. Ebr. 11. all of it: And the clouds shall not catch up any to glory, but those of the same holy faith. This faith is the charge and commandment of the Lord, which the Saints are to keep inviolable from age to age, without spot of heresy, or vanity of man's traditions. In Q. 6. N. 4. [To this faith he calleth his elect] The faith of Gods elect is glory, and the righteous Nation that keepeth it entire, and walketh in it, is a most glorious people, not the like in the earth, if we consider the King of Saints, his Laws, his government, and the purity of his subjects. Of this company of faithful souls, and their King, their endearednesse each to other, the Canticles singeth, yea all the holy stories show the same from the first to the last, Prov. 8.31.2 John. 9 Ibid. N. 5. [Great disputations, contentions, etc.] Here is the faith and patience of the saints, here are they that keep the commandments of God and the faith of JESUS, Apoc. 13. and 12. and 14. When the Lord God spoke that of Gen 3.15. fire was cast into the Earth, and a sword was sent, ever since there hath been divisions, factions, and contentions, Three against two, and two against three. Hitherto pertain all the wars, plottings, devises; deceits, slander, cavillations, mockings, ●sco●nes, scoffings jeer, thrasonical boastings, murders, massacres, treasons, etc. of them, of that wicked one. It is not liberties and states that the Seed of he Serpent so much shoots at, but blood, All that will live goldly in Christ Jesus, shall suffer persecution, and yet in all trials whatsoever, faith is victorious. Christ sometimes builds his Jerusalem, Temple, street, and wall in troublous times; Note, whereas sufferings might be just punishments for sin, the Lord God in his unspeakable goodness, and in honour to the Saints, maketh them to be for testimony to his truth. [And his Angels by Satan] Many cases of conscience arise out of this, if Christ bruise Satan's power, how is it that we suffer so many trials; hence many doubtings, fears, tears, distractions, unruliness of passions? Psal. 73.1.1 Sam. 27.1. All is answered, Rom. 8.17, 18. Dan. 11.35. Mat. 10.1 Pet. 1.1 John 15. and 16. and God over-ruleth all for the good of his children, Apoc. 1.18. Psal. 33.10. and 76.10. and 94.19. and 119.75.2 Cor, 1. Phil. 4 5.6.7. Heb. 12. Be humble, and live the life of faith with temperate affections, and in the sober use of all good means, and all will be well. 1 Cor. 7.29, 30, 31, 32. The spiritual armour belongs hither, Eph. 6 Afflictions are compared to darkness, to waves of the sea, etc. God can still them, Psal. 89. and 93. we look not to the decree of God concerning sufferings, Gen. 3.15. that it must be so, we propound self ends in profession of the Gospel. Verily we do not consider why we were borne, and for what cause we came into the world, if we did, all reasonings of our hearts would be silenced, then let us meditate that good confession that the Lord Jesus witnessed before Pilate, john 18.37. In Q. 6. N. 6. [Brotherly love, holding one another dear] This is, and was the message that was taught from the beginning, 1 john 3.11. Kains and Habells' story is there remembered. This 6 point is the sum of. the second Table, and handled by exposition and example continually, See the later part of the Epistles to the Churches, to Rome, Corinth, Galatia, Ephesians, Colessians, Heb 10.24.25. Act. 4.32. Psal. 133. joh 15. compare 1 john 3.23. and 4. ult. 2 john. 5.6.2 Tim. 1.13. In Q. 6. N. 6. [And to have no fellowship] This enmity and war of Michael and his Angels against the Dragon and his Angels, cannot, and therefore must not be reconciled, it is a cursed work to endeavour it, And indeed either side holds one another Anathema. God hath put the enmity between the seeds, and who shall join that, which God, by principles of unreconcilable distance, hath perpetually divorced and separated, it was never yet reconciled, though Satan and his prophets and the false brethren in their own ungracious projects have laboured, Gen. 6.2.3.4. etc. Numb. 31.16. Apoc. 2. Iud 2. and 3.1 King 11.1. and in Nehemiahs' and Ezras days, God hath forbidden it, and plagued the transgression in the old and new Testament, 2 Cor. 6, and 7.1. Apoc 3.14. See Ezraes' sadness, chap. 9.14. the affinity of Loegria with Gallia hath brought heavy wrath. In Q 6. N. 7. [Praises and thanksgivings] He is thy Praise, and he is thy God that hath done for thee th●se great and terrible things which thine eyes have seen Deut. 10, For the duty of praise, Psal. 95. and 96. and 100 and 103 and 108, and for all kinds of blessings, spiritual and corporeal, and the assured hope of eternal, let us delight in this duty of praise and thanksgiving. In Q. 6. N. 7. [Of each day's creation] All the Hosts of the Heavens and Earth worship him, if he give but a watchword to any of his creatures, to any of his hosts, they rebel not against his word, his word runs very swiftly in them, Ps. 136. and 91. &c see this in all the stories of the word and especially when the saints offer up strong cries to Jehovah of Hosts. a terror to the seed of the serpent who engage all the armies of Heaven and Earth and seas against them, 1 Sam. 7. See much of Ps. 18.6, 7, 8, etc. In Q. 6. N. 7. [For deliverance] Psal. 136.23.24. Apoc. 15. and 19 All the plagues of Pharaoh show this, His plagues were from jehovah E●●him from each day's creation in Ge●. 1. The thankful remembrance of God's mercy to our blessed England, is worthy of happy memory, Eph. 3.20.21. In 7. Quest. and Answ. [Christ who is Alpha and Omega, the first and the last, is the first and the last teacher of his own religion and worship] Man not precisely cleaving to divine revelation, is an idolatrous, superstitious, and self-willed fool, although he will make great show of wisdom and humility. In Q 7. [I determined not to know any thing among you, save Jesus Christ and him crucified] This holy Doctrine is breathed constantly in all the holy scriptures from the beginning. Sacrifice was a seal of justification (or freedom from guilt of sin and punishment) that is by faith. Sacrifice was still taught with the Doctrine. God made a covenant with man fallen by sacrifice, and when they sacrificed they prayed, Gen. 12.8 1 Sam. 7.9, Yea Habel Gen. 4. Ebb 11. consider Ps. 20. all of it. and Gen. 15. God promised, Abraham believed, and to strengthen his faith, sacrifice was added, and it is say, God made a covenant with Abraham the same day. From the time of man's fall, beasts were killed for sacrifice, and it kindled first with fire from Heaven. The tame, quiet, and mild kind as Ox, Sheep, and Goat, and birds not devouring, as Turtle and Pigeon and other little birds, no beasts of prey nor birds of prey, but such as feed upon seed are fit for sacrifice. These shown that the second Adam by his combating with Satan through his constant patience and holy obedience unto death, should procure our justification or freedom from Satan's power. Also such manner of sacrifices taught us mortification following Christ, and profession of a quiet and harmless life. For no Tyrants can sacrifice to God, but just quiet and patiented folk, 1 Tim. 2.8. And the keeping of the fire once kindled, taught them not to quench the spirit. That speech of Apoc. 13. must here be minded, Christ was the Lamb slain from the foundation of the world: slain in the decree of the blessed Trinity, and in the Church by types of the Lords own appointment. In Q 7. [The presence of God] Holy convocations, together with God's Ordinances, was so called in after times, called also the Courts of God, there is God's residence, there he keeps Court, and glorious is it to consider, Exod. 20 24. and chap. 29.43.44.2 Cor. 6. For it is said, There will I meet with thee. There we sit at his f●et, as his disciples, to hear his words; at the posts of wisdom we must attend Prov. 9 There is the beauty of holiness, his own commanded worships: There is the provision of the heavenly householder, there the blessed shepherd feeds the flock of his fold. Oh see the comforts that an holy soul doth there find, Psal. 23. and 36. and 40. and 42. and 65. and 84. and 95. and 100 and 132. etc. The Saints as Habell have blessed communion with God their exceeding joy, there the Saints, the Israel of God rejoice in his Makers, the children of Zion rejoice in their King, Jehovah their God is with them, the joyful shout of a King is among them, There the holy voluntaries, the army of Heaven, assemble and compass their commander, and blessed and holy is the communion that the Saints have there one with another, and especially it shineth when there is none unclean and profane of their company. Infinite are the uses of application, how that we in all things must remember, That holiness becomes his house, and presence for ever, What preparations, long, and attention to meet such a King, such a Father, such a Bridegroom, etc. insuch holy Ordinances, and before men to show forth the virtues of him that hath called them, that as their King is holy so they to be holy in all manner of conversation. Solemn assemblies without mixture of men's in ventions is a dear blessing, it is an Eden, the very Garden of God, Ezek. 28. Cant. 4 3. In 8. Quest and Answ. [Habel] Now faith is the expectation of that which is hoped, and the tryer our of things which are not seen, for by it the Elders were well reported of. By faith Habel offered unto God, a more excellent sacrifice than Kaine, by which he obtained witness that he was righteous (i. e. justified, that is freed from sins, guilt and desert) God testifying of his offerings; and by it he being dead yet speaketh, Eb●. 11.4. So Habels' faith did speak to the revolting Hebrews, how and from whom they must expect justification and salvation. In 9 Quest. and Answ. [Began the war] Where, as it is said, the seed of the serpent shall bruise, it showeth they should be of great power, outward glory and temporal felicity, as from Kaine through all the holy stories, Psal. 44. and 73. and 79. Job 12 and 22. Apoc. 13. etc. etc. In Q 9 [The holy seed] Habel for love to Christ, was the first that was accounted as a sheep for the slaughter, that was killed for the word of God and faith & testimony of Jesus Christ Hence the Proverb gins to take place, The just is an abomination to the wicked, Observe hence that the wicked are one corporation from Kain to the end of the world, and all the godly from Habel to the end of the of the world are another corporation in Christ. And therefore what persecution Kain did to Habel, wicked men are now guilty of, Psal. 66.6. Hos 12.4. Mat. 23.35. for they would have done the same to our Lord, to the Prophets, as Kain did to Habel, if they had then lived. And ungodly men have, do, and will fulfil the measures of their forefathers impieties, in persecutions, massacres, treacheries, gunpowder-plot, cruel mockings, etc. ungodly men cannot trample on God; but they reach as high as they can against his image, both in his Ordinances, and his saints, and his graces in them, this is the highest step they can go; as Achab, Jerom, Joash, & Jehoiakim, fretted against God, and they would be revenged by imprisoning and killing his Prophets. Christ & his Doctrine have been called & esteemed, anathema, even from the beginning of all that will not receive his Doctrine in the love of it: so it was accounted of Kain, when Christ would not accept his bodily exercise, so he saith, Visiting the iniquity of the Fathers upon the children, unto the third and fourth generation of them that hate me, Exod. chapped. 20. So they despised his Statutes, and did abhor his judgements, Levit. 26 15. In 10. Quest. and Answ. [A great Apostasy] All flesh had corrupted his way both in religion and conversation, Gen. 6. Job 21. and 22. Mat. 24. judas 'thad 14.15. So judah were corrupters, Esai. 1. jer. 6. They were but flesh, they cared not for regeneration (nor the Doctrine of it) to serve the Law of God in their minds, for the imagination of their heart was only evil continually, They mocked the religion of the Second Adam, jon 21. and 22. they desired not to know the ways of Christ. In Q. 10. [Ungodly marriages] The Sons of God the visible Church regarded not God's distinction of the holy seed, so after times found them to be snares and traps, treachery, profaneness, and abomination to the Gospel, Commonweal, and Family. In Q. 10. [Glorious house] Glorious for Cities, Wealth, Music, Pleasures, Feasting, Strength, Arts, and vain deceitful beauty; the flourishing estate of the wicked doth commonly prevail for apostasy with the open Church or multitude. In Q. 10. [A confluence] When people have not a sincere care to know, but set light by the faith of the Son of God, the mystery of godliness, than all ungodliness and unrighteousness will be seen in men's conversations, This is evident through all ages of the holy story, and in all Commonweals, Families, and persons at this day, which either retain not, or cast off the mystery of Faith in a pure conscience, no religion teacheth nor worketh in the heart and carriage such strictness of a peaceable and holy life, as the pattern of wholesome words, faith and love which is in Christ Jesus, Deut. 4.5, 6, 7, 8. And verily there can be neither holiness nor righteousness in truth, but in them that are renewed in knowledge, after the image of him that created them, that is of the man Christ Jesus, the second Adam, the Lord from heaven, 1 Cor. 15.47. Esa. 11.1. to 9 In Quest. 10. [Remember] After our first Parents were turned to dust, the rest of the holy Fathers died not long one after the other (except Henoch) yet they had three witnesses of Christ to the flood, that contested against their apostasy, Methuselah, Lam●ch, and Noah; But Henoch had before spoken of, terror to the wicked, and godly Lamech of comfort to the faithful. In 11. Quest and Answ. [Through faith] Now faith is the expectation of that which is hoped, and a tryer out of things which are not seen, for by it the Elders are well reported of, by Faith Noah being warned of God of things not seen, as yet moved with fear, prepared the Ark to the saving of his house, by which he condemned the world, and was made heir of the justification that is by faith, Eb●. 11. A believer will be careful of the salvation of his household. In Q. 11. [Good report] Faith in the Son of God is most glorious, faith evidencing things not seen, made all the Elders honourable in a good report, in life and death, and after death, whose faith we are exhorted to follow; a godly man should so walk, as all he doth should evidence to the soul things not seen, All Ecclesiastes tendeth to confirm this in us, as godly Lamech testified. In Q 11. [Sons] The flood in the faithful doth show the benefit of adoption and covenant, the faith of God is not without its effect, though many did ●all away, and the Ordinances were unsavoury to them, 2 Cor. 2.16. Our Natures so universally depraved, that whilst we are in the flesh unconverted we cannot please God, without saith it is impossible we should please God, or that God should please us, Jus divinum 31. In Q 11. [City and country] They believing on the Son of God had everlasting life, and came not into condemnation, but passed from death to life: Mind it, a present possession, and immediate passage, no judgement intervenning, nor torment, All the faithful till the fullness of time had perfect joy in an immortal state of life and glory with God in the Kingdom of Heaven, Matt. 8.11. and therefore are termed, Them in Heaven, Eph. 1.10. and the family of Heaven, Chap. 3.15. Away then with the dotages of Limbo and purgatory, and all other cursed opinions of the heathens, and heathenish Kingdom, Abyssigena, Apoc. 9 Psal. 17. and 22. 4, 5. Psal. 36.8.9. Dan. 7.18. Psal. 49.15. and 73.24. Esa. 3.10. Pro. 14.32. Job. 5.24. In Q. 11. [Wherefore they had preservation] The fleed was a sacrament to the faithful of Salvation to which answereth Baptism, 1 Pet. 3. Though these three men, Noah, Daniel, and Job were in it, they should deliver but their own souls, by their righteousness faith the Lord God, Ezek. 14.14. confer this to Gen. 6. many observations may be collected see the effectual saith of Noah, which he shown by his works, believing he seared, made the Ark, and was careful to save his household, he prayed for the wicked mocking world, he stood in the gap to turn away wrath, so J●b prayed for his friends, and God heard him, so Daniel Chap. 2.18.23. and was heard, so Christ had heard Noah, but would no more after the decree came forth for one hundred and twenty years, so Jeremiah prayed, but at last would not be heard; he was forbidden to pray. Things come to an extremity, when Gods forbids his remembrancers, if the whole state will not humble themselves, yet let Noah Daniel, and Job do it, they shall have comfort, they shall be sealed to be kept safe, When Unbelievers, despisers, mockers, feasters, drinkers, and all abominable shall be shut out of the Ark, and the heavenly jerusalem to be in the flood and lake of fire. Ezekiel and our Lord citing Noah's story, gives to consider of the like general Apostasy of the Jews. And that the Apostasy of the old world was as general as the Jew's both in Ezekiels days and our Lords. In 12. Quest. and Answ. [Corrupters of the faith] This phrase is elegantly expressed in Apoc. 11.8. The Papacy was an apostate policy, and did departed from and corrupt the saith, and so the whole earth was corrupt. Therefore God hath and will corrupt that policy, as God did corrupt the corrupters. G●●. 6. The former be stamps of the later. Hench prophesied of the destruction of the Apostates of the old world, saying, Behold the Lord cometh with thousands of his holy ones to give judgement upon all men, and to rebuke all the ungodly among them, of all their wicked deeds which they have ungodly committed; and of all their cruel speakings which wicked sinners have spoken against him, judas Thaddaeus v. 14.15. St. Peter shows they were mockers, 2 Pet. 3. and Job 21. and 22. showeth, how they despised the Gospel. Thaddaeus and Peter, by allusion, show the end of all false Teachers, and their deceived, that follow their pernicious ways: So when the state of judah became mockers, judgement was at hand, 2 Chron. 36. read Matth. 24. Luke 17. for the sins of the old world, the fools make a mock of sin, Prov. 14.9. Be not mockers lest your bonds increase. Scoffers shall eat the fruit of their own ways, Esa. 3. Prov. 3. Scoffers made a wonder of the Prophets, and perished, 2 Pet. 3.4. and so in after times. Habbak. 1.5. Act. 13.41. 1 Pet 4.4.4. Esa. 8.18. In Q. 11. [Excommunicate] He that hath the Censures of the church, deservedly executed on him, is in dreadful condition, little better than a fugitive or a vagabond: but it was the great Anathema maranatha that was given Kain and his posterity, as Henoch told them, He cometh, Kain did not love the Lord Jesus Christ and his holy doctrine, Kain hated Habel, because his own works were evil and his brothers good. Such Kains were in aftertimes, Es. 38.20. and the Pharisees were such, and so now all those are such that follow their doctrines of men's traditions and bodily exerecise, etc. Woe be to them that follow the ways of Kain, 'thad. 11. Woe be to the wicked, it shall be ill with him, etc. Esa 3.11. Job. 11.20. Pro. 14.32. In Q. 12. [The Spirit of Christ] Whereas Moses saith, The spirit of jehovah, Gen. 6. Peter citing that story, saith, The spirit of Christ, Gen 6. 1 Pet. 3.18.19. so for Jehovah in Exod. Levit. Numb. Deut. Saint Paul saith, Christ, 1 Cor. 10. We must mark diligently such expositions of the scripture, even from Christ himself, Luke 24.45 This made the Apostle to say, The holy scriptures will make us wise to salvation, through the faith which is in Christ jesus. 2 Tim. 3. CHAP. III. Hath divers Questions and Answers with Annotations, How Redemption was taught from the Flood, till the Promise to ABRAHAM: And the Seed of SHEM is explained. QUest. 1. How and to whom was the Council of God in Christ revealed after the Flood? Answ. The old Testament writes Shem, the new Testament writes Sem, Luke 3.36. To Shem the Son of Noah. QUest. 2 What is the Scripture? Answ. Gen. 9.26. Blessed be Jehovah the † God was not ashamed to be called the God of Shem for he had prepared him a Son after the flesh, who after the spirit of holiness is the son of God, and God blessed for ever, Rom. 1. & 9 God of Sem, and Chanaan, shall be his Servant. God persuade Japhet to dwell in the Tents of Sem, and Chanaan shall be his servant. QUest. 3 What observe you out of this Text? Answ. I. He that was called the seed of the woman, is now called the God of Sem. Christ Jesus our Lord came of Sem according to the flesh, Luc. 3. II. That Jehovah Sem's God was the only blessed and true God, none like him, nor any beside him. Therefore the Religion of the God of Sem was [A] the true religion, and for this cause in Israel, (Sem's faithful posterity) it was graciously exclaimed, that blessed are the people whose God is Jehovah, Psal. 33. and Psal. 144. III. That unto this blessing in Sems tents, Sem's own families, Japhets and Chams were to have regard. iv It is prophesied, that when the Prerogative of Sems tents was out, the other families of the sons of Noah should be persuaded to embrace the faith, and so be brought into equal covenant as it is said, [B] That the Gentiles should be fellow heirs, and of the same body, and joint partakers of his promise in Christ by the Gospel, Eph. 3.6. V It is the mighty work of the spirit to make a man know & [c] to persuade the heart by believing to obey the mystery of Christ. All the wisdom of the wise and prudent of this world is not sufficient, till God draw, teach, and persuade us to the Kingdom of his son. VI Parents should in all fervency, pray unto God for their posterity, that they may be wrought upon and persuaded to obey the gospel, and such faithful prayers shall not be lost. VII. In Noah's story we may see the example of godly children that honour their Parents though they are old, Prov. 10.12.23. & 14.9. & 11.12, 13. & 12.16. & 17.6. & 18.3. & 22.10. & 23.22. with all tenderness caring for, covering and pitying their infirmities and weaknesses. Love covers a multitude of sins, therefore Sem and Japhet had a most joyful blessing pronounced on them, the fruit of which, themselves and their posterity did find. VIII. That scorners of God's truth and his servants (though they have infirmities) are cursed, being the seed of the Serpent, and hence also note, wicked men procure much evil to their posterity, both in their example and for God's judgements. IX. As long as Sem's godly house * Consider what God did for Salem and Zion, while they knew him, and advanced his name and religion in his Tabernacle, Psal. 76.1, 2, 3, 4. held the faith of Christ sincere, than Cham's and Chanaans' posterities were servants, but when they walked contrary to Christ, he in fury walked contrary to them. So if we hold Sem's God to be our God and be constant in the faith of Sems Tents, to which we were alured and persuaded by the Apostles and disciples of our Lord Jesus Christ, the God and Son of Sem; God will assuredly make that servant of servants, and all that cursed policy of that mystical Nimrod, to be a † This is a point as evident as the clearest sun at noon, that the subduing of ours and god's enemies, is a benefit tied to our constancy in true religion. see the thankful remembrance of D. Carlton. p. 236. servant of servants. * Mark this question, the corruption of man's nature was so great after the apostasy of our first parents that they were under the power of satins darkness, unrecoverable in respect of man: But presently the Lord God taught them the way of life to bring them back again to him their sovereign good. Gen. 3.15 and by holy prophets, continued the same doctrine both before and after the Flood, Gen. 26.5. & 18.19. the revelation of the second Adam is man's only comfort, and all that receive him, and believe in his name shall live, John. 1.12. Act. 26.18. QUest 4. " Who kept the way and charge of Christ-Jehovah in his Commandments, Statutes and Laws, the religion of Sems Tents after the Flood, Gen. 26.5. Answ. Sem; Arphaxad, Selah, Heber, Peleg, and the rest of the godly Fathers, and their faithful posterity to the days of Terah and Abraham. QUest. 5. Was there any that contemned and apostated from the God of Shem, and his true religion? Answ. Yea, Cham and Chanaan, and Nimrod the grandchild of Cham, drew away many of the sons of the open or visible Church to despise Christ in Shem, surnamed Melchisedeck, who was ordained over them King and Priest, who governed in Justice and peace, so that there was a great apostasy of Sem's own families, Japheths and Cham's. QUest. 6. Show further how this apostasy went on? Answ. The outward glory of the false church was so great, that some of the Fathers of the holy line, as Terah and Abraham, fell to the idolatry of Nimrods' Kingdom Jos. 24. But they being called, repent, Gen. 11. QUest. 7. How did Christ break and bruise the seed of the serpent for their enmity and wickedness that would not have him to reign over them? Answ. I. With his unspeakable severe judgements, for even those families for despising the faith, were excommunicated and cut off both Father and child, from being of the household of God by the confusion * So Judah for despising the faith, were plagued by a Nation of a strange tongue, Deut. 28 49. so the world by the man of sin, 1 Cor. 14. mind seriously Jer 44 26. of tongues, and so were No-people, and foolish Nations, by being estranged from the life, justice, and peace of God in Christ, that they did not hear nor see the light of his truth for two thousand years, but followed Devils, the Prince of the darkness of this world in endless and lawless Idolatries; and of all the miseries that befell them, they in special lost the Sabbath, which would have kept them in the faith of the creation and redemption. And let this sink into the hearts of all men, that all men ever were and will be Atheists, or Idolaters that Christ speaks not to in their own language by his holy law, and to this answer ever seriously mind, 2 Joh v, 9 II. From these days, the wrath of God was revealed from Heaven against them for their ungodliness and unrighteousness by wars and commotions, and suffered them to walk in their own ways, by giving them up to a regardless mind, and to the power of gross darkness and wilful ignorance, and to their hearts lusts and vile affections, etc. etc. QUest. 8. What benefit had the godly in Sems Tents and house, by cleaving to the faith of God's Elect? Answ. Through faith they obtained good report with God, and confessed that they were pilgrims and strangers in this cursed world, wherefore God was not ashamed of them to be called their God, and accounted that the world was not worthy of them: And as he promised, builded and prepared, so they hoped for an heavenly City and Country. And Sem's Tents had this glory, that all the while that those families were cut off, the hidden mystery of godliness was carefully kept in his Tents and house, and the Hebrew Tongue also, as all the old Testament doth witness. QUest. 9 Then the Prerogative of Sems Tents did not always continue? Answ. No; When the God of Shem took man's nature of the seed of the woman, and gave his life a Ransom, not for the Hebrews or Jews only, but for the Heathens also: Then that he might reign and judge the world in righteousness, he turned the curse of tongues to preach to, and persuade all those families to obey the same faith, from which their forefathers had apostated, even to the Religion of Shems' Tents. QUest. 10. How and to whom was the Revelation of the mystery of Christ continued to be revealed after the blessing to Sem? Answ. In the promise to Abraham, that Christ should come of him according to the flesh. QUest. 11. How many years are from the flood to the promise made to Abraham? Answ. Four hundred twenty seven years, and so from the promise to our first Parents whom the Serpent murdered, unto the promise to Abram given presently upon the death of Terah, whose faith the Serpent corrupted to flames of Idolatry, are years two thousand eighty three. QUest. 12. How many Chapters of Genesis are contained in those 2083. years. Answ. The eleven first chapters, and also part of the first chapter of 1 Chronicles, and also Luke part of chap. 3. Note that all the rest of the holy scriptures doth not contain so many years for the writing of them. A brief sum of the former Questions and Answers. JEhovah our God, Jehovah is one, the Father, the Son, and the holy spirit be one, coeternal, and coessential. The Son is called the word, by the word the Father made the world, and by the spirit beautified the heavens. And because the word would become flesh the world was made to serve once Adam the first. The Angels that grudged at that fell for ever, and deceived Adam, and made him dead in sin, and brought him to be daily turning to dust until he died. And for him the whole frame of the creation was pronounced corrupt; but after divine Revelation, he believed that Christ made of a woman, made under the Law, God being in him, to reconcile the world unto himself, should give him free forgiveness for justification by faith, and renew the inner man in knowledge, holiness and righteousness, and raise up his body, and make a new world by his power, Whereby he can subdue all things to himself. All faithful travailed in soul to have Christ brought forth to the knowledge of their posterity that all might know that all this world was made obedient to a man at the first; which man fell from God his first day, and then God opened his counsel, that the Son eternal would be made man of a woman, to destroy the works of the Angels that fell, who all are collectively Satan. Satan brought Adam to lose the life of his soul, and his body to death and dust, and all this world to corruption: Christ kindled light in Adam's soul, and after 930 years' heaviness for sin took it to his joy, and will raise up his body, and make a new world, that all men who will receive the abundance of Grace of free forgiveness for justification, may reign by Christ, and all who will not regard this mercy so clear as the sun, they all, by Adam's fall dead in sin, shall be damned for ever with the Devils. This is the travel of the christian mind, speech of this, full of joy, is in all the books of the old and new Testament. Or thus. The sum of the Bible is short, how of God's eternal counsel the world was made for man, because the son of God by whom he made the world would be a man to give life to them that rested in this wisdom. *** All this dialogue will evidence this, or doth desire so to do. * The faith of Gods elect in the incarnation and resurrection, how it hath been followed or contemned from the beginning, with plain and civil carriage in God's ways, and satanean in the contrary, and how * the goodness and severity of God hath been answerable, This containeth * the sum. And the story of four thousand years to Jerusalem's fall by Rome, hath no more. And all should gladly hear of this all their life, and see Christ's bright face still to this sum. The book of God is open and easy to be understood, Prov. 8.9. Annotations upon the Questions and Answers of CHAPTER 3. Quest. 3. N. 2. [The true Religion] If any should question what Religion Sem was of, the Answer may be, that he was Priest to Jehovah the most high God, the maker and possessor of Heaven and Earth; as also that it was the same to which the Sons of Japhet were persuaded by the blessing of tongues, and by the ministry of the Sons of Sem, Gen. 14. Act. 2. Apoc. 14.7. 1 Thess. 1.9, 10. And so Sem's blessing did contain the same faith that the blessing did which God gave to Abraham, Gen. 12. Mark well the Doctrine to the seven Churches of Japhets' house in all the Apocalypse, and so in all the Epistles of the Apostle of the Gentiles, and in the Epistles of the Apostles of the circumcision. Again, he was of the same Religion and holy faith of his Father Noah, who inherited the righteousness that is by faith, and who pronounced this ●lessing on Sem. Heb. 11. Quest 3. N. 4. [That the Gentiles] The greatest favour that God bestoweth on men in this world, is to make them of his family true members of his Church: Ezekiel remembreth this to the Apostate Prince of Ty●us, chap. 28.13, 14. The godly Jews foreseeing the calling of the Gentiles, (by the promises and prophecies of Gen. 9 and 12.) rejoiced in spirit, that Christ should reign over them, Psal 67. and 97. 1 Rom. 15.12. Zach. 8. and 14.9. And the Gentiles seeing the performance were glad, Act. 13.46. But for two thousand years, Satan the strong man kept a large and great possession by metamorphosed Fables and Idolatries. In Quest. 3. N. 5. [And to persuade] Universal and free will to good (in the state of unregeneracy) is vain and vain glorious Doctrine. Noah was not of this faith, and the calling of the Families to the faith, by the preaching of the Apostles, argueth the falsehood of such Tenants. Observe the speech of Christ to the Apostle concerning his Ambassage, Act. 26.18. not only illumination, but a turning from the power of Satan in the will and affections, is all done by the mighty work of Christ in his own Ordinances. The fashioning of the spirit is his prerogative, Esa. 11. Eph 1.19 20, 21, & 2.1 2▪ 3. etc. and by his strengthening and preventing, we stand to our dying day, 1 Pet. 1.5. The spirit convinceth false opinions, and teacheth the true doctrine, Eph. 6.10.11, Rom. 7.8 Ezek, 11.19 and 36.26. Phil. ●. 13. That all iniquity may stop her mouth Thus it is said of all that have the Prerogative of Sons, which are born not of bloods, nor of the will of the flesh, nor of the will of man, but of God, Joh. 1.12, 13. The house of Japhet needed much persuasion and beseeching to embrace the word of reconciliation. They had excellent natural parts, as their writings show which made them despise the gospel, The Grecians sought after wisdom, 1 Cor. 1. Therefore God gave them a son of Sem, an Apostle of exquisite parts and learning, that he demonstrated all their wisdom to be foolishness, and cast down their high imaginations by the invincible weapons of the spiritual warfare. N. 8. Q. 3. [That scorners] Letoy inferiors beware of Satan's deceits in causing them to slight, yea in heart, their superiors, though for their sins and infirmities. And let Superiors give no occasion, but be sober, grave, temperate, sound in the faith, in charity, in patience, etc. Tit. 2. But it is not for infirmities that the children of the wicked one hate the godly, but for the image of Christ that shines in them, for they can bear with the same sins in their own, yet the wicked are glad, and insult to see the holy image of Christ stained by any blot of the Saints, and this by God's just judgement is a stumbling block to the wicked, to harden them in their sinful courses. N. 8. [Procure much evil] Cham is cursed to his youngest Son Chanaan, Gen. 9 Exod. 20 5. Also it is observable, how the wrath of Christ hath followed Cham's posterity, that the Negroes are slaves in divers countries to this day, even servants of servants. Quest. 5. [And Nimrod] King Abaddon may fi●ly be compared to Nimrod, both infamous cutthroat hunters, both intruders into other men's possessions, both abhorred Christ's Kingdom of Justice and Peace, Gen. 10.9, 11, 12. 2 Thes. 2. My Son fear the Lord and the King, and meddle not with them that are given to change, for their destruction shall rise suddenly Prov. 24. This is also notable, as in Nimrod, so in Korah, in Absolom, in Sheba, Ben-Bichrio in the unlawful Kingdom of Ephraim, and in the whole policy of the man of Sin: See in all the transgression and the punishment and beware what, did it prove madness of counsel in them to change Melchisedecks Kingdom for Nimrods' Kingdom? so it is to change the true Melchisedeck for King Abaddon, so they abhorred Christ the Lord of glory for the unclean infidels the Caesars, John 19.15. N. 8 [Over them King] One ornament of Kings may here be remembered which Sem's story doth show, which is the antiquity of a kingdom, and the fatherly government thereof, that before Tyranny sprang in was, Mr. Bro, Treatise of Melchiz. N. 8. [Justice and Peace] A worthy example for Princes so to rule by just Laws uncontrollable, than they shall rule men willingly subject, for they have from Christ honour and authority above their Brethren so to govern, But none can well rule, that cannot well obey the sceptre of Christ's Kingdom Psal 45. It is hard when he that cannot order his own life, shall be made the Judge of another's, for the Kingdom of Christ is in righteousness and peace, and joy in the holy Ghost. The apostate families felt none of this, Princes and subjects that seek not so to order and to be ordered in their policies, shall find the power of Christ crossing their purposes, and plaguing their dominions. N 8. [Of Sems own] The Church is not visibly glorious at all times, of sixty seven families there was but one family that held the faith and the Hebrew tongue, and that was the line of Christ of Sems' house, so Israel in Egypt revolted, often in the book of judges, and under Jeroboams kingdom, after in judah and after the return from captivity, and under the Papacy, and now after reformation will not Apostasy be again, when that the Son of man shall scant find faith on the earth at his second coming? For as it was in the days of Noah, so shall it be at the day of the coming of the Son of man, Mat. 24. etc. Quest. 6. [And Abraham] Abraham once ungodly (yea after his calling, he much failed) rejoiced in him that justifieth the ungodly, Jos. 24.2 Rom. 4. so after mystical Nimrod how many good men have been overtaken with their outward glory, yea many strong men of great parts have been wounded by that whorish Church, Prov. 7. Apoc. 17. Quest. 7. N 1. [Those families] The families of Noah's sons despising Sem, a King of Justice and Peace, were cut off ●or two thousand years, so the Jews for despising Sem the great and reverend, the true King of Justice and peace, were cut off to this day, Rom. 11. from Noah's days, all heathens were Lo-ammi, and Loruchamah, no people and unpitied, a foolish nation, barren and a desolate widow to our Lords days, Deut. 32. Psal. 113. Esa 54.1, 2, 3. Ephes. 2.1, 2, 3. Psal 119.118. Q. 7. [From the life, Justice] But when light was revealed to the Gentiles, and the glory of Jehovah was risen upon us, It is said, I will make thy government peace, and thine exactions righteousness. Mark the allusion, This was under the King of Salem, and Tzedek, Justice and Peace kiss each other, as it did of old in Sems Tents, Psal. 85. Then peace on earth, and good will towards men. Q. 7. [Nor see the light] Now darkness covered the earth, and gross darkness the Nations. Esa, 60. So Pope Nimrod by his mystical Babylon, caused such darkness by confusion of Language, and all holy speech. All languages of Europe, and much of Asia, if not all Asia, have been confounded by the means of mystical Nimrod, and his rebellion, Apor. 9 Q. 7. [For two thousand years'] All the time of this ignorance, God hated them like devils, till the time he would judge the world in righteousness, that is, favour the world in mercy, Act. 17. Psal. 97. from this time to the Apostles, the whole world did lie in wickedness, 1 Job. 5.19. Q 7. N. 11. [In their own ways] God left them to walk in their own ways of endless and lawless idolatries, and superstitions, and ill manners, judgement, and practise wholly corrupted, as the holy scriptures and humane stories show. The Philosophers of the heathens spoke much of the earth, etc. and to the height of heaven, but unto Paradise above the Heavens, no thought of theirs could ever come. They had no Lamp of Grace, not the best learned of them, their sage, as Pythagoras, in tongue, confessed God to be one, but they knew not the holy Trinity, and that the eternal son would be manifested in the flesh, to come a man looking through our walls, and to come a Judge of all, nor that he framed the world for man, because he would dwell in our Tabernacle, (Mr. Bro. Apoc. pag. 20.) That regeneration is by faith from him the second Adam, by hearing the doctrine of divine revelation, that he should destroy death, and him that had the power of death, by his own death and resurrection, and give us a Resurrection, and that be should be a mediator between God and man, as Prophet, Priest, and King, Lord of Angels, the head of all principality and power, that a company of people were in him elected, and should be called out of this present world, to whom he should be wisdom, justification, sanctification and redemption, etc. in these things the outward Jew was dull of hearing, Rom. 2. and 3. Phil. 2. Heb. 5.11. much less could the wisdom and Philosophy of the heathens once think of these things, Col. 1.26. yea alas for pity, how weakly and poorly are these things either taught or known, and experimentally in mind and conscience felt, and answerably in life practised in most of our congregations, of our blessed England. This must be proper to true christians; no marvel the holy spirit doth taunt the wisdom of the world's wise Masters, and chargeth the saints to take heed of their Philosophy and vain deceit, verily it is not fit for Christians to be trained up in their pedagogy, 1 Cor. 1. they were haters of God, Rom. 1. Col. 1.21. and haters of his people, Psal. 83. Hest 9.1. Then all that time they were not in the state of universal grace, but in very deed of universal wrath, such a woeful famine of hearing the word of the Lord, holy justice gave them over unto. So when the would did depart from the faith of the true Melchisedeck, it was given over to Turk and Pope, and all force of error, and were far from Justice, Peace, and Truth, the Reverend Doctor Ames in his Med●lla, pag. 244 editio quarta, citeth a fit testimony for this. Non pium igitur minus quam prudens suit illud maximi artium magistri P.R. judicium & votum: Hujus Philosophiae doctrinam, si mihi fuerit optandum quod assequi velim, malim ●ue●as ex Evangelio per cruditum aliquem probatisque moribus, Theologum, quam ex Aristotele per Philosophum tradi. Puer impietates mullas ex Aristotele discet, quas verendum ne nimis sero dediscat. Beatitudinis finem in homine terminari, virtutes om●cs hominis facultate penitus contineri: Eas ex hominis & natura, & arie, & industria comparari. Deum, ad haec opera quamvis magna & divina, tamen vel adjutorem, vel artificem nusquam adhiberi: divinam providentiam ex hoc numanae vitae theatro removeri, de justitia divina verbum nullum fieri, Beatitudinem huminis in hac caduca vita constitui, etc. Quest 8. [To be called their God] This is a word of Covenant as God spoke to Abraham, Gen. 17. and as it was noted above, God is called the God of Shem. Andoh! most glorious privilege of the Saints (through the mediator) in all ages. Mark these Texts from the first to the last, Gen 6.18. and 17.7.8. Exod, 19.5. and 20.2. and 29.45.46. Jer. 31.33. 2 Cor. 6.18. Gal. 3.29. Tit. 2.14. 2. Pet. 2.9. Apoc. 21.3. Hence it is that the Saints say, from God's interest in them, and theirs in him, Our God, my God, my portion, my Rock, my Shepherd, etc. and Jesurun is God's portion, Jer. 10. In this they boast, praise, and sing, My well-beloved is mine; and I am his, Cant. 2.16. Psal. 44. and 48.2 Coron. 25 6.7. Psal. 42. and 43. Deut. 10.21. The observations of the properties, and works of God should here be minded, which are in chapter first spoken of. Q. 8 [Heavenly City] The Saints of old knew as well as them of the New Testament, That if the earthly house of our Tabernacle were dissolved, they should have a building of God, an house not made with hands, eternal in the heavens. They had all the same spirit of faith, compare the ● Cor. 4. with chap. 5.1. to 12. and Eccles. 12.14. etc. upon the dissolution of the one, the holy soul possesseth the other; here is no interposition of time, nor of any tormented estate. Q. 8. [The mystery of godliness] The mystery of Godliness was hidden in types and figures from the ages and generations of the Apostate families, Eph. 3. Col. 1.26. But in Judah was God known, his name was great in Israel, in Salem was his Tabernacle, and his dwelling place in Zion, Psal. 76.1.2. He shown his word unto Jacob, and his statutes and Judgements unto Israel, he dealt not so with any nation, and as for his judgements they had not known them, therefore they said, Praise ye I A H. Psalm. 147 So that Israel did enjoy the true knowledge of God in Christ, and were the household of God, having the covenants of promise, and the seals of the fame, and lived and died in the constant hope of immortality in glory; read diligently Eph. 2.11, 12, Act. 26.6.7. And this we must understand concerning the true hidden mystery, hid in types and figures among godly families, until Moses and then to the Nations while Israel's fleece only was moistened by the dews that fell on mount Zion, but after the ending of the seventy sevens, Dan. 9 then the Gospel was openly revealed and made known to all Nations of Noah's families, and yet in those days, yea now in these days, it is an hid mystery, too too manifest experience doth witness in kingdoms, towns, and families, 1 Cor. 2. Q 9 [The heathens also] All those noble prophecies in Moses Prophets, and Psalms of the calling of the Gentiles, do comment on the blessing to Sem, and the Promise to Abraham. The holy Prophets rejoiced in spirit, foreseeing the glorious calling of the families to the Faith, we should have the like affection to the calling of the Jews, Rom. 11. Q. 9 [By sending his disciples] The Apostles were sent unto them to open their eyes to turn them from darkness to light, from the power of Satan to God, that they might receive forgiveness of sins and inheritance among all them (of the old Testament) which are sanctified by faith in Christ, Act. 26. Eph. 1.11, 12, 13, 14. Annotations, How Redemption was taught from the Promise to ABRAHAM, till the Law of the Passeover, or the coming forth of EGYPT. QUest. 1. What is the scripture in which the Revelation of the mystery of Christ was made known to Abraham? Answ. Gen. 12, 2. And I will make of thee a great Nation, and I will bless thee, and make thy name great, and thou shalt be a blessing. And I will bless them that bless thee, and curse him that curseth thee. And in thee shall all the families of the Earth be blessed. QUest. In what doth this scripture teach, instruct, convince, correct, and comfort. Answ. I Of the cursed and most wretched estate of the apostate families; and unrecoverable in respect of any ability in themselves, God hiding from them by Babells' Languages, for many generations, the glorious mystery of the Gospel of his Son, that they became Loammi and Lo-ruchamah, that is, not God's people, nor pitied: and ever enemies to God and his people, walking in all courses of unperswadeable disobedience. II. It is prophesied by this great and precious promise, that the families shall be delivered from the misery of that apostasy, by the Son of God, who was sent of the Father into the world in fullness of time to be a blessing, to make known the riches of the glorious mystery of his will, to reconcile them to be God's people, and to be under mercy through his gracious Redemption, and by the same to reconcile the enmity of Jew and Gentile. III. Here it is taught who Christ is, touching his person, that he being God, is also man of the Seed of Abraham, Gal. 4.4. Eb. 2.16. Saint Matthew chap. 1. doth show the history, and the promise fulfiled. As also how Christ Immanuel doth bless us, saving his people from the guilt, punishment, and dominion of their sins, by his precious death and sacrisice. By which he broke the Serpent's headplot, Gen. 3.15. in his constant patience and obedience, at the very same time when the Serpent and his seed put him to an accursed death on the tree, as a notorious sinner. By this performance, Gal. 4 5. Rom. 3 25. this manner of the blessing of Abraham came on the Gentiles, Gal. 3.13.14. iv By faith in the promise we are reconciled, justified; and adopted, and so are no more servants in bondage, but heirs in Christ. V Whereas it is said, in thy seed, all families of the Earth are blessed, it showeth there is the same and no other way or means of eternal life and salvation to Jew and Gentile, but only and alone the Lord Jesus Christ, nor any comfort in this world, but as given us by promise and covenant through faith in Christ in the use of the means lawfully used, Wherefore all other Religions, Additaments & inventious of men are abominable, and all communion with such is no better than the communion with devils. VI We have not forgiveness of sins, life, and the inheritance of heaven, † Act. 3.26. Tit. 3.5 6. Gal. 3.16.17, Abraham had not-wherein to rejoice as of himself, he did not prevent God, but God prevented him. by works of our doing, or will in our choosing, but all is of free grace and free promise. VII. The Lord God, the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, doth give, " The Lord's Prayer, and all the prayers of the Saints belong hither, Gal. 4.6. Rom. 8.15. so note here, that God's promises are the foundation of prayer, David, 2 Sam. 7.27. & Dan. 9.2. etc. as the effects of his promise, his spirit to cry" Abba Father, and to seal assurance of reconciliation, justification and adoption, and to be an earnest of that inheritance of the Saints in light, and to work mortification, and to begin the life of glory in sanctification. This the Lord God doth work in those only that look for salvation in Christ as sons by the promise, not as servants for works or images. VIII. In that the eternal God, the Gentiles shall be blessed in Christ, it is a speech manifesting * Of eternity all God's works were known to him, as the Apostle James saith, Act 15. This is handled, Rom 8.9, 10, 11. chapters the purpose of God's election and predestination in Christ, as the spiritual blessings are handled by the Apostle to proceed out of those eternal fountains, Eph. 1. under the word blessed, are comprehended the unsearchable riches of Christ the second Adam, who of God is made unto us the efficient cause of wisdom, † Or freedom, or forgiveness. justification, sanctification, and redemption. IX. The precious promises in Christ understood and believed, transform or metamorphose a man, and make him partake of the divine nature, so that they which believe in God, must, as from a new principle, in uprightness of heart walk in the spirit, be always zealous to show forth good works, and with all due care flee the corruptions that are in the world through lusts. This is, to keep the mystery of faith in a pure conscience, and this we are to do by restipulation of Covenant. X. As Abraham was blessed, that is justified, in believing the Gospel preached unto him, so shall those that walk in the steps of the faith of our father Abraham, who is the Father of us all, that is, of all such that so believe as he did. XI. The Doctrine of justification by faith in Christ is very ancient, being taught Abraham afore Rome's foundation was laid, or Rhomulus or Rhemus, or a Pharisee or Papist were borne. XII. God will bless them that bless this Doctrine of Christ to Abraham, And he will curse them that curse and persecute this † Let the Anabaptist consider whether all godly parents ought not to curse their tenets, in denying infants to be in the covenant, & in denying the seal to them. doctrine of Christ, and his people, for it shall be said to all such, Cast out the Servant and her Son, etc. Gal. 4. XIII. This also may be observed, as the families of the sons of Noah, were cursed and out off from the Gospel and peace of God by the confusion of tongues at Babylon; Christ would turn this to a blessing in tongues understood at Salem, creating the fruit of the lips to be peace, to the far off and to the the near, Jew and Gentile, so the Gospel the word of faith in our own Languages is a most dear blessing. Accursed be the contrary endeavours of the mystical Babylon, against the Kingdom of Justice and Peace in the Jerusalem, that is from heaven. XIV. Us Gentiles of the posterity of Japhet, Zacharias and the blessed Virgin remember the promise with thanksgiving, Luc. 1. have great cause to praise and bless God the father of our Lord Jesus Christ, who hath performed this promise, and hath blessed us with all spiritual blessings in heavenly things in Christ. Moses and the Prophets call upon us for this duty, and so our godly predecessors did, Psalm. 18.67. Rom. 15. Act. 13. AApoc. 7 XV. As God doth curse him that obeyeth not this doctrine of Faith, so they that teach a divers or contrary way of justification, then by faith in Christ, are to be abhorred and accursed of all the Saints. Moses, the Psalms, Esayas and all the Prophets open this scripture of the Gospel of Christ to Abraham, in many particulars, (this is a gemm to them all) not only of the special blessings in us and for us, but of the particular † The terms, families, nations, Gemiles, Heathens, and in the New Testament, Grecians & tribes are very often to be taken in one sense. nations that revolted from Sems blessed God, how they should be called again to Sem's God: All Nations shall bless him, and be blessed in him, Psal. 73. Esa. 11. and 66. Act. 2. QUest. 3. Did God add any Sacraments or Seals to the word of his Covenant and promise? Answ. Besides the sacrifices the eternal God ordained Circumsion. QUest. 4 What did circumsion teach them? Answ. I. Jehovah made it a seal of his promise, and covenant of blessedness in Christ, to be a God to Abraham and to his seed. Therefore it was a seal of God's Reconciliation, Justification, and adoption, and God did thus keep his covenant with them. Of God's reconciliation, because God all sufficient doth condescend to enter into covenant with sinful man. Of Justification or remission of sins because it is a seal of the justification that is by faith, God did justify the circumcision by faith, and all the policy of Israel did, or should have professed the same; God gave it for that same end, Rom. 4. Of Adoption, because God selected Abraham and his seed, and preferred them above all Nations to be a chosen generation, a royal Preist-hood, an holy nation, a purchased and peculiar people. And therefore also God had said to Pharaoh, Israel is my first borne, Exod. 4. and 19 II. It is signified and sealed to them, to fathers and their infant children, their reconciliation with God by putting off the sinful body of the flesh, in which they were conceived; and by consequent the putting on the new man: So mortification and sanctification, or regeneration is taught. Moses and the Prophets ever drew them to the spiritual meaning, and to rest in the outward work. and the faithful did thus keep their covenant with God. The Saints made excellent uses of this seal of faith for instruction and consolation of their own souls, as of their posterity, as Moses, Manoah, Jonathan, David, Esaias, etc. Exod. 6.12. Deut. 30.6. Judg. 14.3. 1 Sam. 14.6. and 17.36. Esa. 6. And observe the Apostle Paul what he saith in Rom. 2.29. Col 2.12. III. It sealed to them both to Fathers and their infant children, the blessed Estate of the immortality of the soul, and the resurrection. iv It was a seal of entrance into the Church and policy of Israel, which is called the kingdom of God, to distinguish from the Apostate families. For all Israel, they and their children, were by special privilege federally holy, Exod. 19.5.6. Deut. 7.8. 1 Cor. 7.13, 14 Matth 21. V It was a seal to the deed of gift of the Land of Chanaan, (the Land of Rest or promise) to Abraham and his natural seed and proselytes: And of all outward necessary comforts for this life, both of provision and protection. VI It sealed to Abraham, that he should be a Father, not of the Jews only, but of many nations, that when that deed of gift, the Prerogative of it was out, the Gentiles should be called to the faith, fathers and children to be made disciples, and so become Abraham's see, and the kingdom of God. This is so expounded in the Epistle to the Galatians, and in Matth. 21.43. and 28.19. Acts 2. and 3. and 11.17. and 15. VII. Thus we may see what a Catechism out of the promise, and out of the seal of Circumcision the holy Prophet Abraham might teach his household, as he did, and as God testifies he would. Now out of all this, let this be noted, that the promise concerning Christ to Abraham, was not only of temporal blessings to him and his posterity, but also of spiritual: and that chief. And Circumcision sealed the same, and no other doctrine but what the promise taught. Let Rom. 15.8. be throughly studied of us. They are vain talkers and deceivers of minds that teach otherwise. QUest. 5. Furthermore, To Whom did God instruct his Church in expectation of Christ? Answ. To Judah the fourth son of Jacob in these words. Gen. 49.10. A Tribe shall not (a) Or, fail to judah. Shebet a tribe is in Moses, 32 times, as the learned observe; and never a Sceptre in him but a Tribe: and so Tremellius. departed from Judah, nor a Lawgiver from between his feet, till his Son shall come: and to (b) jehovah the hope of their Fathers: that is, Christ the hope of Israel, Jer. 50 7. Acts 28.20. observe how jacob left the faith to his posterity, on his death bed. Let it be for example. him shall the gathering of the people's be. QUest. 6. What do ye observe out of this text? Answ. 1. This prophecy and promise doth look back to the promise to Abraham concerning the great mystery of godliness, God manifested in the flesh, for it is foretold that Christ should also come of Judah. II. When other tribes should despise for the faith of Christ & be scattered, but Judah should hold the faith throw a succession of holy Scribes and Teachers of the Law (and them chief of the holy line of Christ) and his Tribe endure till Christ his Son came. III. Whereas it is said, the peoples shall be gathered to Christ, the meaning is, they shall be called to the faith, and in his Name and Law shall the Nations trust. This prophecy is expounded by Esaias Chap 11 10 and 66 19 20 John 11 51 53 etc. QUest. 7. Who had the knowledge of the Son of God in this state of time, revealed and testified by the spirit, in these exceeding great and precious promises, and the seal of Circumcision? Answ. Abraham, Jsaac, Jacob, and the twelve Patriarches and many of their Godly posterity in Egypt: also Lot, Job, and others in divers places. QUest. 8. Who were they that disregarded (a) Heb. 11.26. reproached, and despised the doctrine of life in Christ exhibited in these promises (and the seal of Circumcision) to Abraham and Judah? Answ. Nachor the brother of Abraham, and many of his posterity: many of the posterity of Abraham by Keturah: the posterity of Lot, Ishmael, (b) As Esau was profane and despised the covenant so his posterity: they profanely left the seal of circumcision, which was conferred on their Father, Zerem. 9.26. Esau, and their posterities: the Canaanites, the Egyptians, yea all the families that fell away in the revolt of Nimrod. QUest. 9 Was there not an Apostasy in the Church from the faith of Christ taught to Abraham, Isaac, jacob, and judah? Answ. A great apostasy: for Israel in Egypt forsook the faith of their Godly ancestors, and followed the idols, and religion of Egypt. Read Ezekiel 20. and 23. QUest. 10. What was the hope and comfort of the faithful, for these times, in cleaving to the faith? Answ. Through faith they obtained good report with God: and confessed that they were pilgrims and strangers on the earth, Heb. 11.13. Gen. 27. all of it. and strove for the blessing of the heavenly inheritance. Wherefore God was not ashamed of them to be called their God, and filled their hearts with joy, that by faith saw the days of Christ, and provided for them the eternal recompense of reward in the heavenly City, Luk. 20.35, 36, 37. and Country and Kingdom: for he accounted them his children, and worthy to enjoy that world and the better resurrection. QUest. 11. How was the wrath of God revealed from heaven against those that did mock, curse and despise the faith of Christ and his people? Answ. Wars and broils among (a) Gen. 14. four Kings against five. Kings of divers countries': Ishmael the son of the bondwomen cast out, Esau given up to hardness of heart. Sodom and Gomorrha burned with fire and brimstone. II. All apostate families were further separated from Christ and the Church of God from the days of Abraham by uncircumcision, Gen. 34 14. Ephes. 2.11. and in great reproach called uncircumcision of them which are called Circumcision. QUest 12. How did Christ pour out his fury, and his anger for the apostasy of Israel in Egypt? Answ. God gave up Israel's babes to the sword of Pharaoh and to be drowned in the river Nilus, Ezek. 20.7, 8. Exod. 1. Annotations upon the Questions and Answers of the fourth CHAPTER. IN the first Quest and Answ, note, The Promise of Christ to Abraham, is often renewed to him, also it was given to Isaac and Jacob This is the foundation of that speech, I am the God of Abraham, and the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob, this is my memorial to all generations, that is, to all of their faith whether Jew or Gentile, Exod. 3.15. Gal. 3.6. 2. Also observe on Gen. 12.3. it is said And in thee shall all, But in Gen. 22. 18, it is said, And in thy seed shall all, so the new Testament useth the same variety of Phrases, for in Act. 3.25. it is said, In thy seed shall al●. but in Gal. 3.8. In thee shall all, yet Saint Paul in chapter 16. expounds it at large, and saith, To Abraham and his seed were the promises made. This is noted, that we might confer scriptures, that neither Jew nor Gentile, might trust in Abraham or any of the saints, but in that holy seed, the Son of God that took humanity of Abraham. 3. In Gen. 1 2.3. [And I will bless] The Promises of God in Christ are the foundation of all comfort to the Church, whether in his goodness to it, or severity to the malignant company, that curse and do all ill offices to the church. Why did God do all that is spoken of in Psal. 105. in every verse both to his church, and to the children of the wicked one? The reason is rendered in verse 42 He remembered his holy promise to Abraham his servant, and the effects of that promise did not stand in force for Moses time alone, but for one thousand generations, as verse 8. and that is the intent of penning this Psalm, Mich. chap. 7: remembreth his promise, and expoundeth it with terror to the seed of the Serpent, but with joy to the Saints, for the pardon of sin, withholding of anger, showing mercy and compassion, and burying of sins as in the sea, and all this accompanied with another grace of subduing our iniquities, (all these expound the promise) a godly soul doth as much desire to have sin subdued as pardoned, so justification, mortification, and sanctification are taught in the promise. The blessed and beloved Virgin and Z charins do both comment on Micah, Luke 1. and the Psalm 106. must be considered as Psal. 105. 4. Mind further, how this promise is pursued in Levit. 26. and Dan. 9.24. and Act 3. Gal 3 and 4. for the faith of this promise, was taught both to the Jews; Acts 3. and to the Gentiles, Gal. 3. and indeed all the Bible dilateth on that of Gen. 3.15 & Gen. 12.3, and this of Gen. | 12.3 is but an exposition of Gen. 3.15 5. yet further observe, that as Jehovah the eternal Lord, doth remember the promise to a thousand generations, Ps. 105.8. so likewise all the Israel of God that are of Abraham's faith, are reciprocally to remember it, as 1 Chron. 16.15.16. mark it well, As God saith, The promise is his memorial, so it should be our memorial, and especially we should remember it in the days of affliction, for than we most need so to do, consider Exod. 3.15. for then Israel was in great affliction, and Moses was sent to tell them that God was mindful of his memorial. Consider Nehemiah 9 6. And lastly, note the promise is called a Covenant, Act 3. and Gal. 3. and so the promise, Gen. 3.15. must be considered as a covenant that God made with our first parents; as Christ is the hope of the promise made unto our Fathers, Acts 26.6, 2●2, 3. Jer. 50.7. so he is the hope of the covenant, Esa. 42.6. Quest. 2. N. 1. This first point is handled by a Son of Abraham, Rem. 1. & 2. & 3. The book of Job teacheth of the corruption of nature, (taken from Parents) and of redemption, so it showeth how Abraham taught his posterity, & how all the faithful of old, taught their children by tradition, and all true and sound tradition before the scriptures agreeth with the scriptures, & so must all tradition since the scriptures, Ps. 78.1, 2, 3, 4. etc. Jobs book was afore the Law of faith was written by Moses. Ibid. N. 11. This second is handled, Rom. 3. & 4. & 5. To these two points confer the notes of N. 4. and N. 5. in page 21. All of the first Adam miserable, and no blessduesse but in Christ the second Adam, all the Acts and the Epistles etc. abundantly open this. Ibid. N. 5. [In thy seed all families] In Christ all are gathered, Eph. 1.10. The glory of this blessedness (to procure the salvation of the elect) God will not give to any other mediator, Esay. 42.1. etc. This blessing came on Abraham in his uncircumcision, Rom. 4. and so observe these blessings are handled to the uncircumcised, the families of Japhet, the Romans, Corinthians, Ephesians etc. Therefore Turks, Jews and all misbelievers are excluded from all hope of comfort. Ibid of Question 2. N. 5. [Only and alone the Lord Jesus Christ] all scripture speaketh exclusively concerning any other, 1 Joh, 5.11.12, 13. so the Apostle Peter is plain, This is the stone cast aside of you bvilders, which is become the head of the corner. Neither is there salvation in any other; for among men there is given none other name under heaven, whereby we must be saved, Act. 4. God would in due time show this his justification of a sinner, and that he might be just in all his promises, and a justifier of him who is of the faith of JESUS. Rom. 3. Ibid. of N. V [Given us by promise] We cannot, we may not pray or expect any blessing temporal, spiritual, or eternal, but by covenant and promise in Christ, Levit. 26. Deut 28.7, 12, still look to the promise. The promise is sure by faith to all the seed, it can be sure no way else; faith doth realize and evidence things promised to our hearts, God is keeper of covenant, and in that faith resteth. In God things promised have their consistency, and therefore they shall have a being on us in due time, Deut. 8.18. And we must take blessings as blessings of the covenant, and redemption in Christ (all mercies to the Saints are the price of blood) not as common favours with the world, that have the sun and rain, etc. else we shall not be of those generations that praise God through Christ, Ephes. 3.21. Hos. 2.19, 20, etc. else our mouths will not be filled with laugher, and our tongue with singing praises to our God, Psalm 96.98. & 136. & 137. Leu. 26. Ibid. of 2 Quest. N. VII. seal assurance] As the spirit sealeth to the heart of the believer the doctrine of the Covenant and promise, so the seals of the Covenant are made effectual by the spirit, for the further confirmation of the justification that is by faith, to none other persons but to the children of the promise and covenant made with Abraham, Acts 3. Rom. 4. And none other persons can understand what this saying of covenant and seal meaneth, but those that are redeemed from the earth, Apoc. 14.3. Ephes 1.13, 14. & 2.18. Rom. 8.15, 16. N. 9 which believe in God must] Faith is a wise and an obedient grace, saith worketh by love, Rom. 6.7, & 8. chapters, handle this; Gall 5.6. the Apostle opens this as a part of the blessing in the promise, Acts 3.25, 26. Christ destroyeth sin in his and sanctifieth. If any be in Christ he is a new creature, 2 Cor. 5.17. old things in the old Adam are passed away, and all things become new in us, from the second Adam. The ten Commandments belong to this point, and handled as an use from God's mercy and covenant in Christ, Exod. 20.1, etc. Rom. 6. chapter and 12. chapter, and the later parts of the Epistles to the Galatians, Ephesians, colossians, and by holy Zacharias, Luke 1.74. & ubique. See the practice of this in holy Job, his effectual faith, and diligent love, and patience of hope from the godly instruction of Abraham in the promise. The covenant of grace is reciprocal, the seals also teach the same. It is glorious to keep the mystery of faith in a pure conscience. And this is an easy yoke to an holy and humble soul: his commandments are not burdensome. Mat. 28.20. 1 john 5.3. And after the Lord hath spoken peace by justification we must not turn again to folly that grace may abound Psal. 85. Ro●. 5 & 6. And they that put away a good conscience will make shipwreck of faith and blaspheme. Briefly, this is a sure character of the Saints of God, that all that call on the name of the Lord with a pure heart do follow righteousness, faith, charity, peace, etc. and such only are vessels of honour for our heavenly master's use. Observe yet further, the Popish Company, and many others that are ignorant, when they speak of good works, their thought darteth chief on almsdeeds, prayer, fasting, etc. But withal teaching and believing the doctrine of opere operato, at the Pharisees: Whereas by good works is meant not only those, but all the duties of charity of the first and second Table, both toward God and toward man: yea all to be done in faith as regenerate in the Second Adam, that God the Father in him may be glorified: And where the true faith of our glorious Lord Jesus Christ is planted it will so show itself: And this is the true sense of James 2. of showing our faith by our works, and our Father Abraham, and Rachabs story are conferred to this exposition. Again, observe that commonly those that so call for those good works care not for sound teaching of the word of God, but rather carry a grudge against it, and holy assemblies, and the sincere professors and preachers. And alas, what are their prayers, almsdeeds, fasting, etc. for matter, manner, or end It may be questioned, if they be materially good. And let such take heed that for manner, or end, they are no better than Kains, Genesis chap. 4. then theirs in Psalm 50 and Esay 1. and 58. and the Scribes and Pharisees, who did all those things and more too, and yet crucified the Lord Jesus Christ the Lord of glory, who would have had them come to a more exact and joyful righteousness. But they could not call JESUS, the Lord, but held him, his Kingdom, his doctrine, and his disciples anathema, as of old they did Esay 8.18. & chap. 65.5. & 66.5. all John 9 N. 10. In the steps of the faith of our Father Abraham] There are many that do not walk in the steps of the faith of Abraham, as the Anabaptist that saith, infants of believing parents are not in the covenant of God in Christ, and so ought not to have the seal conferred on them; therefore they do not administer the seal, but scoff at it, as Patience did in New England. Now see Abraham's faith, He did not only believe that the children that came of Israel were in the covenant of God in Christ, but he believed the same touching the infants of the Gentiles: therefore in testimony of his faith he circumcised his house, the same day the covenant and promise was renewed to him, Gen 17. And all the tribes to our Lords days did observe circumcision. And the promise is sure to all the seed of whom Abraham is a Father, not only to that seed that is circumcised, but also to them of the Gentiles that are uncircumcised; for he is said to be the Father of us all, according to that which was spoken to him. That he should be the father of many nations. Therefore the Anabaptist is far from walking in the steps of the faith of Abraham: and they run into sad uncomfortable errors: First, They deny God to be the God of infants, having no right nor portion in the covenant. Secondly, If infants be not in the covenant of God in Christ, they shall not be partakers of the better resurrection: O ye parents consider it. Thirdly, They will not present them to Christ in his ordinances, that he should teach them: what is this? but a dedication of their infants to Moloch, to the devil to be devoured. Whereas the godly parent hath great comfort that if the children of Idolatrous parents were born to God, (God so accounts in respect of his covenant) Ezek. 16.20. how much more have godly parents comfort that their children are born to God. Let the Apostles reasoning Rom. 4.16, 17. to the end of the chapter be throughly minded, and let God's people observe providences, whether many of the Anabaptists do not turn to Sadducism, denying the resurrection, or as vile opinions: for it hath been observed, not without cause, that Anabaptistry is a cloak of all filthiness, and our times have found it to be so. Surely they that are of the faith of Abraham, shall be blessed with faithful Abraham: For so it is said, Many shall come from the East, and from the West: from the North, and from the South, and shall sit down with Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob in the kingdom of Heaven, Mar 8. Luke 13. Rom. 4 13. and so they became the Israel of God, Gal. 6.16. The promise of blessedness in Christ is in extent as large to all converted Gentiles, and to their seed, as to Abraham and his seed. N. 11. The doctrine of Justification by faith] Abraham believeth in him that justifieth the ungodly: who counted his believing for his justification before he received circumcision that he might be the Father of the believing uncircumcised Gentiles: so it is not heresy, as the circumcised Pharisee then, and the baptised Papist now would bear the world in hand. What, the Gospel not before Popery? mark here two say, Gal. 3.8. The Scripture foreseeing that God would justify the Gentiles through faith, preached before the Gospel to Abraham, saying, In thee shall all the Gentiles be blessed. And from this promise he had the justification that it by faith, and before circumcision, Rom. 4. The other text is Heb. 4. For unto us the Gospel hath been preached as also unto them: that is to the people of Israel that came out of Egypt, Exod. 12. Mind the say of the new Testament illustrating for us the old covenant, that we may see Antiquity gloriously triumphing over Popish cursed Novelty. Holy Luther, and multitudes before him, and others after him, by preaching this everlasting Gospel have routed the armies of King Abaddon that he shall never make up his troops again. N. 12. God will bless them that bless this doctrine] Pray for the Peace of Jerusalem, they shall prosper that love thee, Psalm 122. they shall be as the bright Sun that love Christ, Judas 5. Bless Christ and Abraham, that is, all of his faith, and thou shalt be blessed, thou and thy posterity, as Lot found that blessed Abraham: and so the very Amorites, Aner, Escol, and Mamre, Gen. 14. and it is probable the Gibeonites might be of their posterity, being a remnant of the Amorites: Under the term Amorite all the Chanaanites sometimes are understood. How did Christ pity them in suffering Israel to make a league with them, and for saul's cruelty. And they were the Nethinim that returned with Judah from captivity, Jos. 9 22. Ezra 8.20. Ibid. N. 12. Cu●se and persecute this doctrine] Dost thou curse? Wilt not bless the holy seed, and the holy doctrine? Read thy doom; as he loved cursing, so shall it come unto him, as he delighted not in blessing, so let it be far from him, Psalm 109. Wilt not exercise bowels to the body of Christ? the curse shall enter in thy bowels. Dost not hear? Let them be confounded and turned back that hate Zion, let them be as the grass upon the house tops, which withereth afore it grows up, wherewith the reaper filleth not his hand, nor he that bindeth sheaves his bosom. Neither do they which go by, say, the blessing of Jehovah be you, we bless you in the Name of Jehovah, Psalm 129. Thou that hast spittle in thy mouth, and an aching tooth against Christ, and the sincerity of the faith, hear what one of thine own prophets have said. Num. 24.9. He couched, he lay down as a Lion, as a great Lion, who shall stir him up? blessed is he that blesseth thee, and cursed is he that curseth thee. Mark how the promise to Abraham, and jacob's blessing was carried by tradition among the children of the East, and how Balaam durst not but remember it to terrify Balak in his Enterprise. What saith Christ to Pharaoh, Kill my child, and I will kill thy child; Israel is my firstborn (the heir of the world) it thou afflict him, I will slay thy son, thy first born. And consider Psalms 105. how it pursueth the promise and covenant to Abraham for Israel, and against the seed of the Serpent. And thus it must be considered for Israel all the time of the old Testament, and for the Israel of God till the end of the world. He that meddles against Israel, meddles with a burdensome stone, and putteth fire into a sheet to burn his house, Psalm 2 10, 11, 12. Zach. 12.3.6. What got Balak and the Princes of Midian, and Balaam, that sought to curse? God cursed them, and the false Prophet felt it. So though the Balaks and Balaams of mystical Egypt, and mystical Babylon have cursed, and do seek still the destruction of our nation, especially of the Gospel: yet while we keep our covenant they shall never prevail. Balaams' counsel was more dangerous than his curse; for his counsel being followed brought a plague. O ye Princes, O ye people do ye not know that the sincere Word, and the holy seed is the subsistence of your Kingdoms and commonweals, towns, and families? Esay 6.13. Every child of God is a public good. Mind one thing more how those thor did seem to be of the truth and were brethren touching the outward circumcision, yet cursed the servants of Christ, that would not walk in their ways, traditions, devises and abominations, Esay 66.5. and in after times they so used the poor blind man, John 9 So have the cruel Prelates used the dear servants of the Lord: they did curse, yet Christ did bless, and hath and will pay his enemies home that abuse his ordinances: for if any man love not the Lord Jesus Christ, anathema maranatha is his heavy Censure, 1 Cor. 16.22. Ibidem N. 12. Cast out the servant and her son] Without shall be liars. Liars in judgement as all Papatines be. Whosoever transgresseth and abideth nor in the doctrine of Christ hath nor God: he that continueth in the doctrine of Christ, he hath both the Father and the Son, 1 John 2.24. 2 John 2.9. Be it that they sometimes confess the doctrine of Christ's person, yet both in their doctrine and practice they deny it, because they deny him in his offices and administrations for which he became such a person and such a Mediator And oh what lying blasphemies do they utter against the holy records that testify of the eternal Son the Mediator. Popery is a mystery of iniquity. N. 13. The word of faith in our own languages] In the Law it is written, with men of other tongues, and other lips will I speak unto this people, and yet for all that they will not hear me, saith the Lord; Wherefore tongues are for a sign, not to them that believe, but to them that believe not, but prophesying serveth not for them that believe not, but for them which believe, Esay 28.11, 1 Cor. 14.21. This looks back to Nimrods' rebellion, they despised the faith taught by Noah, Sem, and the rest of the godly fathers (before Abraham) in their known language; therefore Christ cut them off from the faith by strange languages. When Israel despised the things of the Law of Christ written for their comfort; see how he, in this, would avenge the quarrel of his covenant, Deut. 28.49. and fulfilled it, jer. 5.15. 2 Chron. 36. If it be then such a dear blessing to have Moses and the Prophets, our Lord and his Apostles speak to us in our own language, let the saints worship God with hearty praise and thanksgiving, so did David Psalm 103.7. and 147. 19 All are abominable, idolatrous and false worshippers and unclean infidels that Christ speaks not to in their own language by his blessed Gospel: as all the Babylonian bvilders, and their seed to this day, and the mystical Babylonian bvilders: It is much to be considered, that when the churches departed from the Apostles doctrine, Christ confounded the Europian and Asian languages. When it was prophesied of the calling of the Gentiles to the faith of the Gospel, it is said, I will turn to the people a pure language, which was fulfilled when Christ sanctified all tongues as it is said, We do here them speak in our own languages the wonderful works of God, Acts 2.11. Zeph. 3.9. Whereas, for two thousand years, the Gentiles, Noah's families, called on idols names. We little consider the severity of the wrath of Christ in the confusion of tongues, what a plague it is, and will be to the end of the world; most sad is that scripture, Jer. 44.26. 3 Quest. of his covenant and promise] God did not first give a seal and then made a Covenant, but first made a Covenant and a promise, as to our first parents, Gen. 3.15. and then taught them of the seal, the Sacrifices: so to Noah God made a Covenant, and then gave him the seal of the Flood, and of the Ark: so in Gen. 9 first the Covenant, and then the Rainbow: so to Abraham: so each godly parent must seek to know God in Christ in the Covenant, and to be in covenant for them and their children. And it is to be marked, I'm had an outward blessing in the covenant with his father, for he was of Noah's household, Heb. 11: 7. and he and his children had continued in the same, if he had not and his son mocked and scorned his father; for which both of them were excommunicated: and Cham's house feared not, but waxed worse and worse against Christ and his Kingdom, and set up a tyranny in Nimrod, to give the affront to Sem's blessing. Again note, when the merciful God made a covenant with all flesh, man and beast; were not young, as old comprised in the covenant? a sucking chile and a lamb as the parent, Gen. 9.9, 10, 11. Quest. 4. Of justification or remission of sins] The apostate and adulterous generation in our Lords days (that did adulterate the faith) miss, stating Circumcision as a part of the Law or Covenant of Works, (a school distinction of their own, neither of Moses, nor of the Prophets) whereas it was rightly understood, a law and seal of faith in Christ, and the seal of justification that is by faith. Their fac hoc, is, credere, in our Lord's interpretation of the Law; to believe in him whom the Father had sealed and sent to be the true manna and sacrifice, and their perfect justification and freedom, as was told them, Acts 13.38, 39 And as they miss in stating circumcision a Law of works ex opere operato, to justification: so they did of all the politic of Moses, that it did initiate them unto, which yet they could not do, being too heavy a yoke, Acts 15. Now they despising Christ the end and scope of the law of Moses, they made their own justification, their idol and vanity, and so provoked Christ to their rejection: confer Deut. 32.21. with Rom. 10.19. That speech is very strong that the Lord Jesus spoke, john 7. that circumcision was not so much of Moses, but observed of the Fathers before Moses was born. They should have considered in what sense Abraham received it, and used it, Rom. 4. Ibidem, God did justify the circumcision] so this is clear, God did justify the infants of Israel, for else he would not have commanded circumcision to infants: this was to comfort all godly parents, that although they knew their children were conceived in sin and born in iniquity, yet God knew how for his covenant sake, (not for our sakes) to justify, that is, to free infants from sins guiltiness, filthiness, and desert; and to comfort godly parents of the Gentiles touching their infants: the Apostle saith, God is not the god of the jews only, but of the Gentiles also, for he that justifies the circumcision will justify the uncircumcision. And God is a husband to the once barren and desolate woman, but fruitful in children as the former married wife, Israel. Doth not the promise save infants as well as grown men? and doth not our heavenly father declare his counsels that his will is to save infants as well as grown men? that he enjoins the seal to infants: and saith, that he will be their God: and the Lord saith not, he will be the Father of grown men rather than of infants. And a godly parent hath as great hope of his dying infants, as any Anabaptist can have of their grown men. Ibid. of Quest. 4. Of adoption.] This adoption of Israel hath a double consideration: general and special, visible and invisible: visible, in covenant, in respect of the Apostate families that were cut off Gen. 10. & 11. invisible, the faithful in Israel. All did profess the faith (except in their apostasies to the false faiths and religions of Earl-Peor, and Moloch, and Chemosh, &c) So they were not all faithful, no not in outward profession. They were Christ's own, afore he came to his own (all Exod. etc.) his own by visible privileges, yet many a time they grieved him and his holy Spirit, Psalm 78 & 106. so many of them slighted this adoption by joining themselves to Peor, as the sons of the open Church followed Kains ways Gen. 6. even so it is now; some in the Church born after the flesh, and some born after the Spirit, yet both make a visible Church of Christ it cannot be, it must not be denied. It is not sound reasoning from a visible Church estate, to the doctrine of election. If any be further contentious, beware of them, Rom. 16.17, 18. Quest. 4. N. 11. Putting of the sinful body] It shown how distasteful man is to God in his sinful estate of the first Adam, and no communion with God but by regeneration in the second Adam, 1 Joh. 1. Therefore observe what Esaias, Ezekiel, John Baptist, and our Lord, and Stephen said to carnal Israel, boasting to be Abraham's seed. Esay 57.3. Ezek. 16.3. joh. 8.44. Acts 7, 51. Matth. 3.9. That they were neither Gods children, nor Abraham's seed, not treading in the steps of the faith and works of Abraham. ibid. N. II. The putting on the new man] An Israelite being circumcised yet the old Adam was not so put off, nor the new Adam so put on, but that birth sin did remain: yea so remained, that through the Bias of lusts and sinful appetites, and by temptation, and not taking heed to themselves, and keeping their souls diligently, omissions of duty, and many actual sins did bud forth. For although by faith in Christ the saints were justified, or freed from the guilt and punishment of sin, inheriting the justification that is by faith, yet there was corruption in them issuing from that original or birth-sin, that we still are yoked with all: we are in Christ Jesus justified from the reign of this sin, but not from the being of it in us. God's counsel is such to make us humble. This the saints of old felt and acknowledged, and bewailed, and prayer for further mortification, Psalm 51. And those Scriptures from two Apostles that were both circumcised and baptised show the truth of this, Rom. 7.1 John 1.8. Phil. 3.12, 13. Therefore every godly soul must observe three things; 1. That we slight not any sin in thought, word, or deed, Rom. 6. & 7. And 2. to be careful that we content not ourselves with bodily exerccise, Phil. 3.1, 2, 3, etc. And 3. not to be discontent that God's counsel is such that perfection is not attaineable in this life; that was the sin of our first parents, they were Seekers to be in a better estate than they were stated in: they were discontent and harkened to Satan. While we are in this vale of tears, this must ever be in our hearts, 1 joh. 1. If we say we have no sin we deceive ourselves, and truth is not in us, but if we acknowledge our sins, he is faithful and just to forgive us our sins, and to cleanse us from all our unrighteousness, and mind that of the Apostle. Phil. 3.7, 8, 9, 10, 11, 12, etc. Satan and his instruments will by all means corrupt our hearts in these three things. Ibidem N. II. Drew them to the spiritual meaning] The faithful worshipped Gop in Spirit, and rejoiced in Christ jesus, jer. 4.4. Phil. 3.3. but a circumcised carnal Israelite thought opus operatum enough, as a Law of works, and so in all their ceremonies. And note this, as the doctrine of the covenant is reciprocal, so of the Seal, as they did teach and seal all comforts from God, so they did bind them closer to God in Christ by faith and filial obedience. N. III. of the 4 Quest. their infant-childrens, &] Let us consider two or three words more of that which is said touching the infants of Israel, that departed this life. It is God's promise and covenant that are workfull, and his Spirit did bless circumcision for the joy and comfort of parents for their infant's reconciliation, justification, sanctification, and adoption and hope of immortal glory. The same covenant and promise doth belong to the Parents of the Churches of the Gentiles for their infants in the seal of Baptism. Is the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, the holy Trinity the God of the Jews only; and not of the Gentiles also? yea of the Gentiles also. Thy Makers are thy Husbands, Esay 54. faithful is he that hath promised, and he will do it. Therefore he is reconciled to our infants, and will justify, and sanctify, and adopt them and bring them to immortal glory. They by circumcision were circumcised into one body, as is evident in all the Church politic of Moses. And so by baptism we are all baptised into one body, whether jews or Greeks. The promise and covenant is ours as well as theirs, (as the Epistle to the Galatians upon Gen. 12.2, 3. showeth) and baptism sealeth the same: and the Covenant and seal is in extent (excepting the obligation of Ceremonies, and some judicials) as large for application to all converted Gentiles to them and to their seed, as of old to Israel, and their seed. The false teachers of these days say the Covenant with the people of Israel was carnal and fleshly, etc. but this is not so: not so in God's intent when he gave those promises, and made that covenant, and ordained that seal of his covenant: not so, in the judgement of the faithful, and in their whole conversation which was heavenly, as all Heb. 11. Luke 1.55, 72, 73, 74. Again not so, for after they came to Canaan, they did not reject Canaan, nor city, nor Temple (but in apostasy) nor sacrifices, nor washings, etc. as Psalm 50. Esay 1. jer. 7. yet God plagued them, which was for despising Christ in those ordinances: so their table was made a snare to them: and Christ was a stumbling Stone to them, as he was to Kain. That which was ordained for their welfare, they made their ruin. And so if we do no more but outward exercises in a show of godliness, and deny the power thereof, and live wickedly as they did Psalm 50. Esay 1. jeremy 7. The Angel of God's presence, our glorious Lord jesus Christ will not spare our misdeeds, 1 Thess. 4, 6. etc. These false teachers abuse the holy Scriptures, as in that of Heb. 8. It is said, better promises, etc. but they must be asked what better promises than Genesis 3, 15. & Genesis 12.3? Let such know there are not better promises in old or new Testament: and indeed those two promises contain all the doctrine of the Gospel, as in part before is showed. They must excogitate the true interpretation, by seeking how our Lord, and his Apostles convinced the false glosses the Concision made of Moses Polity: for we all must know theirs and ours is the same Covenant (as often said) only new for Administration in fulfilling all promises and prophecies. Let us confer, Exod. 19 & 29.45. Leu. 26.15. with Apoc. 21.3.2 Cor. 6.16. Gen. 3.15. with 1 John 1.2, 3. and chap. 3. Jos. 1. with Heb. 13.5. Rom. 4. with Gen. 15. & 17, etc. This must be often spoken and meditated, for we are dull of hearing. Again, better promises, hath respect to Deut. 30. Psalm 40 and 95. in Deut. 30. Christ promiseth that he will circumcise their heart, and the heart of their seed, to love him, Jehovah their God, and to keep his commandments, etc. This Christ spoke to them, that they might not be deceived to think that their salvation stood in outward observances; as in circumcision, etc. but in serving God in their spirits in the Gospel of his Son. And so this to be understood in all Moses ceremonies. The blood of Oxen and Goats and Rams did not, could not purge their conscience from dead works, but their conscience would still be to them, for all their bodily exercise, an ill, accusing and condemning conscience. Their salvation was established upon better promises, and a better hope, That Christ by his own most perfect sacrifice, and bloodshedding should be a sweet smelling savour to God for us, and procure eternal redemption. And while we, as strangers, converse in this world, he would be mortification, and sanctification, by his word and spirit, Mic. 7. John 3. Yet let the godly take heed they neglect not ordinances, and outward observances of Christ's institution, though they be as the bark and shell, yet they are such a bark and shell, that a Christian cannot have life kept within him without them: as a tree will not live without his bark, nor the kernel prosper without his shell. Public administrations and family ordinances, and secret duties, are of that consequence, that he that carelessly neglecteth them is in danger of gangrenating errors both in doctrine and manners. N. VI Not of the Jews only, but of many Nations] Gen. 17.5. It is promised by the Lord jehovah the performer of his promises. For a Father of many nations have I made thee: This speech was spoken at that time when God renewed his promise and covenant in Christ with Abraham, and added the seal to that covenant teaching thereby that he would not be, the God of Israel only, but in due time the God of the Gentiles also; therefore the Covenant is to the infants of the Gentiles, as of the jews: and all faithful are Abraham's seed, and the Israel of God, Gal. 3 & 6.16. and if the covenant be to the infants, than the seal: none dare deny it, but those that care not for the education of their children in godliness and honesty, for the hope of the resurrection unto eternal life. Abraham durst not deny the seal, but with all joy went about it. Again, consider Mat. 19.13. & Mark 10.13. little children are comprehended in the Covenant, For of such is the Kingdom of heaven. Yea, observe further, Of such is the Kingdom of God, that is, of the Church of God, as Matth. 21.43. The Kingdom of God shall be taken from you, and given to a nation that shall bring forth the fruits thereof. So then Israel's infants were of the kingdom of God, and so are the Gentiles infants. Did the Kingdom of God consist of the parents and infants of Israel in the old Testament? surely then godly parents and their infants of the Gentiles are in equal honour. He that shall hill an infant shall be put to death as justly as if he had killed a parent. So the murderous, accursed, doctrine of Anabaptists that would murder children is as wicked as to kill a godly parent. For the Lord God doth justify and wash infants from their sins in his Covenant, and bring them to glory, as well as their godly parents. And again, seriously mind, The covenant of God in Christ by circumcision was in full force to the death of our Lord and Saviour, Luke 1.59. and Circumcision was a seal of the covenant of grace to the infants of the faithful, and infants were in covenant as is evident: and now after our Lord's death were they not in covenant? Did our Lord's death disannul the Covenant of his grace in respect of them? absit, absit. It was about six or seven weeks from our Lord's death to Peter's sermon, Acts 2. And the holy Apostle in the conclusion of his Sermon doth exhort his auditors to receive the ordinance of Baptism in the name of Jesus Christ for the Remission of sins: and to show he spoke by the same Spirit of God that gave the promises, doth affirm that the promise and covenant is as firm to infants as ever it was, and therefore saith, The promise is made unto you and to your children, and to all that are afar off, even as many as the Lord our God shall call, Acts 2.39. In chap. 3.25, 2●. It is said, the Jews were the children of the Prophets, and of the Covenant which God made with our Fathers, saying to Abraham, Even in thy seed shall all the kindreds of the earth be blessed. First unto you hath God raised up his son Jesus, etc. so the Jews had the first prerogative of the blessing in their kindreds, and of the resurrection of Christ; and then secondly the Gentiles have the like portion in the blessing, and in our Lord's resurrection, Rom. 2.10. consider for these things, Rom. 4.16, 17, 18, etc. to the end of the chapter. Quest. 5. & Answ. on Gen. 49.10. And to Him shall the gathering of the people be] O give thanks unto Jehovah, for he is good, for his mercy endureth for ever. And say ye, Save us O God of our salvation, and gather us together, and deliver us from the heathen that we may give thanks to thy holy Name, and glory in thy praise. Blessed be Jehovah the God of Israel for ever and ever, and all the people said, Amen. 1 Chron. 16. Psal. 147.2. The Apostle saith the same, Grace be to you and peace from God the father, and from our Lord Jesus Christ; who gave himself for our sins that he might deliver us from this present evil world, according to the Will of God which is our father: to whom be glory for ever, Amen, Gal. 1.3, 4.5. Eph. 1. 10. Abraham was gathered from the world, and Christ hath and doth still gather and deliver us out of the world to be of his Israel, John 11.52. so observe john 17. Quest. 7. & Answ. Abraham, Isaac, jacob] they to testify their faith in the Promises of Christ built Altars in divers places, and called on the name of the everlasing God. And therefore observe, the Apostle saith he served God with pure conscience from his forefathers in the promise of life, which is in Christ Jesus, 2 Tim. 1.1, 2, 3. and therefore the promises to the Fathers with the seal of circumcision were not carnal and fleshly, as Mateologists wickedly prattle: if they were carnal to them, so they are to us, for the promises and covenant belong to us, as hath been laid from Acts 2.39. and chap. 3, 25.26. Surely the faith of a good Christian is builded on Christ the Comer stone, and on his religion practised of the godly Patriarches, and on the bless, holy scriptures, and hope in the resurrection: all which by the work of the spirit doth make a man watchful to keep a good conscience in Church, in Common-Weal, by Land or Sea, at home, abroad, in s●ops, in labours, etc. see how all is taught in promise and seal. He that is such an one shall look death in the face, and needs not to be afraid before whom he comes, nor needs be ashamed of the groundless criminations of schism, heresy, and blasphemy, etc. diligently ponder Acts 24, 14, 15, 16. Quest. 9 & Ans. A great apostasy, for Israel in Egypt] Read Ezek. 23.8. Israel with his family came as a pure virgin into Egypt: and so continued all the days of jacob: and joseph while he lived held the whole house in life and faith: but the Egyptians afterwards infected their poweritie with idolatry: even in her youth lay they with this virgin Israel, and bruised the breasts of her virginity, and poured their whoredoms upon her. False worship being a work of the flesh pleaseth and quickly insinuateth into our corrupt nature, especially being conversant with idolaters. Let all people beware of mystical Egyptians: And let Commonweals, Churches, and families note, that false worship, and heresy increaseth and fomenteth all projects of ungodliness and unrighteousness. Ezek. 16.6. and 20. must also here be considered to the captivity, both of Israel and Judah: They were by apostasy rather of the Amorite and He●hite then of Abraham and Sarah. They were in the blood of their false religion, being foully corrupted with the idols of Egypt: and so they were dead till Christ by his own law said unto them live: So were we, being under the bondage of Rome-Egypt, until Christ, by his everlasting Gospel, made us to live, Apoc. 14.6. & 20.4, 5. And note as Terah his corrupt worship continued long in Israel: so did that of Muzrajim (i. e.) Egypt, Jos. 24.14. Ezek. 23 8. Quest. 10. & Ans. God was not ashamed] But God will be ashamed of adulterers and adulteresses, that follow superstitions, lusts of the flesh, lusts of the eyes, and pride of life; for such do and will deny Christ, and be ashamed of him and his word, and such cannot be pilgrims and strangers, and seek things celestial, james 4. 1 Ichn 2. Mark 8. Col. 3.1. Ibid. To be called their God] Christ saith, I am the God of Abraham, and the God of Isaac, and the God of jacob, this is my memorial to all generations, that is, to all of their faith and heavenly conversation, whether Jew or Gentile, Exedus 3.6, 15, 16. Hebrews 11. Ibid. Heavenly City and Country] The faithful to the fullness of time were in heaven, and part of the blessed family of the heavenly Father, Ephe. 1.10. & 3.15. All the faithful in Israel were the adopted sons of the Eternal, their God, (and if sons, than heirs, Rom. 8.) so they were, living, and so they were, dead. Therefore the living might not sorrow as the heathens that had not certain knowledge of the joyful and glorious state of the immortal souls of the faithful, nor any hope of the resurrection, Luke 13.28, 29. They might not cut themselves for the dead, nor make any print or mark in the flesh, Levit. 19.28. Dent. 14. 1, 2, 1 Thess. 4 The loving kindness of jehovah, is better than life, because though life departs, yet we be, and live for ever in him. Therefore it is said, God is the God, as of Abraham, Isaac, and jacob, and so of every true believer, even when his body is dead and turned to dust, and therefore Abraham must be held in spirit to be and live with God, and shall have the resurrection of the body, Luke 20.37.38. Matt. 22.24. Mark 12. The faithful enjoy the same inheritance and happiness with Abraham, and this is one part of the blessedness in Christ promised to Abraham. And Christ saith of Moses being dead, Moses my servant is dead: he was still the Servant of Christ though he went up to Mount Nebo, and died: and we know he doth live, for he appeared when Christ was transfigure, and death is one of the works of the devil which Christ was to dissolve. Christ was promised from the beginning to destroy the works of Satan now called the old Serpent, Acts 26. 6. Josh. 1.2. 1 John 3.8. Heb. 2.14, 15. 2 Tim. 1.10. CHAP. V. With Questions, Answers, and Annotations on them, How Redemption was taught From the Law of the Passeover to the building of the Temple. QUest. 1. Proceed to declare what Noble Pillar did Wisdom hue out to which the holy and golden Chain of times is fastened, by which life and salvation was taught to the Saints? Answ. This is the (a) Although they apostated to the idols of Egypt: yet by the blood of the Passeover God chose them again, but again rejected them for their idols and vanity when Christ our Passeover is sacrificed for us. Passeover, Exod. 12. QUest. 2. How many years were from the Promise to Abraham, to the Passeover, or to the coming from Egypt, or to the giving of the Law? Answ. Four hundred and thirty years. QUest. 3. How much of the Scripture is contained in those 430. years? Answ. From the beginning of the 12. of Genesis to the 12. of Exodus, the book of Job, and also part of the 1. & 2. ch. of 1 Chron. QUest. 4. How doth the Passeover, etc. teach of Christ? Answ. Christ is called the Lamb of God that taketh away the sins of the World: also our Passeover. Mark what the Holy Ghost saith, Heb. 11.28. (a) The Levites in Hezekiahs' days taught the good knowledge of Jehovah, that is Christ. The Levites taught the meaning of the Passeover as Moses by faith instituted it. 2 Chr. 30 22. mark and consider the Psalm 22. & 40. and 110. what was taught in those three great congregations, the assemblies of holy beauty. Through faith he kept the Passover, and the sprinkling of blood, lest he that destroyed the first born should touch them. The 12. of Exodus will afford many meditations. And although three months after the Passeover they had the Law in two Tables given, full of terror to humble man, yet by a still and soft voice, a pattern of heavenly things were enjoined, as a Tabernacle made with hands, the Priesthood of Levi: the Breastplate with VRIM and THUMMIM. The Ark of the Covenant, the blood of peace offerings, sin-offerings, whole burnt-offerings, holy incense, washings, cleansings, redemptions, atonements, remissions, the Manna, the brazen Serpent, and holy garments of ministration, and other holy feasts beside the Passeover, distinction of times, in new Moons, years of Rest, Jubilees, etc. enjoined. All which do teach of Christ, the truth, Who is Jehovah our righteousness: Christ is all, and in all. QUest. 5. But were not the moral and ceremonial Laws given to disannul the promises, that we should seek righteousness or justication, by doing of outward works through our own will and power? Answ. In no wise: For although the Law of the came 430. years after the promise, yet it cannot disannul the faith in Christ taught in the promises. The same must be said of all the Ceremonies. QUest. 6. Wherefore then did God give the Law? Answ. I. Because in those days both among the apostate families, and in Israel when they lived in Egypt all ungodliness and unrighteousness did exceedingly abound. Therefore the Law was added because of transgressions, that the offence of sin might abound to our feeling, and that we might be loathsome to ourselves. And it must be noted that the Law was not declared to Israel only, though chief to them, but to the mixed multitude that came with Israel from Egypt. II. That it might be a Schoolmaster to lead unto Christ, to seek the justification that is by the faith of Him. For Christ was the end, drift, and scope of the Law for justification to every one that believeth. Moses polity ever aimed at him, for Moses wrote of Christ. And the Prophets, and History still expound Moses, Psalm 40. Esay 53. Daniel 9.24. And our Lord, and his Apostles, expound Moses, and the Prophets. III. Although our Lord Jesus Christ abrogated the Ceremonial Law, in respect of the actual performance, and took away the (a) curse of the Law to all that believe: They were cursed and plagued if they did not observe the ceremonial as well as the moral: for both were contained in the book of the Law, Deut. 27. ult. Mal. 1.14. yet the moral Law was and is still in force to be the rule of a sober, righteous, and godly life, and so taught in all the New Testament. And with all we are to note that the Ceremonial is inscructive and the moral is to humble, as well as to direct in the ways of peace and holiness. Quest. 7. Produce one text more out of Moses which may further open the mystery of Gods will in Christ. Answ. Deut. 30.11, 12, 13, 14. This commandment which I command thee this day, is not hidden from thee: neither is it far off. It is not in heaven, that thou shouldest say, who shall go up for us to heaven, and bring it to us, that we may hear it, and do it. Neither is it beyond the Sea, that thou shouldst say, who shall go over the Sea for us, and bring it to us, that we may hear it, and do it. But the Word is very nigh unto thee, in thy mouth, and in thy heart, that thou mayest do it. Quest. 8. What hence, in brief, do you observe? Answ. 1. The holy Apostle called this text the word of faith, and doth expound it of Christ concerning his incarnation and resurrection, Rom. 10.6, 7, 8, 9, 10, 11. 2. Moses bringeth his whole Law to this sum, and so the prophets, that Christ the son of God was to come down from heaven, and to be man, and to suffer many and great afflictions from the Serpent and his seed, and being the first from the dead, is to give life and light unto the world. The wicked ever despised this life and light in Christ, accounting this wisdom foolishness, 1 Cor. 1.23. & 2.8. 3. This Scripture, with some verses preceding, and subsequent, sets forth to the spiritual man, the excellency, the glory, the brightness, the facility, the preciousness, the steadfastness, and the efficacy of the Law of God, being a revelation from heaven, and a most blessed instrument of God, to preserve his people if they cleave unto it, to live in his covenant, to comfort in affliction, to restore the Church decayed, cumbered, and overwhelmed with errors, and for conservation of outward and inward consolation, etc. But apostasy from it, brings all Curses and utter ruin. And therefore it is a most rich favour to Jesurun; to all the Israel of God, that they are glorified with such an inheritance of lively oracles? 4. When Moses had wrote of the Creation, of the apostasy of our first parents, of the curse of all things visible, of the incarnation and redemption in the Promises. Tabernacles, and Sacrifices; Of Melchizedeks and Levies Priesthood, etc. Then saith he, this doctrine is not an hid doctrine. Moses face did not so shine with brightness, as the Law did shine in the hearts of the faithful, that looked to Christ, (the holy seed of the woman) the end and scope of the Law. It was hid to none, but the blinded by Satan. We should labour to reduce history and prophecy with the New Testament to Moses. QUest. 9 Who were followers of the doctrine of Justificacation by faith, taught by tradition in (a) the doctrine of the seal of circumcision was believed of the faithful 406, years, to Israel's coming from Egypt. the Promises for two thousand five hundred and thirteen years, and now written by Moses. Answ. All the Patriarches, as is said, the people of Israel that came out of Egypt, and that were in the wilderness, and the faithful, both Rulers and people, in the Books of Josuah, Judges, Ruth, Samuel, etc. and especially our Lords Fathers from Abraham to David (the first fourteen) are to be remembered, Mat. 1.17. QUest. 10. Who were the seed of the Serpent; hating, bruising, cursing, and persecuting the Religion and People of Christ, his Israel? Answ. The Egyptians, Amalek, Moab, Ammon, Midian and the Canaanites, etc. QUest. 11. Did the Church constantly reverence the religion of the Tabernacle? Answ. The eternal WORD came unto his own in providences and ordinances, but his own received him not; for six hundred thousand in the Wilderness at once, through an evil heart of unbelief, murmured, tempted, and denied Christ, and despised the Land of Promise, and would have gone into Egypt again: and many followed the religion of Peor. And after in Canaan, many 〈◊〉 time they revolted and rebelled against Him, called also the Angel of God's presence, despising his statutes, abhorring his judgements, and so broke his covenant, and vexed his holy Spirit. Jesurun chose new gods, were defiled with their own works, following divers Religions, Idolatrous and foolish opinons, both of their forefathers, as of the Canaanites, and of the peoples about Canaan. QUest. 12. How did Christ manifest his goodness while his people obeyed him according to his Written word, as now and after, he ever called them to it? Answ. Through the obedience of faith, they obtained good report with God: and God was not ashamed of them to be called their God and vouched them before all to be his peculiar people. This he shown by his joyful presence dwelling among them in his Tabernacle, whence joy, peace, victory, plenty, and all outward comforts attended them in the promised earthly Rest, and to all that, by faith in the promises, saw the days of Christ, joy and hope of entrance into the eternal Rest, Tabernacle, and inheritance. QUest. 13. How did Christ, in this age, bruise the head, power, and dominion, and enmity of the Seed of the Serpent? Answ. 1. He cast upon (a) It is through all the old Testament, Mitzrajim where it is translated Egypt, Esay 43.3. Mitzrajim, that is the Egyptians the fierceness (b) But if thou shalt indeed obey his voice, and do all that I speak, than I will be an enemy to thine enemies, and an adversary to thine Adversaries, Exodus 23. of his anger. Amalek discomfited, and utter ruin denounced: Midian plagued, the Canaanites destroyed, and other enemies subdued. II. Now a (c) The first separation and rejection of the families was by the confusion of tongues, 2. by Circumcision. 3. By the Laws given by Moses. third time Christ shown his anger and enmity against the families by a partition wall of ceremonies, and an hand-writing of ordinances that they were further separated, and made aliens from the Commonweal of Israel, and strangers from the covenants of promise, having no hope, and were without God in the world. Thus in every age observe how Christ called and kept his elect from the communion of Devils, and the wicked world: yet God shown much mercy to the heathens through the limitation of Circumcision, Exodus 12. QUest. 14. What severity was on the Church for their revoltings from the fiery Law, and lively oracles which Moses received from the Angel, Jehovah, the God of Abraham, the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob? Answ. Him the Angel of God's presence, who had the name of God in him, was turned to be their enemy, and would not pardon their transgressions, but swore they should not enter into his earthly Rest: so that heavy chastisements befell Israel in the wilderness, and in the Land of Canaan, plagued by enemies on every side, until the Transmigration (a) of the Land, (that is, the removing of the Ark (b) from Syloh) yea until the days of David. Bear diligently still in mind, with all fear and trembling, how Christ afflicted the Church for their communion with devils, and idolators, Psal. 78. all of it. Annotations upon the Questions and Answers of the fifth CHAPTER. QUest. 2. Forth of Egypt] The deliverance of Israel from Egypt is much celebrated in the old Testament. And amongst other things of that bondage, this is twice noted, from a people of a strange Language, Psalm 81 & 114 Israel could not be ignorant of the language of Egypt, but I think their idolatrous Priests, had a mumming language in their devotions; like Rome-Egypt that taught our forefathers in their devotions in a language they understood not: for which we have as great cause to sing praise to God, as well as Israel of old, that we are saved from that cruel bondage. Quest. 4. and Answ. The breastplate with V●im and Thummim] Consider from this time, that as the twelve Tribes followed the faith in the promises to their godly ancestors, so the V●im and Thummim that was placed among the twelve precious Jewels upon the Breastplate of the High Sacrificer, never uttered any other faith. And the same Jewels are the foundation of the Christians Jerusalem from heaven, So our high Sacrificer more excellent than Aaron, who is Vrim and Thummim, light, life and all perfections, all in all: all fullness dwelled in him: and he came from the bosom of the Father, and walketh in the midst of the VII. Golden Candlesticks, and never uttered any other faith but what he taught in Moses. The Apostle alludeth unto this when he exhorteth to put on the breastplate of Faith and Love, Faith in Christ is our light and life, and love is the perfecting and fulsilling of the Law: and all our thoughts, speech and action should ever intent these two. In Christ we are made sacrifices, and therefore with a constant spirit carry this Breast plate before God and man. Ibid. The Ark of the covenant, the blood of peace-offerings, etc.] All these things were shadows of good things to come, and enjoined till the time of reformation, when the new and living way was manifested. The land of Canaan was also a shadow of the true rest in the Kingdom of heaven: so David taught carnal Israel, Psalm 95. which the Apostle handleth to the revolting Hebrews, And Moses verily was faithful in all his house as a servant, for a Testimony of those things which were to be done and spoken after, Heb. 3. God did draw them by these ordinances, to give them to understand who should be their justification, cleansing, sin-offering, etc. by many outward things and promise, to the spiritual: but when they made their belly their God, and minded earthly things, and thought to be justified by the outward action: Then God shown them to be poor elements, as at Syloh and salomon's Temple burnt by Babel, etc. yea, once more it is said, God would shake them, & Dan. 9.24, 25, 26, 27. shows by whom and how. Solomon told them of this also. The labour of the foolish doth weary him, for he knoweth not how to to go into the City, Eccles. 10.15. They knew not Christ the way, the truth, and the life for the heavenly City and Country: not like children of faith of their faithful father Abraham. The holy Prophets and Priests taught the meaning of the sacrifices in the great congregation, Psalm 40.6, 7. They preached God's justification of a sinner, and kindness in Christ that would come to do Gods will, They declared God's faithfulness and truth that he would perform his promise concerning the sending of Jesus Christ, his death, resurrection, and ascension, Psalm 22 & 16. & 68.18. conferred with Ephes. 4.8, 9, 10, 11. And the holy Tribes instantly serving God day and night in this hope went thrice a year to the Tabernacle and Temple (which were the great Congregations) to hear these things taught, and to profess the same in their holy convocations. Besides the Levites in their forty eight Towns every Sabbath, and all other Prophets and Teachers in all their Synagogues (which were very many) had Sabbatical convocations, and they preached upon Moses. And there were divers Universities, or Schools of Prophets at Ki●jabje●arim, at Bethel, at Jericho, etc. to educate young men for knowledge to teach this most noble and glorious doctrine of faith in the Son of God that should come into the world to make our flesh his Tabernacle. Ibid All which do teach of Christ] The holy Prophets Psal. 50. Esay 53. & 55 1, 2. etc. giving the people true Expositions of the Law, show that Christ is the end of all: all privileges of the Jews, and Gods own ordinances they not discerning or seeking Christ by faith in them were nothing: nothing bread but Christ: and in outward performances, and bodily exercise to be most bountiful, most exact, accurate and unrebukable is a bestowing cost and pains, and not for bread, for all is but dung and dogs meat without Christ. See how the Apostle urged this to the Jews from Esay 55.1, 2, 3. Acts 1●. 38, 39 read Mich 6.6. The Law of Mo●es polity was not given that we should be justified ex opere operato, by bodily exercise, it was given for signification, humiliation and direction, that Christ might be our life, without him it is a kill letter: for so it is weak, and ●e are weak But carnal Israel mistook the Law, and so believed, John 6. Their bodily exercise in eating Manna, did not bring them into Canaan; for they died in the desert. And our Lord most heavenly draws all Moses to himself, that he was the true Manna, and was sent of the Father to be the true bread. And there opens all the sacrifices, that his flesh and blood was the true sacrifice of which (though now ascended) by faith we must feed or die, and never come to the happy resurrection of the heavenly R●st. And this was, and is the heavenly Fathers will in the old and new Testament. The spirituality of ordinances was cumbersome to them as to Kain, Gen. 4. wherefore Christ in his wrath made them a snare to them, and a stumbling block: And this was the reason they hated Christ and his Apostles to the death, Because Christ, doctrine drove man out of himself, and so all their labour to be lost for salvation, seeking to enter in at the straight Gate, and yet were not able Eccles. 10.15. yea it is natural (alas) to us all to rest in outward performances (as Kain) and not to care for Christ, the second Adam, and the justification, that is by the faith of Him. The Ceremonial Law was weak to justify Rom. 8.3. for it was impossible that the blood of Oxen, Goats, washings, etc. could cleanse the conscience from the guilt and filth. The moral could not justify because we were weak, nothing in us was able to do any thing to satisfy the justice of God; and because the carnal heart of many, being covered with a veil could not discern Christ (the end and intent of the Law) yet they knew that they must labour one way or other to have peace with God, and their own conscience, they would thousands of Rams; and thousands of Rivers of oil, and would be exact in outward do for justification. And they durst not touch about the spiritualness of the Law, for it is the very pangs of death to understand the Law rightly, R●m. 7. Though sometime it could not be but the conscience was affrighted, than they did busy themselves in outward acts of fasting, praying, almsdeeds, washings, etc. to quire their heart. And this was their Divinity, and they were cursed by their censors that taught the Law otherwise. The Pharisees are the true Fathers of the Popish company: and we may very well yield the Papist antiquity (because they talk much of antiquity) even Esay 1. & 58. yea higher Psalms 50. yea Gen. 4. in Kain, who was the first that practised this doctrine. The Pharisees thought Christ came to destroy the Law, when he taught his holy doctrine; he answered he came not to destroy, but to fulfil it by orthodox expositions. But they saw how it will go with them if Christ's doctrine were received, and they would rather kill him, so it is now: where the word of Christ is truly taught, it makes the carnal heart mad, and to persecute. I did desire to remember these things often, because of the cursed corruption of our nature, who are so ready (yea every mother's child of us) to contend ourselves without Christ, and to rest in bodily exercise. The Churche● were warned of this evil springing in the Apostles times, 1 Tim. 4●8. And we have cause to fear that not only Papists, but thousands of Protestants are leavened with this leaven of the Pharisees which is but hypocrisy. Quest. 5. ●u● mine not the Moral] I use the term Moral as godly Divines do because it is the holy Law of Christ that shall last for ever, when the ceremonial was abolished. And people must be taught, that it is that which is called the form of sound doctrine, of faith and love which is in Christ Jesus: and we are to understand, that the Son of God, the Angel of God's presence, who hath the name of God in him, who is very often called jenovah: he gave the Law as Mediator, between God and man to train up his people in faith and love. And all the Law, and the Prophets, are but expositions of the ten words, therefore faith in Christ is taught in the Law: as 1 Joh. 3.23. This is his commandment, that we should believe in the name of his Son jesus Christ, and love one another as he gave commandment: Again it is said, when we carry ourselves proudly, and do not walk charitably one towards another we sin against Christ, Rom. 14.1 Cor. 8. All relations in their obedience serve Christ, Ephes. 5.14, 15. & 6.5, 6. Col. 3.24. 1 Tim 6 3. Ibid. seek justification by doing] This was the false doctrine of the concision, and hath cast them off to this day: see how sweetly the Lord Jesus calls them from this error, john 6.27, 28. etc. This is an idolatrous error of all our hearts: to be spiritual, to come to God by faith in Christ, and in our whole conversation so to be spiritual: to come to God by faith in Christ, and in our whole conversation so to walk as seeing him that is invisible, as H●bel, as M●ses and all faithful: Oh how hard! how impossible! such a power of darkness and weakness is upon us. O Lord God, the way of man is not in himself, till thou turn us from darkness to light, from the power of Satan to thyself. The glorious wisdom of Moses Law, which standeth for the Marrow still but not for the outward Sabbath, circumcision, Tabernacle, and other rites of Levi. That Christ from the Law plagued the concision, and made the Law held as their Table for the in ●ood 〈◊〉 secure them, to be their snare unto death. They would not enter into the rest of Christ; where Baptism and the Lords Supper are no burden, (Mr. Bro. on Lam. 1.14.) where Christ is not sought and found in his own ordinances, all (not the moral, but also the ceremonial) savours death, 2 Cor. 3.7. to 16. what are we then to think of men's precepts, voluntary religion, and selfwilled humbleness. Take notice what our Lord taught, Mat. 15.3. John 6.27, etc. and his Apostle, Rom. 10.3. Phil. 3.3. etc. Colos. 2.23. Quest. 6. Num. II. Moses polity ever aimed at Him] The Law Moral and Ceremonial was given by Moses, but grace and truth came by Jesus Christ: grace is two fold, the one of Justification from the guilt and curse of the Law, the other of sanctification, the righteousness of the Law being fulfilled in them that are in Christ jesus. who inables them by his spirit most willingly to walk therein: delighting in the Law of God concerning the inner man. And Christ was the truth and substance of the Ceremonial Law, as all the Epistle to the Hebrews showeth: all was sponsorious of a better hope in him, Heb. 7.22. & 8.6. And this was that the saints so fervently prayed for teaching and understanding the wondrous things of the Law, how all was sponsorious of comfort in Christ, Psalm 119. And so of this did Ethan sing, Psalm 89.1, 2, etc. Ibid. Quest. 6. N. III. The Ceremonial Law] That is, God's ceremonial Law: no man hath power to institute or sanctify as of himself any teaching sign or ceremony of person or thing, time or place to worship God thereby, or to take away that which the: Lord hath ordained, Moses durst not add or diminish any thing: no not any other colour as green, which is as pleasant as blue, purple and scarlet, all colours of blood and sus●●ing. The pattern was his Direction▪ And therefore was Moses called faithful in God's house, the Church of God, the Pillar and ground of truth. Will worship is a corruption of all our hearts, it likes us better than God's commandments, Amos 4. Mat. 15. Luke 16.15. And we have great confidence in it that it pleaseth God. But it brings shame at last to any State: and all the Priests of Bethel cannot quench the fire that it will kindle, Amos 5. Hos. 10.14, 15. And let all will-worshippers mind that however they have a show of wisdom in their will worship, yet it makes the people forget their Maker, Hos. 8.11, 12, 13, 14. 1 Kin. 12.33. Amos 5.21. & 8.10. And this too evident of later years in the ungodly dealing of the Prelates in their hindrance of sound teaching of the word in most parochs of England. Ibid, N. III. and the moral is still to humble] Doubtless the Moral Law must be taught; it is a part of Christ's mediatorian kingdom, God the Father made Him Lord and Christ to all the Israel of God, and obedience is better than sacrifice, It is a point of faith to believe that Christ gave the Law, Exod. 23.20, 21, 22. They of old were commanded to hear him, and so we under the New Testament, must hear the Beloved Son, and reverence the Heir, Mat. 17.5. Matth. 21.98. It is said, Felix called forth Paul to hear him of the faith in Christ; and as he was teaching of righteousness, temperance, and of the judgement to come, Felix trembled, Acts 24.25. Therefore the Law ought to be taught, it belongs to the faith of Christ. And godly teachers are to lift up their voice like a Trumpet to make men's hearts shake and tremble for rebellion against the Mediator: and therefore the godly teachers 40.50. and 60. years ago taught the way of the Lord more perfectly than many now do. vid. infra. the note on Levit. 26.17. chap. 8. Quest. 7. & Answ. Upon the text of Deut. 30.] Moses speaks this of the Law, the Apostle of Christ taught in the Law, Rom. 10. So Esaias faith, In his Law shall the nations hope, Esay 42.4. Matthew saith, In his Name, Mat. 12.21. The Apostle calleth this text, the word of faith, and the just do live by faith: Moses showeth the Law of Jehovab, that is Christ is a law of Love, and the Apostle calleth it, A law of Faith: So than it is a form of Wholesome words of Faith and Love, which is in Christ Jesus. And how precious, sweet, dear, rich, pure, is the Law of Christ, being a Law of Life in him, Deut. 32.47. Therefore Stephen saith, that Moses received from the Angel of the Covenant, lively Oracles, Acts 7.38. And so the Apostles received from him words purer than snow, whitter than milk, sweeter than honey, or the honey comb, words of spirit and life to preach unto the dead apostate families, John 6.63. So the Sacrifices, washings, tabernacle, the land of promise, etc. profited nothing, were a kill letter, having the veil on the heart. The words and doctrine that Christ spoke to Moses, they were spirit, and they were life. And so David knew, (and all of faith) when he cried to Christ to be his sprinkling, and his hyssop, Psalm 51. And so Esaias and Stephen taught them: and the Apostle, Rom. 10.6. Exod. 20.2. And all expositions of the ten words were a kill letter not looking to that which is within the Veil, even the grace and truth of our Lord Jesus Christ, Acts 15.11. The Prophets and Apostles unveil Moses face most brightly, they have made it as open, even as Moses made it when he took off the veil when he went to speak with Christ, Read. Quest. 8. & Ans. N. II. To be man and to suffer] Mark the cause of the Apostle, I am accused for the hope of the promise made of God unto our Fathers, Psalm 16.10. & 22.29. & 40.6, 7, 8. Acts 26. this was a constant doctrine from the beginning, and to be declared from age to age to the end of the world, that the Son of God should come down from heaven to be a second Adam, and to give himself a sin-offering to death and be raised from the dead, 2 Tim. 2.8. and so in this doctrine Christ is our bread and drink, Joh. 6.27, 28, 29, etc. The pattern was not yet to come down from heaven to take our nature to be his Tabernacle, and his flesh and blood by sacrifice to be our bread and drink, john 1.14. & 6.54. And till the Son of God came to be and do thus, All that Christ revealed to Moses was sponsorius, and an introduction of a better hope, that is, Christ hoped for, by all faithful of the old Testament, by whom they and we come unto God, Hebr. 11.1, 2, 3, 4. john 14.6. Heb. 8 Ephes. 1.10, 11, Esay 15 1, 2, 3. Acts 13. Ibid. N. II. Accounting this wisdom foolishness.] And the light shineth in the darkness, and the darkness comprehended it not, Joh. 1. 〈◊〉. It was ever a stumbling block and foolishness to the wise and prudent of this world, to the natural man: john 6.52.60.1.1 Cor. 1. & 2. And so is was to many while Moses was yet alive, Deut. 31.11, 27, 28, 29. such waited but for an opporeunity of Moses death, and joshuahs', and the godly Elders, than they did show themselves: so blessed Paul spoke of Wolves and apostasy, Acts 20. It is hard for us to deny all of the first Adam, and wholly submit to be taught and guided in the doctrine of the second Adam, the Lord from heaven. Quest. 8. & Answ. N. IU. Of Melebisedecks and Levies sacrifice hood] See the Apostles disputation concerning Melchesedeck (Heb. 5. & 6 & 7.) who was still alive, after a sort, in description. As the holy Prophet David taught the people of his days, and what use they should make of the Land of Promise, Psalm 95. and of the use and end of the sacrifices and washings, etc. Psalm 40. & 51. So he taught them that Levies Priesthood should have an end; for that our glorious Lord jesus Christ is made a sacrificer for ever ofter the order of Malchesedek, and not after Aaron's order of the Levitical Priesthood; where neither the persons or things that Levi did, could justify the doers, or comers thereunto. Now the Lord Jesus Christ he was promised and prophesied of in all the old holy volume of the book of God, that he was made a Mediator, and a Surety (a Sponsor) of such an Administration that should perfectly save and justify them that came unto God by him. He was of God the Father (none else could) made a Sponsor, a surety. All the sacrifices that he commanded our Fathers they did them, till the fullness of times did come, and then he did send his beloved Son and Servant in whom his soul delights, he took unto him true humanity and was a Sponsor, a Surety of a better Testament, (i.e.) The Mediator of the New Testament, for their full con●olation: to comfort them concerning their works, and concerning the sorrows of their hands, and concerning the earth which God hath cursed. He shall do that which all Levites tribe could not ex opere operato. Levies Priesthood could not cleanse the conscience from the guilt of our sinful works, not procure a blessing on our Labours, nor make a new world: his Priesthood could not cleanse the conscience from dead works, to serve the living God, etc. And for this cause Christ was a Sponsor of a better covenant. And Christ himself faith, he will become this Sponsor and Mediator to answer the will of the Father. Lo, I come to do thy will, O God, thy Law and appointment (for the redemption of thy people that thou hast given me) is in my heart to give myself a Sacrifice of a sweet smelling favour of rest God was in Christ reconciling the world unto himself, not counting their trespasses unto them. For be made him to be a Sin-offering for us who knew no sin, that we might be made the righteousness of God in him, 2 Cor. 5. Much more might be said, but let the people of God study the Scriptures their inheritance. God hath a time and a day wherein he will burn up the hay, stubble, and rotten wood of impertinent applications and interpretations. Ibid. N. I V Is not an bid doctrine.] It is not an hidden thing nor a wonder for thee O Israel: for this doctrine that the Son of God should come down from heaven to be man hath been taught to thy Fathers from the beginning, and that he should be the great High Priest and Sacrifice, and that he should raise himself from death to give hope to all faithful of their resurrection. Israel should not make doubt of this doctrine. Yet it is a Wonder as Ethan sings of it, Psalm 89. great is the mystery of Godliness. But this hath been ever taught in the Church, this doctrine is the faith of Gods elect, and the Church's possession, joh. 1. Levi the Tribe appointed to reach divinity should never have been graven in the bright and pleasant Smaragd, if the stories of this Art had been dark. ●et had been a fit stone for darkness. The mind of man may have abundant satisfaction, and strong confidence concerning the doctrine of the way of life, by holy and humble diligent study of the Scriptures: And they that will not believe Moses and the Prophets will not believe though one should rise from the dead. Quest. 9 and Answ. Taught by tradition] Note, the doctrine of faith one, and the same whether by Tradition or Writing. For those 2513. years, the faith of the Gospel was propagated by tradition by great prophets of long life, and great authority and sacrifices as seals of the Covenant added for confirmation of doctrine. Quest. 10 and Answ. Midian] Although Abraham taught his household the faith of Christ, as is seen in the book of joh, yet many of his posterity apostated to that idolatry, religion and opinion, with which he was corrupted, at YOUR, others fell to the false faith, religion and opinion of Peor, Jos. 23. & 24. and did seek to curse the true faith of Gods elect, and the holy people of that profession, Num 23. & 24. Midian was of Abraham by Ket●rah. The world was then full of false opinions and heretical Doctrines as now: they could plead for Nachors Teraphim, for Peor, for Chemosh and Mil●ham, etc. but Israel must hearken to the Law and Testimony that Christ gave them: so Moses and josuah most pathetically, a little before their deaths, exhorted them, to regard the holy Law, and not to follow the traditions of their fathers, or of the Nations, Ios. 24. Deut. Quest. 11. and Answ. And would have gone into Egypt again] Like them are our Popish fools, that would go into Rome Egypt again, for their Fish, Flesh pots, Leeks, Garlick, Onions, Cucumbers, Melons, their doctrines of bodily exercise, of Images, Pilgrimages, the dotage of Purgatory etc. goodly Cates sure, to be compared to the heavenly Manna of God's word, and Gods dwelling in his tabernacle among us. We do not consider the glorious presence in Christ in his Ordinances and protection, &c since he brought us from among them. By the Gospel, the way of Christ, the face of God shineth upon us. The Gospel is the object of promise, joy and gladness to every honest hearted Christian. Let our apostate hearts remember Lot's wife in looking back to Rome-Sodome. Christ complained Israel would none of me: Oh that we could think of these things: What one nation on the earth hath been like us for mercies, and how ill have we requited the Lord? as Israel did so do we, Psal. 81. Deut. 32. Ibid. Of their forefathers.] The idolatry of Terah and Abraham continued above 500 years, to the death of josuah, yea long after, josuah 24. 2.14. Observe how fast idolatry and superstition, and will worship sticks in the heart of posterity. Although they had the fiery Law expounded by Moses, and miracles to confirm them of the truth of that Religion, that holy faith of the Son of God Moses, taught, and possessed Canaan, in the obedience of that holy faith, and many chastisements for Apostasy to Baal Peor, &c yet many of their hearts were false, So it is with us at this day in our nation; although God hath spoken to us by his Son, & have the blessed Scriptures, which have in them a blessed comforting, flaming light, and brightness, and 70. years and more under God's gracious husbandry, yet how rebellious! Oh mourn for the Corruption of our natures, and see how the tradition of a false religion from forefathers prevailed and prevaileth with many afore the written word. Our Teachers must earnestly press the reading of all the holy Scriptures: but surely they do but coldly and seldom do it. The Serpent and his seed are great enemies to the holy Scriptures, and a surer note of a wicked man need not be sought after, than the slighting and the scorning of the Scriptures. Ibid Asdruball of the Canaanites] And an Angel of the Lord came up from Gilgal to Bochim, and said, I have made you to go up out of Egypt, and have brought you unto the Land which I swore unto your fathers, and I said, I will never break my covenant with you: And you shall make no league with the inhabitants of the Land: you shall throw down their altars, but you have not obeyed my voice. Why have you done thus? Wherefore I also said, I will not drive them out from before you, but they shall be as thorns in your sides, and their Gods, (their religion) shall be a snare unto you. And it came to pass when the Angel of the Lord spoke all these words unto the Children of Israel, that the people lift up their voice and wept. And they called the name of that place Bochim, and they sacrificed there unto Jehovah, Judges 2. observe all that chapter. Quest. 12. and Answ. Joyful presence dwelling among them] It is a joyful thing indeed, and a glorious privilege to have the Tabernacle reared, that Christ may dwell among us, and for us to tread in his Courts. Look what any Father, Husband, or King is to a Kingdom and family, such is Christ to his. After Christ had promised many blessings Levit. 26. as the basis of all he saith, And I will set my Tabernacle among you and my soul shall not abhor you, and I will walk among you, and will be your God, and ye shall be my people. And look these texts for meditation to see the glory of Christ in his Tabernacle as our Prophet, Priest, and King, Exodus 20.24. & 25.22. & 29.42, 43 & 30.6.36. Psalm 2. 1 Sam. 12.12. Psalm 45. & 47. & 48. & 84. & 95. & 100 & 145. & 146, etc. So when they were to come from Babel this is mentioned as the foundation of all comfort, Ezek. 37.26, 27. also we must mind what is to be done of us: ye shall reverence my sanctuary, and keep my sabbaths, and never appear before Christ empty, Exod. 23.15. Levit. 26.2. Now observe the same glorious mercies are related and applied to us under the New Testament, 2 Cor. 6.16. Apoc. 21.3. and their holy practice in their worships, 2 Cor. 7.1.1 Cor. 11. & 14. And their Alms-deeds every Lord's day in their holy meetings, 1 Cor. 16.1, 2. as Deut. 16.16, 17. Now of the uses of application, how many? how great? how full of comfort and terror? First, to instruct, God would not have a Church or family in the world, but because he would have holy worship: Religion is the essence of a Church, family, or person. 2. The world is not continued but for this. 3. Great are the privileges of the Church that Christ is among us by his ministry and ordinances, for our Prophet, Priest, and King. 4. What an heinous wickedness it is to interrupt or pull down holy things 5. They are cursed of God that do so. Secondly to exhort, 1. to study, 2. to procure, 3. to maintain, 4. to be zealous for, 5. to esteem above all, and to be thankful for: 6. to take up with content, 7. to relish, this glory, Psalm 42. & 63. & 122. & 132.8. To lay to heart to mourn for the absence and desolation of holy things, Dan. 9 & 10.2, 3 Lament 1. & 2. & 3. Thirdly, To reprove the wretchedness and deadness concerning these things, Acts 18.17. etc. Also we must ever observe, that Moses Tabernacle was according to the Pattern of that which was in heaven. They that enjoyed the peace of God in the earthy tabernacle, had the same still in the heavenly, as Psalm 15.1, 2. And it is said our Lord, with his own blood went through the veil of his flesh, into the most holy place, the very heavens, as the high Sacrificer went with blood into the holy place made with hands. This touched often, and needful to be observed in all the Ceremonies of Moses, else we shall have a veil over our hearts, as Jews and Papists, who see not Christ the end of all these things that were to be abolished. Ibid. 12. Quest. and Answ.— Victories] By faith they waxed valiant in Battle, and turned to flight the Armies of the Aliens. Their faith saw the dries of Christ, that he would overcome him that had the power of death, the Devil. the Prince of darkness, the old Serpent. Therefore by faith they overcame the Serpent's seed. All true soldiers should be doctors in divinity, such will conquer with small loss, as Israel under Josuah, and the Elders surviving Josuah, who delighted in the study of Moses, Jos. 1. & 23.6. And David's Captains by knowledge of Moses were mighty in Battle, Heb. 11.34. Quest. 13. and Answ. N. I. Analek discomfited] Amalek of Esau despised the faith as Esau his Father, and became a fierce persecutor of the faith of Christ, and his people, which was the break-neek of that State. God's curse, and the Church's War were never reversed nor appeased to the days of Haman. A warning to persecuting States, especially to mystical Edom. The form of the patent and promise that God gave to Abraham. is for comfort to all the Israel of God for ever; I will bless them that bless thee, and curse them that curse thee, as see in Numb. 24. and Balaam foretells the like destruction to Kittim as to Amalek: The same enmity, the same war, and the same curse shall follow the Serpent's seed in perdition to the end. N. II. a partition wall] This was the vail and covering on all nations which Christ would abolish, Esay 25. Dan. 9.24. etc. Ephes. 2.15. God hated the apostate families like Devils, that he gave by Moses an hedge of Laws to keep Israel from amity and communion with them And this was one special Law, that certain Beasts, fowls and fish prohibited (to distinguish them in diet from heathen) are called unclean. So be all without the Gospel in their high learning, Ro. 1.21, 22. as Socrates, Plato, Tully, Varro, Plutarch, and the civilest. These things were continual occasions of enmity between an Israelite and an Heathen, Ephes. 2.15. Hest. 3.8. Ibid. N. II. Separated and made Aliens] But being blessed in Christ, (when the vessel was let down from heaven, Acts 10.) they and their children were equally stated in all those glorious privileges of Israel, Eph. 2.11, 12, 13, 14. Let Anti-poedobaptists consider it: and hence forward call not your children common or unclean: and do not reason against the comforts of yourselves and children, where the merciful Lord God gives you no warrant so to do; nay, is it not a daring speech against God and his covenant, to say the infants of believing Gentiles are common and unclean, whereas Christ saith they are clean and holy, 1 Cor. 7. Ibid. N. II. without God in the world] Compare just divine severity. When the X. tribes had revolted from David's house, and the religion of the Temple. They were almost in as bad a case for salvation as the heathens. Observe Ephes. 2.12 etc. It shall be further noted hereafter, that it may be diligently marked. Quest. 14. and Answ. From the Angel Jehovah] Be careful to observe how Christ is called Angel, and jehovah, Exod. 3. and in many other places. Also in Exod 23. mark this speech; Behold, I send an Angel before thee to keep thee in the way, and to bring th●e into the place which I have prepared. Beware of him, and obey his voice, provoke him not, for he will not pardon your transgressions, for my Name is in him. He is the express Image of the father's person, Hebrews 1.2, 3. confer Matthew 17. 5. john 12.47, 48, 49, 50. All the Churches of the New Testament should hear him what he by his Spirit saith to the Churches. And the seven golden Candlesticks felt his hand as heavy, as the Golden Candlestick of Israel: both provoked him, and both felt: he was a consuming fire. Ibid. Plagued by enemies on every side] Among many particular evils that Israel was plagued with, note this, that false religion brought penury, and was the decay of liberty of trades and commutation of civil commerce, etc. Jud. 5.6, 7, 8.1 Sam. 13.19. corruption in religion and trouble of State ever go together: Then was War in the Gate, Jud. 5. The State of the Common weal, commonly followeth the State of the Church. Princes in all their Governments should so manage their affairs in righteousness, temperance and godliness to be a Commentary on Psalm 2.10, 11, 12. and let them remember David's last words, 2 Sam. 23.3, 4, 5, 6, 7. Mr. Fox in Acts and Monuments towards the later end of Henry the seventh hath a worthy speech concerning this. CHAP. VI With Questions, Answers, and Annotations on them, How Redemption was taught unto David, and others. QVest. 1. Declare further how God opened the mystery of his will for man's Redemption in after times. Answ. Christ was promised to David the sweet Psalmist of Israel, who in holy Psalms taught his people the histories past, and the prophecies to come, which draw unto Christ and his Rest for man's Redemption, as if the matters were present. And in those days and after: the brightness of Christ in holy prophecies doth so plentifully shine, that they cannot here be conveniently abridged. QUest. 2. and Answ. The Psalms and Prophets are indeed a most sure word of prophecy, and a glorious light enlightening the eyes to see the Person and Office of Christ the Morning Star, according to the promises to Hevah and Abraham: Therefore now only express a few texts how the Saints of the old Testament, professed experimentally the doctrine of the apostasy of our first parents, and of the promises? Answ. Psalm 51. ver. 5. Behold, Joh. 15.14. & 2.5.4, 5, 6. I was born in iniquity, and in sin did my Mother conceive me. Ver. 7. Purge me with Hyssop, and I shall be clean, wash me and I shall be whiter than snow. Ver. 10. Create in me a clean heart, O God, and renew a right spirit within me. Ver. 11. (a) Confer this verse concerning David with cain's murder and excommunieation from God's presence and terror of conscience, Gen. 4. Cast me not away from thy presence, and take not thy holy Spirit from me. Ver. 12. restore to me the joy of thy salvation, and uphold me with thy free Spirit, etc. Psalm 130.3. If thou, O Jah, shouldst mark iniquities, O Lord who shall stand, Ver. 4. But forgiveness is with thee, that thou mayest be feared. Psal. 143.1. Hear my prayer, O Eternal, give ear to my supplication: in thy faithfulness answer me, and in thy righteousness. V 2. And enter not into judgement with thy servant for in thy sight shall no man living be justified. Psal. 32.1. Blessed is the man whose transgression is forgiven, whose sin is covered. V 2. Blessed is the man unto whom Jehovah counteth not iniquity, and in whose spirit there is no guile. V 3. When I kept silence my bones waxed old through my roaring all the day long. V 4. For day and night thy hand is heavy upon me, my moisture is turned into the drought of summer▪ V 5. I acknowledged my sin unto thee, and mine iniquity have I not hid. I said I will confess my transgression unto the Lord, and thou forgavest the punishment of my sin. Gen. 15.16. And he believed in Jehovah, and he counted it to him for righteousness. Hab. 2.4. Behold his soul which is lifted up, is not upright in him▪ But the just shall live by his faith. Psal. 22.4. Our fathers trusted in thee, they trusted, and thou didst deliver them. V 5. They cried unto thee, and were delivered, they trusted in thee, and were not confounded. Esay 26.3. Thou wilt keep him in continual peace, whose mind is stayed on thee: because he trusteth in thee. V 4. Trust ye in Jehovah for ever; for in jah Jehovah is the Rock of all ages. Jerem. 17.7. Blessed is the man that trusteth in Jehovah, and whose hope Jehovah is. V 8. For he shall be as a tree planted by the waters, and that spreadeth out her roots by the river, and shall not see when heat cometh, but her leaf shall be green, and shall not be careful in the year of drought, neither shall cease from yielding fruit. Hab. 3.17. Although the fig tree shall not blossom neither fruit be in the vine, the labour of the Olive shall fail, and the fields shall yield no meat, the flock shall be cut off from the fold, and no herds in the stalls. V 18. Yet will I rejoice in Jehovah, I will joy in the God of my salvation. V 19 The Lord jehovah is my strength, and he will make my feet like hind's feet, and he will make me to walk upon mine high places. Psalm 66.18. If I regard wickedness in my heart, the Eternal will not hear my prayer. Psalm 103.1. Bless the Eternal O my soul, and all that is within me, bless his holy name, V 2. Bless the Eternal, O my soul, and forget not all his benefits. V 3. Who forgiveth all thine iniquities, who healeth all thy diseases. V 4. Who redeemeth thy life from destruction, who crowneth thee with loving kindness, and tender mercies, etc. QUest. 3. What do you, in general, observe out of these portions of Scripture? Answ. These Scriptures are a confession of faith, proceeding from the holy Spirits illumination, and experience in the inner man, agreeing with the doctrine of the promises, wherein the faithful soul applieth the doctrine of the corruption of nature, and of justification, and the fruits thereof unto special uses of information, confession, prayer, and praise, containing two parts what we are without Christ, and what we are by Christ, for he is the Mercy-seat. Quest. 4. What more specially may, and is to be minded? Answ. I. It is necessary that each one, Job 11.12. & 14.4 & 15.14.16. Gen. 6.5. & 8.21. Gen. 1.27. compared with 5.3. Psal. 51.5. & 58.3. Esa. 48.8. and circumcision enjoined in infancy showeth the corruption of nature. though in a visible Church-estate, know and be persuaded of the truth of the doctrine of the uncleanness and filthiness of the corruption of nature, taken from parents derived from the first Adam, and that all actual sin proceedeth from this birth-sin as from a fountain. 2. That the Son of God became a Second Adam to be to all that receive him, and believe in him, a fountain for sin and for uncleanness, and to renew and create in us his glorious Image, and to repair the lapses and decays of the same. The graces of which are from his fullness, as a well of water springing up unto eternal life. 3. The regenerate upon conscience of guiltiness can never be in quiet till with godly sorrow he do freely and ingenuously confess his sin, which being done by the convincing power of the Spirit of Christ, the soul which groans and sighs from the same Spirit earnestly longeth and prayeth for reconciliation, and restoring to former favour, peace, and joy with God, which is more sweet and satisfactory than all contentments in this World, and on the contrary the withdrawing or withholding from the conscience his gracious Divine aspect nothing more dejecteth. 4. No man can stand before God to be justified, if God should judge him according to the Law. 5. Here is showed the blessedness of the saints touching justification, and how them of the old Testament understood the doctrine, that it consisted in transgression forgiven, in sin covered, iniquity not imputed (speeches importing one, and the same thing) which grace is only procured by Christ's redemption and satisfaction figured in the Gospel-Law. And when the Lord God preaching his free promise of grace and peace in Christ Jesus by the words of reconciliation, doth by his spirit unite a man to Christ, then at that instant he receiveth and believeth in Christ as Mediator of his atonement, justification, and salvation, and by this faith in Christ the saints in all ages had good report, Heb. 11. 6. No man can fear God, that is to say, serve God as his Child, unless he be set free, that is, justified from sin by faith and forgiveness. Faith resting upon Christ, and apprehending (at least a possibility of) forgiveness, worketh love, obedience, reverence and godly fear, Luke 7.47. (a) Ro. 5.1. Esa. 26.3, 4. Heb. 4. 5-56. & 1.0.16. to 23. Psa. 130. & 62. S. Rom. 10.14. Also hope, joy, patience, perfect or continual peace, quiet waiting upon God, and stirreth up to prayer with boldness and confidence. 7. In coming unto God we must do it with an humble heart from an inner feeling of our sins and corruptions, and a true desire to be eased or justified from thern; not only for remission of guilt and punishment, but mortification and sanctification. For no man that stands upon his own righteousness, or alloweth, or is indulgent to himself in any sin, secret or open, of omission or commission, can be an humble and upright supplicant, and petitioner to God, nor can look for audience. 8. The saints go only to Jehovah in prayer, and only to him for forgiveness, and all kinds of mercies, who hath set up his throne of grace only in Christ. Our Lord in his doctrine of prayer, teaching us to pray, confirmeth this, Matthew chap. 6. Here is to be noted the glorious use of faith, not only for justification, but how necessary it is for us in this our pilgrimage, in all estates, conditions, and varieties of life, that it settleth the heart, and banisheth from the inner man heartrending thoughtfulness, that the mind, will, and affections, are conserved from heaven in a flourishing green temperature: the word of promise, and the blessed Spirit that sealeth the promises do so water, nourish and restore the soul, that it is carried above all wants and difficulties, etc. 10. Before we can have any comfort to be delivered from any danger by the seed of the Serpent, or from any other affliction, or for assistance, consolation, or direction in any thing for ourselves or for the Church, we must go to God by faith in Christ for forgiveness of sin. 11. The inner feeling and apprehension of Justification, Psal. 103.1, 2, 3. & Psal 32.1, 2, 3, etc. Mortification, and Sanctification, doth greatly affect an holy soul with thankfulnesle and praise, and denial of selfsufficiency, etc. deeply admiring the blessed Jehovah in those, and in all other fruits, comforts, and effects of his favour, etc. etc. Quest. Go on to show to what other famous Pillar the Spirit of endless wisdom hath fastened the holy and pleasant Chain of times which direct and draw unto Christ? Answ. To the building of salomon's Temple, a figure of Christ the true Temple. Quest. How many years are from the Lamb of the Passover, or since the coming from Egypt, to the Temples foundation? Answ. Four hundred and fourscore years. Quest. What Scriptures are contained in those four hundred and eighty years. Answ. Exodus 12. to the end of that book, Leviticus, Numbers, Deuterenomy, Josua, Judges, Ruth, two Books of Samuel, the first of Kings to the 6. chap. and most of the first of Chronicles: and the two first chapters of the second of Chronicles, and very much of the book of Psalms. Annotations upon the Questions and Answers of the sixth CHAPTER. Qvest. & Answ. David the sweet Psalmist] David sung most sweetly of Christ, and his Kingdom: of his Person (both of his divine and humane nature) and offices, and the benefits thereby. He spoke of Christ's humiliation and exaltation. This Patriarch and prophet in holy Psalms speaking by the Spirit of God; 2 Sam. 23. Mat. 18. calleth Christ his Lord, Psalm 110. the Son in whom they that trust are happy Psalm 2. Also after God had promised him Christ, he called him David beloved, Psalm 130.10. Mat. 3.17. etc. Quest. 2. and Answ. Psalm 51 7. Purgeme with hyssop] The High Sacrificer purged the unclean with hyssop: he was to do the outward action, and could do no more: David did not believe the doctrine of bodily exercise. So John Baptist saith, I baptiz●lyou with water, but the Messiah with the Holy Ghost, So Daniel goeth to God in Christ, who is the true hyssop, and he that sprinkleth the conscience for justification and sanctification, as St. Peter taught the circumeision, 1 Pet. 1.3. and St. Paul in the Epistle to them, Heb. 9 and 10. So David confessed he was a Leper, and unclean spiritually, crying to God to be purged, and cleansed as Lepers, and other unclean were purified, Levit. 14.6. Num. 19.18. By this we see they had knowledge what the Ceremonies meant, and the Law was written in their hearts, and so their minds, and on the Table of their heart, Prov. 3.3. & 7.3. and none but God could so write it, and this was from his covenant in Christ, he being their God; also this shows they had expounded of the Law. The Modern Jews could say (and they had it from their ancient Elders) and an excellent saying it is, What Aaron did on earth, Michael (that is Christ) did in heaven: But yet they should go one point of faith further, That every Sacrificer must be taken from among men, to teach us to believe that the Son of God should take man's nature to end Moses, and to be a sacrificer for ever, Heb. 5.1, 2. etc. But they doubted and said, Who can go up to heaven to bring Christ down to dwell in our Tabernacle and who can go to the deep of the earth to bring Christ fr●m the dead. They believed not JESUS to be Jehovah, and by the Godhead to raise the manhood, and that God was in Christ reconciling the world unto Himself: not counting their trespasses to them, and that he made him to be a sin-offering for us, who knew no sin that we might be made God the Father's righteousness or justification, pardon, forgiveness, freedom, and atonement in Him. Upon Psalm 143.1. Hear my prayer, O Eternal] As it was observed at the beginning that each comfort comes to us by way of free promise and covenant, (unthought of, and undesired on our part) so it is in this duty of prayer, helped us in the duty, and promised in the Mediator to hear us, Psalm 50.15, Gen. 46.1. Ephes. 2.18. we could neither know what to pray, nor had the face to look up to God. But this through the work of the Spirit makes the saints (them of the old Testament, as well as we of the New, as Ephes. 2.18, 19 weeboth) to utter their Groans, and sighs to the God of Covenant: Whatsoever ye shall ask the Father in my Name, he will give it you, John 16. In all thy ways acknowledge him, and he shall direct thy ways, Prov. 3. By faith in Christ Habel drew near, or came to God, in assurance of acceptation, Heb. 10, 22. & 11.4. A promise believed most lively stirreth up to prayer, 2 Sam. 7.27. Dan. 9.1, 2, 3, etc. Ezek. 36.37. Gen. 32.9. The unchangeableness of God's counsels, and the stability of the promises, yea, and the fruits of our Lord Christ's death, do not dispense from the duty of prayer, yea they are wrought for our good by his ordinance, Num. 16.46, 47. Quest. 3. and Answ. The Spirits illumination] The Spirit enlighteneth the eyes of the understanding experimentally to know the mystery of God, who is the Father, and of Christ. It convinceth of sin and uncleanness, abaseth all our righteousness, showeth the fountain for washing of guilt and filth: sealeth reconciliation in the assurance of justification and adoption: frameth the foul a new Creature, to humble filial and sincere obedience and invocation: it recovereth from-salls, and comforts in affliction, and carrieth the heart aloft in praises and thanksgivings, etc. Quest. 4. and Answ. N. 1. From the first Adam] By one man sin entered into the world in whom all men have sinned, Rom. 5. Mark there the sweet comparisons of the first and second Adam: Again, that which is born of the flesh is flesh, and that which is born of the Spirit is Spirit, John 3. Every man is born an ignorant Ass-colt, born an Atheist and Idolator: born of a false worship, an hypocrite, a blasphemer, and a profaner of God's Name and Worship, forgetful and unmindeful, and slighting God's sanctified time of Worship: born with a stubborn spirit against the duties of all religions, born a murderer, an adulterer, a thief, a false accuser, and slanderer, a covetous uncontonted person. In all things the thoughts of man's heart is evil from his youth. Therefore the Spirit testifieth that wear all born dead in sin and children of Wrath by nature. But alas! How dully do we think of these things? Ibid. N. 1. Became a second Adam] David looked to the Tabernacle God would rear, not such a one as was made with hands, but from the similitude of that which was on earth, he looked to the heavenly thing themselves: Faith did evidence to him things not seen. David saith to God in Christ, reconciling the world to himself, wash me. So the Apostles show this washing and cleansing, as from him, that is, from the beginning, but manifested to be a second Adam to be seen, felt, and handled, even for this great mercy, 1 John 1.7. Apoc. 1.5. Tit. 3.5. 1 Pet. 1.2. Ibid. N. 2. repair the lapses and decays] The just man falleth scaven times a day, but he riseth again, God will uphold that he shall not fall finally: and David prayed for upholding, Psalm 37.24. & 51.12, Pro. 24 16 and God doth uphold us in all our temptations, that there will be an issue out of them, Psalm 73.23. 1 Cor. 10.13. N. 3. w●harawing or with hold●,] How much more shall the blood of Christ, who through the Eternal Spirit offered himself without spot to God, purge your conscience from dead works, to serve the living God, Heb 9 14 & 10.22. 1 John 〈◊〉. 20, 21. N. 4 According to the Law] We most hence learn to undervalue our best abilities, and to be humbled for our exactest performances. Therefore Christ ordained sacrifice for the sins of their holy offerings, Deut. 16. And that the High Priest should bear the iniquity of their holy things, which the children of Israel shall hollow in all their holy gifts, Exod. 28.38. And the Saints were sensible of this; confessing we are all unclean, and that all our righteousness is as filthy rags, Esay 64.6. if the best man dare not justify his actions, his actions cannot justify him: the most regenerate doth not what he would and should, Rom. 7. a godly man sees cause to hate somewhat he doth in his best actions. The Law of Christ, Exod. 20. more spiritual than the best man. If we condemn ourselves, we justify the Law, that it is holy, just, and good. N. 5. That it consisted in transgression, forgiveness] By the grace of forgiveness, we stand justified from sin, or we stand, being made free from sin: the Law maker may forgive sin, and so doth, but yet in the Mediator, and so we may stand. Then being justified by faith, we have peace toward God, through our Lord Jesus Christ, Rom. 5 1. This verse, yea all the chapter is but an inference from the former doctrine in chap 3. of justification, and from the Testimony that Abraham and David felt in themselves, Rom. 4. Again, Who shall lay any thing to the charge of Gods chosen, it is God that justifieth, that setteth free, that forgiveth Romans 8.1. all our comfort dependeth on forgiveness of sin. When an Israelite offered sacrifice, it is said, his sin shall be forgiven him, so he stood just by the grace of forgiveness, by faith in Christ's sacrifice. So the doctrine of justification by faith in Christ hath witness of the Law, and the Prophets. No new doctrine, Levit. 4. & 5. & 6. Romans 3.21, 21, etc. Habel offering in faith inherited the righteousness or justification, that is by faith, Heb. 11. so in the Seal of the Lords Supper, Matth. 26.26. forgiveness of sins is only spoken of as the foundation of all blessings, the most admired privilege of the Saints, drawing all other after it, as adoption, peace, joy, etc. as non-forgiveness draws wrath, and all other miseries after it. If sin be such an evil how unvaluable is the sacrifice of the body and blood of the Lord Jesus Christ. N. 7. From an inward feeling] every one should be affected with grief and godly sorrow for his birth sin, as David Psalm 51. This saying should always sound in our ears, that the Eternal God said, It repenteth me that I have made man: also this, the frame of man's heart is only wicked all the day, Gen 6. which is handled, Rom. 7. I do not that which I would, but that which I would not, that do I: O spoilt man that I ant, who shall redeem me from this aye sinning body. The wicked heart selleth himself to do all iniquity as A chab, 1 King. 21.20. But the godly heart is sold against his will, as holy Paul, Rom. 7.14 we cry out and so we ought, upon particular sins, but are no● humbled as we ought for the corruption of nature. The cause is greater than the effect, as in good, so in ill: The word of exhortion belongs only to the weary and laden. Matth. 11. The whole will not seek the Physician. To this man will I look, to him that is poor, and of a contrite spirit, and trembleth at my words, Esay 66 He healeth the broken in heart and bindeth up their wounds, Psalm 14●. 1 Chr●n. 34.27. Esay 61.1. Mat. 5 3, 4, etc. From all that hath been written hitherto in this book, and shall be written, let men consider, whether the People of Israel of the old Testament were not under a covenant of Grace, and whether they had not the law of God written in their hearts, as well as the Israel of God under the new Testament. Ibid N. 7. Or alloweth, or is indulgem] A man whose sin is forgiven, covered, not imputed, his spirit will be without guile: so the 1 Pet. 2.1. is urged upon the doctrine of the former chapter, Psalm 26. &c 32. & 66. 18, & 51. Prov. 28.13.14. The holy soul prayeth as sincerely and affectionately for upholding, in the path that is called holy, as for pardon. N. 10. Afore we can have any comfort] Observe the coherence of matter in these Psalms, so Jacob Gen. 46 1, 2, etc. Ezra 3.3. & 8.21, 22, 23, 31. Excellent in Samuel, who by faith and prayer in the blood of the Covenant put to flight the Armies of the aliens, 1 Sam. 7.9, 10. Heb. 11.32. There must be a daily use and improvement of faith and prayer, in all occasions and conditions, especially as touching sin, and daily transgressions against holiness and righteousness in matter, manner, or end, in omission, or commission. We need to cry for cleansing of our secret faults to be pardoned and justified by him that justifyeth the ungodly. As Abraham that was a believer, and a worshipper of God in Gen. 12. & 13. & 14. yet needed daily the use of his faith to be comforted in him that justifyeth the ungodly, Gen. 15. Rom. 4. do show, and therefore he builded Altars in every place he came unto. CHAP. VII. With Questions, Answers, and Annotations on them, How Redemption was taught from the foundation of the Temple, to the burning of it. QUest. 1. How doth the Temple teach concerning Christ? Answ. 1. That in due time the Son of God would make our flesh his Tabernacle or Temple, and dwell among us, john 1.1.4. This was it that Solomon admired, saying, Is it true indeed, that God will dwell with man on earth? 2 Chr. 6.18. So did Agur Ben Jakeh, Prov. 30.19. 2. All that looked towards the Temple in faithful prayer should be heard. Christ is the true Temple in the heavenly Jerusalem, to whom they that look in prayer shall be heard. QUest. 2. Now after the Temple was built, who were obedient to the faith looking after the portion and inheritance in Christ the off spring and sen of David, and Root of J●ssai● Answ. Solomon, Asa, Jehosophat, all the godly Kings of the house of Judah, with many of the Sacrificers, Prophets and people, very many were of the faith of Abraham afore the Temple and after, as many as the siars of heaven in multitude, and as the sand of the seashore which is innumerable. All these through faith obtained good report, and all these died in the faith that was first taught in Paradise, etc. embraced by Abel. Henoch, Noab, and all the faithful to the end of daniel's Seventy Sevens, which faith we are exhorted to follow. Our Lords fathers from David, Nathan, etc. to Zorobabel, must here specially be remembered: this line from Nathan is in Luke 3. QUest. 3. Was there any apostasy from the faith of the kingdom of David in Christ, and the worship of Jehovah in his holy Footstool upon the then holy mountain? Answ. Yea, and that lamentable: after salomon's death Jeroboam the man of sin that made Israel to sin, of the Tribe of Ephraim drew away (as Nimrod) ten Tribes to rebellion, and to worship his Devils at Dan and Bethel. And besides the Worship of his Calves they were defiled with divers kinds of idolatry of the heathens: they filthily corrupted themselves, and dealt like a foolish people, and unwise, as a nation void of counsel, forsaking Christ, the God of their Fathers, and followed the blindness of the God of this world, Jesurun kicked with the heel, etc. Deut. 32. QUest. 4. Did all the Kings of Israel follow the Abomination of jeroboams Calves? Answ. All but Shallum, and Hosea; Jeroboams house did, and so Baasaes, and Omries, and Jehues, and the rest? QUest. 5. Did the house of Judah wholly cleave to God? Answ. No, they also moved him to jealousy with their vanities, and (a) Stephen chargeth them with this, Acts 7.42, 43 They mocked the messengers of God and despised his words and misused his Prophets, etc. 2 Chron. 36. Acts 7.52. detestable things: many of their Kings and Princes, the great high counsel, the Sacrificers, Prophets, and people, most grievously revolted, and followed the precepts of men, and the statutes, ordinances, (a) Solomon foretold them of their evils, Eccles. 10, 15, 16, 17. Rchoboam that foolish child, that would not be admonished (Eccles. 2.) paid the price of that: so King Joram, and King Joash, etc. but look into David's court and Hezekiahs, Psalm 101. Pro. 25.1. way and manners of Aholah apostate Israel, and the heathens their lovers: und even as Israel forsook jehovah their Father, the God of their Fathers, and so became the Harlot Ahliobah. And in their apostasy advanced the wicked and unworchy, but scorned and oppressed the Gospel, and the godly continually. QUest. 6. Did not God send to his people Israel holy prophets ●o call them to repentance towards God, and faith in the Messiah? Answ. From the days of Mos●s, the Eternal God being full of compassion still raised up holy Prophets, who testified to them by his good spirit, and called them from the backslidings of their forefathers to the faith of the Law and Testimony. And in all ages it is seen, that prophesying is the Chariots and Horsemen of Israel, (b) So the Apostles by the word of Christ's mouth made a new heaven, and a new earth, Esay 66. Apoc 21. & 22. and a recreation of the World. samuel's and Elias times had proof hereof. QUest. 7. How was the goodness of God exercised toward Judah, keeping the truth of the Gospel? Answ. The gracious Lord God ever shown his blessed protection over them, and always things went well in that State. A most evident testimony, that the maintenance of the plainness and sincerity of the Gospel, according to the Written Word, is the most renowned, and perfect beauty, and greatest glory of a Kingdom, Dent. 4.8. Ezek. 20. all of it, Psalm 147.19.20. QUest. 8. How was Christ's severity exercised towards Israel, the ten Tribes, the Harlot Aholab for their apostasy? Answ. 1. They dis-esteeming the glorious Law of jehovah their God; and despising the holy Prophets, God deprived them of true Prophets, and gave them over to the lying spirits of false Prophets, and foolish and idol-shepheards; by whom they were merchandized, blinded, deluded and seduced, to walk in their own counsels, in statutes that were not good, and in judgements by which they could not live, the life of a State or Church. 2. He did pour out his fury, and accomplish his anger, by bringing upon them famine, pestilence, and other heavy miserics, by Intestine garboils, and by secret corroding mischiefs within their State, and by foreign enemies, chief by the Kings of the house of Aram, and by the Kings of the house of Ashur, who at last carried them away captive out of their own land, so that they became jezreel, Lo-ruchamah, and Lo ammi till our Lords days, than they were gathered, pitied, and made God's people by the preaching of the Apostles of the circumcision, Hosea 1. & 2.3. 1 Pet. 2.9, 10. QUest. 9 What came to Judah, the Harlot Aholibah for her revoltings? Answ. The same spiritual plagues (Esa. 6.9, 10. and 29.9.) that came to her elder sister Aholah, and also open manifestation of anger and (a) For jealousy read Deut. 29.20. Ezek. 16.38. & 9.5, 6. Solomon told them what would come to their whorish state, Prov. 6.34.35. jealousy is the rago of a man, be will not spare in the day of vengeance. furious jealousy, (b) Esay 30.3.5. Jer. 26 27, 36. Hosea 10.6. 2 Chrow. 24.24. & 28.19. that shame of State, sie read Deut. (c) Esay 1.6. & 3.1, 2, 3, 4. Mic. 6.3. 2 Chron. 28. The colloguing and complying with Israel, and the nations, never did them good, but hurt, as their Forefathers with the Canaanites, Jud. 2. & 3. sickness of State (d) 2 Chron. 28 20. 1 King. 22. 2 Chron. 22.3, 4, 5. Mich. 6.16. entanglements of State (e) Mich. 1.9 Hos. 5.13. and the Earthquake in Judah had its events in their State, Esay 6.4. Zach. 14.5. and incurable wounds of State (through counsels, treaties, and affinity with the harlot Aholah, and the Nations) befell them: yea, astonishing sorrows by cruel enemies, and by being captivated to Babel, which tyrannised over them seventy years. Then Solomon's race was ended, his Kingdom overthrown, the City and Temple burnt. QUest. 10. How many years had passed from the foundation of the Temple to the burning of it, and the third captivity upon that? Answ. Four hundred twenty seven years. QUest. 11. What Scriptures are contained in those four hundred twenty seven years? Answ. The first Kings, chap. 6. to the end of that Book, the second of Kings, the second of Chronicles, from the second chap. many of the Psalms, the Proverbs, Ecclesiastes, Canticles. Esaias, Hosea, Joel, Amos, Jonah, Micah, Nahum, Habbakuk Zephaniah, the three former chapters of Daniel, much of Jeremiah, and much of Ezekiel, o much as toucheth the nineteenth of Nebuchaduezzar, or the eleventh of Zedekiah, or the third Captivity. The Annotations upon the Questions, and answers of the seventh chapter. THe first Quest. and Answ. Is it true indeed] so Solomon had also said of Christ, that his delight was to be with the sons of Adam, Pro. 8. Therefore by faith Solomon built the Temple looking to things not seen, 2 Chron. 6.18. Great is the mystery of godliness, God manifested in the flesh, 1 Tim. 3. ult. Cant. 2. 9-17. Mark Stephens Oration, Acts 7. The lamb is in the Temple in the heavenly Jerusalem, Apoc. 21. He is the Holy of Holies, Dan. 9.24. And Christians are the Temple of God, 1 Cor. 3.16, 1 Pet. 2. Apoc. 15. God plagued old Babylon with horrible vengeance for the burning of the material Temple, Jeremiah 51.11. So he hath and will destroy mystical Babylon for crucifying Christ and Christians. Ibid. Agur B●n jakeh] He believed the great mystery of Godliness, when he spoke these words. There be three things which are too wonderful for me, yea four which I know not. The way of an Eagle in the air, the way of a serpent up a rock: the way of a ship in the midst of the Sea, and the way of a manchild in a virgin, Prov. 30.18, 19 Esay 7.14. The same word for manchild is in Job 3.3. 2. Quest. & Ans. And all these died in the faith] All these with the faithful for the times of the old Testament were reconciled by the blood of the Mediator, and gathered into one head, even Christ the Head. And therefore when it is said they were gathered to theirfathers or people, they departed from that part of God's family on earth to the other part of the family that is in heaven. Note also these Scriptures. That in the dispensation of the fullness of the times (Dan. 9 24.) he mightbring to one Head, by Christ himself, all, both them which are in heaven, and them which are on the earth, Ephes. 1.10. Of whom hath name the whole family in heaven, and in earth, Ephes 3.15. And by himself to reconcile all unto himself (making peace by the blood of his Cross) both them which are in the earth, and them which are in the heavens, Col. 1.20. confer to this 1 Som. 7.9, 10. Heb●. 11.32, 33, 34. Psalm 22. 4, 5. Psalm 49 It is said the godly shall enter into peace, Esay 57.2. Then none of God's family were in any Popish purgatory, or in any popish Lymbecks, the cursed heathenish dotages of Virgil and Ovid. The Pit-bread Locusts had Sun and air much darkened, when they knew not whether man's soul ascended or descended, and whether the soul goeth to heaven, or Gehenna, to joy or torment, mark diligently, Ephes. 1.12, 13. for these words, that we— in whom ye, etc. Quest. 3. and Answ. The Kingdom of David] The revolting from the house of David, and the Religion of the Temple: these two transgressions were the foundation of all other sins in the Church and State of the ten Tribes, Hosea 10.10 They forsook the Tent, Tabernacle, or Temple of Jehovah, and went to their own Tents and Gods: and then followed murders, slaughters, oppressions, etc. etc. Ibid. Jaroboam the man of sin] Ephraim broken in judgement willingly walked after the commandment of Jeroboam. Because Ephraim made and instituted many Altars to sin. Altars shall be to him sin, They had enough of their own counsels, Psal 81. Ezek. 20.25. Christ will not be found, neither do spiritual blessings come to us, but in the spirits way, the conduits of Christ's own Ordinances, they only work a transformation, Rom. 12.1, 2. Ephraim provoked Christ to anger most bitterly, 1 Kings 12.28. and chap. 15. Hosea 8.11. 2 Cor. 3 3. Gal. 3.5. Hosea 12. Mich. 6. uls. Israel, the harlot Aholah by breaking Wedlock, moved Christ to jealousy, and in time corrupted Judah by their counsels, and made her Aholibah. So Rome is called the great Harlot, and the mother of Harlots that corrupted, and seduced the Churches by her sorceries, and made them harlots, Ezek. 16.38. Apo. 17. As Jeroboam, so the pontificality is called the man of Sin, that made all the world to sin, 2 Thess. 2. Apo. 17. Now the harlot and foolish woman, the ten Tribes, babbles loud, and disputes smoothly and subtly against Judah, as if Wisdom and Truth were with them, Prov. 9.13, 14, 15, 16, 17. so doth the woman-Whore of the seven Mountain City, plead and write against all reformed Churches that have come out of Babel; as the godly in the ten tribes forsook the Communion of the Calves of Dan and Bethel, 2 Chron. 11.13, etc. Ibid. and to worship his Devils] They sacrificed to Devils, not to God, Deut. 32.17. Christ by Moses prevented the pretenced counsels of idolaters, Jeroboam he pleaded he had not forsaken God, but that he worshipped God that brought Israel from Egypt. But the same spirit that spoke by Moses, calls his Calves, Devils, 1 Kings 22.28, 2 Chron. 11.15. Quest. 4. and answ. Jeroboams house did, and so Baasaes] All that go to her return not again, neither take they hold of the ways of life, Pro. 2.19. For great toil they took, family after family, to maintain the faction of Jeroboams iniquity. But God swept them all away as dung, till all was gone, Prov. 5.9, 10. 1 Kings 14.10. They perished in their ways and courses, against the Kingdom of Christ, as David foretold, Psalm 2.12. Quest. 5. and Answ. Moved him to jealousy] They fretted Christ their husband (humanitus dictum) and broke his heart with their whorish hearts and eyes, Ezek. 6.9. and 16. all of it; and so the twentieth, and three and twentieth chapters. Judah the harlot Aholibah, she followed idols, horses, money, wealth, pride, and their lovers; she wearied herself with these lies and vanities, Ezek. 23. & 24, Jer. 2.18, 19, 20. false religion and earthly confidence must go together. But see, sincerity needs none of those poor refuges, Psalms 20. read Esay 2.6, 7, 8, 9 & 29.13. with chap. 30.1, 2, 3. and good Kings must not greatly multiply horses, nor money; nor bring their people back into Egypt, Deut. 17. Princes are not wise, nor learned, that either lead not their people out of Rome-Egypt, or that would reduce them thither, Rome is called Sodom and Egypt, for filthiness and cruelty, Apo. 11. Ibid. With their vanities] Dreams and Precepts of men, a policy of Satan, and the lying spirits his Angels, to make men forget the Law of Jehovah, and his sincere worship: when the precepts of men were urged in, or, for God's worship, the Patrons of these things caused the holy Teachers to be prisoned in secret corners, or they were forced to hid themselves in secret corners from the tyranny of such wise, understanding prudent prophets, and Seers: such deep heads that were able to add to God's word; yea, that would hid their counsels from jehovah, their breath and being. They turned things up and down, if one project took not, they tried another, if not that, than a third. So Haman cast Pur, not considering jehovah saw them, and that he would dash all in pieces like a potter's vessel: see the other pranks of these sleepers, giddy, blind, staggering, and wonderful ignorant in the things of Christ's Kingdom: but expert in cogging and craft to polish and maintain men's precepts. These evils came from the apostasy of Israel, and from the plots and projects of Omri: (of him more anon) Who would think such men to have been in the state of Judah. Ibid. 5. Quest. and answ. The great High counsel, etc.] Esa. 5.19.23. & 8.18. & 28.14. & 29.19, 20, 21, & 30.8, 9, 10, 11. & 57.3, 4. Psal. 82. Amos 2.6, 12. & 5.10, 11. Mich. 3.1, 2. & 7, 5. Ezek. 8.11. and 11.2. Then said he unto me Son of man, these are the men that devise wicked Counsel in this City, etc. So Christ, and his Apostles, and disciples were signs and wonders to the State of Israel: so it was in after times, Acts 13.40, 41. and to this day: The State of Judah shed much innocent blood in the days of Manasleh, which Christ would not pardon. Quest. 6. and Answ. Testified to them] They called for fruits from the husbandmen of the vineyard to the end of the Seavensy Seavens, but when they had killed the heir, the vineyard was let out to the Gentiles, Esay 5. Neh 9.26. Jer. 7.25. Mat. 2●. 33.34, 35, etc. Ibid. Chariots and Horsemen of Israel] The Ordinances of Christ are drawn along by holy prophets. He tideth on prosperously with truth, meekness, and righteousness; and terror, Psalm 45 3, 4, 5. And Christ's Chariots, and his horsemen, were the strength of their State, Psalm 20. yet David and the Godly Kings, neglected not outward means, 2 Sam. 8.4. They that endeavour for to deprive our Land of Godly and able Teachers; are as treacherous to our Land, as they that would endeavour to set on fire the Navy Royal. They that would not have a godly able teaching Ministry would have our Land to be as the State of the ten tribes, 2 Chron. 15.3. Ibid. samuel's and Elias.] samuel's memory shall be blessed in the Church for ever for advancing holy learning by erecting schools of Prophets: a worthy precedent for all godly Commonwealths. They are possessed with satanical and Julian fancies that would not have Schools of Prophets: Christ will curse such, and their posterities. Quest. 7 and Answ. blessed protection] Upon their glorious faith was a defence: and the last speech of Moses was made good through all their State, while they hold their glory, Deut. 33, 26, etc. That Scripture is full of heavenly joy to all Christian States, that hold the faith of Christ sincere, Esay 4. Where this glory is seated, there shall be a defence Blessed hast thou been, O England, who is like unto thee? O people, saved by Jehovah from the ●eed of the Serpent sundry times, but especially in eighty eight, and in the Gan-powder plot, and in 164●, etc. Ibid. Written word,] The sweet blessed Scriptures are to make Kings and Common Weals wise and learned, that the wrath of Christ burn not up their States, and in special the books of Kings, and Chronicles with the prophets of their times, are for instruction to Christian Kings, and polities in many things of State, but chief to take heed how the true Church doth tamper with the false and apostate in treaties and affinity, Psalm 2. 2 King, 22. 2 Chron. 34. & 35. etc. The holy Scriptures will yield more fundamental conclusions, and sure rules for government, than all the Machiavels in the world. Quest. 8. and Answ. Aholah for their apostasy] Our blessed, gracious and merciful Lord God doth never cast off his people till they have first cast off and contemned his word, for then idolatry will begin, and all ungodliness and unrighteousness like a torrent will follow. Then will God hisse for a fly, and a Bee. What Prince is able to keep a fly, or a Bee from coming near his Court, yea, or into his Chambers and Exchequers, God is as able to bring an enemy, even of their lovers to enjoy and possess them: See the stories of R●choboam, joram, joash, Amaziah, etc. 2 Chr. 12. & 21. and 24. & 25 And Pharaoh with all his wisdom, and multitude, Ezek. 29. and 30. and 31, &c 32 could not prevent, Nabuchadnezzar from his spreading his royal Pavilion near his Court Gate, Jer. 43.9, 10. and who caused that the Babylonian Princes sat in the Gate of jerusalem, but the Lord jehovah the God of recompenses, Jer. 39 Esai. 42.24. Esay 5.26. & 7.18 Pro. 13.13. Jer. 6. & 7. 2 Kings 22.13. Ibid. N. 1. and gave them over to the lying Spirits] woe to them saith God when I depart from them: then followed a secret dedication of them to devils, transferring his right of them to idols, Ephraim is joined to idols, Let him alone Hos. 4.17 Acts 7.47. 1 King 22.23. Psal. 81. Ezek 14.9. and so 2 Thess. 2. Apoc. 16.13. 1 Tim. 4. Ibid. N. 1. To walk in their own Counsels] Ezek. 20.25. Psal. 81. 2 Kings 17.8. Hos. 10.6. & 13.1. Observe Mich. 6. ult. Solomon fitted many Proverbs, and told them, the words of the wise, do bear grace, and that the words of the fools of the ten tribes, and of Judah also would be foolishness, and wicked madness to swallow them up, Eccles. 10. Behold still how Christ the Corners stone was rejected, and became a stone of offence, to both the houses of Israel, as Esaias and David had told them Psalm 69.22 Esay 8.14. and 28.16 and so is ever to all that will not receive him in the way of his own ordinances, and mark how these texts are pressed by our Lord and his Apostles in the Acts, Evangelists, and in the Epistle to Rome, and 1 Pet. 2. and this is written for us, Rom. 15. confer Esai. 6.9, 10. with John 12.40. & Acts 28.26.27, &c etc. Ibid. N. 1. Can not live the life of a State, etc.] Observe how the Holy Spirit compares the dead State of the ten tribes being in Apostasy, with the apostasy of the families, 2 Chron. 15.3. with Ephes. 2.1. to 12. Dead from a Church life, Hos. 13.1. false worship breeds atheism and corruption in manners: heresy frets like a gangreane, and such Authors and fautours wax worse and worse. The ten tribes were without the true God by their apostasy, and so the heathens were atheoi, atheists without God in the world, and note, that speech of Asa, King of Judah, was spoken of Israel, before the idol Ba●l was brought into Israel 2 Chron. 15.3. Ibid. 8. Quest. and Answ. N. 2. He did pour out his fury] God was angry for the provocation of his sons, and of his Daughters, Deut. 32. God's four sore judgements followed Aholah and Aholibah, for their backslidings, Ezek. 14. and the Earthquake in Amos 1. had in Israel its events; Jeroboam the second, his son, was two and twenty years in getting his Father's Throne: such trouble in State, all plagues, and curses; Levit. 26. Deut. 28. came on them not for breaking a Covenant of Works, but for accounting Christ and his Kingdom, Anathema. They did (as all apostates do) loathe his word, they abhorred his Statutes, they obeyed not the Son of God, the Angel of God's presence, as Mediator, and so had not life, John 3.35, 36. they served not God in their spirits, in the Gospel of his Son. He that hath not the Son of God, hath not the Father, 1 John 5.12. 2 John 9 and so come all plagues and curses on men. Let the wild Olive branches fear. Ibid. Upon them famine, pestilence] Famine and Pestilence are chief the Plagues of the meaner sort, and the sword is the plague of the rich, Ezek. 21.14. when the heavens dealt with the subjects, Levit. 26. the Governors felt the other The spirit of Christ hath long and wonderful patience afore the sword cometh, Leu. 16 23, 24, 25. & then the sword doth avenge the quarrel of God's covenant (not a covenant of works but for despising the covenant in his Son) against the godliness of high place, who were, and are the hinderers of all good, and the promoters of all evil, as it is said, A great man grieveth all, and he hireth the fool, he hireth also the transgressors, Prov. 26.10. Ibid. By secret corroding mischiefs] Christ was as a Lion to tear in pieces by their domestic dissensions, as in the overthrow of the houses of Jeroboam, Baasa, Omri, jehu, etc. and by foreign enemies; and also he was as a Moth insensibly eating and consuming their riches, honour and people by one ill project or other. And for this read Hosea 5.12. Ibid. House of Assur) They made Israel, Iez●eel, Loruchamah, and Lo-ammi, till the latter days, as Hebr. 1.1. But then they were gathered in Christ, and pitied, and again made God's people. The Apostles of the circumcision preached to them that were dispersed in Asia, Galatia, Pontus, Bythinia, Cappadocia, and Chaldea, etc. 1 Per. 1.1. and chap. 2. all tribes than are called jews. Ephraim mixed himself with the heathens Religion, therefore God mixed them among the heathen. Ibid. Out of their own Land] There nettles and thorns grew in their pleasant palaces: then the thorn and thistle grew on their Altars (weeds of the curse, Gen. 3.) And then they cried to the mountains to fall on them, and to the hills to conver them. Let England look to their backsliding to Altars, Hosea 10. To thrust away the Gospel by man's inventions is to make our houses, as well as God's house desolate, and so our Lord tells the Jews, Mat. 23.38. Judah and Israel dashed themselves against the Corner stone, and were broken. 9 Quest. and Answ. For her revoltings] Idolatry is a State-ruining sin, Psalm 106.36. the prayers of the Saints could not prevail for their reigning idolatry, and false worship, Jer. 15. & 16. Ezek. 14. King Moses by his most fervent intercession, and abolishing idolatry procured pardon: but note in that false worship, there was no innocent bloodshed. Idolatry divides the heart from Christ, and subjects it willingly to follow the commandments of men, and of the man of sin: Je●oboam should see such events of apostasy that they should fret and and curse their King, and their Gods, that is the false religion they so pressed, and see neither help from heaven, nor earth, but all full of anguish and darkness, Esa. 8.21, 22. Hos. 9.6. & 10.8. Deut. 28.34, 65, 66, 67. Their State-politicians could not prevent, nor their State Surgeons, heal the wounds that God made in their State. The wisdom and turning of devices of the wise, and prudent Counsellors of State was booteless, all was but the weaving of the Spiders Webb. Esay 29.15. & 59, 5. Jer. 30.12. Hoses 5. all of it. They sinned against Jehovah the hope of their Fathers, jer. 50.7. job 12.17, 18, 19, 20. To backsliding and adulterous Israel, Christ her Lord gave a Bill of divorce, and put her away; yet judah her sister, being also treacherous, feared not, but went and played the harlot also, jer. 3.7, 8. The minds of these two sisters were alienated from Christ, and so his mind at last was alienated from them, read Ezek. 23. Ibid. And affinity with the Harlot Aholah] Mark State affairs in judah. They saw Om●i was a mighty Prince, overcoming Zimri and Tibni who stood in competition with him for the Kingdom of Israel, and that Achab possessed all in peace, that his Father Omri had settled. jehosophat thought it good state-policy to make affinity with him, although he followed jeroboam-man of sin his Religion, but it was the ruin and almost the rooting out of his house, etc. for mark, first jehosaphat, being in his visits with Achab was solicited for association in a league for War, to which with reluctation he yielded. For he might not in Court courtesy show himself so weak and discrepant to think that four hundred prophets were so to be slighted, as to follow the humour of one singular selfwilled, refractorious fellow, Michaiah. So he went with his Brothet Achab to battle to Ramoth Gilead; but there he was in danger of his life. Jehosophat although a goodman, yet in that no good Statesman to weaken judah to help these with men, and all ammunition (although circumcised Israelites) that hated the Gospel: He was reproved, and wrath was upon him, a Chron. 19 2. He joined with Achaziah of Achab in a Navy to go to sea for gold, but Christ was displeased with it, and plagued Jehoshaphat, in that the ships were broken, so that project took not, 2 Chron. 20. Psal. 8. ult. 3. Joram, Jehosaphats son, (who married Achabs' daughter) after his father's death, forsook the Gospel, and followed Jeroboams Religion, the two Devils of Dan and Beth●l, and caused Jerusalem, and compelled judah to commit fornication, to worship Devils, 2 Chron. 21. 2 Kings 8.18. All worship what Christ hath not commanded is the worship of Devils Levit. 10. and 17.7. Psal. 106.39. 1 Cor. 10. All their projects of State must justify that affinity, else all the provisions in Law against jeroboams revolt, had been a reprof to Achabs' daughter, & so her faction prevailed for the corrupting the calling on the name of Jehovah, as, of old, Satan's project was Gen 4.26. conferred with chap. 6. and this seed of false worship sowed in judah did g●ow to an evil harvest, Hos. 6.11. And did stick so fast, that it could not be weeded out for 180 years, till the days of Hezekiah King of judah; for the businesses of their State were agitated according to the models and plots of Omri, that maintained the faction of jeroboam, man of sin, his Religion: as Micah challenged the State in Achaz his days, that the Statutes of Omri were kept, and their way and their counsels. Behold the working of that affinity. But Hezekiah that good King made reformation according to the primitive institution, 2 Chron. 28.2 2 Kin. 16.3. and 17.19. yet Manasse fell again to Achabs' idolatry; so fast false worship cleaves to our nature. 4. This Joram, after his father's death (as Turks now do) killed his six brethren, and many Princes: very like, his brethren and the Princes did dislike and protest against his courses, about idolatry and tyranny and had no heart to the faction of jeroboam, man of sin, his Religion, therefore the Queen and her Counsellors might say to the King, An't like your Majesty you can never be in safety, and rule as King, while your brethren have fenced Cities, and while the Princes do not approve your proceed: frame mischief by a Law, and off with their heads, 2 Chron. 21. Psal. 94.20. Now David's house are Belial and thorns, 2 Sam, 23. Mark, here false worship inttroduced, than the liberties and privileges of the subjects are invaded. That Subjects might not so much mind: Apostasy in their Princes, means were excogitated to busy them by rumours of this and that project, and also for their particular estates, till false Religion had gotten footing, this is the very heart and counsel of apostate and idolatrous Princes. 5. joram lost the regency and principality of Edom 2 Chron. 21. 6. Libnah one of the prime Cities of Judah rebelled, because he forsook the Religion of Jehovah, that is; in very deed, the Gospel of the Son of God, the God of his fathers, 2 Chron. 21. when the Magistrate thrusts out the Gospel, than Christ divides the hearts of the people; Apostasy in the Prince, breeds Apostasy in the subjects. Christ pours contempt upon Princes, Ps. 107.40. 7. The Lord Jehovah stirred up the spirit of the Philistims, Arabians, and Cu●him, who invaded Judah, and took much spoil even out of the King's house, and captived his wives and all his sons, save one, 2 Chr. 21. Deut. 28.30, 31, 41. oppressions filled their Exchequers, but the enemies emptied them, he poureth contempt upon Princes, Job 12 21. 8. He died of a rotting disease in his bowels, that they fell out, because he slew his own bowels, worse befell not that persecutor Antiochus, 2 Mic. 9 Riches avail not in the day of wrath, but righteousness delivereth from death, the like plague came on that bloody tyrant Herod, Acts 12.23. 9 He was not esteemed worthy of honourable burial, as his noble predecessors: the land being glad it was rid of such a Tyrant and Apostate; He poureth contempt upon Princes 10. His son Achaziah knew all this, yet he feared not God, but walked in the way; that is, the Religion and manne●s of apostate Israel, 2 Kin. 8.27. 11. His idolatrous mother was his Counsellor, and because there were not Statesmen wise enough in Judah, the counsellors of Jeroboam, man of sin, his Religion must be sent for, and so the secrets and mysteries of State in judah, must be discovered Ah poor judah, how sick and entangled was thy State? ● Ch●on 22 3 4. can such with well to, and procure the weal of Mount Zion? Psal 122. Apo● 14.1. 12. As the two fathers, so the two brothers joined in league; for Achaziah joined with jehoram King of Israel in battle against H●zael of Aram, who held still Ramoth-Gilead: so Achaziah being not only a very wicked man, but as bad a Statesman, wasted also the strength of judah. 13. Achaziah going to visit Joram, being sick, was slain by Jehu; as he was of the house of Achab by the mother, so he perished with it, 2 Chr. 22.6, 7. Complices in tyranny and idolatry, complices in punishment, Hosh. 5 5. 14. Many idolatrous Princes, and 40 young Gentlemen and Courtiers of the kindred of Achaziah, going down from judah to comple-mentit, with the children of the King and Queen of Israel, there jehu found them and slew them. These apostate Princes of the faction of jeroboam, man of sin, his Religion, (and it may be pensioners too) that put their hands to kill the good Princes, God met with them by jebu, 2 Chron. 22. Let this teach Courtiers, the eye of Christ is in King's Courts. 15. Athaliah the wife of jehoram (daughter of Achab, and it may be of jezabel) being Queen Regent six years in judah, seeing her son Achaziah was slain by jebu, she seizeth like a cruel tyrant on the children of her son Achaziah, and slew all but a young infant of a year old. O sick judah, sick, sick, sick, 2 Chron. 22 Isa. 1.5, 6, 7. 16. She being Regent, governed in an idolatrous and turbulent manner, to the heart's grief of the honest Subjects: for, she being King cut off idolatry was banished, the Gospel was restored, and the Land was quiet, 2 Ch●on. 23.21. Christ poureth contempt upon Princes. 17. The sons of Athaliah, that wicked woman, for the time of those six years had broken up the house of the Lord, and had committed abominable and idolatrous sacrilege. It should seem she had sons whom she tendered by some other man, 2 Chron. 24.7. These evils and others, yea and others which are not written (Deut. 28 61) followed good Jehosaphats bad affinity, with Ahabs wicked house. 18. Mark through all the holy story, what pollution of blood from that Ammonean, and Achabean breed, ran in all the Royal descents to the Captivity. That you be not mistaken, you must observe, that there were two Kings of judah, and Israel, reigning at one time, of the same name, jehoram. Also two Kings, both called Achaziah, and near of the same time, joram, and jehoram are all one name: and so in King jehoash of judah, and King jehoash of Israel. The Table of genealogy prefixed will help your observation. Other State-affairs in the stories of other Kings reigns, beginning with King Azariah (alias Vzziah) and so forwards, compared with the prophets, will afford many meditations. I think it not amiss to touch a little from the story of Solomon for this matter of affinity. In policy he might make affinity with Pharaoh, a great Potentate, to strengthen himself being a King of peace, by this course he thought to maintain it for him and his successors, but it proved otherwise. Although Pharaohs daughter might prove a proselyte, and forget the Religion of her own people, and her father's house, and cleave to the truth of Christ, as it is thought she did, to be a figure of the Gentiles calling to the true Solomon. It might be a great mercy to her to be of the true Church, and of the household of God. But very like it it was done of Pharaoh, but as a snare to work their own interests against Israel. No trust to be had in idolatrous people, for so of this affinity came no good to the Church of God. 1. There was no succession of this proselyte-daughter. 2. The State of Egypt maintained a Faction, and fostered Traitors, and enemies to Solomon, and the State of all Israel, as Ie●oboam that lifted up his hand against the King, and Hadad the Edomite, 1 Kin. 11. So Egypt nourished two factions in salomon's life-time against him. 3. And Shishak King of Egypt (might well be the brother of that daughter) who five years after salomon's death invaded judah, and warred against Rehoboam, that apostate fool, Eccl. 2.19. 2 Chron. 12.13. and 13.17. Marriages do not always unite houses and kingdoms, as in the Seleuco-Pagidae, Dan. 2 43. and 11. So France and Spain knock one against the other: (16 36) Rome is called Egypt, and it hath nourished traditours and proditours against Christian Princes of the Reformation. This should make all Christian Reformed States to be very watchful and diligent concerning any treaty with abaddon's Kingdom, for he in allusion is compared with jeroboam, called the Man of sin, 2 Thes. 2. and Rome's polity, is called Egypt in a mystery. Quest. 9 and Ans. and the nations] sometimes they gadded, and treated with Assur, but that framed not; sometime with Egypt, that also failed, jer. 2.16, 17, 18. False worship taketh heart from a State. This folly, madness, and silliness, other Prophets reprove in Ephraim, Esay 29. Hos. 5. and 7. The whorish State, her feet cannot abide in her house, therefore she did wander, P●ov. 7.11.12. Hos. 9 2 Ezek. 16.33. etc. and chap. 23.14.15 etc. God plagued them by their lovers. They pleased themselves in the children, and manners of strangers, Isa. 2.6. wise Statesmen of old were careful of this, job 15 19 and the godly returned from Babel, Ezra 4. Hezekiah was to blame, Isa. 39 Our nation changed their glory, and loved K●ttims Religion, therefore God plagued and did trouble them with Italian Monsters, jer. 2.25. Deut. 28.43.44. Hos. 7.9. It is to admonish, 1 Cor. 10.11. and to make States wise, and learned, Psal. 2. read Ezek. 16. and 23. for their Babylonian lovers, and compare things: for Rome is called Egypt and Babylon in a mystery. Vide Mr. Cade Instit. Lib▪ 1 pag. 128. and the Appendix. Also insinuations for corruption of manners will make the sweet yoke of Christ burdensome, and will work further change of our way, as things go on uncomfortably at this time, anno 1636. Ibid.— Yea, astonishing sorrows.] The Lamentations of jeremiah, and Psa. 80, and 89, etc. etc. compared with the history, show astonishing sorrows with the causes, and this was one chief cause: for the sins of her Prophets, and the iniquity of her Priests, that shed the blood of the just, They, they the chief cause of all evil, and jerusalem admonishing all States to be warned by her example, Lam. chap. 1. and 2.14. and chap. 4. Ibid. Then Solomon's house ended.] David shown, his house would not be upright with God, but would be Belial and thorns, and should be burnt; A terror to Princes that will not rule justly, and in the fear of God, 2 Sam. 23. Observe, Lam. 2.5, 6. The Lord is become a very enemy, he hath swallowed up Israel, he hath swallowed up her palaces, he hath destroyed his strong holds, and he hath increased in the daughter of Judah mourning, and lamentation. And he hath violently taken away his Tabernacle, as it were of a garden, he hath destroyed the places of the Assembly. Jehovah hath caused the solemn Feasts and Sabbaths to be forgotten in Zion, and he hath despised in the indignation of his anger, King and Sacrificer. Let not the wild olive branches be highminded, Rom. 11. CHAP. VII. With Questions, Answers, and Annotations; Showing how the Covenant of grace was taught and opposed in this space of time; from the burning of the Temple, to the end of the Captivity of Babel. QUest. 1. Show some Scriptures concerning the Captivity of Judah under the Babylonian Kingdom, with other things thereupon depending. Answ. Levit. 26.14. (a) observe how the holy history, and the prophet's comment upon this Scripture of Moses: very useful to confer history to prophecy. to the end of the chapter. 14. But if ye will not hearken to me, and will not do all these commandments. 15. And if ye shall (b) consider here how the holy Gospel Law of Ch●ist delivered to Moses, was unsavoury to the outward Israelite: it was a savour of life to some and to others a savour of death to death, so it ever was, and ever shall be: as it was to Kain and Habel, and Esay 6.9, 10. & 11. chapters, 2 Chron. 2.16. despise my Statutes, or if your soul abhor (c) my judgements, so that ye will not do all my commandments, but that ye break my covenant. 16. I also will do this unto you, I will appoint even over you terror, consumption, and the burning ague, and that shall consume the eyes, and cause sorrow of heart, and ye shall sow your seed in vain, for your enemies shall eat it. 17. And I will set my face against you, and ye shall be slain before your enemies: they that hate you shall reign over you, and ye shall flee when none pursueth you: 18. And if ye will not for all this hearken unto me, than I will punish you seven times more for your sins. 19 And 〈◊〉 will break the pride of your power, and I will make your heaven as iron, and your earth as brass; 20. And your strength shall be spent in vain: for your Land shall not yield her increase, neither shall the trees of the land yield their fruits. 21. And if ye walk contrary unto me, and will not hearken unto me, I will bring seven times more plagues upon you, according to your sins. 22. I will also send wild beasts which shall rob you of your children, and destroy your , and make you few in number, and your high ways shall be desolate. 23. And if ye will not be reform by these things, but will walk contrary unto me: 24. Then will I also walk contrary unto you, and will punish you yet seven times for your sins. 25. And I will bring a sword upon you that shall avenge the quarrel of my covenant: and when ye are gathered together within your Cities, I will send the Pestilence among you, and ye shall be delivered into the hands of the enemy. 26. And when I have broken the staff of your bread, Ten Women shall bake your bread in one Oven, and they shall deliver you your bread again by weight, and ye shall eat and not be satisffed. 27. And if for all this, ye will not hearken unto me, but walk contrary unto me; 28. Then I will walk contrary unto you, also in fury and I, even I will chastise you seven times for your sins: 29. Moses foresaw captivity and Dan 9 doth comment on all this chapter. And ye shall eat the flesh of your sons, and the flesh of your daughters shall ye eat. 30. And I will destroy your high places, and cut down your Sun-Images, and cast your carcases upon the carcases of your filthy idols, and my soul shall abhor you. 31. And I will make your City's waist, and bring your sanctuaries unto desolation, and I will not smell the savour of your seed odours. 32. And I will bring the Land unto desolation, and your enemies which shall dwell therein, shall be astonished at it: 33. And I will scatter you among the heathen, and I will draw out a sword after you: and your land shall be desolate, and your City's waist. 34. Then shall your land enjoy her (a) Mark how the holy Story commenteth on all Moses. Sabbaths, as long as it lieth desolate, and ye be in your enemy's land, even than shall the Land rest, and enjoy her Sabbaths. 35. As long as it lieth desolate it shall rest, because it did not rest in your Sabbaths, when ye dwelled upon it. 36. And upon them that are left of you I will send a faintness into their hearts, in the Land of their enemies, and the sound of a leaf driven shall chase them, and they shall flee as fleeing from a sword, and they shall fall when none pursueth. 37. And they shall fall one upon another, as it were before a sword, when none pursueth, and ye shall have no power to stand before your enemies. 38. And ye shall perish among the heathens, and the land of your enemies sh●ll eat you up. 39: And they that are left of you shall pine away in their iniquity in your enemy's lands, and also in the iniquities of their fathers shall they pine away. 40. If they shall (b) So Daniel did, and God remembered his Covenant in Christ, Dan. 9.24, 25▪ 26, 27. read Ezek 36. confess their iniquity, and the iniquity of their fathers, with their trespass which they have trespassed against me, and that also they have walked contrary unto me; 41. And that I also have walked contrary unto them, and have brought them into their enemy's lands, if then their uncircumcised hearts be humbled, and they then (c) A justified person will justify God in all his providences, so Neh. 9 all of it: Dan. 9.5. If we judge ourselves, God will not judge us,? but remember his covenant 1 Cor. 11.1 joh. 1. The better a manis, the more unworthy he thinks himself to be, job 42.6. accept of the punishment of their iniquity. 42. Then will I remember my covenant with Jacob, and also my covenant with Isaac, and also my covenant with Abraham, will I remember, and I will remember the Land. 43. The land also shall be left of them, and shall enjoy her (d) Observe 2 ch●on. 36.21. though the prophets departed this life, yet the ward of Christ died not, Zach. 1.5, 6. Sabbaths, while she lieth desolate without them, and they shall accept of the punishment of their iniquity, because, even for because they despised my judgements, and because their soul abhorred my statutes. (e) Though we be unfaithful in many acts of unbelief, and break our covenant, yet the Lord is faithful he cannot deny himself, Tim. 2.13. though he cause grief yet will he have compassion according to the multitude of his mercies. n =" 44" 44 And yet for all that, when they be in their enemy's land I will not cast them away, neither will I abhor them to destroy them utterly, and to break my Covenant with them, for I am Jehovah their God. 45. But I will for their sakes remember the Covenant (f) This covenant as the same with jacob, Isaas, and Abraham, ver. 42. of their Ancestors whom I brought forth out of the Land of Egypt in the sight of the Heathen, that I might be their God, I am Jehovah. Jer. 27. 1. In the beginning of the reign of Jehojakim the son of Josiah King of Judah, came the word unto Jeremiah from Jehovah, saying, 2. Thus saith Jehovah to me, make the bonds and yokes, and put them upon thy neck. 3. And send them to the King of Edom, and to the King of Moab, and to the King of the Ammonites, and to the King of Tyrus, and to the King of Zidon, by the hand of the Messengers, that come to Jerusalem unto Zedekiah, King of Judah. 4. And command them to say unto their Masters, thus saith Jehovah of hosts, the God of Israel: thus shall you say unto your Masters. 5. I have made the earth, the man and the beast, that are upon the ground, by my great power, and by my stretched out arm, and have given it unto Whom it seemed good unto me. 6. And now have given all these lands into the hand of Nabuchadnezzar the K. of Babylon, my servant, and the beasts of the field, have I given him also to serve him. 7. And all Nations shall serve him, and his son, and his son's son, until the time of his land come, and then many Nations, and great Kings shall serve themselves of him. 8. And it shall come to pass that the nation or Kingdom which will not serve the same Nabuchadnezzar the King of Babylon: and that will not put their neck under the yoke of the King of Babylon, that nation will I punish, saith the Lord, with the sword and with the famine, and with the pestilence until I have consumed them by his hand. 9 Therefore hearken not to your Prophets, nor to your Diviners, nor to your dreamers, nor to your enchanters, nor to your sorcerers, which speak unto you, saying, ye shall not serve the King of Babel. 10. For they prophesy a unto you, to remove you far from your land: and that I should drive you out, and ye should perish. 11. But the nations that bring their necks under the yoke of the King of Babylon, and serve him, those will I let remain still in their own land, saith Jehovah, and they shall till it, and dwell therein. Jer. 25.9. Behold I will send and take all the families of the North, saith Jehovah. and Nabuchadnezzar the King of Babel my servant, and will bring them against this land, and the inhabitants thereof, and against all these nations round about, and will utterly destroy them, and make them an astonishment, and an hissing, and a perpetual desolation. 10. Moreover, I will take from them the voice of mirth, and the voice of gladness, the voice of the bridegroom, and the voice of the bride, the sound of the millstones, and the light of the candle. 11. And this whole land shall be a desolation, and an astonishment, and these nations shall serve the King of Babylon, seaventy years. 12. And it shall come to pass when Seavensy years are accomplished that I will punish the King of Babel, and that nation saith Jehovah for their iniquity, and the land of the Chaldeans and I will make it a perpetual desolations. 13. And I will bring upon that land all my words which I have pronounced against it, even all that is written in this book which Jeremiah hath prophesied against all nations. 14. For many nations and great Kings shall serve themselves of them also: and I will recompense them according to their deeds, and according to the work of their hands. 2 Chron. 36.14. Moreover all the chief of the Priests, and the People transgressed very much after all the abominations of the heathens, and polluted the house of Jehovah, which he had hallowed in Jerusalem. 15. And Jehovah the God of their Fathers sent to them by his Messengers, rising up betimes, and sending them, because he had compassion on his people, and on his dwelling place. 16. But they mocked the Messengers of God and despi●ed his Word, and misused his Prophets until the wrath of Jehovah arose against his people, till there was no remedy. 17. Therefore he brought upon them the King of the Chaldees, who slew their young men (a) Now the sword doth avenge the quarrel of the Covenant Levit. 26. What covenant? of wo●ks? no such matter, but the Covenant of grace in Christ, They would not have Christ, the Heir as King to reign over them by his word, and holy, ordinances: therefore they were slain before his face, by the chaldean, Luc. 19.12. to 27. Grace despised, brings the heaviest Plagues, yea all plagues here and hereafter. with the sword, in the house of their sanctuary, and had no compassion upon young men, or maiden, old men, or him that stooped for age, he gave them all into his hand. 18. And all the vessels of the house of God, great and small and the treasures of the house of Jehovah, and the treasures of the King, and of his Princes, all these he brought to Babylon. 19 And they burned the house of God, and broke down the wall of Jerusalem and burned all the palaces thereof with fire, and destroyed all the goodly vessels thereof. 20. And them that had escaped from the sword carried he away to Babel, where they were servants to him and his Sons, until the reign of the Kingdom of Persia. 21. To fulfil the word of Jehovah by the mouth of Jeremiah until the land had enjoyed her Sabbaths: for as long as she lay desolate she kept Sabbath to fulfil Seavensy years. Jer. 29.10. Thus saith Jehovah that after the seaventy years be accomplished at Babylon, I will visit you, and perform my good word toward you, in causing you to return to this place. 11. For I know the thoughts that I think towards you, saith Jehovah, thoughts of peace, and not of evil, to give you an expected end. 12. (a) See, how this is a commentary on Levit. 26.40, 41, 42. Also how daniel's prayer looks to Moses and Jeremiah: and that God remembers his Covenant as is seen, Dan. 9.24, etc. Observe how promises quicken to prayer. We should be more studious and conversant in them than we are Our slightness will hinder much our consolation in sad hours, read Ezek. 36 31, etc. They must pray and did pray: but the blood of the covenant brought them from Babel, Zach. 9.11. Then shall ye call upon me, and ye shall go and pray unto me, and I will hearken unto you. 13. And ye shall seek me, and find me, when ye shall search for me with all your heart. 14. And I will be found of you, saith Jehovah, and I will turn away your captivity, I will gather you from all Nations, and from all places whither I havedriven you, saith Jehovah, and I will bring you again unto the place whence I caused you to be carried away captive. Pertinently it may be here remembered, that the Son of God by his Spirit in the Prophet Esaias, foretold above two hundred years, how Cyrus' King of Persia should conquer Babel, send Judah home from captivity, and give letters patents for re-edifying Jerusalem, and the Temple. Esay 44.24. Thus saith Jehovah thy Redeemer, and he that form thee from, the womb, I am Jehovah that maketh all things, that stretcheth forth the heavens alone, that spreadeth abroad the earth by myself. 25. That frustrated the tokens of the liars and maketh diviners mad: that turneth wisemen backward, and maketh their knowledge foolish. 26. That confirmeth the word of his servant and performeth the counsel of his Messengers, that saith to Jerusalem. Thou shalt be inhabited, and to the Cities of Judah, ye shall be built, and I will raise up the decayed places thereof. 27. That saith to the deep be dry, and I will dry up thy Rivers. 28. That saith of Cyrus, (b) Read more of Cyrus in Esay 45.1, 2, 3, 4 13. whom God raised up by a strong hand to conguer Babel, to return Israel home, and to build the City Jerusalem. He is my Shepherd, and shall perform all my pleasure, even saying to Jerusalem, thou shalt be built, and to the Temple, thy foundation shall be laid. This is the prophecy, now follows the History. 2 Chron 36.22. Now in the year of Cyrus' (c) We must consider here that Cyrus & Darius Dan 9.1. were fellows in government, who joined their Forces against Babel, as it is prophesied, Esay 21. Go up against Babel, O Elam, besiege Babel O Media. And mark here by conferring, Dan. 9.25. Cyrus' his proclamation, is that going forth of the word of commandment of returning the people, of building the Temple, and city: as when Daniel was in humble prayer, than Cyrus was drawing his Letters Patents, even at the same instant of time: and the Angel Gab●iel is disparched from heaven with a joyful message to tell Daniel so. Let us think of it, upon humbling ourselves surely some message is coming from heaven. King of Persia, that the word of Jehovah, spoken by the mouth of Jeremiah might be accomplished, Jehovah stirred up the Spirit of Cyrus' King of Persia, that he made a proclamation throughout all his Kingdom, and put it also in writing, saying. 23. Thus saith Cyrus' King of Persia, all the kingdoms of the earth, hath Jehovah the God of Heaven given me, and he hath charged me to build him an house in Jerusalem, which is in Judah, Who is there among you of all his people? Jehovah his God be with him and let him go up. QUest. 2. What Collections do you take notice of in these Scriptures of Moses, and the Prophets? Answ. For brevity's sake, I will name but few, and those main principles out of the doctrine of Christ that Moses spoke in Leviticus. 1. Let this be observed of all that have their senses exercised in the word of righteousness, to confer History with prophecy, whether in promises and threaten: We shall see God to be jehovah in all: to be Being, and to give being, as to all his works, so to his words, whether they concern persons, families, Cities, Churches or Kingdoms. 2. Whereas it is said, that jehovah spoke to the Patriarches, and to Mo●es (in all his five Books) in most places we must conceive it spoken of the second person, of the holy Trinity the Redeemer, the Angel of the covenant, to whom the heavenly Father hath committed all authority and power as Mediator: yea also this attribute of Jehovah throughout all the old Testament, must be so understood, some few places excepted, wherein the first person, or the third, is also to be considered. Examine this by Psalm 18.49. & 117. with Romans 15.9, 10, 11, Psalm 68.18. with Ephes. 4.8. Psalm 97.7. with Heb. 1.6.1 Cor. 10, 4.9. with Num. 21.6. Esa. 6.9, 10. with john 12.41. Our Lords most heavenly speeches in the Apostle John's Gospel will show us the reason of all, cha. 5.17. and so forwards. 3. Among all the corruptions (from the first Adam) that is in us, note this, that we hold Christ his Kingdom and Ordinances anathema, this is expressed by Moses, there is in us a contrariness to God, (a) confer Leu. 26.15. with Zac. 11.8. These terms, abhorring, loathing, etc. of the old Testament is in effect the same of the new: the preaching of the Gospel to them savoured death, unto death, and so it doth in the days of the New Testament, God's people must be diligent to mark phrases, though different in words, yet the same in force and value. a despising his judgements, abhorring, loathing and hating him, his word, statutes and commandments mandements. The New Testament speaks the same as the old, when it saith, the wisdom of the flesh causeth enmity against the Law of God, by nature enemies in our mind by evil workers, also haters of God, fighters against God, and such a stubborness is annexed, that we are unreconcilable. Much may be said of this in the sad effects thereof, that men meeting with cross providences, when his folly perverts his way, his heart frets against Jehovah, that is, his breath and being, and saying he is a hard master, and that his ways are not equal: yea alas, what do the regenerate find in themselves of murmuring, fretting, impatience, distrust, etc. But the second Adam dissolves the works of the devil, by his spirit in the administration of the Gospel of his Kingdom, heals all in the elect, Ezek. 36.25, 26, 27-37. Mich. 7.19. 2 Cor. 5 11-15 & chap. 10 4, 5, 6 etc. 4. Whereas in Levit. 26. Moses saith from Christ, sicknesses, diseases, sorrows on the labours of our hands, the teeth of wild beasts, pestilence, famine, sword, captivity, etc. avenge the quarrel of his Covenant: we must advisedly understand, This is not meant of a covenant of works, but the covenant of his Grace, the laws of which they have despised and abhorred: and so in Deut. 5. & 29 Jer. 34. all of it, and many other places there is mention made of the covenant, and it is but the renewing or dilating on that, as is noted Exod. 24. which they violated. For the whole covenant is, Jehovah is our God in Christ, and that we vouch him so to be in love unto him, and in love to our neighbour, as it is said, to love the Lord our God with all our heart, mind, soul and strength etc. and our neighbour as ourselves: and this is ratified by the blood of the covenant, Exod. 24. And they not obeying his Gospel-Law, is as much as to say, we will not have this man to reign over us; therefore it is said, those mine enemies (and Israel were Christ's own citizens, Luke 19.27.) that would not have me the Heir to reign over them, bring them hither and slay them before me, Luke 19 27. 1 Thess. 2.16. & 4, 5, 6, 7, 8. Christ Jesus our Lord as eternal God to Moses, and the Prophets, and Christ jesus our Lord as God-man in his New Testament in his own speeches, and in his Apostles doctrine doth not differ: and when our great Rabboni had reduced the ten commandments into two, than he saith on these two commandments hang all the Law and the Prophets; and so where it is often said, Obey my voice, Jer. 7.23. it must be understood of the obedience of faith, (receiving Christ, and believing in him, and obeying him, John 3.36.) which despised, The wrath oh the Lamb is great wrath, Apoc. 1.16. brings the heaviest plagues, as those eight and twentieth fold punishments, Leu. 26. and thoses curses, Deut. 28. Luke 23.28, 29, 30. and so Exod. 23.20, 21. and Matth. 17.5. do explicate on the other in sense and meaning: and John 6.27. must be brought to this undurstanding. 5. The Law of the Lord is a converting Law, it restores the soul, that is, it is the word of Christ, by which, and by which only he doth by his Spirit work in the hearts of men to turn them from darkness to light from the power of Satan to God, for it is the power of God to salvation, restoring, converting, regenerating the soul to know, believe, fear, and love Jehovah their God, and to love their neighbour. And the New Testaments doctrine and commandment is the same, 1 John 3.24. & 4.21. Faith and Love is the Pattern of wholesome words, (or healing doctrine) ever taught from the beginning. This is the Vrim and Thummim which Christ puts in the heart of all them that the Father draws unto him: the Apostle (alluding to the High Priests Garments) phraseth the Breast plate of Faith and Love. They that despise Christ's Gospel, that is, his Law, Esay 2.3. & 11.9. & 42.4. despise the doctrine of regeneration, and such cannot mortify their passions, but will by't and devour one another (Esay 11. much of it, Gal. 5.15.) as Cain did Abel. See how and why their Story is cited, 1 John 3. And by that we may see, how easily reducible all that Epistle is to Genesis, yea to all Moses, and if this Epistle, than all the New Testament. QUest. 3. What other Collections? Answ. The Scriptures of the Prophet's show. 1. That jehovah of hosts, the God of Israel had made Nebucharetzar Monarch of all nations, and that the Kingdom of Babel should keep, them the State of judah in subjection, Seavensy years. And that Nabuchadnezzar was great by conquest and not by inheritance. 2. That the Kings of the Kingdom of Babel for those seventy years should be in number three, which are these, the first is said to be Nabuchadnezzar, the second is his son, the third is his son's son. Other Scriptures show their names, that Evil-Merodach was the Son, and his Son's son was Bel-shazzar. 3. We are to note, that part of the third year of Jehojakim King of judah, and more of the fourth is the first year of Nebuchadrezar, as Dan. 1.1. and Jer. 25. compared do show And in this first year of Nebuchadrezar, King Jehojakim, Daniel, Hanariah, Azariah, Mishael and other Nobles were captived. This is the first captivity. But the King was sent home again. 4 Here it may be convenient to remember that the heathen annals and chronicles in many things are no true relations, because they confound the Stories of elam's, Arams, Ashurs', and Babel's Monarchies: For now Ashur was no Monarch, but was under Babel. Ashur had been a great Tree, Ezekiah 31. But now Babel was the Tree, Daniel 4. And Aram had been a Monarchy afore Ashur, and Elam had been a Monarchy afore them all, Gen. 14. But it may be Nimrod or Belus was the first hunter after tyrannical Monarchy. QUest. 4. Did all submit themselves to this Conqueror, Nebuchadnezar, that God had established and advanced over them? Answ. Jechonias King of Judah, by the advice and counsel of Jeremiah, submitted; who though captived, and many of the people, yet they had many comforts following them to Babel. 1. They were the basket of good figs, whom God would greatly respect: Ezekiel, Mordecai, and many godly went in this captivity. 2. Although they were captived, and wanted the glorious sanctuary, and its public ordinances, yet (a) The ble●sed glory of Jehovah from his place in divers remove came to them. Read Ezek. 9 & 10. & 11. This might put them in mind of the utter removing of his vineyard from them to the Gentiles, as the Lord told them near the ending of the seventy seven. Christ who is the truth of all the shadows was to them a Sanctuary, whom in spirit they worshipped, (b) In the captivity Christ recompensed the loss of public ordinances with most gracious providences, Ezek. 11.16. and much of Dan●el, who was then a great favourite: and would be as joseph, and so his three cousins Dan. 3 Hanamah, Misacl, and Az●iab, they would be great comforts to the brethren captived. Many precious promises are to this company, both of protection, and return from captivity. 3. They and their children should be chief in restoring religion at the return from captivity. This company are the second captivity. QUest 6. Who resisted? Answ. The Kings of E●ypt. Tyrus and others, which brought upon them ruin and desolation. Jehojakim returning home, purposed rebellion, which was to his destruction. Zedekiah and his people would not hearken to the word of the Lord, and to the persuasions of Jeremiah, but believed false prophets, and Zedekiah broke his Oath of subjection to the King of Babel, and rebelled, whom with his subjects God severely plagued, by famine, pestilence, sword, and captivity. This company are the basket of vile and bad figs, and the third captivity. QUest. 7. What more may be observed? Answ. Here we are diligently to mind, What God did with those staves (c) Mark also the metaphor of cruel plough men Psal. 129. rods, axes, saws with which he did beat, saw, and hue his Church withal. Each enemy did rage and smite a little while, till God who is wounderful in counsel and excellent in working (d) Esay 10.7. etc. Deut. 30. 2, 3, 4. etc. Levit. 26.41. Mic 7.9 Psal. 119.67.71. Esay 27.9. Hebr. 12.10 performed his (not their) intent, work and purpose. Then upon the (e) This duty in sincerity performed ever sped well, God speaking peace to his people, 2 Chr. 20. Dan 7.1 Sam. 7. Psalm 84. Hest 4.16. humiliation of his people he always heard their cry, (f) He had ever respect to his glorious and great Name, Exod. 34. Num. 14. Deut. 32. Ezek. 20. and this the Saints perpetually remember to God, Psalm 74. & 79 149. his promise and covenant is ever working. and remembered his covenant in Christ, breaking the head and headplot of the seed of the Serpent, in his unsearchable judgements (g) Consider Psalm 2. & 110. through all stories at the word, from Kain to all that follow his ways. putting away all the wicked of the earth like dross treading and trampling them in the (h) Let this text of Esay 63. be cited no more impertinently, not erronionsly, Apoc. 19 teacheth to expound it. Wine-press of his anger and fury, and overthrowing Kingdom after Kingdom with great desolation, as it is said, Lo I begin to bring evil on the City whereupon my name is called, and should ye be utterly unpunished? Read Jer. 23. & Esay 30. Very many more are the observations which these Scriptures of Moses and the Prophets will afford to the wild Olive branches: but to the godly and deligent student they will be familiar. QUest. 8. Was not the Kingdom of Solomon restored after the captivity? Answ. 1. No, They were told that they should never have an earthly Kingdom any more, for God had sworn that Jechonias of salomon's posterity (and of the direct line of the Royal descent) should die childless, and that none of his seed nor of Jehojakim his father should bear rule any more in Judah, Jer. 22. & 36.30. 2. Also God had told them in Babel, that the 4 Kingdoms signified by the four metals of the Image, & by the four beasts Dan. 2. & 7. should overrule their outward estate, and that the Crown and Kingdom should be overturned, overturned, overturned, and cast to the ground, till he came to whom it belonged, that is Christ the King. QUest. 9 If salomon's race was ended in Jechonias, how was Gods promise fulfilled that Christ should come of David, according to the flesh? Ans. David (besides Solomon) had a son of Bathsheba called Nathan, and of him our Lord Jesus Christ linealy descended. QUest. 10. If Jechonias died childeless, how is it said that he begat Salathiel, 1 Chron. 3.17. and Mat. 1.12. Answ. Salathiel was the Son of Jechonias by legal right of succession to the kingdom, not son by nature: and so Ezra teacheth 1 Chron. 3. That Jechonias being in (a) See how Tremelius translates 1 Chron 3.17. the term Assi● is not a proper name. straight prison adopted Salathiel his heir. And in the same manner the Evangelist Matthew handles our Lord's case, declaring that he was right heir to the kingdom of Israel. QUest. 11. Which are the Kingdoms signified by the four metals, and by the four Beasts, Dan. 2. & 7. Answ. By the Head of Gold, and the Lion is signified Babel, the Breast and arms of silver, and the Bear, signify the Medes and Persians: the Belly and sides of Brass, and the spotted Leopard, the kingdom of Graecia: the thighs and legs of iron and feet of iron and clay, and the Beast with ten horns the kings of Gog in the north, and the kings of the South. QUest. 12. What was the end of those wicked kingdoms that oppressed the Saints the holy Hebrews? Answ. The whole Image was beaten to dust and made as chaff before the wind: the four Beasts were cast into the fire unquenchable before the Son of man came in the clouds. QUest. 13. What reasons may be rendered, why God did abolish some of Moses Ceremonies, and salomon's race, and everthrew Temple, City, and kingdom? Answ. Israel which is after the flesh looked not to the sure mercies of David in the eternal throne and kingdom promised to them in Christ. But that which was for their welfare became to them, through misbelief, an occasion of falling: they stumbled at the Stumbling Stone, and seeking by the outward work to be justified (as Esay 1. & 58.59 & Psa. 50. complains) and made their Belly their God, and minded outward and earthly things: therefore God did shake all those poor rudiments by Babel, (read Jer. 3.16. & 52.13.17. etc.) and once more finally said he would that they might be better persuaded to embrace the New Covenant, that God had promised to make with them: to look to Christ the end of the Law, and to entertain his easy yoke, and to enter into his rest, to be more spiritually minded, to look to him the true Solomon, and to his Priesthood and kingdom. QUest. 14. How many years was it since the 19 of Nebuchadnezar, or the third captivity, to the end of the Captivity. Answ. Full 50 years: then the golden head was made dust, the Lion thrown in the fire. Then Cyrus K. of Persia overthrew Babel, The eighth Chapter of Dan. for the fufilling of it belongs to the time of the Seventy Sevens, and likewise much of chap 2. and 7. and made a decree for the return of the people and building of the City and Temple in the first year of his Reign. QUest. 15. What Scriptures are contained in those 50. years. Ans. Part of the last chap of 2 Kings, and part of the last chap. of 2 Chr. much of Jeremiah, and much of Ezekiel, so much as is noted to be after the 11. of Zedekiah, or the burning of the Temple: the 4, 5, 7, & 8. (a) chapters of Daniel, the prophecy of Obadiah. The Annotations upon the Questions and Answers of the eighth CHAPTER. QUest. N. 4. Moses saith from Christ] People should be taught this constantly that the Son of God, to whom the Father hath committed all authority and power, so as Mediator, he gave the Law. And when we are careless or wilful and break the law, and do not obey it, than we dishonour the Son: for this is the holy revealed will of the Lord that all men should honour the Son, as they honour the father, Exoa. 23. Mat. 17.5. So it is said of Servants, they serve and obey Christ when they perform their duties in conscience to their masters: the same is said of wives and children. And so we must say of all relations divine and humane in all the Ten Words, Mark Jeremy chap. 34. all of it. That is a great Word which is spoken. Obdience is better than Sacrifice. This well understood will make to vanish the term Legalists, and the vain doctrines, that have been about keeping and walking in the Law of the Lord: as though it were not made for the righteous to be a rule of life; but we may not once to think to be justified by the doing of it, for the Law is more spiritual, than the best Christian in the world. But we ought to be very careful that we walk in his holy covenant that our hearts by his spirit may comfort us, that we are honest subjects of the Kingdom of so good and gracious a King: And let such take heed that will not thus be Legalists that the Lord Jesus Christ the King, do not send forth writs against them as outlaws, that will not obey his commandments, but be as untamed Heifers: for he hath (as we see) many Marshals (such as is sicknesses, diseases, etc.) to attend him to serve his processes, from which there can be no escaping, if once the decree come forth. But do I say, no escaping? yea it may be upon godly humiliation not only escaping; if not that, yet abatement of the chastisement, or else all will be sanctified to us, that all shall be for our good: for he that is our King and Law giver is also our sacrifice of propiti●ation and reconciliation to all that judge themselves, and confess their sins, and forsake their iniquities, for he is merciful and just in his promises to pardon them that by the assistance of his Spirit walk in his righteous Law. All his providences are to humble, and to bring us to the obedience of faith in him our holy Mediator, and blessed are they that do his commandments, Apoc 22.14. Ibid. N. 5. The Law of the Lord is a cnoverting Law] The Law Ceremonial and Moral was a regenerating and converting Law by the spirit of Christ to them of the old Testament. Although the Lord Jesus ending all the Ceremonial Law in his offering up of himself as a most perfect sin-offering, and his blood a perfect sprinkling, is our complete cleansing and justification, yet still teacheth us the Moral law, as his New Testament showeth to obey God in him, whom all the Israel of God must know, that God the Father hath made him Lord and Christ; as to be our Priest and Teacher, so to be our King and Commander: yea as to be any one of them, so to be all of them to us. And all this is to present us to God an holy people, 1 Corinth. 15. ult. coloss 1.28. John 17. The Law was not given by Christ with that terror to be to us only a Law of works (as many understand works) but it was a Gospel Law, teaching of Faith and Love which is in Christ Jesus: and it was given in terror to make men fear to despise the Son of God as Mediator. All the preaching of God to the Patriarches, and by Moses, and the Prophets, was to bring man back again to God by preaching Jesus Christ the Mediator from God, and his mediation was ever manifested since the fall of our first parents. And our Lords Apostles taught the same holy doctrine among all nations for the obedience of faith, read Rom. 1.5. and 16.25.26. Nicodemus a Teacher in Israel should have known all these things. john 3. Quest. 7. and Answ. And should ye be utterly unpunished] When the Church is afflicted then let the world look for a scourge: for in the prosperity of the Church the world fares the better: let the world bless the Church, it shall then have many outward comforts. The world should now be wise to consider, that to vex the Church of God, to curse Abraham is the ready way to bring plagues on itself. But it is said the whole world lies in wickedness, and so it will still be, and we must expect it. Quest. 8. and Answ. N. II. Overturned, etc.] That speech of jer. 22.29. O earth, earth, earth, writ jechonias childeless: and that speech of Ezek. 21.27. Overturned, overturned, overturned, must be diligently observed together, the one for the ending of salomon's house, the other for the Kingdom. Although God overturned salomon's Kingdom, and ended his progeny, yet he failed not David of his truth, and mercy promised, but he raised up One, even Christ, our of his loins, after he was dead, and set him upon his throne, and his throne shall stand for ever, Luke 1.32.33. which opens Psalm 89. And Gods promise to David, 2 Sam. 7. And concerning the refusal of salomon's house in jechonias, and the choosing of the house of Nathan, mark the words of the blessed and beloved virgin, Luke 1.51. He hath showed strength with his arm, and he hath scattered the proud in the imaginations of their heart; he hath put down the mighty from their seats and exalted them of low degree. Quest. 10. and answ. in a threefold Charge] The mighty and great God saith Jer. 22. Words by his servant the prophet ending the succession of Solomon with greater proclamation to all the world than David's oath at the first had brought it into honour. The ending of salomon's house was one of the weightest matters in all the government of the world, to show that Christ his Kingdom is not of this world, Mr. Bro. in Manus. Quest. 11. and answ. and the Lion] When the State of judah, by being conversant with Lions, became a Lioness, and brought forth Lions that roared on the subjects, than God brought upon them the Lion-Babel, and other hunters who spread their nets from them, Ezekiel 19 Ibid Kings of Gog in the North] By Gog and Magog is meant the kings of the North the fourth Beast, or the iron leg, Ezek. 38. & 39 Dan. 2. and 7. skilful aught we to be to discern the proper Gog and Magog from that spoken mystically, Apoc. 20. Quest. 12. and answ. The four Beasts] To the carnal and worldly minded the wicked Kingdoms of this world seem glorions powers, as in the image to Nabuchadnezzar: but to the spiritual minded they are as savage Beasts that go to a fire unquenchable. So the state of mystical Babylon is glorious in the world. Apoc. 17.4. but their end shall be as Sodoms, Apoc. 14.10. & 19.20. Quest. 31. and answ. The sure mercies of David] That glorious Temple of Stone, and all Moses Ceremonies, and that golden Throne of Solomon, and that store of gold, and plenty of silver as stones, strong Cities, and Chariot Cities, stately buildings, forty thousand stalls for Horses, plenty of all provision, royal furniture, and all princely accommodations, curious delights of eyes and ears, etc. were not the sure mercies, and holy things of David, For all was vanishing into vanity, when Rehoboam shown himself a fool, both in matter of State and corrupting the Gospel, 1 Kings 10. Eccles. 2.19. The sure me eyes are showed to the circumcision, and to the uncircumcision, Esay 55.1, 2, etc. 1 Pet. 1.3, 4, 5. 2 Cor. 4.18. Acts 13.34, 35. etc. And all the Epistle to the Hebrews, Esay 57.15. & 66.1, 2 Mat. 5. & 6. & 7. Hosea 1.7. Z●ch. 4.6. And the true gold and clothing is from the true Solomon, and the firm building is on Christ the Rock, Apoc. 3.18. Mat. 7. That these things might be graffed, and as nails fastened in our hearts, look further within the veil of these matters. Salomons wives overwrought him to suffer, and by his charges to build idol places, whereupon he saw he had occasioned Gods threatening for the renting and overthrow of his Kingdom, and foreseeing the destruction of the Temple, City, and Kingdom, he writeth his Gospel, That all under the Sun is vain, and the Kingdom of Christ is not of this world, but the promise of the eternal Throne to David was spiritually to be taken, and to his Sceptre all must yield subjection, that hope to stand in judgement, when he calleth all to account for their works, with every secret thing, whether it be good or evil. And salomon's case alone, (noble in the vanity of this world, and the first, and the last that had all this world at will) might have taught Herod, Pilate, Caesar's and Concision, that the pomp of this world is not fit to breed poverty of spirit, to breed mourning, to breed meekness, to breed hunger and thirst after righteousness, to find the Kingdom of heaven. And that the King eternal, invisible, blesseth men only to his invisible Kingdom. Ibid. Seeking by the outward work to be justified.] Opus operatum, bodily exercise, even this, now at this day is the foolish conceit and practise of all the carnal Christians in the world, Eccles. 5.1. The coming unto God by faith in Christ, as Habel, they care not for, as Kain. In the story of Kain and Abel, the carriage of all deceitful hypocrites, and true Worshippers is contained. Outward religion may be the vessel of an incarnate Devil, as well as of a sanctified soul: it is as capable of hypocrisy, of murder and uncleanness, and all iniquity, as of sincerity etc. as in Kain, Iscariot, and the Whore in the proverbs (Prov. 7.14.) whom the ten Tribes followed as an Ox to the slaughter, and the whore (in Apoc. 17.) whom ten Kingdoms followed drunken with the wine of her Fornication The opinion of selfsufficiency, and resting in outward performances brought many plagues to the whole house of Israel, and to captivity, as Psal. 50 etc. etc. And at last scattered them (as Kain) into the four winds of the heaven, and made their habitation desolate to this day. And this doctrine of bodily exercise, and men's traditions brought apostasy as a plague, to the Christian Churches, 1 Tim. 4.1. to 8. The warming our hearts with such sparks will make us lie down with cold comfort in darkness and sorrow: For it is a forgetting of God, and they have base, barren, and unworthy conceits of the Holy One of Israel, that think he will comply with such idolatrous, and easy devotions, for they could not do less to an idol. Pelagian heresies, and bodily exercise will ear out all power of godliness: the one is the doctrine of popery, and the other is the religion of popery: compare Col. 2 23. with c●ap. 3.1, 2, 3. and mind Esay 1. Psalm 50. Jer. 7. Ibid. and once more finally] Dan. 9.27. shows by whom. And this speech yet once more, signifieth the removing of things shaking as made with hands, that the things which shake not way remain. Wherefore seeing we receive a Kingdom which cannot be shaken, let us hold Grace by which we may serve God aright with reverence and godly fear, for our God is a consuming sire, Heb. 12. Hag. 2. Mark how this speech opens, Dan 2.44 and chap. 7. Therefore abaddon's Kingdom is to be held anath●ma, of all true Christians, for building of there which Christ hath shaken, and anulled. But what care Princes for these things, they will rather embrace the enchanting whore, Apoc 17. than make the word of God their delight, but Christ hath and will burn and shake their Kingdoms and Common Weals. Ibid. David foretold them this.] David shown his house could not be upright with God, but would be thorns, and must be burnt: and that therefore they should expect a better King and Kingdom. So the revolting and wavering Hebrews through misbelief concerning Christ's Kingdom and Priesthood would prove to be but thorns and briers whose end was burning, Psalm 22 & 40. & 95. 2 Sam. 23. Observe Ethan, all Psal. 89. Heb. 6.8. & 10 29, 30, 31. Quest. 14. and answ. and made a decree for return] as Jehov●h promised that a remnant should return, so he performed. For Israel hath not been forsaken, nor judah of his God, of jehovah of hosts, though their land was filled with fin against the Holy One of Israel, jer. 51.5. CHAP. IX. With Questions, Answers, and Annotations, for the time of the seventy Sevens, in Dan. 9 Showing how Redemption and the Covenant of grace was taught and opposed in this Space of time. QUest. What remaining Text doth yet continue the golden chain of times, with which Gods eternal Counsel, and riches of his glorious mystery in Christ, was further revealed to the Elect? Answer. Dan. 9.24, 25, 26, 27. This Scripture is a Text full of shining glory, overshining all the Doctrine of the old Testament, and an Abridgement of the new. QUest. 2. Repeat the Scripture, with some more of that Chapter, as a preparation to observe the Angels heavenly message the better? Answer, verse 1. In the first year of Darius, the son of Achasuerosh, of the seed of Madai, in which he was made King over the Realm of the Chaldeans. 2. In the first year of his Reign, ● Daniel marked by books the number of the years, whereof the word of Jehovah, had been unto Jeremiah the Prophet, for the accomplishing in the ruins of Jerusalem seventy years. 3. And I turned my face to the Lord God, and sought by Prayer and Supplication, with Fasting, with sackcloth and ashes. 3. And I prayed unto the eternal my God, and made my confession and said, O Lord, the great and dreadful God keeping the Covenant and mercy to them that love him, and to them that keep his commandments. 5. We have sinned, and we have committed iniquity, and have done wickedly, and have rebelled, even by departing from thy Precepts, and from thy judgements. 6 Neither have we harkened unto thy Servants the Prophets, which spoke in thy name to our Kings, to our Princes, and to our fathers, and to all the people of the Land, &c etc. 20. And as I was yet speaking, and confessing my sin, and the sin of my people Israel, and presenting my supplications before the eternal my God, for the holy Mountain of my God. 21. Even as I was yet speaking in prayer, the man Gabriel, whom I had seen afore in a vision came unto me, flying with vehemency until he touched me at the time of the Evening oblation. 22. And he gave understanding, and talked with me, and said, Daniel, I am now come forth to give thee skill of understanding. 23. At the beginninng of thy prayers came forth the word which I am come to tell thee, because thou art greatly beloved; Therefore conceive the word, and perceive the clear vision. 24. Seventy sevens of years are exactly accounted for thy people, and for thy holy City, to finish Trespass-offerings, and to end sin-offerings, and to make reconciliation for iniquity, and to bring righteousness everlasting, and to seal vision and Prophet, and to show (a) Vi. M. Bro. translation of Daniel in English, printed at Hanaw. Ebr. Messiah. CHRIST, the Holy of Holiest. 25. Know then, and understand from the outgoing of the word to restore and build jerusalem unto (b) Ebr. Messiah, so v. 26. CHRIST the King, shall be seven sevens, and sixty and two sevens. In the other it shall be restored and builded, Street and wall, and troublous shall these times be. 26. In that after the Sixty and two Seven CHRIST shall † The sufferings of the Messiah, allusion often touched in the new Testament, Acts 26.23. The angel sealeth Balaams' Prophesic concerning Kittim, Italy, to be the crucifier of Christ Num. 24.24. hereby. suffer, but not for himself. Thereupon the City, and Holy Place shall he destroy, and the Kings own people in the next generation, and their end shall be with a Flood, and at the end of the war shall be a final judgement of utter desolations. 27. But he shall confirm the covenant for the * Not for the jews only, as Luc. 22.20. but for the many, as Mat. 26 28. Rom. 5.15.1 john 2, 2. many, the last Seven and half that seven shall bring to an end Sacrifice & Offering. Afterward by an Army of unclean, loathsome infidels he shall make a desolation, even until utter destruction, and final judgement come flowing on the desolate. QUest. 3. What special Observations are in this Scripture? Ans. As the motions of the heavens declare the glory of God: so the army like ordered times in God's word, is worthy of all admiration, all serving Christ. This Scripture doth show the finishing of the golden chain of times, of the old Testament, in a pleasant sabbatical account, The Seventy Sevens are from daniel's prayer for freedom from Babel, until the Son eternal, the King of glory doth purchase an eternal freedom for all that believe the glorious Gospel. 2. This Prophecy was given in the first year of Cyrus and Darius, who overthrew Babel's Kingdom, and sent the Jews home that year with a most comfortable Proclamation of Subsidy over CXX. Provinces, and with commandment 〈◊〉 building Jerusalem and the Temple, which with the wall, and the Streets of the City, were re-edified within the Seven Sevens. 3. This Scripture is a glorious revelation from heaven, concerning Christ the King, the Holy of Holy: who by his just, peaceable, and spiritual government, uncontrollable teaching, and never ending Priesthood, should finish trespass offering, and end sin offering, and make reconciliation for iniquity, and bring righteousness everlasting: and seal, that is, confirm all the visions and Prophecies, that he was the end that all aimed at: himself being the true Prophet, Sacrificer and King, altar and Sacrifice, so in himself ending all abraham's, Moses, and the Temples Ceremonies, both persons and things. 4. Here is declared whither the benefit of all Christ's sufferings tend, that he suffered not for himself, but for us, the just for the unjust, he was wounded for our transgressions, and broken for our iniquities, he gave himself for us, an offering, and a Sacrifice of a sweet smelling savour to God. 5. God's people for endeavouring to perform any worthy work for the advancement of the Gospel, and the common weal, must expect troubles and all opposition of slanders, reproaches, false accusations, and whatsoever else, the seed of the Serpent can possibly do, the books of Ezra and Nehemiah, show this in re-edifying Jerusalem, the wall and the Temple. 6. Whereas the Angel told Daniel, that he was sent to make him skilful of understanding, we must know, that Daniel knew all but the time which bringeth a greater clearness to all: therefore the appointed time, the very year, day and hour of fulfilling this prophecy is not a trivial, or an uncertain thing, but is that which the Angel calleth skill of understanding: and therefore he doubleth a charge to the Prophet to understand and consider. 7. This is remarkable as by the coming from Egypt, recorded for the very day, the day of the promise to Abraham may be certainly known which was the self same day, 430 afore. so the day of our Lord, death being known, which was answerable to the promise and Passeover, this Prophecy also of the Seventy Sevens, being exactly 490 years afore it, may be known to agree in time with it. Glorious is the wisdom of God, herein to honour his feasts with most heavenly stories, that promise and seal, truth and figure might mèet together. 8. This Oration of the Angel showeth how long Sem's Tents should hold their glory, and be accounted holy, and that at the end of the Seventy Sevens, or 490 years, The ending of the Seventy Sevens, the time of reformation. the heathen should have the Partition wall of ceremonies broken down, and the hand writing of Ordinances * Epi●es. 2.14, 15.16. Col. 2.14. blotted out, and the old enmity between Jew and Gentile † Isa. 11. and 60.17, 18. Ep●●●s. 2.15. abolished, and be brought into equal covenant, and that Christ the King would destroy his own Nation, and demolish City and Temple with perpetual devastions as with the Flood of Noah, and make a new Jerusalem from heaven, because all Nations could not depend on the City in Canaan, read Isa. 63 23. 9 Observe that the Romans for killing of Christ, are called like the unclean beasts in Leviticus, unclean loathsome Infidels, and Rome itself, of all Cities in the world, for that, is specially cursed, the Apocalypse is a full declaration of this. 10. Whereas the Angel saith, Christ shall confirm the Covenant, for the many, and shall end Moses ceremonies, and by his only Sacrifice once offered bring in everlasting justification or freedom from sins, guiltiness, and desert, Popery is to be abhorred and accursed, that doth revive Moses ceremonies, the handwriting of Ordinances, with repetition of Priest, Altar and Sacrifice propitiatory. And we in the Lord's Supper do protest against Jews and Popery, that CHRIST ended all by his death once performed, through which he is to all the faithful a most complete and perfect reconciliation for all iniquity. QUest. 4. Who gave heed to this word of Prophecy spoken by the holy Angel from heaven? Answ. The Forty nine thousand, Ezra? that left. Babel for Jerusalem, with the holy Prophets and Governors, Zorobabel, Nehemiah, Haggai Z●h●ri●h, ●●●alachi, and our Lords, fathers and kindred f●om Z●●b●●le●, Mat 1. Luk● 3. and the Ma●●habean martyrs, and so many of Israel, as had hope of salvation thought of Je●●●●●●m in all places 〈◊〉 they were scattered, read Jeremiah Chap 51.50. QUest. 5. Who also in the new Testament? Answ. Zacharias, and his wife Elizabeth, John the Baptist, old Simeon, and Anna the daughter of Phanuel, and many in Israel and Jerusalem, that waited for Christ, the hope and consolation of Israel, and Jews before the full ending of the Seventy Sevens came from all countries to Jerusalem, looking for the Kingdom of heaven, then to appear, as Daniel foretold, chap 2. and 7. and 9 And John Elias cried, and our Lord, and his disciples preached, that, The Kingdom of heaven was come, Mat. 3.2. and 10.7. Luke 19.11. QUest. 6. Who were enemies that did hate and cruelly mock and persecute the doctrine of God and his people? Answ. The wicked Kingdom signfied by the Bear, Leopard and beast with ten horns, Hamans' wickedness, and Sanballats and others under the Government of the Breast and Arms of silver must be remembered. QUest. 7. Who did neglect and apostate from this prophecy of so great salvation? Answ: Many in Israel that associated with Sanballat, and Malachi showeth that some began to be Atheists, and to speak stout and wearisome words against God and his doctrine. The Angel foretold of * Antiochus caused stars to fall. D●n. 8. & 11. so did the tail of the Dragon, the new Anti●chus, Ap●c. 12.2. Thes 2. The fourth beast cast down truth to the ground, Dan ●. forsakers, and wicked dealears against the holy Covenant (of daniel's own people) under the iron legs and fourth Beast. Also Zacharias spoke of wicked Shepherds that loathed Christ and his Kingdom. And that came to pass in those Heretics and false Teachers, the Sadduces, Scribes and Pharisees. They were great oppugners of all Gabriels heavenly message, as in all the Evangelists the Acts, and in the Epistles to Rome, and to Galatia, to the Hebrews is seen. QUest. 8. How did daniel's holy people find God's goodness in cleaving to this Doctrine? Answer. By faith they obtained good report with God: and God was not ashamed of them to be called their God. By faith the Jews in Esther escaped the edge of the sword. Also we are to consider, that Zachariah, Haggai, and Malachi enlarge gabriel's Oration for many things, that a fountain for sin and for uncleanness should be opened by the King and Sacrificer, even jehovah of hosts, that should glorify the second Temple with his presence. And that although the low Jerusalem and Temple should be destroyed, a larger should be builded, and a better raised up, And the Covenant shall be confirmed, with the many Gentiles from East to West, among whom in every place, incense of prayer, and pure offering of lips, praising of God shall be offered unto his holy name; That Him, the Angel of the Covenant, the Sun of righteousness shall arise with healing in his beams, and that God enrolls in the book of life all that fear him, and thought upon his name, to glorify them in that day of the better resurrection, to shine as the brightness of the firmament, and as the stars for ever and ever. Quest. 9 How was God's service executed on the Seed of the Serpent, the open enemies of his name and people? Answ. Streams of fire came from the fiery Throne, through the Mediation of the high Sacrificer in the heavens, which overthrew the thrones of Kingdoms, Dan. 7.9, 10. Zac. 1.12, 13. and destroyed the strength of the Kingdoms of the heathens, contained in the image and Beasts, Dan. 2. and 7. That same vengeance hanged that Courtier and favourite Haman, and his sons, and brought to confusion their assassins, and others were told that they had no right, nor portion, nor memorial in Jerusalem, Nehem. 2.10. QU. 10. With what reward did Christ recompense the disobedience of scandalized revolters from the Doctrine of salvation? Heb. 2.1. An. 1. Malachi denounced, that God's wrath should burn them up as an oven: and tormenting sorrows befell them afore and after the bright morning Star of Jacob appeared, as Zachariah also had foretold them; for as they abhorred and loathed Christ and his Doctrine, so Christ abhorred and loathed them, leaving the lost sheep to perish, that would needs be perishing, whom yet he pitied before that wrath came on them to the utmost. 2. And Christ the Rock of Israel, having confirmed the covenant for the Jews, and the many of all Nations, the last year of the last Seven, did forty years after grind to powder the Jews his own people, by the Roman infidels, and destroyed City and holy Place with utter and small (a) Then the corner stone fell on the jews, and the vineyard was let out to other husbandmen. Mat. 21.41. etc. desolations, and such miseries and sorrows (b) Read Heb. 25.31. and josephus on the wars of the jews. befell the N●tion, that they could rather have wished the mountains to fall upon them, and the hills to cover them, read Luke 23, 39, 30. QUest. 11. But shall not the Land of Canaan, City, and Temple, and Kingdom be restored to the Jews? Answer. They shall never be restored, yet the Jews shall have a general glorious calling in all places where they are scattered, when the fullness of the Gentiles is come in, and when they are called, and the veil (c) Then they shall see the 12 Tribes over our gates, and the apostles doctrine to be fastened in Aharons' jewels, Apo. 21 taken off their heart, and know Christ and his spiritual government, they will esteem Canaan and jerusalem, no more than any City or country in the world; they will then look to the heavenly Rest, (yet here begun) and to the holy City from heaven, in which the Lord God of hosts, even the Lamb is the Temple, Apocal. 21.22. QUest. 12. What Scriptures are contained in those Seventy Sevens? Answ. The two last verses of the last of Chronicles, Daniel the 6, 7, 8, 9, 10, 11, 12. chapters, Ezra, Nehemiah, Hester, Haggai, Zachariah, Malachy, and the 4 Evangelists, which finish their story with the death, resurrection and ascension of jesus Christ our Lord, whose death was the very last day of the Seventy Sevens, or 490 years, at the time of the Evening Sacrifice. Note all the rest of this New Testament was written within 70 years after our blessed Saviour's ascension. QUest. 13. What do you observe in the Scriptures of the old Testament, as special occasions of the Church's apostasies and revoltings? Answ 1. Wicked marriages, as is manifest from the times of the old world to Malachies days. 2. The open or visible Church never careth for, nor cleaveth to the written word, unless there be faithful Governors, but ever men are declining to their own vain inventions. 3. Wicked sacrificers, and false Prophets, who came without Gods sending, both came with outward shows of truth, but were base sycophants and parasites, always falsely accusing and persecuting the godly, and flattering Princes and people in their exorbitant courses. 4. The abuse of sweet peace, health, and plenty, turning these blessings of the Gospel, to pride, wantonness, idleness, gluttony, drunknnesse, oppression, worldly confidence, and carnal, and careless security, for Church and Common-weal, & c. &c. QUest. 14. How many years hath Palmoni the wonderful Numberer, numbered from the Creation to the Redemption? Answer. The Sun in his Tabernacle of the heavens had joyfully run his race, as a servant to the SON of righteousness, Three thousand nine hundred and sixty years, from the first promise of Christ to Evah, till the SUN lost his light, the SON broke the Serpent's head dying, rising, and ascending. QUest. 15. How many jubilees were there? Answ. From the Conquest and partition of the Land of Canaan, by jesus the son of Nun, unto the conquest of JESUS, the son of God over Sin, death, and Satan, and all our enemies, are twenty eight jubilees: our Lord and Saviour the Lord jesus Christ, who is the second Adam, and Sem the Great and Reverend, The Jubilee year a wonderful 〈◊〉, the joyful sound of the Trumpet, in the acceptable year of the Lord sounded all these things. The victorious combat, with the Serpent and his seed, and his triumph over them, the fullness of times, the Sacrifice of eternal Redemption, the just for the unjust, the open recovery of Paradise, the resurrection of the most holy, the true Temple destroyed and raised, the day of salvation, the Jews Prerogative ended, the Gentiles called, the enmity of Jew and Gentile abolished, the shadows flee away. Christ shook and ended the things made with hands, the Sun is darkened, the Veil of the Temple rend, because the way into the holy heavens was opened by a better Priest and Sacrifice, etc. etc. etc. died in a * jubilee year. The ancient, holy Hebrews had an excellent and wonderful saying among them, that, The Divine Majesty, dwelling in our Tabernacle, will be to Israel in a jubilee, remission, redemption, and finisher of Sabbaths. Annotations upon the Questions and Answers of the ninth Chapter. QVest. 2. and Ans. upon the 2. verse of Dan. 9] The reading, study, and meditation of the holy Scriptures, a great furtherance to prayer. A man cannot pray with sound spiritual comfort, that is ignorant in them, as is manifest in this verse and the rest of the Chapter. Blessed is the man that delighteth in them, and in them doth meditate day and night, Psal. 1. And anathema maranatha be that man of sin, and his locusts and Kingdom, that withholdeth and forbiddeth the reading and study of the holy Scriptures to the people. Observe well, 2 Sam 7.27. God's revelation, the ground of prayer: yea boldness in it. Upon Daniel 9 23. Conceive the word and perceive it, etc.] By this commandment doubled for vehementer charge he condemneth the world that regardeth not to be instructed in this doctrine, sent from heaven by an Angel unto Daniel, and penned for all Nations use. Wherefore we must give better heed unto the speech, lest we perversely swarve: for if the word spoken by angels fall out sure, and every trespass received just recompense of reward, how shall we ever escape neglecting so great a charge of our King, to our own salvation, where the vision is so clear, that no doubt can be moved by any plain heart, that will rest in the clearness of the most bright message by an angel of glory, who coming to teach all the world, was to shine in words, as Steph●n by him did in the face, Acts 6 when he spoke the angel gabriel's words, that Jesus of Nazareth would destroy the place, City, and Temple, and change the Laws which Moses gave. To this day the blind Jews stand in this, that the Laws of Moses shall stand for ever, Maymon Tom. 1. delege perek 9 Therefore God foreseeing their dullness of hearing, would have an angel of light to teach them by this Prophecy 490 years, when from the year of that message unto Daniel, the Laws of Moses should have their end, and none of the Scribes when Herod was affrighted, nor any of the jews, as is seen by their answers in all the Gospel, objected disagreement for the time, which thing had been done, if there had been any colour of disagreement in time, but they could not conceive of Christ's person and office, how that he should be the most holy, and King, and yet die for our redemption: how he should be David's Lord, and yet his son; of these things the main objections arose. Now let us look unto the Text, s●il. Mr. Bro. on the text on both his english daniel's. Upon Dan. 9.24. etc.] In this Scripture we come to behold in its flaming brightness of the King that is Sacrificer also, by whom and for whom death is vanquished, sun is cleansed, justice is brought, redemption is wrought, a vision is sealed, our soul is healed, sacrifice abolished, and the Temple destroyed for defacing of this doctrine, the jews be rejected for embracing this doctrine, the Gentiles be elected to open calling, Mr. Bro. in S. sight, surely the angel his message concerneth, the sum of all the Bible. The Jews went weeping to Babel, seeing salomon's house and Kingdom ended, and the Temple burned, and all Moses ceremonies shaken, but they returned rejoicing, bringing sheaves of all comfort, by Gabriels heavenly message of the seventy sevens concerning MESSIAH the King, the Holy of Holy. Upon Dan. 9.25, Out going of the word to restore etc.] mark the word of Proclamation of Cyrus, Ezra 1. how it answereth this Prophecy. Meditate also how pleasing it is to our God to have a tender affection to his cause. Daniel mourned and prayed for the holy City, and the holy Mountain, and had a gracious answer by the holy angel, compare Dan. 9 21.22. Also observe a speech in Zephaniah, I will gather them, that are sorrowful for the solemn Assembly, who are of thee, (such are the children of Zion, the genuine members of Christ's mystical body) to whom the reproach of it was a burden, Zeph. 3.18 Psal. 137.5, 6. So Daniel again was affected when he mourned so bitterly when the building of the temple was hindered by Cambyses, in Cyrus his absence, Ezra 4 Dan. 10.2, 3, 4. No loss to the loss of holy things, when they are gone God is gone, and the enjoying of them, no gain so great, and no time so acceptable, Lam. 2.6, 7. H●s 9 12. Ezek. 9, 3. & 10 4.18, 19 and 11.22.23. Mic●hs idolatrous contestation in a contrary must be the thought of every Holy soul, for the esteeming, procuring, and upholding of Holy Assemblies, Jud 18 24. Upon Dan. 9.26. The City and holy place shall be destroy] The holy Martyr Stephen was called into question, and lost his life for this glorious Doctrine of the holy Angel, and yet his countenance before the Council was like the Angels that brought the message, Act 6.13, 14, 15. and all Chap. 7. How did Despisers wonder and perish, when Stephen and Paul taught this, Act. 6 & 7 Act. 13.41, 45. & 21.28. they wondered, and in the end perished: As of old they wondered at the Prophets, Esai. 8 18. Jer. 26 6, 7, 8. Hab. 1.5. so they did at our Lord and his Apostles Doctrine. And verily so it is at this day where ever the Commandments of God, and the faith of Jesus is truly and zealously taught. Upon the same verse, & verse twenty five, about the attribute Messiah, which in this message of the Angel is twice expressed as a proper name of the Son of God, who became a Son of man (the Son of Adam) Dan. 7.13 to fulfil all the Angel's message. And from this time of Dan 9 this attribute Messiah was very usual among the faithful and profane, Joh. 1.41. & 4.23. And the Jews at that time commonly speaking Syriack, spoke the term Messiah, and speaking Greek, they uttered the Greek term, Christ: so that as oft as we read the Greek term, we must remember the other Term of the Hebrew or Syriack: And all the Orthodox Churches in Christendom hold Messiah here to be the Son of God, our Redeemer, vi. Mr. Bro. on Daniel, and in Advertisement, pag. 33. Upon the verse 27. and half that seven] of this last seven, the first part is passed over in silence, for a preparation, the latter half doth Christ bestow in confirming the covenant for the Many, beginning at his Baptism, ending at his death. 3. Quest. and Answ. N. 1. As the motions of the Heavens] The creation was made to serve the Son of Enosh, Psal. 8. so the revolution of the year, all are his Servants, Psal. 119. (lamed-part) No Army is ordered more comely than the times in God's word, Dan. 10.1. And God's people must learn to know that the times as well as the ceremonies and tips teach of, so they lead unto Christ, for the Golden Chain of times are fastened to famous Pillars, as is prefixed to this Book. N. 11. This prophecy was given] Read Esai. 44. & 45. with Ezr. 1.1, 2. concerning Cyrus, his Letters Patents of building the Temple and City, and returning the people. But Cy●us (going to war in Scythia) was plagued for not leaving better order at home, that his Letters Patents were not throughly executed, for the good of God's people, and Cambyses, Da●ius, Hystaspis and Xerxes, for questioning and damning the Patent, felt God's wrath and their Kingdoms, Ezra 4. and 6.11, 12 Est 1. trouble in Dan. Hyst court. Ibid Sent the Jews home] The blood of God's Covenant in Christ sent them home, as from Egypt, so from Babel, Zach. 9.11. Col. 1, 20. the blood of the Covenant is our comfort in any disconsolate condition. Ibid. That year with a most remarkable Proclamation over an hundred and twenty Provinces] Then the Nations did hear of their demanding and enquiring of the way to Zion, upon the hope of the Son of man, his coming to show the Kingdom of heaven to all Nations, and to shake even the heaven of Moses policy, Jer. 10.4, 5. they presented Zion in the dust before glorious Babel, (and they then ought so to do, but not now) Psal. 102.13, 14. So Moses, and all the Nobles of all ages, Heb. 11.24, 25, 26 ye that have escaped the sword, go away stand not still, remember Jehovah a far off, and let Jerusalem come into your mind, Jer. 51.50, Psl 137.5, 6. So all ye that have escaped mystical Babylon, go away stand not still, remember Jehovah, and let the glory of the heavenly Jerusalem, come into your mind, be ye separate be at a distance in all holy zeal, still come out from among them, touch nothing of theirs, neither Laws, nor their phrase, nor apparel, make a covenant, as Neh. 10. 2 Cor. 6.18. what if your name be put out as evil, remember Isa. 66. ●. John 9.34. and 16.2. 2 Cor. 6.17. No. 3. And seal, that is, confirm all the vi●ons and Prophecies that he was the end all aimed at] Among many Prophecies that might be related, I will name now that of Jer. 31.22. The Lord hath created a new thing in the earth, A woman shall compass a man; that is, a woman Virgin. The holy Spirit of Christ prosecuteth the foundation of Doctrine, which he laid down in Moses, of the blessed seed of the woman, Gen. 3.15. and of Shiloh Gen. 49. that a tribe should not fail to Judah till Shiloh came. Now Judah being in Babel, and held captive, the Prophet doth from the Lord comfort them, that although they were in heavy calamities, and much disconsolate, Jer. 30, 31.32, 33. chapters) yet Judah should return, and have a policy to buy and sell, and that Jerusalem and Temple should be built, and the Cities of judah inhabited, and that that New thing should be accomplished, a woman Virgin shall compass a man. All promises were made in Christ, and should be yea and amen in him to the glory of God. And this is promised to be as sure as the heaven's order, that God would not fail of his promise he made to David and Israel (although salomon's house and Kingdom were ended) yea to all the elect from the beginning, in sending Christ jesus to be born of a Virgin, and that in him the Church should have unspeakable consolation. This made the people of God to be so refreshed, as a man is by sweet sleep, jer. 31 26 But jeremiah told them not, nor any Prophet as yet, How long, (Psal. 64.9.) that should be for the performance, that was reserved for a more fit season, when they were to come from Babel, than they had the time told them by an angel from heaven, which did much heighten their consolation, wherein all comfort was promised by that glorious message of the angel concerning the Messiah (compassed by the woman-Virgin) to perform all the promises, visions, and Prophecies, by finishing and ending all sin-offerings, and trespass offerings, and make by himself a reconciliation for iniquity, and bring in everlasting righteousness by his perfect sacrifice once performed: so by this Doctrine the godly were preserved and strengthened greatly in their faith and hope of Christ's coming in this determined time. And seeing it is said, Christ shall seal Vision and Prophet, is taught that he shall restrain apostasy through preaching his glorious Gospel, that they fall not away as the Jews did, in that most grievous and almost universal revolt, in and from the days of Antiochus Epiphanes, Dan 8 13. and 11 30, 31, 32. Our Lord Jesus Christ in his coming was the morning star, and the SUN of Righteousness, and his brightness did visit us as holy Z●chariah saith, Luc. 1 7.8. For those times were most deplorable in corrupting all holy Doctrine, as it was greatly darkened by these three Shepherds, Zac. 11. concerning the holy Trinity, the son's inco●nation, his death and resurrection, and concerning justification, and all Moses polity, as all the Epistle to the Hebrews showeth. But the Lord Jesus, and his Apostles from him, made all clear again. Also this Prophecy of the angel from heaven, was wonderful to the comfort of the people of God under their pressures by Persia, Javan whole, and Javan parted. This Prophecy is marvellous, if we consider the times. Oh who is sufficient to express the things of God's blessed word. Ibid. N. 3. Everlasting righteousness.] The mentioning of everlasting righteousness, justification, redemption doth show the Law made nothing perfect, but was sponsorious, and an introduction to a better hope in Christ, for Christ by his own blood entered once through the vail, that is, his flesh, into the holy place, into the very heavens, to appear now in the fight of God for us, and obtained eternal Redemption, Heb. 9 For it is not possible that the blood of Bulls or Goats should take away sin (Heb. 9 and 10) or give entrance into the heavens, but the blood of Christ did Col. 1.20. and in this faith all the faithful from the beginning of the world died, and went to the heavenly City, and country and inheritance, Heb. 11. and Col. 11.12. And all the faithful evermore knew this our blessed Mediator, to be Jehovah our justifications, Jer. 23.6. No. 4. Suffered not for himself, but for us.] Zachariah saith, they shall mourn, and be in bitterness when they consider this, as they did in Mark 16.10. Acts 14. and 2.37. which is an history to the Prophecy of Zac. 12. And so should we consider and do. This Text of Daniel is a fit Meditation for preparation when we come to the Supper of the Lord. N. 6. Therefore the appointed time] As in Moses, the Law had an express day and hour for their sacrifices, even from the beginning: so it was no less needful to have from God an express warrant, when sacrifice should be ended: specially seeing all the world was bound to regard sacrificing at Jerusalem, so long as it was to continue if they hoped for God's favour. And also to know most exactly when the Jews Prerogative did end, and the partition-wall should be broken down! Ibid. Is not a trivial, or an uncertain thing] Talk no more so exceeding proudly, let not arrogancy come out of your mouth, for Jehovah is a God of knowledge, and by him actions are weighed, and times preordained and determined, 1 Sam. 2.3. Acts 17.26. N. 8. Ceremonies broken down] Christ shook the things made with hands, and settled the polity of his Kingdom in the heavenly Jerusalem, Dan. 2. & 7. Hag. 2. Apoc. 21. Heb. 12.27. There is the Throne of the Son of David, Apoc. 4. & 5. & 22. 1. Luke 1.31.32, 33. Ibid. Perpetual devastations] In the Vision of Ezek. 1. although terror of fiery desolations, and captivity for seventy years, yet there was a Rainbow in the vision, to show that God in wrath remembreth mercy; for there was a return, but for the desolations by the Roman Infidels in daniel's and Zachariahs' Prophecies, and our Lords. speaketh, Mat. 24. no Rainbow mentioned; and consider the phrase of sp●ing, out Levit. 18. 28. Num. 31. ult. after the chana anites were spewed out, the ●ever returned: so it hath the Jews who shall never return and to be in such a condition, as we are taught now adays. Hear O ye people, O all ye. Ibid. As with the Flood of Noah] The men of the old world, resisted the holy Ghost, the Flood destroyed them, and so the Jews resisted, and a flood of miseries hath ever followed upon them to this day. Acts 7.51. The Apostle remembreth Noah's and Sodoms' story to the Circumcision, and so doth Judas Thaddeus, v. 14, 15. of the judgement of the old world, when the Lord came with thousands of his holy ones to plague the old world, faith was scant found on the earth; so in the overturuning of the Kingdom of judah: and so at our Lords first coming, the Church was in a sad condition of ignorance and heresies, by the means of the wicked Shepherds, Zac. 11. And before our Lords second coming, there will be another apostasy after a Reformation, when faith will be scant found on the earth, Luke 18. for it is said, the ending of the world shall be like the ending of the old world Mat. 24. The times shall exceedingly degenerate into outward shows of bodily exercise, and into atheistical scoffing and security, Mat. 25.3. 1 Thes 5.1.2, 3. 2 Pet. 3. and so it was afore the desolation of Jerusalem, by Nabuchadnezzar, 2 Chron. 36. And upon that general defection the Lord jesus will appear in the clouds with his mighty angels. Christ will not come in a glorious time of Reformation, but in a time of general defection. No. 10 And we in the Lord's Supper do protest, etc.] The Bread and Wine in the Lord's Supper, is a Seal of ending Moses polity, given by the Creators' wisdom and authority. The end of Moses Ceremonies could hardly be taught the Jews. So God by an angel of light and glory gave them words for that to reckon ever since they came from Babel, how for they were year by year to the Redemption by our Lord, and to the end of the shadows, that must flee away, and be canceled, Cant. 2. Col. 2.14. And therefore let all God's people mark diligently, that the ending of Moses Ceremonies required as certain a warrant, as their beginning had, even for the very last day. And so stand the angels words clear in their own simplicity for ending of them. And the Authority of the Lords Supper standeth upon that, when Bread is given for the bodies of Sacrifices, and Wine for their blood. All sound learned, and of stayed judgement, will refuse all colour of learning that contradicteth. In the words of an honest man spoken in like sort, (as the angel spoke to Daniel) none would doubt what should be the true meaning. The more to blame are we, who pervert the words of the living God, to make Questions thereupon, to set light by the Rock of our salvation, as though one thing might be spoken, and another thing meant. Mr. Broughton, Sede● Olam. 18. assert. 2. upon Dan. 9 Ibid. No. 10. Death once performed] the Epistle to the Hebrews by Christ's foresight, was written of purpose, to teach this, and convince the contrary. As Popery is full of Paganism, So it is of Judaisme. Quest. 4. and Answer. The forty nine Thousand.] Who are thus described in Daniel. Michael's people. The Saints of them, The high Trinity. The stars of heaven, Dan. 8. The holy people. daniel's holy people. The Army of heaven. Their Religion, the truth and the holy Covenant. The Temple called the Sanctuary and the holy. And chap. 7.25. mark that verse. Glorious holy mountain. These terms cannot belong to the State of the Jews of these last days, Heb. 1.1. for these 1580 years, for these are proper and peculiar phrases to them of the old Testament, when as yet the partition Wall was not broken down, and the Gentiles were not as yet brought within the Covenant, when not as yet the vessel was let down from heaven, Acts 10. therefore only the Jews State for the time of the Seventy Sevens is the afflicted in Daniel, chap. 2 and 7.8. & 10, and 11 & 12. by the image and four beasts. All these terms are in the Prophecy of Daniel. Ibid. Left Babel for Jerusalem] the hope of the SON OF MAN, who should come with the clouds of heaven, and have Kingdom, power and glory over all Nations, and for ever persuaded them to leave Babel, Dan. 7. Ezra 1. Jerusalem the beauty of holiness ever loved and longed for, and laboured for by the Saints. Quest. 5. and Answ. And Jews before the ending of the Seventy Seven] the glorious Prophecies of Isaiah, of Amos, of Dan. 2 & 7, and 9 etc. etc. of the Kingdom of Christ made all the Nation of the Jews to expect it, as Luke 17.20. and 19.11. and 23.51. Acts 2. John 1. they by Daniel looked the Kingdom of heaven should appear, though most of them knew not in what manner, through misunderstanding of the Scriptures, Acts 13.27. Luke 24.21. Their false Teachers had greatly clouded all holy Doctrine. Quest. 6. and Answer. That did hate and cruelly mock.] Many a time have they afflicted me from my youth, (since their peregrination In Egypt, Ier, 2 1.3. Ezek. 23.3.) may Israel now say, Ps. 129 yea the Church may say this from the first to the last. It began in blood, and hath grown up by blood, and shall end in blood, as it was redeemed by blood. Let the godly when they come to the Lords Supper think on this, and ever prepare for trials, and take up the cross. Qu. 7. and Ans. And to speak stout and wearisome words.] Apostasy from Gabriels holy Doctrine, Dan. 8. and 9 and 11.12 chapters, consider. Judah's manners, in profaneness, adultery, perjury, violence, etc. In brief for not remembering the Gospel-Law, that Christ gave in Horeh for all Israel, Mal. 4. These things show, that they shall cease to be of the holy City for this, diligently read Haggai, Zachariah and Malachi. Ibid. Great oppugners of all Gabriels heavenly Message.] They were zealous Ministers of traditions, men's precepts and bodily exercise: they were serious in trifles, and trifled in serious things. (The frame of spirit of all superstitious hypocrites, Col. 2.) They made false glosses on the holy Text, and great enemies to the Gospel, etc. They are followed step by step of the Popish faction and their friends. But those that love. the shining glorious appearing of our great God and Saviour Jesus Christ will abhor to be like such hypocrites, that do all to be seen of men, that care for nothing but pompous outsides, and bodily exercise, (opus ex ernum operatum) yet managed with great shows of humility, with great show of wisdom, and great shows of zeal, and neglecting the body, and defended by Pharisaical, and Locust-Scorpion cruelty, and by cogging, and dice-play Doctrine in all craftiness, Eph. 4. Such did, and do hold Christ and his Doctrine Anathema: It was ever so with the seed of the serpent, ever since God spoke, Gen. 13.15. and so it will be to the end. Mark what the Christ the angel of God's presence said of old, And if ye shall despise my statutes, or if your soul abhor my judgements, so that ye will not do all my commandments, but that ye break my covenant, Levit. 26.15. Deut. 7.10.— and repayeth them that hate him. Observe what Malachi saith, that Christ will be refiners fire, and Fuller's soap, to the three Shepherds, (whose soul abhorred Christ) and their Doctrine, which he was in Mat 5, 6, and 7. chapters, and chap. 23. and so he was to the Churches of Asia, Apoc. 2, and 3. and in all other, by his apostles, and so to this day he is to all traditionists, etc. Quest. 8. and Answer. And thought upon his name to glorify them.] The four beasts successively afflicted the people of God; yet observe what is said for their consolation, Dan 7.18. That although the beasts shall take away the earthly Kingdom of the Saints, of the most high Ones, (the holy Trinity) yet they shall possess the Kingdom for ever, yea for ever and ever: The loss of the one is the enjoyment of the other. So all that follow their faith are said to be partakers of their inheritance in light, Col 1.12. Psal. 36.5. with this note, consider the former notes of the immortal State of the faithful, them in heaven, and the family of heaven, Ephes. 1.10. and 3.15. Quest. 9 and Answer.— hanged that Courtier and Favourite Haman.] Let fawning and flattering Courtiers, that have a secret sting against the godly, and ways of holiness, remember this man their predecessor, and likewise Doeg, that mischievous and deceitful tongue. Achitophel, that acute oracle of counsel, Shebna the Treasurer, a fautor of atheism, and all debauched courses, Isa. 22. and those Princes and Precedents that could find no quarrel against gracious Daniel, but for the Law of his God. And those Deputies, that by plausible pretences, lies and slanders, did insinuate into the hearts of the Kings of Persia, to damn the glorious Letters Patents of Cyrus' King of Persia, and those counsellors, that were pensioners to hinder the Gospel, Ezra 4. And those Courtiers, that would have the King to put Jeremiah to death for preaching the word truly, and at last put him into a●miry dungeon, etc. Now that you may see Christ rules in Princes Courts, in the midst of his enemies: he rooted out Doeg, Psal. 52. Achitophel, seeing his projects took not, hanged himself. Shebna was banished, and a godly officer substituted in his place. And for those Princes and Precedents, we see their sudden destruction, Dan. 6. consider Ps. 9, 10. The sword, famine, and pestilence met with Jeremiahs' accusers. And as wrath came from the fiery Throne upon the Kings of Persia; so it fell, we may be sure, on their creatures, Dan. 7. Ibid. Had not right nor portion, etc.] That speech of the truly Noble Nehemiah, that famous, godly, and honourable Courtier, is full of piercing terror, and a brave contestation to affront the stoutest stomaches, that hinder the welfare of Zion. And these Texts will further explain it, Phil. 3.2.3, 4 Eph. 2.10, 11, 12. Jer. 10.16. Apo. 12.14, 15, 19 if no porttion among that part of God's family on earth, than no portion with the other part of the family in the heavens. Ibid. jerusalems' polity.] Nehemiah genealogized the people, that none, but of the true faith, and posterity of Abraham might dwell in the holy City, or have communion with them in holy things, Neb. 9.2. so they were genealogized in the Lamb's book of Life, that are Citizens with the Saints in the jerusalem, that is above, Apoc. 3.12. and chap. 7. and 21. Heb. 12.23. Psal. 87. But the unclean in faith or life, are shut out, Neh. 6.63, 64, 65. Ezek. 13.9, Apoc. 20. and 12. Isa. 4 3, Let every man know if he will enter into life, he must show his genealogic, john 3. 1. etc. 1 john 3. Ti●. 3. Many Gentlemen glory much if they can derive their genealogy from Ancestors, from or beyond the conquest of England, by King William; which it may be they and their Ancestors had little in them worthy of commendation. But never think of any of these things in God's Book, especially of the Genealogle of our Lord jesus Christ, who became man to adopt us the sons of God. If Nobility and Gentry could show that they follow in regeneration the steps of faith and holiness of the ancient Patriarches, Prophets and Apostles, than it were glorious, whereas all their lineal succession is but vanity, being inflamed with idolatrous, and superstitious lasciviousness and following cain's ways. What eared Isaiah, Ezekiel, john Baptist? Our Lord when the jews boasted of Abraham, that they came of him, Isa. 57.3. Ezek. 16.3. john 8.44. Mat. 3. Christ saith to the unbelievers and hypocrites, Ye are of your father the devil. Men that hate Christ, and his word, and his servants, their genealogy is from Satan and Cain, 1 john 3.12. and the faithful, theirs is from Abraham, yea from God and Christ, Gal. 3. 7.29. and chapter 4.31. john 1.13. Let all Phil: 3. be considered with this note. Quest. 10. and Answ. N. 1. And tormenting sorrows.] Note some special God gave over into the hands of one another, and into the hands of: their Kings, the Herod's, and the Cesa●s, joseph Liber 13. chap. 19 etc. Then Christ broke both his staves, by which they were strengthened, he broke the staff of beauty, bereaving them of the duty of his Ordinances, and broke also the brotherhood of Judah and Ephraim. And much of this came to pass when the tribe of Levi cared not for the sacrificehood, and would be Kings contrary to jacob's, and Moses will, Gen. 49. Deut. 33. Then they and others became Sadduces, and killed 50000 Pharisees. This is the fruit of heretical Doctrine and men's Traditions. The poor of the flock that waited on Christ, and valued him above all, observed these things, Zac. 11. Ibid. For as they abhorred Christ.] As their forefathers moved Christ to jealousy by revolting to idols, so they did by men's traditions, and false Doctrine, which is as bad as idolatry: yea it is idolatry and vanity, Deut. 32.21. compare with Rom. 10.19.1 John 5.21. Observe how the Apostle Paul citeth that Text of Moses. They despised the eternal Son, and his righteousness, the new and living way: Bodily exercise was not the living way, and so they despised God the Father, 2 John 9 but that brought upon them the day of violent fire and wrath to the utmost, as it is said, despisers wonder and perish, Acts 31.41, Heb. 10.27. 1 Thes. 2.19. False Teachers, and their deceived never prized nor admired Christ and his word, read Phil. 3. Quest. ibid. N. 2. with utter and final desolations] Your house, that is, the Temple shall be dosolate while the world standeth, Mat. 23. Luc 13. And this came to pass about 40 years after our Lord's ascension. Not such a desolation and transmigration, as was at Shiloh, or at Jerusalem by Babel, or as that three years, & half by Antiochus with restauration, but utter desolations: as experience for 1500 years. The affliction from Egypt had a foretell limitation, so had Babel's, so that of Antiochus, and Israel's proper glory was limited, Dan. 9.24. But how carnal Israel's affliction is not limited, and earthly Canaan, and Jerusalem, shall never have proper and peculiar glory. Quest. 11. and Answer. They shall never be restored.] Let Ezk. 16.43. to the end of the chapter, be well considered, both for the captivity to Babel, and the utter desolations by Rome, as Ezekiel compares judah's state with Sodoms unrecoverable, so our Lord, both to Sodom, and to Noah's flood, Mat. 24. mark well, Num. 33. ult. Again note, where the Apostle saith, Sacrifice and offering thou wouldst not have, etc. by a cosequent he meant, Neither would he Temple, City, and Kingdom, which were all figures till the time of settling. Christ should be and was the building in which God would delight, and therefore these shadows shall never be restored, unless we say Sacrifice and offering shall. Why, do we not, as Mr. Finch and Mr. Brightman, etc. make the Jews expect things seen and temporal? No no, they will rejoice to be of the holy City from heaeun, and will never care to make a corporation. in the Low● Jerusalem. Ibid. Then any country or City in the World] Then they will believe the doctrine of their apostle Peter (the Apostle of the circumcision) as their Godly forefathers dispersed in Pontus, Galatia, Cappadocia, Asia, Bythinis, and Chaldea; and mind the heavenly inheritance, that is uncorruptible, and undefiled, and that fadeth not, and the spiritual Temple, 1 Peter 1. & 2. and 2 Pet. 1.19, 20, 21. How sweetly doth the Apostle draw them from their carnal sense of Ezekiels prophesy, under the terms of Canaan, City and Temple. So the apostle to the Hebrews draws them to the heavenly Government of Christ in the Jerusalem Celestial. And that the Low- Jerusalem, & all that hold of the policy of it, now ended by the Son eternal, were briers and thorns, and near rejection, cursing, and the destruction of violent fire, and wrath to the utmost; compare 2 Sam 23.1. to 7. with Hebrews ch. 6. & 10. As their forefathers did, so the children: as Stephen lays that heavy crimination on them. Ibid. The Lamb is the Temple] Seeing the Lamb is the Temple, and that he destroyed the material Temple, and all the polity of it: for if the Priesthood be changed there must be of necessity a change of the Law: old things are all passed, Then surely it is abominable to have Priests, Altars, Sacrifices, Candles, Incense, Copes, Linen Ephods, Music, Distinction as of Mosaical days and times; as Rests, Jubilees, new Moons, distinction of meats, anointings, etc. in our Ecclesiastical administrations: yea, or an Ecclesiastical polity answerable to Levi of a subservient Clergy, under one universal high Priest on earth. Christ our Statute-Maker hath forbidden all Levitical ceremonial worship, john 4. There is no Typical ceremony left unto us in his New Testament but the two Seals of the covenant of the New Testament, and Gods Worshipe●s must worship him in Spirit and truth; Spirit is opposed to bodily exercise of our carnal hearts; Truth, is opposed to the shadows, rites, types and ceremonies by which Christ saith, The hour was coming that the Father would refuse to be worshipped. And the Son, by whom the Father spoke taught none such to be repeated; much less others by man to be invenced They are tyrannical ecclesiastics that force ceremonies Col. 2. Before Christ's coming, the Wisdom of God, as the old covenant needed, instituted many types and ceremonies, but the fullness of time being come, two signs, seals and memorial, Baptism and the Lords Supper were ordained. Seeing the Lord God of hosts even the Lamb is the Temple, and we all with open face, see the shining of the Sun of righteousness; all Moses Ceremonies, and others of man's invention should be left: It is else as if we were still under pupillage, and now it is bondage from which Christ hath justified us, that is, made us free. The servants of Christ in these things must not be the servants of men, but still contend and fight the good fight, for the utter abolishing what he hath abolished, and what in his last Will and Testament he never bequeathed nor commanded, Gal. 4. Greek Fathers began the Name Priest and high Priest, to be fitted to their doctors. But in the end the gangrene crept to ha●m unspeakable, that Satan by Turk and Pope ruled the world. For the god-Pope, the high Priest of the Papacy he made a Mosaical subservient Clergy, He made another peculiar holy Citie●: He made Priests and anointed them, and Priests must serve at an altar, and an altar must have a sacrifice, than his Priests must have holy garments of ministration, and so copes came in, and holy Temples, etc. many as well as Papists ignorant of the Scriptures think it not amiss to retain many ceremonies of Moses, (which the Son of God commanded for a time) not knowing he came in the flesh to do Gods will and to abolish those his own ordinances: Innocent the third maintained that the Ceremonies of the Law were not abolished. And all popery is exceedingly leavened with this heresy. Due Plessis in his Treatise of four Books of institution, pa. ●1. Lib. 1. chap. 7. It is a denying of Christ in part to use any of Moses ceremonies: must it then be religion to use any humane significant ceremonies in God's worship? Quest 13. and Answ. N. 1. wicked marriages.] Judah hath dealt treacherously and an abominotion is committed in Israel and Jerusalem: For Judah hath profaned the Holiness of Jehovah, which he loved, and hath married the daughter of a strange God: Jehovah will cut off the the Master, and the Scholar out of the Tabernacle of jacob, although he offereth an offering to lebovah of Hosts. Treachery, abomination, and profaneness, Mal. 2.11, 12. Ezra 9 & 10. N●h. 13. consider josuah chap. 23.6, 7, to 12. For the word of God and Marriages: wicked women of high place; and wealthy, a grievous evil to the Church of God. N. 2. The open or visible Church.] Most men care not for God's holy and plain religion, 2 Kings 17. Ezek. 20. The greater part in open policy careth but for his life. As in salomon's time, all were of great show, but soon after his death Ephraim turned all, but judah, to Worship calves, not God: So great Constantine helped the Christians, but few of his men cared for God. Our own age and Country shows the same. All our nation generally had a liking of the Gospel both the Magistrates, and the Ministry, all the days of Queen Elizabeth, and the beginning of King james his Reign, England remembered the flames in Smithfield, &c and 88 and 1605. But towards the later end of K. james, and in K. Charles his reign how degenerare? N. 3. Wicked sacrifices and false Prophets] All apostasic commonly began at the Sanctuary: the greater part of the Prophets and Priests did most wickedly, and were become hypocrites. From them wickedness went into all the land. They were blind Leaders, sleeping Dogs, dumb dogs, pressing their own dreams. The preaching of the true Prophets was in horrible contempt, with them: Such were Hananiah, that taught revolt, and Shemajah the Neclemite, the Dreamer, that reputed jeremiah for a mad man, and would have had him tortured. Achah and Zedekiah, those two lecherous villains that prophesied lies: that man pleaser Vrijah, 2 Kings 16. Amaziah that would not have the tell-truths, the true Prophets, to come to the King's Court, nor to preach in the King's Chapel, Amos 7. Pahshur, that put jeremiah in the Gatehouse, and in the stocks. Eliashib that profance and treacherous Prelate, Neh. 13. compared with Mal. ●. 11, 12. and those Priests that nothing but the blood of the Prophets would quench their thirst. And those Prelates that convented the Son of God, and his Apostles before them, imprisoning, whipping and murdering them; etc. etc. But as the eye of Christ is in Princes Courts; so it is, be they assured, in the Courts of his sanctuary; although such think Christ hath forsaken the earth. And when his jealousy began to be poured out, it began at the Sanctuary, Ezek. 9.6. Read jer. 28.29. what came to Shemajah, Hananiah: Achah and Zedekiah were roasted in the fire, fellows full of burning Lusts, burning was their end, as Sodomites. Amaziahs' wife played the whore (and in God's holy severity of judgement given over to filthiness) which made him to have many an heavy sigh, when he went up to his Altar at Bethel, to officiate, a plague of all terror when God punisheth sin with sin: as Hose● 4.14. Amaziah his sons, and his daughters should be slain, and himself must go into captivity. Pahshur was made Magormissa●ib, and the blood of Christ, and his Servants was heavy upon those Kains, etc. Ibid. N. 3. Always falsely accusing and persecuting the Godly] Elias, jeremiah, and Amos were accused as troublers of the Church and enemies of the State: and the cause of famine, etc. whereas those, and such were the props of the State, and mourned and prayed for the people, Jeremy 7 & 18. And note it again, who did accuse but the R R F F and the apostate Nobility of their times, jeremy 26. & 38. 1 Kin. 17.1. & 18 17, 18. Amos 7.10. jer. 29.26. and so it was in our Lord and his Apostles, and so it was and hath been in our times. The wicked Priests and Prophets were ever the cruelest enemies of the Saints: they made many Widows, imprisoning and killing their godly husbands for not harkening to their dreams, and lies, and men's precepts, and for not putting into their mouths, Ezek. 21. Mich. 5. Hosea 9 Lament. 4.13. Ibid. N. 3. flattering Princes and People.] They made their King's glad with their wickedness, and Princes with their lies: for they were so deluded, that although the Prophets and Priests made merchandise against the Land, they would never acknowledge nor mark it, Jeremy 14.18. Hosea 7. Jeremy 6.14. Lament. 2.14. They healed the hurt of the daughter of my people, saith Christ, slightly, saying, peace, peace, when there was no peace. They walked in lies, and strengthened also the hands of the wicked, that none returned from his wickedness. They smooth their tongues, and cause my people to err by their lies and lightness They were the occasion of all profaneness, cruelty, and hypocrisy in Princes and People. And at last all might see, that those dirt-daubers of their untempered mortar, they were they, that brought misery and shame to the State, Ezek. 22. N. 4. The abuse of sweet peace, and health, etc.] These are promised as blessings of Obedience to the faith of the Son of God: blessings of the covenant of grace in him; as godliness hath the promise of the things of this life, and of that which is to come, Levit. 26 Deut. 28. Psalm 81. Esay 1. Those were not blessings and curses, to the Church, for doing, or not doing a covenant of works, but for believing, or despising the Son of God, as Mediator, Exod. 23. and would not have him to reign over them. N. 4. Pride, idleness, wantonness, etc.] Esay 2. & 3. & 5. & 2 S. Eccless. 10.16, 17, 18, 19 Amos 6.1. men in times of peace and plenty quickly fall away. Think of salomon's and Constantine's times, so it is said, Jesurun waxed fat and kicked; Thou art waxed fat, thou art grown thick, thou art covered with fatness, than he forsook God that made him, and lightly esteemed the Rock of his salvation, Deut. 32. Ease slays the foolish, and the prosperity of fools destroyeth them, Prov. 1. Quest. 14 and answ. How many years hath Palmoni] Palmoni an attribute of Christ, Dan. 8.31. much to be meditated. He numbereth our tears, and wander: He numbereth the hairs of our head: He numbereth the Stars: He numbereth the times in the holy Scriptures in a most pleasant frame, by the ages of holy Fathers, by promises and types, by Sabbaths and Seavens: and he will teach us so to number our days that we may apply our hearts to wisdom. Ibid The Sun in his Tabernacle] The Suns chronicle draweth all along to the Sons righteousness. It is not a small matter in consideration, that the whole frame of the Celestial Orbs should be so wheeled by him that made day and night, Summer and Winter that the Sun's journeys should be so guided that all Israel's stories do fall out in time according to their ceremonies, to be the harmony of all the Bible, and the joy of Christianity; of this very thing David the sweet singer of Israel, and the other Prophets did joyfully sing and speak, and made many heavenly ditties and comparisons, Psalms 8. & 19 & 103 21, 22. & 119 89, 90. Psalm 136. 7, 8, 9 & 148.3. Jeremy 31.35 36. & 33 20. etc. A godly Mathematician should consider this. Profance, abominable hath been, and is the endeavour of some men to teach us of Christ's coming, by the building of Rome, by the Archontes or Mayor of Athens, by the foot-races, and horseraces, etc. of the Satanical games of the Olympiads of the Heathens: as gamestry is much prejudicial to godliness, so this heathenish gamestry-doctrine to the holy Chronologie of the blessed book of God. Ibid. Quest. and answ. 14, Ru● his race as a servant] The Suns name in Hebrew is Shemesh, a servant, to perform service. 1. Especially to the second Adam, as all are his Servants, Psalms 8. & 119.91. And 2. in him to the Church holding sincerity, Jos. 10. And it shall not smite thee by day, nor the Moon by night, Psalm 121 And 3. to all the world through his general good providence. Deut. 4 Mat. 5. And 4. that mankind should not worship that which the creator hath made their daily servant. Quest. 15. and answ. Dyed in a Jubilee year] The Jews never kept in their own land any more a jubilee, for 40 years after our Lord's death, Titus Vespasian razed to the ground, City and Temple, and sold the Jews as flaves. This came to pass as our Lord foretold, Deut. 28.68. Zac. 14.1, 2, 3. Matth. ●4. Luke 21. & 23.28, 29, 30. Read josephus on the wars of the Jews. Ibid. will be to Israel in a jubilee] They might well cast this to be so: by the Seavensy Seavens, which did 490. years foretell the death of the Lord of Glory. Ibid. Remission.] Or freedom, or Justification: our holy Apostle (seeing the fullness of time) more fully and gloriously, addeth, Wisdom and Sonctification, 1 Cor. 1.30. if the Son shall make you free, then are ye free indeed, John 8. He that was before the beginning, and promised from the beginning did appear to destroy, unloose, dissolve the works of the Devil, 1 John 1. & 3. This expounds Genesis 3.15. He gives liberty to the Captives, Esay 61. Rom. 7. than was the just captivity delivered to go to his heavenly possession, and to the heavenly family of our Father which is in heaven, Leu. 25.23. Remember ye the Law of Moses my servant, which I commanded unto him in Horeb, for all Israel, with the statutes and judgements, Mal. 4. Observe well this conclussion of the old Testament: the Written Word, the glory and inheritance of the Saints, and let them most highly account thereof: The spirit of Christ foreseeing the false doctrine of those three Shepherds, Zachary 11. and the afflictions of the Army of heaven in the days of the fourth Beast, and the iron Legs thus forewarned the Elect Daniel 7. & 8. & 11.28. to 33 & 12.3, 4.10. This text of Malachi well minded, would stop the prattle now a days, that Moses Polity was a covenant of works, and not a covenant of Grace in Christ. CHAP. X. Showing how God ordered the Several Captivities of his people for the planting of Religion among the Heathens as a preparation to the Covenant of Grace under the Gospel. QUest. 1. How was God's providence seen in bringing about famous matters) concerning the People of Israel, and that the Heathens of noah's families might have a general preparation for the days of Christ? Answ. 1. The Jews being carried to Babel, the Land of Nimrod, of the house of Cham, were a great means of good to those heathens, for the knowledge of the true God, and of the faith of the Messiah; for they were bidden to say when they came to Babel. Thus shall you say unto them, the Gods that have not made the heavens and the earth; The learned say this verse of. Jer. 10. is in the Chaldean Language. they shall perish from the earth, and from under these heavens, Jer. 10. We are also to consider that many Jews believing the prophets, that their country should become under Babel, fled into other countries', where they would have Synagogues. 2. Daniel being advanced and famous in Nebuchadnezars Court, did inform the King very much of the true God, in his opening of the dream of the image of four metals, upon which the King acknowledged the God of Israel, and preferred Daniel over the province of Babel, and above the wisemen of Babel, Dan. 2. 3. daniel's three noble cousins, Hananiah, Azariah, and Mishael, denying worship of Babel's gods in the presence of King Nebuchadrezar, that mighty Monarch, and at the Assembly of such an huge concourse of peoples, nations and languages, at the dedication of the golden Image, and upon their denial to be cast into the burning furnace, Who by faith escaped the violence of fire, Heb. 11.34. And the King's proclamation, over every nation and language, setting forth the praise of the God of Israel: and that none should speak amiss of the God of Shadrach▪ Meshac, and Abednego. These things must of necessity cause great consideration among the heathens, seeing also the King made their cause more famous by their advancement. 4. daniel's opening the dream of the Tree: The King's proclamation over the world, unto all Nations, Peoples, and Languages, that dwell in all the earth, in which telling of his own abasement for seven years, and of daniel's opening of the dream, would cause the nations to think better of the Jews although captives. And Daniel being at the opening of the dream, a famous Courtier of thirty five or thirty six years standing, and a great favourite, had and would still tender the cause of his own nation. 5. Another proclamation concerning Daniel chap. 5. (being now an old Courtier, and an attendant on three Kings) upon the reading and expounding the hand-writing on the Wall, and upon that, investing him again with great authority. 6. The glorious prophecy of the Seavensy Seavens of the precise year and day, and hour of the death of Messiah to end all Mosehs polity, was a light to all the East, as those Noble Sages who came from Persia, as we may guess, knew by the prophecy of Daniel that the Son of man, Matth. 2. the king of the Jews should come in the clouds, and in humiliation for our Redemption: the image of four metals, and the four beasts being beaten to dust, and cast into the fire, Dan. 2. & 7. That then a glorious heavenly kingdom should be erected over the world. And we must advert the confluence of the Jews from every nation under heaven to Jerusalem, Luk. 19.11. upon the ending of the Seavensy Seavens looking for the kingdom of heaven then to appear. daniel's prophecies of the Seventy Seven and the utter abolishing of those four kingdoms by the birth of our Lord, gave them that knowledge. 7. The prophecies of Cyrus to be a Conqueror of Babel, and a restorer of the Church, Esay 44. & 45. & 46.11. & 48.15. naming him long before he was born for the convincing, instruction, and comfort of Cyrus himself, of Israel, and of the Nations, noah's families, that Jehovah the God of Israel, was the true God. The Jews having Synagogues among the heathens, could tell of these things of Cyrus to them, and by this means, many might be won to the faith, as it is said Esay 45.6.14. They should come to the East and West to the Polity of Israel, and leave their idols. The godly Jews reading and believing their own Prophets, might be as Prophets to the heathens: and histories do show that the Jews were skilful in prophecy. 8. The overthrow of Babel by Cyrus and Darius, and upon that, the first year of Cyrus a Proclamation over one hundred and twenty Provinces, where Jews were scattered, of a general subsidy to send them home with Riches and Honour, Ezra 1. The godly Jews being among the heathen, by these matters, and others, could and might well speak of comfort to many of them for salvation, that they might still listen for the ending of the Seavensy Seavens, when God would pity them in Christ, for that liberality towards his people for their Brass, God gave them Gold: for Iron, Silver: for Wood, Brass: for Stones, Iron: and made their Officers, Shalom, Peace: and their Exactors, Tzedek, Righteousness, Esay 60. For their carnal, Christ gave them spiritual things. Observe whence is the Gold: and best clothing, Apocal. 3.18. one hundred and twenty Provinces paid a Subsidy for the relief of the people of God, one hundred and twenty Jews converted them to the faith, Acts chap. 1.8.15. and 2.1, 2, etc. 9 daniel's continued advancement under Cyrus and Darius, and by faith stopping the mouths of Lions, Hebrews chap. 11.33. And Darius, his proclamation unto all people, Nations, and Languages of the true God, and of his everlasting Kingdom, and gracious administration, which proclamation was occasioned by God's miraculous saving his servant from the Lions: this would give them to consider of such a glorious martyrdom. 10. The conspiracy of Haman, From Esthe●s days all tribes are called Jews, and it may be afore. jer. 44. and his Sons (the last known off spring of Amalek) against Gods (a) people dwelling in one hundred and twenty seven Provinces, who by faith escaped the edge of the Sword, Hebrews chap. 11.34. Letters of Commission going into all those Provinces to destroy them? and again Letters of Commission sent by Post to contradict the former, that the People of God should be delivered, and to stand for their lives. These things made the Nations and Languages better bethink themselves, and to consider more of Israel, so that many became Proselytes. In those one hundred and twenty seven Provinces we are to think, the Jews had Synagogues in divers places, in which they performed holy exercises of Religion, and so also might make many Proselytes, which gave further occasion to that (b) I know the proper Machiavil, was but of late years: but Satan their Master and such have been from the beginning. Machiavilian Statist, and Atheist Haman to plot against them, and to accuse them to Ahasuerosh, that is, Darius Hystaspis, Esth, 4. There is a certain people scattered abread among the people, in all the Provinces of thy Kingdom: and their Laws are divers from all people, neither keep they the King's Laws. Therefore it is not for the King's profit to suffer them. If it please the King, let it be written, that they may be destroyed: and I will pay ten thousand Talents of Silver into the King's treasuries, etc. All these things are remarkable that the Heathens might more willingly hearken to the Jews, and might very well say to them, as Zachariah saith, That ten men shall take hold out of all languages of the Nations, even shall take hold of the skirt of him that is a Jew, saying, We will go with you, for we have heard, that God is with you. Observe, Zachariah chap. 8.20, 21, 22, 23. But that was chief fulfilled in the Apostles. How many did hang upon the skirt of one Apostle Saint Paul? Not Ten, but many a ten thousand in Asia, and Arabia, Achaia, Macedon, and Thessaly, etc. When he caused the Gospel of Christ to abound from Jerusalem round about unto Illyricum, and also to Rome, etc. Read 〈◊〉 Corinth. 11.28. Romans 15.19. Collos. 1.6. 11. The interchangeable Wars of the Kings of the North and South, of the house of Japhet, Dan. 11. caused the Jews to be more scattered into all quarters, and where they came they had Synagogues in divers Cities, as the new Testament showeth: and by the occasion of those Wars, the Greek tongue began to be almost universal and familiar, that the Apostles might more conveniently publish the Gospel, and write the new Testament in Greek. 12. God's providence overruling Kingdoms, and state-policy: This 12. Observation is often noted by Mr. Bro. one of the Kings of the South, Ptolemy Philadelphus, commanded seventy two Interpeters, learned men among the Jews, to translate the Old Testament into Greek. This was a special Preparation and means of good to the apostate families of the Sons of Noah, that they might be persuaded to embrace again the faith of Sems Tents, Zachary 8. ut supra. These things show that Christ was great over Gog, Ezek. 38.23. & 39.21. Annotations upon the Questions and Answers of the tenth Chapter. N. 3. Hananiah, Azariah and Misael.] These noble Worthies that hated Babylon's idolatry, with burning zeal doth teach our Nobles to hate mystical Babylon's idolatry, and superstitions, that crucified Christ, that pierced his hands and feet, and would nail all feet and hands from walking in God's ways, and working in his truth. Ibid. who by faith escaped.] That glorious sentence for salvation, The just shall live by faith, which Habbakuk spoke to comfort the Saints in the captivity of Babel, and in all after times, yea it was the stay of their heart ever since it was said, Cursed is the earth for thy sake etc. And the seed of the Serpent shall bruise the heel of the holy seed, Goe 3.15. Faith stayeth on the rock of Israel, God in Christ was the rock of their heart and portion for ever, Psal. 73. another Scripture faith, Trust ye in Jehovah, for in Jah Jehovah is the rock of all ages, Isa. 26. And again, My God is the Rock, in whom I will trust, 2 Sam. 22.3, 32, 33, 47. And the terms of the New Testament are agreeable; it is said, Ye believe in God, believe also in me; for he is the Rock. Mat. 16.1 Cor. 10. And they are pronounced happy that trust in the Son, Psal. 2. and curled that make flesh their arm, Jer. 17. And gracious Hannah saith, there is no Rock but our God, 1 Sam. 2. Ibid. The violence of fire.] By faith they looked to things not seen, they by faith knew, that JESUS the Son of God by the blood of the Covenant would save them from the wrath to come, the vengeance of eternal fire, the second death, 1 Thes. 1.10. N. 4. Would still tender the cause of his own Nation.] Daniel a Subject maketh a golden state for the Church under tyranny: so did honoured Mordecai Hest. 10 Good Statesmen sack the wealth of the Saints: so did Eliakim, when he was substituted in Sh●baaes place, Isa. 22. Obadiah was of great and good use in Achabs' Court, 1 Kings 18.13. Nebemiah a noble pattern of courage, fidelity, and zeal to God and the King: forget not holy Joseph, none of these were temporizers, Psal 122 and 132.1, 2, 3, etc. Remember Ahikam, and those Princes, that had somelise of Religion left in them, that saved the holy Prophet from the blood thirsty Priests, and false Prophets, Jer. ●6. N 6. As those noble Sages, who came from Persia.] Daniel so tendered of Princes, and so Religious would cause the mystery of Christ to be known in the Court and Palace at Susan, as Saint Paul in C●sars Court, Phil. 1. Daniel, a pattern for young and old Courtiers: and such shall find more favour at last, both of God and their Prince, than they that flatter with their lips, Dan. 8.2. Susan was in the Province of Persia or Elam. N. 8. Of a general Subsidy.] Daniel, a wealthy subject, doubtless, would further help in this matter, his care for the returned would answer the effects of his prayer, Dan. 9 as Mordecai did afterward further the cause of Christ, as Esther 10. N. 9 And by faith stopping the mouths of lions.] Daniel knew by faith, that the Son of man would stop and deliver us from the mouth of Satan, that roaring lion, the accuser of the brethren, who goeth about seeking whom he may devour, whom resist steadfast in the faith, knowing that the same afflictions are accomplished in your brethren which are in the world, 1 Pet 5.9. N. 10. Offspring of Amalek] Amalek was of Esau, who with his posterity despised the blessing of the Gospel, and hated the Israel of God, even to Herod, To this story of Haman the Agagite, of Amalek, we must remember, Exod. 17.15, 16. and Num. 24.20. of terror to all apostatical fierce persecutors of the holy seed. Ibid.— They escaped the edge of the Sword.] They knew by faith, that the MESSIAH, the King would by his death frustrate the counsel of Satan, and all the power of darkness, and deliver all the children of God from the bondage and fear of death, and spoil and triumph over the principalities and powers of darkness, the spiritual wickednesses, even all the Legions of Devils that war against us concerning supercelestial things, Eph 6. Ibid. Letters of commission.] this story fell out about seventeen years before Zachariah prophesied, that he might well say from God, He that toucheth you, toucheth the apple of his eye, Zac. 2. Ibid.— Atheist Haman, to plot against them, and to accuse.] See how Satan's seed followed Hamans' project, Acts 16.20, 21, 22. and 17.5, 6, 7. And all times have not neither will want such shameless liars, and cursed dogs, that accuse the Saints to Princes, Hos. 7.3. The Locusts and their King, and their friends were ever most vigilant and sedulous in this thing; and no marvel, for Satan the accuser of the brethren dealt so against the holy One of Israel, Luc. 23.2. Their throats are open sepulchers, the poison of asps is under their lips▪ But our Lord and his apostles, though few and mean were better subjects to Cesar, than their lying, numerous malicious adversaries. Acts 17.7. and 24.5, 6, 7. etc. Oh that Princes and Nobles would search into matters, that they would read God's Chronicles with diligent study, as it is their duty, Deut. 17. They would find all to be false, that Haman speaks against Mordecai and the Jews, mind a story, 2 Sam. 16. flattering Ziba tells a most shameful lie: too many such about Princes, that accuse honest subjects, and make Prince's trespass against their Subjects, as good David did, that gave Mephibosheths lands away upon a false accusation. But David said he would do otherwise, in ruling the Common-weal: He said, he would sing of mercy and judgement, and that a slanderer and a liar should not be in his Court, or royal City, Psal. 101. But alas, alas, what with sycophants, and backbiters, and gifts, as lying Ziba presented to David, 2 Sam. 19 Kings and Nobles trespass against the faithful of the Land, and remove Landmarks. It is pertinent to confer Dan. 6. that wicked men can find nothing for the most part against the Saints, but concerning the Law of their God: as it was then, so it is now, Acts 16.20.21. 1 Pet 4. Let none of you suffer for evil-doing, but as a Christian, etc. Ibid. And their Laws are divers from all people.] What Laws? none but the holy Scriptures of the blessed God: thou adversary and enemy, thou wicked Haman. See the contrary in good Princes and Nobles, that good and truly noble and Royal Darius, Artaxe●xes, and his privy counsellors, who honoured the Laws of the God of heaven, he knew that God's Laws were not hurtful, but profitable to him and his Government and that his subjects ought to walk in them. View his letters patents well, which he never questioned nor revoked, that King and his counsellors, let them be patterns to their Peers, Ezra 7 Ibid. Neither keep they the King's Laws.] There your Lordship hit 'em: they will not obey the King's Laws. The idiom now of profane and superstitious hyocrites selfwilled in humility. Help O eternal, they have said with our tongue we will prevail, our lips are our own, who is Lord over us, Psal. 12. and 120. Isa 57 Psal. 131.18. Let the lying lips be put to silence, which speak grievous things proudly, and contemptuously against the righteous, and make their own tongue to fall on them, Psal. 64. Acts 17.6, 7. Ibid. And I will pay ten thousand.] But Lord Haman, this sum of money would not have recompensed that great damage, that the King would have sustained, no not in the bondage, much less in the destruction of so many honest, and ●●l●thfull subjects, and so it was told you to your face, you know when, Hest. 7 shall voluntary gifts and contributions of such dross Statists corrupt the breasts of Princes, to make and confirm the Decrees and Canons, etc. to undo their b●st subjects, absit, absit, Es 10.1 Psal. 94.20. Prov. 25.4.5. wherefore hearest thou men's words, saying, David seeketh thy hurt? Now therefore, I pray thee, Let my Lord the King hear the words of his servant— If Jehovah have stirred thee up against me, let him accept an offering but if they be the children of men, cu●sed be they before Jehovah, for they have driven me out this day, from abiding in the inheritance of the Lord, saying go serve other gods, 1 Sam. 7.4 and 26. CHAP. XI. Showing why there were no more Prophets after Malachy to our Lord's incarnation. FOr the better understanding of the reason, three things must be well observed. 1. The times of Daniel concerning Christ and his Church, and the exact time of our Lord's death. 2. Concerning the church of the jews standing or falling in these times. 3. Concerning concerning the enemies of the church, in these three things the times will be coincident, which must be diligently observed. First, touching Christ, and the exact time of his death, it must be remembered, The Seventy years of Babel's captivity ending, Daniel h●d this message from heaven. that the Lord God had sent an holy angel from heaven to Daniel with that heavenly Message of the Seventy Sevens of years, wherein MESSIAH the King should finish trespass-offerings, and end sin-offerings, and make reconciliation for iniquity, and bring in everlasting righteousness, and seal Vision and Prophecy, and that MESSIAH the holy of holy should confirm the Testament for jews and the Many, and should end Sacrifice and offering by his most obedient sufferings and death, giving himself a sweet smelling sacrifice of savour to God for our Redemption, Dan. 9.24. etc. This Prophecy foretold the year, month, day and hour of Messiah his death, the angel Gabriel at the time of the eenng sacrifice or ninth hour came then to Daniel, to tell him that at the Seventy Seven the Messiah should suffer, and his Prophecy was performed and fulfilled at the ninth hour of the day, for then our Lord gave himself a Sacrifice for the sins of the jews and the Many of all Nations, and said all was finished, when he yielded his holy soul into the hands of the heavenly Father. 2. We must know that Daniel knew all the holy Doctrine of the angels Message, but the time of fulfilling all visions and Prophecies, for the exact time of Christ's death. No Prophet ever told that time but Daniel: this must be advisedly condered. Now when the Church of God had the time of Christ's death exaxctly foretold, which Kings, Priests, and Prophets, and all godly did desire to see and hear This gave the faithful abundant satisfaction. 3. When Daniel had such glrious Prophecies of ch. 2. and 7. and 8. and this blessed Revelation from heaven, in chap. 9 for the rejoicing of the hearts of the people of God, They forsook Bahel to go to Jerusalem, though in the dust. Psal. ●02. 14. This company that returned were precious feed for after times. Psal 126. Haggai end Malachy show, that the messiah shall s●ddenly come to the second Temple, before it be destroyed, so they open Dan. 9.24 etc. than 49000 with Zorobabel were persuaded to forsake Babel in hope of the coming of the Son of Man, in the clouds of heaven, and to have Kingdom, power and glory over all Nations, Jeremiah showeth that the deliverance from Babel, should be more glosious than that from Egypt, Jer 30. and 31. and 32. and 33. excellent things are spoken for the returned from Babel, but Daniel only tells the time of the death of Christ. 4. When David had thus declared the exact time, then Haggai further consecrated the returned against their discouragements, that the Temple Zorobabel built, should be of greater glory than salomon's, because the MESSIAH, the desire of all Nations should come and fill it with his glorious presence, by teaching in it, doing miracles in it, and in it, give peace to all the Israel of God. Likewise Zachariah, commenteth much on Daniel, that Zion and Jerusalem should rejoice because the King of Israel was coming, but in a lowly manner, as our Lord tol them, the Kingdom of heaven did not come in him, with great shows of outward observation, and he told them of the undervaluing King MESSIAH, how he was bought and sold, as for a slave, for thirty pieces of silver: this expounds Daniel, for the sufferings of Messiah, yet at that day he would be a fountain for sin, and all uncleanness unto all the godly families of Judah, and Levi, for the inhabitants of Jerusalem, and all faithful, as Daniel showeth, Christ shall suffer, so Zachariah showeth, the blessed shepherd shall be smitten, and the flock shall be scattered; these things show the sufferings of Messiah, not for himself being just, but for us. 6. Daniel having showed of Messiahs' confirming the Covenant for Jews and the many of all Nations, Malachy expoundeth this, saying from the rising of the SUN unto the going down of the same, the name of the Lord should be great among the Gentiles. Also he showeth of Messiah the messenger, of the covenant in whom they delighted and expected. Also he showeth of him the SUN righteousness shall appear with healing in his beams, and prophesieth of John Elias the Baptist; to be Christ's Messenger, to prepare the way for his coming: and the Nation of the Jews were so taken with John Baptist; that they thought he was the MESSIAH; for that time had many thoughts and questions. 7. Daniel foretold the destruction of the low Jerusalem, as with the Flood of Noah, in the next generation after the Seventy Sevens were ended at our Lord's death, Zachariah saith the same, Zac. 14.12. that it should be very terrible: Also he showeth of the heavenly Jerusalem, the new Jerusalem, so Esai 2, 1, 2, 3. Micah 4●1. 2. Esai 54. speaks of his glory. Titus Vespasian destroyed the low Jerusalem forty years after our Lord's ascension, and the Lord Jesus gave them an assured token of the same, Luke 21.20. The Church standing. Secondly, touching the Church of God, especially the faithful rejoiced to think of the determined time of the Seventy Sevens, and did calculate the years since their return from Babel, so that they could not miss to know the time of MESSIAH his coming. And nothing was ever objected against our Lord or his apostles about the time. Zac. 11.11. The poor of the flock still waited for the accomplishment of all things, especially the godly families of the house of Nathan (salomon's brother by Bat●shebah) that came of Zorababel, All the god evermore waited for Christ their blessed hope, Isa. 25.9. now much more. And as they did thus for his first coming, so should we for his second coming, and with more joy, but alas; and the godly families of the house of Levi, chief them of Shimei: and old father Rabbi Simeon greatly waited for the Messiah, the consolation of Israel, and so did that old Matron the Prophetess Anna, of the Tribe of Aser, who spoke of MESSIAH in that Synod, to all that looked for Redemption in Israel and Jerusalem: So she and Simeon, Zacharias, and his wife Elisabeth, and the blessed Virgin, with many others, blessed and praised God for the performance of his promises: all the godly now know that the Kingdom of heaven was come, and that was John Baptists theme, Mat. 3. 2. As Anna was godly, so her father Phanuel, and it seems his father was godly, tnd believed the Doctrine of the Seventy-Sevens, for he spoke to his children of seeing God in the flesh, Phanuel importeth seeing of God, or we shall see God. jacob's story hath Peniel, & Panuel, Zac. 4● Luke 2. Gen. 32. And gracious Anna cried, grace, grace, to the righteous branch, & to the Lamb, the true Temple. The birth of Anna was about the 54th Seven; her fathers might be in the 47th seven, & his fathers might be in Antiochus Epiphanes time, about the 40th seven. To these we must consider of the house of Zarobabel, he had two son, Abihud, and Rhesa, Mat. 1. Luke 3. of Abihud these, Sadoc, These lived in the time of janan whole and janan parted. Achim, Eliud, Eleazar, Matthan, Jacob, Joseph, the husband of Mary. Of Rhesa these, Mattathias, Maath, Nag, Esli, Naum, Amos, Mattathias, Joseph, Janna, Melchi, Levi, Matthat, Ely Mary. These might be contemporary in sucession with the former godly, under the Kings of the North and South. 3. I do desire somewhat to enlarge. The godly returned from Babel, were a foundation of glorious mercies to the Church, they were a godly seed, and left a godly seed, which held on successively, how godly were they in Ezra, Nehemiah, Esther, Haggai, Zachariah and Malachi. It were too long to gather all that might be said. First, by the gracious Proclamation of Cyrus, the returned, as they had Jerusalem ever in their mind, so now their faces looked thitherward, Jer. 51.50. Psal. 102. though it was desolated in the dust, yet they preferred it before glorious Babel, and other stately Cities and Palaces in Chaldea, or Persia, 2. Being come the incumbent neighbours of Samaria, etc. did envy them, therefore they builded the altar, and offered sacrifice, calling on the name of Jehovah, the everlasting God, as Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, their godly forefathers had done. 3. Set on Temple work, and being hindered, upon better opportunities set on the work again with great courage, as Ezra 4. and 5. 4. In the second return by Ezra ch. 7. and 8. what a godly company came with him? Many more returned afterward. Zac. 8, what fasting, prayer, and thanksgiving used they. 5. When Ezra, being come, saw their unequal yoking in marriages with infidels, how did they repent of it with godly humiliation, and amend it by putting away their strange wives, and the children by them? Doubtless, a sharp corasive to flesh and blood. An holy seed in the Church of God is most precious, that is, God's end, and should be our intendment. 6. In Nehemiah, is seen how full of courage, labour, and diligence they were in building the wall of Jerusalem, and how God did comfort them in reproaches of the enemies. 7. Upon the complaint of the oppression of one another, these evils were repent of and amended. 8. Their reverend demeanour in the exercises of public Ordinances, in teaching, prayer, hearing of the word, all done with much love, rejoicing and thanksgiving, very imitable. 9 Kept solemn fasts. 10. Made solemn renewings of their Covenant, and for the maintenance of the worship of God 11. Consider their loving association to come out of the Cities of Judah, one of ten to dwell in J●rusalem. 12. Holy care taken for the Sabbath. 13. In the book of Esther, how many godly were in 127 Provinces? What fasting, prayer and thanksgiving was among the Jews, who by faith Escaped the Edge of the sword, Hebr. 11, 34. of that cruel bloody massacre intended by wicked Haman. 14. It is showed in the Prophet Haggai, they obeyed in teaching of the Lords message, and were careful to promote the building of the Temple. 15. Zachary declareth they humbled themselves in hearing of the word, and turned from their sinful courses against Gods holy Worship, and love to one another, and did love peace and truth. 16. The inhabitants of one City did exhort the inhabitants of another City to the Worship of God. 17. Yea, the Jews having Synagogues in all Countries should make many Proselytes, and take hold of the skirt of him that is a Jew, and be of Israel's Common weal, to learn the faith of Sems Tents. 18. They had great zeal against false Prophets, Zachary 13. 19 Malachi showeth what an holy seed the returned were that although there were many Hypocrites, and Atheists, Wantoness, Sacrilegious, among them, yet there were many godly that feared the Lord, and spoke often one to another to encourage in godly ways: Mal. 4.1. and the Lord God took notice of their Godly communion, and they were a blessing to themselves, and the State of Israel: and the Lord God promised many comforts to them: but a day of wrath was coming which should burn the wicked up as an Oven. josuah was 〈◊〉 a self Seeke● to grapple what he lis● for his grea● service, by the Elders granted 〈◊〉 he request josuah 19.50. of their godliness, meekness, courage zeal, wisdom, etc. Looking into the manners of the people to amend what was amiss: they were not self-lovers, nor self-seekers, and would not suffer their servants and attendants, to oppress or grind the people (not like them in Amos 4.1.) that is a great matter to be observed in a Common-weal. 20. Zorobabel lived long, but Nehemiah longer, near to the end of the Persians, to be a Noble Corrival against Sanballat, who also lived long, to see Alexander the Great. These things I writ to show what a godly seed, the returned were, and so continued to the end of the Persian Monarchy. 21. And the fruit of these comforts went on the days of Antiochus Epiphanes in many godly called, Dan. 7.18. Saints of the most High. Antiochus times reach to about two hundred and eighty years of the Seventy Sevens. Dan. 12.3. Daniel prophesied that in the days of Antiochus there should be wise and faithful Teachers that did instruct many, and turn many to righteousness. 22. That although those days of Antiochus were the saddest times that ever Israel before had, yet Christ had noble Worthies that stood to the Truth, and did not shrink for Sword, Dan. 11.33. Heb 11.35. Flame and Captivity, that they might enjoy the better resurrection, to shine like the Stars, for ever and ever. And this godly seed still successively sprang up to our Lords days in the godly Families, as hath been noted: For Daniel 12.4. showeth that those times would cause much action among the godly: daniel's book a treasury of Wisdom for the time of the 77. and ever, Dan 12.4. and daniel's book for the time of the Seaventy Seavens, was a wonderful treasure of wisdom to teach them knowledge for many occurrents: many did search throughly, and knowledge did much increase. These times of Javan in the Kings of the North and South, were times of much agitation on all sides and occasions. Thus far of the holy Seed for these times, which were ●he substance, and stay of the State, as others formerly for their times, Esay chap. 6.13. of the falling away from the faith of many in Israel. II. Daniel spoke, as of many particular events touching the Kings of the North and South, so of the Apostasy of the visible Suns of the Church, of many in Israel which came to pass in those sad calamitous times of Ptolemy Philopater, K. of Egypt, and in the days of Antiochus Epiphanes King of the North. Daniel showeth how many were drawn away by Philopaters' allurements, and became lawless. Whereas other of their Brethren being constant in the faith had great deliverance, Dan. 11.14.3. Macca. and the apostates shame and disgrace. Of Antiochus it is recorded, Thus by oraf● and deceit, he did prevail against many of the Jews, and made them forsake the holy Covenant, and with these he had intelligence, how to do mischief against the faithful, and the Temple, and Jerusalem. Daniel showeth the vilonesse of his wicked King, chap. 8.24, 25, and chap. 11.28, 30, 31, 32, 33. Let the godly Reader see the Commentaries of Mr. Broughton on Daniel. Zachariah foretold of the Civil Dissensions among the Jews, and how they would oppress one another, Those three wicked Shepherds, with the former false Prophets, were thiefs and robbers, but the sheep did not hear them, Joh. 10. Dan. 12. and forsake the Law of faith given by Christ to Moses, and follow heresies. There were three wicked Shepherds that hated sound doctrine, and made false expositions on the holy Text, and many fables, and many traditions, and did not cleave to the Law that Christ, the Angel of God's presence, gave to Moses at Horeb, with the Statutes and Judgements; Malachy 4. This fulfils ch●● which Daniel foretold, That although Godly Teachers did turn many to righteousness, yet the wicked would do wickedly, and none of the wicked would understand. Wherefore God gave them into the hands of one another and into the hands of their Kings, the Levitical Kings, Vid. Tremel. on Zach. 11. and the Herod's, and the Caesars. Malachi showeth that Saddwois●●● was beginning in his days, c. 3.14.15 which greatly increased. This was a strong faction and prevailed much against the Pharisees, that they made sad and woeful Tragical slaughters, of one another: Gen. 49. Deuter. 33. and many of their High Priests were of this faction. The Priests would be Kings, not remembering jacob's and Moses Testaments. Jacob shown that of right, Judah should have the Government of the State: Moses shown how the Tribe of Levi should be exercised; but they neglected the Prieshood, and the covenant of the Priesthood, therefore the imprecation of Moses fell on them. Then Christ's brake both his Staves: Beauty and Binder's: The Beauty of his Ordinances, they had till about these times, Zach. 11.10. Dan. 11.35. & 12.10. which now were grieveusly corrupted, therefore God deprived them greatly of that Glorious Mercy, and in his anger broke the staff of strength. They despised the godly Teachers that had suffered sore afflictions many ways for the faith of the truth: Therefore God gave them over into the hands of wicked Shepherds, that never sought their Good, Zachary 11.15, 16, 17. So Achab for despising Michaiah, was given over to believe four hundred liars to his destruction: So under the new Testament, 2 Thess. 2. As for Christ's other Staff, Binder's, We must remember that Ezekiel had prophesied that when they returned from Babel, Judah and Ephraim should be as one Stick in his hand and so they were after the return: But we must know many of Judah and Israel continually returned. as Zac. 8. & 9 & 10. For of the forty nine thousand that returned Ezra 2. Ten or twelve thousand were of the ten Tribes, and this unity continued all the time of the Persians, and to about one hundred and fifty of Javan, consider, Zachary 9.13. how they conjoined: But for their apostasy, Christ broke this Staff also, that the Brotherhood of Ephraim and Judah, was almost utterly dissolved. The event of which was borrible distractions, emulations and contentions very sad and grievous. The poor of the Flock, as is noted, observed all these things, Zachary 11.11. Miserable and deplorable was the State of these times, and which continued until our Lords days. And when He came he sealed Vision and Prophecy by teaching, and sound expositions of the Law, and so much restrained this apostasy, by himself, and his Apostles by him; and cleared all holy Doctrine, and opened the truth of the Scriptures how, and of whom the Prophets, Luke 24.2 Thes. 2.1 Tim. 4.1, 2, 3 2 Tim. 3.1, 2, the Psalms and Moses spoke, and the faithful believed. This apostasy was as dreadful, and in many things like the apostasy of the Lawless man of sin, for the sixth, seventh, eighth, ninth, tenth, eleventh, twelfth, thirteenth, fourteenth Centuries, than the fourteenth Century the Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ began to consume with the breath of his mouth that Wicked Romilus; and the glory of Christ continued more and more to this day; blessed be his holy name of all the Saints for ever. Thirdly, Of the enemies, of the Saints the Jews. Concerning the Enemies of the people of God in the times of the Seavensy Seavens. 1. Daniel foretold what troublesome times should befall the returned from Captivity, under the Persians, for Seven Seavens, that is forty nine years, both to them that returned, and to them which were not yet returned. In those Seaventy Seavens, by the returned the Temple was builded, and the City Jerusalem reedifyed, with the wall and distinction of Streets. Ezra and Nehemiah show what troubles they had by the Seed of the Serpent in performing those Noble Erterprises. And for them not returned, the book of Esther shows the cruel and malicious intendment of that wicked Haman the Agagite, of the posterity of Amalek. The Persians reigned eighty years, after the Seven Seavens, they reigned in all one hundred and thirty years. Also Daniel foretelleth how Javan in Alexander should afflict. The King of the North was that Gog and Magog Ezek. 38. & 39 Also how the Kings of the North and South. The Ten horns collaterally should long afflict. This Daniel showeth by an Historical Prophecy in many particular events to the days of Ptolemy Philopater, and Antiochus Epiphanes, The 8.10, 11. & 12. chap. of Daniel are all in the time of the seventy seven. and Ptolemy Epiphanes: all that time of Javan in those Kings of North and South, they were a Beast horned to gore the people of God, and had Iron legs to trample under foot the pleasant Land, that is the Land of Israel, Immanuels Land. But after Antiochus Epiphanes, the Fourth Beast, Daniel 7. failed much of the strength of his horns, Before and after Antiochus Epiphanes death, Christ strengthened, judah and Ephraim against javan, Zac. 9.13. and the legs of the image, Dan. 2. were day now, as Iron; partly strong and partly brittle, and so continued, till at last Kittim the Romans possessed all, as hath been noted. The Kings of the North the Seleucidae reigned two hundred seventy years, the Kings of the South, i. e. Egypt, reigned two hundred ninety four years: But we must understand the years of these Kings of North and South were contemporary. So these stories of the Medes and Persians, Javan whole, and Javan parted, will reach 430 of the Seventy Sevens, and the other 60 years to our Lord's death, for the most part the Romans ruled. If the godly Reader will make use of Mr. Bro. Commentaries on Daniel, the preface thereof will show him the Kings of Persia, and the Kings of Javan, their number and succession, and the number of their years, and all these Kings are to be confined within the compass of the Seventy Sevens, all the stories, both of the four beasts, Dan. 7. and of the four metals, of the image, Dan. 2. Mr. Bro. is so large in his Expositions of Daniel, that there is not need of enlargement at this time. Also let the Reader mark his Consent of Scripture, for the orderly disposing of the times. Furthermore, they should not have nor needed any more Prophets, for that they should be greatly scattered shortly after Malachies days, and their State continuallly shaken for hundreds of years (before the holy incarnation) by the interchangeable wars and victories of the Kings of the North and South: Mal. 4. therefore the Law of Moses was so strictly enjoined to them to remember it, which would have preserved them from all those errors and apostasy they fell into. Again the Hebrew tongue after the return from Babel, ceased from common use: even the returned spoke a mixed language, as Nehemiah showeth: so they should have no more Prophets for the Hebrew tongue. And we are to mark the lively Providence, touching the families of Scripture, Babel, the eldest wicked monument, Mr. Bro. in his notes on Dan. 5. which was built to the great ruin of all the godly families, by Nymrod the Nephew of oursed Cham, to the great grief of SEM and Japhet, whereupon Adam's tongue was made 70. of one. Which Babel ended the Jews language, the first tongue, that it was common in no Kingdom after that. And the greek tongue shortly after Malachies days, became to be the most common tongue in the world, that the the apostles did use it, and write the New Testament in it. Furthermore, for Jews, that look for such Prophets, they should consider, that Jerusalem and the Temple should have utter, The Rulers and people of the Jews did not know the meaning of their own Prophets, Act. 13.27. All the Prophets, and the Law propheprophesied until john, Mat. 11.13. so our Lord and his apostles shall prophesy in his speeches, and their writings, until our Lords second coming. and final desolations in the nea● generation after the Seventy Sevens, and such Prophets were to be no longer than Israel's Prerogative lasted, which was at the ending of the Seventy Seven●: for it is said, God hath in these last days spoken to us by his Son, who hath told us all thing, and sealed vision and Prophet for the old Testament, and hath given by himself, and by his apostles, visions and prophecies, for the new Jerusalem to the end of the world in his new Testament. Therefore those that now look for new apostles, Prophets and miracles, do and will run into all vanity and error, as the Jews did, that regarded not the clo●ing up of the Prophecy of Malachy, and for us of Japhets' families of the new Testament, we are charged to remember the commandments, and words of the holy apostles our Lord Jesus Christ, which charge not being observed, the Church fell into errors, fables, and Doctrines of Devils. Thus, I suppose we, may see they needed no more Prophets to foretell the exact time of Christ's death, John Baptist was a great Prophet, but he pointed with the finger, that Christ was come, and the chief point of his Ministry, was to prepare the people's heart for Christ, that in him they might be blessed, and saved from the curse that was coming on the disobedient: so old Simeon, with Zachurias and Anna a Prophetess did declare Christ was come, of whom Daniel and all the Prophets spoke, and John-Elias, the Baptist, preached to all Israel, saying, the Kingdom of heaven is come, as Daniel had foretold, chap. 2. and 7, and 9 Briefly sum up the premises, seeing the holy angel from heaven had told Daniel in the Seventy Sevens of the exact time of the death of the MESSIAH, to end Sacrifices and offerings, and of the four metals in the image, and of the four beasts, and of the wicked Kingdoms that were taught by them, and of all them to be destroyed by the birth of the Son of Man the MESSIAH, that is, Babel, Medes and Persians, Javan Whole, and Javan parted, and the afflictions by them on the stars of heaven, the Jews, and of the full date of Israel's peculiar glory, by the utter desolation of the City Jerusalem, and the Temple, and that Ezra, Nehemiah, Esther did comment on Daniel, and that Haggai, Zachariah and Malachy, had reproved the sins of their present age, and also had much enlarged and opened Daniel in many things to the days of the coming of the Son of Man. Now no more Prophets needed, Mal. 4. but only to remember the Law of Moses, the servant of the Lord, which he commanded unto him in Horeb, for all Israel, with the Statutes, and judgements. They should study it till the coming of CHRIST, and the coming of his forerunner, Mat. 11.13, 14. for it should be to them a most sure word, Therefore they needed not the URIM and THUMMIM. and Schoolmaster This conclusion of Malachy, with his Speech of John-Elias, doth intimate a cessation of such holy prophets, for all was spoken, that need to be spoken. People should diligently be exhorted privately and publicly by them, whose place it is in chief so to do, to read the holy and blessed Scriptures diligently, and for this above handled, to read together * These 6 books were in the time of the Seventy Sevens. Ezra, * Nehemiah, * Esther, Haggai, Zachary, * and Malachy, with Daniel, these six last books do much comment on Daniel. And the godly Reader would be exhorted to mark the chronology of the holy Scriptures, and the chief persons in the times. Thus I have endeavoured to relieve the studious and godly about that doubt and question, concerning, why no more Prophets after Malachy, to the days of MESSIAH, the King, the holy of holies. CHAP. XII. Being an Answer to the five things lost in the Second Temple. They might have named more than five as you will perceive. BEloved Reader, It may be worthy of good consideration to say somewhat of those five things, that Solomon's Temple had, which some Modern Rabbins of the Jews complain they wanted in the Temple built by Zorobabel, and thus they number them. 1. The fire from heaven to consume the Sacrifices on the Altar. 2. The sacred Monuments of the Vrim and Thummim that were put into the Breastplate of the High Priest. 3. The Ark of the Covenant, wherein were put the two Tables of stone written with the finger of God. 4. The Mercy-seat and Cherubin from between which the holy Oracles were given. 5. The manifest breathing of the holy Ghost upon the Prophets. These were great outward glories of the first Temple. But let us consider of them. 1. For the fire from Heaven to burn upon the altar: It should seem to be so, for it is said, God testified of his gifts, Heb. 11.4. I will transcribe what Mr. Broughton saith of it. When Adam first sacrificed, fire from heaven kindled it: and Habels' Sacrifice, respected of God (is in Octaplo) was fired by God: that fire was kept until the Flood. Then again Noah's sacrifice was kindled from heaven, and that fire was kept by Great Sem or Melchizedeck. Abraham sacrificing had fire (first in record) from Heaven. And in Moses and Solomon, that is expressly told, and thence gathered to the former: so when the Jews came from Babylon, If they had had fire, Antiochus would have put it our again, taking away the daily sacrifice for 3. year and a half, Dan. 8.11. they sacrificed, but no direct mention is made of fire, yet their private story Salseleth Hakabalah saith they had fire from heaven. See Mr. Bro. in Apoc. 190 Now one would think this to be true, because so many promises of comfort by Jeremiah and such a godly company returned, they might have that glory, although there is no mention of it. God's counsels are unsearchable: But the Angels, message from heaven of the Messiah was a great satisfaction to them. Malachi saith the second Temple should have this honour that Christ in his doctrine should be refiners fire not purge the corruptions of their Rabbins touching all sacrificing. 2. For the Vrim and the Thummin, daniel's Prophecy of the Seavensy Seavens hath as glorious Light and Perfection of Doctrine, as ever the Vrim shown, which also was brought by an angel of light and glory. This prophecy showeth when Messiah that had all light and perfection in him should come, and would bring light to us all: The Messiah when he cometh will tell us all things, Job. 4. Heb. 1.1 so the Saints of the Most High were exceedingly comforted in him, that would reveal and tell us all things, better than the oracle of Vrim, for he came from the Bosom of the Father to reveal the whole mystery of the Kingdom of Heaven: For He should seal vision and Prophecy. And so Christ was Vrim and ●hummim in the hearts of the faithful, and hath made us Kings and Priests to carry on our Breasts and Hearts, 1 Thes. 5.8. the Breastplate of Faith and Love. 3. The Ark of the covenant: Jer. 3.15, 16. mark that text of Jeremiah, they should want it, yet Christ saith they shall have godly Teachers. the Prophet Jeremiah foretold, the Ark should be no more, they shall say no more, the Ark of the Covenant of the Lord, neither shall it come to mind, neither shall they remember it, neither shall they visit it, neither shall that be done any more. Babel shook these patterns of heavenly things in part, and Rome should end all. The Seavensy Seavens was a relief to the Saints, concerning this Once shaking by Babel, it shown of Messiah the King, the Most Holy, who had the Law of God in him most perfectly that from his fullness we all should receive and grace for grace: The Ark was golden within and golden without, it was plated with gold upon Sittim Wood, so our Lord, although he took flesh, was golden within and golden without: perfect in his inner man without sin, and perfect in his conversation, the Messiah, the Holy of Holy. And although they had not the golden Pot of Manna, yet all faithful of the Jews did feed upon it for the time of the Seaventy Seavens, as all Christians do now feed upon it. Apoca. 2.17. Christ took away such things that they might look to him the true Manna, as he shown them most heavenly, John 6. 4. For the Mercy-Seat, and Cherubin: the Holy Angel Gabriel from Heaven foretold, Daniel 9 in the Seavensy Seavens, (though they lost that outward glory) who should be our Mercy-Seat of Reconciliation for all iniquity, the Hilasterion of all comfort, bringing in everlasting righteousness, or freedom or justification. So the faithful in the Seavensy Seavens did meditate, and did hope still in the full accomplishment of it, at the end of the Seavensy Seavens. So they needed not these outward things. And to all the faithful the Lord God sent holy Angels to be Cherubin, visibly to the returned from captivity, and to all faithful after, invisibly. And although they lost Moses and salomon's Candlesticks, yet the returned were a golden Candlestick, and two Olive branches of Golden oil, which signified a replenishing of the Church with all graces of the Spirit: so the Lord God taught them, to meditate things spiritual rather than to glory in outward things. The holy faith and doctrine of the Seavensy Seavens, and walking in the light of it in peace and truth, made them a glorious golden Canalestick. 5. For the manifest breathing of the Holy Ghost upon the Prophets; they wanted not this for one hundred and thirty years after the Return from Babel, all the time of the Persian Government. The Jews say Ezra was Malachi, and he lived long, the Holy Ghost breathed in him: and likewise in Haggai and Zachariah. daniel's Prophecies with Haggays, Zacharies, and Malachies, and the study of Moses, and the Prophets breathed the holy Ghost in the Saints of the Most High, in the aftertimes, who were men of Wisdom, and did instruct many, and, as it said, did turn many to righteousness all the time of the Seavensy Seavens, confer diligently, Dan. 8.9, 10, 11-24. & 11.28, 30, 31, 32, 33, 34, 35. & 12.1.4.10. Zacharias, John Baptists Father, Simeon, to whom the Holy Ghost revealed himself, and likewise to Anna a Prophetess; these were under the second Temple: and so in the beginning and ending of the Seavensy years, the holy Ghost breathed in some special persons. So that they did not so much want these outward things, because the spiritual were conferred more abundantly: the outward Jew looked carnally, but surely the Second Temple had more glory than the first; Hag. 2.9. None of all the Prophets told the definitive time of fulfilling the promises, to perfect the event of the Predictions of the Prophets, and the joyful singing Hosanna to the King of Israel, who made the day to break and the shadows to flee away, etc. etc. The Second Temple had this glory, and the performance of that which Moses Tabernacle, and salomon's Temple, with all their appendancies figured. Therefore these things being well considered, we may well give Sentence that the prophecies of Daniel, cha. 2.7, 8, & 9, 10, 11, 12. chapters, with the Prophecies of Haggai, Zachariah, and Malachi were a thousand fold more comfort to the Faithful than the loss of those exteriours could be sorrow. That worthy noble man, Lord Plessi. Trueness of Christian Religion hath written somewhat of these five things, chap. 29. pag. 455. Thus Christ was taught yesterday. Heb. 13. The SECOND PART OF THE DIALOGUE: Drawn from the NEW TESTAMENT. CHAP. XIII. How the New Covenant, or the way of Redemption: was taught or opposed under the first preaching of the New Testament. QUest. 1. Hitherto we have in part seen how God, at sundry times, and in divers manner, spoke of Redemption to the Fathers and faithful of the times of the old Testament. Now give me some text in the New Testament which may call to mind the Prophecies of the old Testament, that our hearts may be comforted being enriched in the full assurance of understand-standing to know the mystery of God, even the Father, and of Christ? Answ. Matthew 17.5. This Scripture is very pertinent. This is my Beloved Son (a) Psal. 2. Es. 9.6. Prov. 30.4. 2 Sam. 7.14. in whom I am well (b) Esa. 42.1. Psal. 132.10. pleased, (c) Exod. 23.20, 21, 22, as Moses received the lively oracles from the Angel of the covenant to teach Israel: so the Apostles received from him words that have spirit and life to teach the Israel of God, John 6. Hear Him. This text doth graciously look back to all the Prophecies that have been spoken of: that now he was come: this is He He that was promised in Paradise to Eva, and afterwards to Sem, to Abraham, Isaac, Jacob, Judah, David, etc. and figured by the Passeover, Tabernacle, and Temple, Cloudy-fiery-pillar, Manna, Rock, Brazen Serpent, The Sacrifices, etc. By Melchisedecs, and Aaron's office, and promised in Daniel to be the compliment of all. All the New Testament commenteth on this Oracle that came from the excellent glory. QUest. 2. and Answ. What are the points that you observe out of this Scripture of Mat. 17.5? Answ. 1. The Gospel consisteth in the true knowledge and belief of the person and office of Christ. John 17.3. 1 Cor. 2.2. Col. 2.3, 4, 5. 2. The doctrine of his person is clear, in that the Father calleth this man Christ his son, so that he is the son of God and man: where this word Son is not to be understood in regard of Creation as were the Angels, or of adoption, as are the elect, but by nature and generation eternal and in-effable. John 1.18. Col. 1.15. 3. Observe, the distinct person of the Father acknowledgeth the distinct person of the Son, to which add out of Matthew 3.17. the distinct Person of the Holy Ghost. 4. This Son is called Beloved, to show that in that love the Father hath to the Son, Pro. 8.31. Ephestans' 1.6. John 1.14, 15, 16. there flow the joyful streams of love to his Elect, so that he is the fountain of grace unto us. 5. Unto those two points of his Person are joined two of his office, answering unto them. first, In the beloved he is well pleased. This showeth the Mediation of his sacrificehood to God for us, Secondly, Him being Son, he would have heard, this showeth the Mediation of his Sovereign Kingdom from the Father over us. 6. This Mediation of his Sacrificehood is to be understood in two parts. First, John 17. What he did for us on earth. And secondly, What he did and doth for us in heaven. On earth, he made intercession for us, and was delivered to death a sacrifice for our sins, and was raised again for our justification from sin and death to a resurrection. Rom. 4.25. 1 Pet. 3.18. Rom. 5.1. By his death and Sacrifice he purchased reconciliation, justification, and adoption, also the word of reconciliation, and the ministry thereof. In heaven, he entered with his own blood into the holy Heavens, and purchased eternal Redemption, and the possession of the heavenly Mansions, John 14.2. & 17. and in his ascension is our Forerunner thither, to prepare them: he sitteth at the right hand of the Father, making request for us: he presenteth all our supplications, 1 John 2.1. There is one God and one Mediator, 1 Tim 2. Ayoc. 8.3. Eph. 3.12. & 2.18. intercessions and giving of thanks for ourselves and others. The effect of these things are joy, peace, hope of glory, the giving and the in dwelling of the holy Spirit, who mortifieth sin, sanctifyeth our natures, blesseth all holy means, quickeneth in duties, persuadeth and assureth of free access to the throne of grace, etc. more than we can ask or think. 7. These words In whom, 1 Cor. 3.11. do exclude from this mediation all other Saviour's, and Mediators whatsoever, and condemneth such doctrine as stubble for the fire. 8. In that he decreed to please himself with Christ: it showeth our free election, justification, adoption and salvation, Galat. 1.4 Mat 11.28. james 1.18. to exclude all man's merits, free will, and works fore seen, and to establish an unspeakable comfort to the man that finds in himself that God hath given him faith, that he may know God hath predestinated him unto Salvation in his Beloved Son. 9 The second part of his office is his Sovereignty in this, Hear Him, which showeth his Sovereign authority over all Nations, which standeth in this, that He is the chief Prophet over all Kings, Powers, and Principalities, and in all things Head to his Church. 10. Under the word, Hear, is commanded our obedience, that we should hear Him with our ears, hearts, and deeds, that is, by learning his word, by believing it, and practising it by works. 11. This word Him, is spoken exclusively, there is no other Head of the Church but Christ: none other to rule and make Laws and Offices, and Officers, for the well ordering thereof but Christ: none other Priest or Sacrificer to offer sacrifice for reconciliation of iniquity: and lastly none other in (*) That doctrine of the Papalines, that Christ is not in heaven sole mediator of intercession, anathema sit, Rome. 8.34. Heb. 1. & 8. Acts 2.36. & 5.31. heaven to offer with his own odours the prayers of the Church militant. QUest. 3. and answ. What Seals hath Jehovah our King, Judge and Statute-maker, the Lord of the House, hung and fastened to the writings of his new Covenant? Answ. Baptism, and the Supper of the Lord. QUest. 4. Show first what is considered jointly in these two? Answ. Both these are memorials, signs and seals, (as strong as the world's frame) to repenting and believing Receivers of whatsoever Gods word hath revealed for their hope and comfort of life temporal, spiritual, and eternal. They, by the work of the Spirit represent and seal the whole doctrine of the covenant and promises made to our Fathers; and also it must ever be remembered, they are reciprocal, and for restipulation, as the covenant; and being added to the covenant more firmly binding, strenthning, and comforting to faith, obedience, and thankfulness. QUest. 5. What do you conceive to be taught us in Baptism? Answ. Baptism is to teach and seal unto us. 1. † 1 Mat. 3. Acts 2.38, 39, 40, 41, 42.2. Acts 2.38. and 22.16.3. Gal. 3.26, 27.4. Rom 6.5. Tit. 53.6. 1 Cor. 15.29. Rom 6. Col. 2.12. and 3.3. To all which we must join the calling on the name of the Lord with good understanding, Acts 22.16. 1 Pet. 3.21. Concrning our entrance into the Church, and polity of Christ's Kingdom, and the privileges of the same to distinguish us from other polities. 2. Concerning our justifiation. 3. Our adoption. 4. New birth or sanctification. 5. Mortification. 6. The resurrection. QUest. 6. What do you consider in the Supper of the lord? Ans. This should be written in all hearts, that they only be happy, which in the Lord's Supper protest the abundance of grace, of free forgiveness for justification, to reign by Christ the second Adam. 2. The Bread broken and without mixture, the wine poured out and without mixture administered in the Primitive sincerity and plainness, dispensed by a lawful Pastor, and taken with holy judgement and faith, our souls feeding upon the eternal Son, his incarnation and Redemption, is a Seal of mercy, of faithfulness, builded and established in the very heavens, to stay us in Christ, and in his holy Doctrine. The authority of the Speaker, promising, covenanting, and now sealing, who made the world by his word, must be looked unto. 3. As our eyes judge of the frame of the world, and our minds to what invisible use all was made subject to the second Adam: So our eyes must judge of Bread and Wine, and our minds, that Christ our only, and most holy, and perfect high Sacrificer, offered himself a Sacrifice for us. 4. When Sacrifice was to end at the Supper of the Lamb Christ Jesus our Lord, the Son eternal, whom we must hear, to seal the end of Sacrificing, gave for beasts flesh and blood, (which figured his Body and Blood) Bread and Wine, to be in Covenant-speech, his body and Blood. 5. As all faithful of the old. Testament, kept with all Religious observance, the Gospel Statutes and testimonies of circumcision, the and Jubilee, etc. to the death of our Lord Jesus Christ at his first coming: so shall this precious ordinance, yea, and all the ordinances that it seals to, continne to the judgement of the great day. And the Saints must evermore celebrate and observe it with an eye to his second coming. This should be a constant Meditation with the people of God. (*) Read a little treatise entitled a fruitful Sermon on Rom. 12. but man by nature of a stubborn disposition to divine revelation, will not be charmed, though the charmer charm never so wifely. Here should be inserted concerning the offices and officers of Christ for the government of his churches, and the ministration of the holy things thereof. Much hath been written Pro and Con. but questionless, that church polity, that is according to the words and commandments of the apostles of our Lord Jesus Christ is best, and will agree and stand with the polities of Christians, yea of heathen common weals. And nothing but Popish ambition, tyranny, covetousness, idleness, doth resist Christ's government, of which if the territories of Princes were rightly possessed, they would glory in it, * both for safety of person and State; Kings being just, † Kings that set light by gody and just government shall find Christ's providences to be iron and fire to their commonweals. 2 Sam, 23.7. and ruling in the fear of God, need not fear loss by Christ, for that his Kingdom is not of this world. What his Kingdom is, and who his Subjects are he showeth, Mat. 5. John 18.37. QUest. 7. Who believed the most sure word of Prophecy and the Record that God the Father witnessed of the Son? Answer. The apostles and disciples, and many others, afore our Lord's death, the 3000 converted at one Sermon, and 2000 and many more added presently after, and in succeeding times 144000 Jews, and innumerable martyrs and confessors, of all Nations and languages, as the Acts, the Epistles to the Churches, and the Apocalypses do show. (†) Now the Kingdom of Christ spokeng of in Daniel, c. 2 & 7 is fully manifested, when the image of four metals, and the four beasts, became as chaff before the wind, and were consumed by rivers of fire, and that the Son of Man was come, and had ascended to the Ancient of d●●es, then to him was given Kingdom, power and glory, that all people, Nations and tongues should serve him. Thus Prophesy and history do sweetly agree. QVest. 8. Then by this that you have said, it doth manifestly appear, that all Nations, which were of the families of the Sons of Noah, had no other faith for salvation taught them, but what was taught in S●ms Tents. and by the Sons of SEM? Answ. Most true it is, for all that was taught to Eva, to Sem, to Abraham, Isaac, Jacob, Judah, Moses, David, Solomon, Daniel, and all the Prophets in the old Testament, the same faith and none other, (as the new Testament showeth) Christ taught his Apostles and disciples, who went from Jerusalem, Sem's tents, to the uttermost parts of the earth by our Lord's commandment with the gift of tongues to disciple all nations by preaching the word of truth, the Gospel, concerning the incarnation of the Son of God, his sufferings, death, resurrection from death, his ascension, and shining, glorious appearing at his second coming to judge the world. That work they performed by the strength of God, who confirmed their Doctrine with signs, wonders, and divers miracles, and gifts of the holy Ghost. Then tongues, nations, and people of all Kingdoms departed from the power of darkness by faith and obedience to the Kingdom of Christ, giving honour and glory for ever, to the king eternal, holy, invisible, God only wise. 2. As Christ our salvation came of the Jews, so the scriptures of the old and new Testament, which reach the salvation came from them, and because the saints from the days of the apostles have obtained the same like precious faith, as Salem, Sem's tents had of old, the state of the Church is terme● a J●rusalem from Heaven: and the names of the twelve Tribes upon the twelve Gates of this ●i●●e, do show, that all must be of their faith that enter therein, And the names of the Lambs twelve Apostles, upon the twelve precious Jewels, (the same as the High sacrificer ware on his Breast) the twelve foundations of the Wall, teacheth and convinceth that all must be builded on their most holy doctrine, that will be within the corporation of the Holy City. The Annotations upon the Questions and Answers of the thirteenth CHAPTER. THe first Quest, and Answ. This is he that was promised] Christ the hope of the promise made unto the Fathers, Acts 26.6. Heb. 11. all: Christ the hope of all the Israel of God, Acts 28.20.1 Tim. 1.1. Observe the gloriousness of Christ in all the old revelation of him, yet in manner of doctrine they had not perfection to see and feel the word of life, 1 John 1. But we know that the Son of God is come, and hath given us a mind to know him, which is true, and we are in him that is true, in his Son Jesus Christ. This same is very God and eternal life. Babes keep yourselves from Idols, that is, from all false doctrine, 1 Joh. 5.20, 21. Quest. 2. N. 9 The Father doth love and honour the Son, (and hath committed all power into his hand, as Gen. 3.15.) for humbling himself, and laying down his life for his sheep: so do the Angels: so do all the Saints, John 10. Phil. 2. Apoc. 5. Christ is a great King, and witnessed concerning it, a good confession before Pontius Pilate, John. 18.37. He is Fore-leader and Commander over the House of Jacob, even over all the Israel of God, jew and Gentile. Luke 1.32, 3●. Gal. 3.7. & 6.16. Esay 55, Christ will be received as King, Prophet, and Sacrificer in Zion the heavenly, or he will fill all places with dead bodies, Psa. 2.8.9. & 110. Deu●. 18.18. Heb. 3.1. Ephes. 1.21, 23. Mat. 28. Hebr. 〈◊〉. 1. If Angels and Moses must be heard, and disobedience was justly recompensed, much more the Son eternal must be heard, to whom Mase● was but a servant, Heb. 2.1, 2, 3. N. 11. This word Him is spoken exclusively] ●y divine dispensation he alone passeth all acts from God to man, and from man to God, 1 〈◊〉 3.23. & 5.11, 12, 13, he is the One Mediator between God and man Hebr. 2.17, 18. 1 Tim. 2.5. Observe ev●lusive speeches, although the terms only and alone, be not always expressed; for in divine revelation there is not from Gen. 3.15. to the end of the Apocalypses, the least hint of any other Name under heaven: he is the Alpha and the Omega of all the holy and blessed Scriptures: so the promise to Abraham is exclusive: no blessedness but in Christ the holy seed of all holiness: and so expounded by two Apostles, Paul and Peter, to the Jews and Galatians, Acts 3. 25. Gal. 3. Ibid. Is not other Head of the Church] Christ's Supremacy: he is Lord of our faith, and binder of conscience by his Laws. To the Church he is Prophet, Sacrificer and King: and the same to every particular person, for his particular comfort and calling: as his person is not divided, so neither his offices: he is not a sacrificer for any, but also he is a prophet to teach, and a King to govern: he is a Prince, and a Saviour to all the Israel of God. If Christ is not thus received, his Father is not honoured in Kingdoms, families and persons. For this eleventh observation ponder these Scriptures, Ephes. 1.22. Jam. 〈◊〉. 1●. Ephes. 4. 8, 11, 12, 13. Mat. 23.8. Acts 2.36. & 5.31. Quest. 3. What Seals hath jehovah] commonly to call them Seals, is the best and aptest term and suiteth even to the capacity of the meanest, to be soon conceived. Because in this (as the Jews proverbially say well of the holy Spirits familiarising with us) God speaks according to the language and deal of the Sons of adam's: it is used Rom. 4. as also the true sign or token, Gen. 17. Ibid. the Lord of the house] None may ordain a Seal, but he that hath ordained the writings of the Covenant. God only inspired the holy writings, and he only can add seals to his covenant, in them. As none can make a true deed or lease and seal it, but the true Landlord in whom the Propriety is. Therefore all Popery is to be accursed, that addeth writings and Seals. The Apostle glorieth only in this, What I received of the Lord that have I delivered unto you, 1 Cor. 11. Thus, he as Moses, faithful in the house of God, Heb. 3. Quest. 4. and Answ. They are reciprocal] Ever since the Gospel was taught Gen. 3.15. God made a covenant with the faithful and their seed, as with Adam and Habel understood it thus: he walked in good works, 1 john 3.12. God renewed the covenant to Noah before and after the Flood, and he was godly. But the Terms of the covenant in open record is more fully declared in after ages, Genesis 17. and there it is showed there is a restipulation on our part concerning Gods promises, commandments, threaten, curses, admonitions, counsels, good examples, etc. we engage ourselves in all, when we apply the Seals. Our Lord saith, Go teach and baptise, and teach them to observe all things, Mat. 28. So the Tenant binds himself when he subscribes or puts to his seal. Quest. 5. and answ. Baptismis for to teach and seal] Baptism is a Seal of ending circumcision, and all Abra●ams and Moses ceremonies (the same may be said of the Lords Supper, 〈◊〉 supra) much more it bindeth to abhor humane religious traditions and precepts. And we should not care to be judged as culpable for the not observing of them, Col. 2. A circumcised Israelite was bound to keep the whole Law● and our baptism bindeth us to look only to God's commandments what he hath commanded us, Mat. 28.20. Quest. 6. and Answ. N. 2. without mixture] The Wine not to be mixed with Drakes, blood nor water: nor Bread or Wine to be mixed with poison, as the Papal Hostia was, when they gave it to the Emperor Henry the seventh next Albertus. A fine device of the seed of the Serpent, to kill Princes and Nobles that stand in their way. Any action feazible and consequent for the Throne of King Abaddon, is and must be a Declamation on that Theme of theirs, sides non observanda cum ●aereticis. O ye Princes and Nobles beware of such Scorpions: trust none of them that hate the sincerity of the Gospel, lest you find their doctrine of Transubstantiation too true, when they are such cursed Sorcerers, that can turn bread into poison: pretending to give Christ our life, they give death, and sacrifice your precious lives upon their Altars. They can and will give you a secret sting, for they are Scorpions and Sorcerers. Also the Bread and Wine neither to be adored nor conjured with cross, or any other fantastical, Popish, Devilish, humane devices, but in all plainess the holy seal of the Covenant to be administered in both kinds, according to the primitive institution. As King Josias said, Keep the of the Lord your God, according to all that is in the book of the Covenant, 2 Kings. 23. King's should so speak to their subjects, if they have any portion in the Covenant. Ibid. With holy judgement and faith] We must discern by faith as Habel, Heb. 11.4. The Lord's body crucified, and the blood of the covenant shed: opus operatum is not enough. It is the Lords seal of the forgiveness of sins. Alas, alas! for want of sound reaching in the most of our assemblies. Ibid. To stay us in Christ, etc.] Not only for increase of faith concerning our effectual calling, justification, adoption and redemption, and for nourishment and strength to walk in the ways of holiness and righteousness, being made comformable to his image renewed in us, etc. but for supporting us in the days of trial and affliction, which in this seal is represented by the sufferings of our Lord, to whom we also must be conformable in sufferings to take up our cross daily. As it is the cup of gladness of salvation, so it is the cup, yea of bloody sufferings, if our heavenly Father will put it into our hands. N. 4. which figured his body and blood] The Pope, and his corporation corrupted from the plainness that is in Christ, making an Altar, Priest, and Sacrifice have miss wholly of the truth in Christ. By that blasphemous idol of his mass, and other inventions they have abolished the remembrance of the death and sacrifice of Christ Jesus our Lord in the holy seal of the covenant. Ibid. Bread and wine) by Seal of things without life, by Bread broken, and blood of the grape, by the term Supper, the whole tenor of Christianity is meant, Apocal. 19.9. But the acceptation of the Seal is an open action to distinguish us (more than baptism doth) from others. The King of Locusts, and his Locusts are fatal enemies to this seal of the Covenant in their idolatrous Nothing of their Sacrament of the Altar, setting forth Christ both unbroken and unbloudy, which cannot represent nor seal Christ for reconciliation, remission of sins, or nourishment. As the Ordinance of Christ is blessed, and shall be yblessed to the day of his coming, so this abominable corruption is cursed and shall be accursed of all that love our Lord Jesus Christ, to the coming of our Lord Jesus Christ, Amen. As in the Ordinance of the Passeover, the Angel of the Covenant did execute judgements on the Gods of old Egypt, so where this Ordinance of the Lords Supper is truly administered, the idolatry of the breaden gods of Rome-Egypt are demolished. Ibid. To be in Covenant speech, his body and blood] a seal of most high matters is most highly to be esteemed: But none without Athean madness will say, The Seal is the King: the King's authority it should have, to be as himself: but none of wit orgrace, would make it the King himself. All wise know proper speech and civil. The Gospel thrice and St. Paul, 1 Cor. 11. tell that jesus gave bread and wine, and that the disciples are and drank what he gave, that no miracle was here, but the native manner of a Covenant. Eyesight is God's testimony by creation, Law, and allowed ever even in the seal of the Covenant, which may contain no matter litigious. And if the Apostles or Greck Fathers had said, the bread and wine were altered from their taste and nature, for so much, the heathen would have sworn; the world never bore wickeder Magicians, nor worthier of death by Mases Law, which Christ gave as eternal God, and came as man, to be judged of man how he did perform all; so that the native power of reason which he planted in all souls for sense of eye sight, taste, feeling, smelling, and hearing of words should judge of him, that he performed all justice to plain capacity of all nations, and required none to believe further than Logic common to every man, would require assent, or tell of open Rebellion against the truth. Transubstantiation, a monstrous term for a monstrous matter, Mr. Brou. in Apocal. At the figure of the Star (*) according to the words and commandments] Though it be but a man's Testament, yet if it be confirmed, no man disannulleth, or addeth thereto, Gal. 3.15. Heb. 9.15, 16, 17. neither altereth the Legacies, nor addeth others, nor taketh away, nor maketh other Executors or Overseers, etc. Men must not be Rectifters of Christ's Testament, which is confirmed by the death and blood, (as in his type, Exod. 24) Of him the testator. And the seals bind us all to look to the holy evidences. Men may as well pull away the seals, as falsify the plain truth in the writings: They bind us to observe whatsoever Christ hath commanded, as circumcision did Israel, Exod: 12. Gal: 3: 5, the angel of the pit, and his pit-bred creatures corrupt the evidences, and utterly pull off one of the seals, they are great impostors: Quest. 7. and Answ: Martyrs and confessors of all Nations:] Us heathens were from Noah's days, Loruchamab, and Loammi● Deut: 32.21: and so the ten Tribes, Hos. 1 but both in Christ Ruchamah and Ammi: so that now many come from the East and West, Isa. 49. to be blessed with faithful Abraham, and to sit down with him, and Isaac, and jacob and all the Prophets in the Kingdom of heaven: no sitting there, unless of Abraham's faith, without shall be liars, mark the terms of the Covenant: I am the God of Abraham, the God of Isaac, and the God of jacob. This is my memorial to all generations, that is, to all of their faith, whether Jew or Gentile, else they are protested against, not to be of abraham's, Gal. 3.7, 8. John 8.39.40, 41. etc. and have been, and shall be broken off, Rom. 11.17. and cast out Gal. 4.30. At the mark of the †. Then to him was given Kingdom, power, and glory.] See how our Lord commenteth on Daniel, chap. 2. and 7. All power saith he is given to me in heaven, and in earth, therefore go and disciple all Nations, &c Mat. 28. Quest. 8. and Answ. 1. But what was taught in Sems Tents.] The Scriptures of the Prophets, the faith of the Nations, Rom. 1.2. and 16.26. The same faith and Covenant, although the outward administration did differ. How glorious is the Scriptures consent. The Saints from the beginning to the ending have one and the same God and Saviour, one and the same faith, the same hope, the same Covenant, the same premises. Behold how all is administered by one Mediator, from one eternal being, who is A. and Ω. confer Gen. 3.15. and 6.18. 1 john 1.1, 2. etc. Exod. 19.5, 6. Apoc. 21.3. 2 Cor. 6.16. Exod. 29.45. Ios. 1.3. Heb. 13.5. Ibid. Who went from, Jerusalem Sem's tents.] The faith of Gods elect came to us from jerusalem, Sem's tents, not from Rome Babylon, with babbling language, as the Locusts prate, see Isa. 2 1, 2, 3, 4. Micah 4. Luke 24.47. The heavenly jerusalem began to be built in the earthly, Acts 1.2. And there were the Master-builders, and others with them that made up 120. then they converted 5000. and many more at several times, these with many others, with the Apostles by persecution, were scattered, East, West, North and South, to build the heavenly jerusalem. Now the lively waters in this City, and from Christ the true temple, issue and run into all the world, and then multitudes of Jews and Gentiles came to keep the feast of tabernacles, crying Hosanna, salvation to God and the Lamb, with palms in their hands, Zac. 14. Ezek. 47.1, 2. Apoc. 7.9, 10. Col 1.8. 2 Thes. 3.1. 1 Pet. 1.1.2, 3. etc. etc. etc. Christ expounds Ezekiel, that he was the Temple from whom the quickening waters flow, john 4. and 5, 8, 9, and 7. and the Council Acts 15. expounding Am●i 9 expounds Ezekiels last chapters, and the other Prophets, and the Epistle to the Hebrews, and the first of Peter doth the same, and we must note, when the word was made fruitful over the world, then, and not before, Titus Vesp. destroyed the low Jerusalem. Ibid. with the gift of tongues.] By the blessing of tongues, they that were once darkness are made light in the Lord, Ehp. 5. the confusion of tongues brought darkness, and from that time to this, the glorious mystery of Christ was hid in types and figures among the godly of Sems house, from the ages and generations of apostate families. Ibid. Resurrection from death.] From death, Acts 2.27.— ex 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, phrases gracae de hominis morte perturbant inassuet●s, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, contra epituros, dum spiravit Graetia, personuit, idque ubt de justis sermo eraet, hebehatur felicissimum, Christianis satis erat, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉,. Apud Patres, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, haec duo, idem Hebraeis erat, ire in paradisum, & 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉,. Dolendum, Gehennum, & gehenaeos dolores ex ignoration● vocum consuetudinum, circa salutiferum D N. mortem tam mortiferos errores peperisse. Mr. Bro. in his second Edition of his Latin consent p. 151. Ibid. Then tongues, Nations, and people of all Kingdoms.] A Jerusalem Catholic, Then the Kings of Tharshish and of the Isles brought presents, the Kings of Sheba, and Seba brought gifts, doing homage to the eternal King; then the root of Jessai stood up for a sign of healing, (he healeth our natures, Isa. 11.) and rest to the Nations, the families of the sons of Noah, of Assur, of Mitzraim, of Pathros, of Chush, of Elam, of Shinar, Hamath, Pull, Lud, Tubal, etc. Now Japhet is persuaded, and all families of the earth did bless the true Solomon, and were blessed in him, Psal. 72. Isa. 11. and 66. Acts 2. 1 Pet. 1.1, 2, 3, 4. That speech of Moses, Deut. 32. and cited Rom. 10. must here be minded, They have moved me to jealousy with that which is not God. and they have provoked me to anger with their vanities, and I will move them to jealousy with those that are Lo-ammi, no people, I will provoke them to anger with a foolish Nation. A Metaphorical speech of divorcing terror to the Jew, and of Matrimonial loving kindness to the Gentile, see the jealous envy of the Jews, Acts 13. & 14. and 17. 1 Thes. 2.15, 16. Eph. 2, 7. Luke 20.16 Mat. 2 1.43. Ibid. N. 1. By faith and obedience.] Until Christ did shine unto us heathens, and turn us from darkness to light, and from the power of Satan to God, we should never have once thought upon, much less have walked in the way of life, universal grace and free will to walk in holiness and righteousness, from natural abilities, are foolish, proud, fantastical, erroneous conceits. The Ephesians and Golossians, etc. were dead in trespasses and sins, till Christ the second Adam by his Gospel did shine in their minds: yea and after conversion wrought in them, both to will and to do of his own good will, Eph. 2. Phil. 2.13. Ibid. N. 1. Giving honour and glory.] O let the Nations be glad and sing for joy, for thou shalt judge the people righteously, and govern the Nations upon earth, Psal. 67. and 96.10.11, 12, 13. Acts 17.31. Jehovah reigneth, let the earth rejoice, let the multitudes of the Isles be glad, Psal. 97. Let the Gentiles praise God for mercy, Psal. 18. Rom: 15. Rejoice ye Gentiles with his people, Deut. 32. And when the Gentiles heard it, they were glad, and glorified the word of the Lord, and as many as were ordained to eternal life believed, Acts 13. Isa. 54.1, 2. N. 1. Obtained the same like precious faith.] This faith is it that maketh us Citizens with the Saints, and of the household of God, and of the common-weal of Israel, and to have interest in the covenants of promise, and hope of immortal glory, and they shall not be citizens with Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob in the heavenly city and country, that are not of their faith, they have no right nor portion, nor memorial in jerusalem Mat. ch. 8, Luke 13. The faithful being citizens, than they have, they and their children, the privileges of the City in Ezekiel, and Apocalypses, they being of the household of God, they and their children have chambers in the City, they being made inheritors, they and their children have a portion in the Land Ezekiel speaks of, Eph. 2.19. and 3.5. But these words, they are spirit, and they are life. A glorious inheritance, Eph. 1.18. and the measures of the Temple, who is Christ, the height, depth, length, breadth, of whose love, mercy, kindness, and compassion, etc. is immensurable, passeth knowledge, and in whom we are an holy Temple, to be the habitation of God. Jehovah Shammah, Eph. 2.21, 22. Who filleth all his with the fullness of his goodness, and favour, as the cloud of his presence filled the Temple. Oh mercy to be admired, but what a small portion do we understand. Ibid. N. 2. And the names of the Lambs twelve apostles, upon the twelve precious jewels.] This showeth, they taught no new Doctrine, but the same which the Tribes had of old, Exod. 28. Apoc. 21. URIM and THUMMIM in the breastplate of Faith and Love, stood among the twelve Tribes, as all rules of faith, and carriage of life is in the twelve Parriacks stories, and the New Testament hath no more, nor other foundation, surely the true story of the twelve Tribes taught Apoc. 21. by their names teach others a passage into the City. As the Urim and Thummim was placed among the twelve stones: so where Christ breathes in his Ordinances, we are taught of God, whereby the faithful are precious jewels, and such are glorious in Eden, the Garden of God, Isa. 54. Ezek. 28. These Meditations will make to vanish those conceits, that Moses polity given by Christ, was not a Covenant of grace. And these things well considered will establish us against the prattle of the Anabaptists, and Antinomians. We are debtors to the Jews to this day, Rom. 15.17. All heavenly and spiritual Doctrine came to us from Sems Tents, and by the Doctrine of Sems sons, the Prophets and apostles, all Doctrine is to be tried, and not by the best Orthodox Churches. Ibid. N. 2.—. The twelve foundations of the Wall.] The apostle Paul was graven on the Jasper, first foundation, so he should be the head of the Church, not Peter. The twelve Jewels had the names of the twelve apostles, then where is Peter above the rest? his Epistles are pearls and so are Paul's and the other apostles, the Spirit of God spoke in them, and no one could be above another, but each stood a foundation on the Rock Christ, the eternal Son of God, Ephes. 2.20. There are stronger proofs, or more arguments to make St. Paul or Saint John head of the Church, than any Papalyn can bring for Saint Peter, vide Mr. Henry Ainsworth, and Mr. Bernard, Mr. Ainsworth against Locust Ainsworth, Mr. Bernard Khemos against Rome, page 130. CHAP. XIV. With Questions, Answers, and Annotations; showing who have the Spiritual blessings of the Covenant, and who the Curses. QVest. 1. and Answ. Who were enemies that did rage and imagine vain things against the Christ of God, the Rock, upon whom the Church is builded, despising the Counsel of God against themselves? Answ. The high Sacrificers, the Pharisees, Sadduces, and Scribes, Herod, Pontius Pilate, and the loathsome Roman infidels, the Caesars and their people, persecuting this faith: first in crucifying the Lord of glory, and after persecuting the Church for 300 years, and it is remarkable as it is said, in the Alpha of the word, that the seed of the Serpent should persecute the seed of the woman, so it is said, in the Omega of the same, that the Dragon, the old Serpent, the Devil and Satan doth persecute the seed of the woman, that is, Them that keep the Commandments of God, and have the testimony of Jesus Christ. QUest. 2. How doth the goodness of God reward the faith of the Saints in the holy and constant profession, of his name? Ans. By faith they obtained good report with God and, God is not ashamed of them to be called their God, whence proceedeth sweet peace of conscience, and joy in the Holy Ghost, who stirs them to, and helps them in that most heavenly exercise of prayer, whereby they have unspeakable consolation in all their tribulatin, for that the Spirit of Christ doth enable them by patience to possess their souls, and work in them, and seal unto their hearts an assured and lively hope of things not seen, of eternal rest, and a Crown of righteousness, which the Lord will give unto them at that day, and to all those that love his bright appearing. QUest. 3. What severity was executed on those that set themselves, and took counsel together against the Lord his anointed, the King of Mount Zion? Answ. The thrice holy, the Lord God omnipotent, which was, which is, and which will be, sitting as a King on a Throne, in the heaven of the Church, and administering the government thereof to the end of the world, by the Mediation of the Son eternal, who being the Lion of the Tribe of Judah, (a) The Jews, and Romans despising Christ's Kingdom, and sacrificehood were plagued greatly, as Psal. 2. & 1 10. The seven Seals, and four horses did plague the Empire. did tear in pieces the Jews his own people (spoken of afore) and the Roman Empire, for he riding as on a white horse of Justice and Power, plagued the world by the horses and Arrows of his vengeance, (b) Red horse. bloody War, (c) Black horse. Famine, * Pale horse. Pestilence, and through the cry of the innocent blood of Martyrs, a grave of destruction, following the unclean infidels, the Emperors and their people, to the ruin of the Empire; that all men cried to the mountains to fall upon them and the hills to cover them, and in the world to come endless misery, and vengeance in the Lake of flaming fire. QUest. 4. Had the Church rest after 300 years? Answ. Yea, for God raised up Constantinus, a good Christian Emperor, so that the Church had rest, and did wonderfully increase, but this peace was quickly interrupted by the tares of ambition, schism and heresies of Ecclesiastical, Teachers. QUest. 5. Did Constantinus continue the Roman Empire? Answ. No, he removed the Seat of his Empire to Constantinople, so that Rome in Italy was little set by for many years, and often burned by the Goths and Vandals, and at last by them brought to an extreme ruin. Then the sixth head or polity of Rome was made dead. QUest. 6. Was there not an Apostasy from the faith of the Prophets and Apostles Doctrine, after the Empire of Rome was made dead. Answer 1. Yea, for the Spirit spoke evidently, that there would be an apostasy or falling away: The mystery of iniquity was working in the apostles days, and quickened secretly still by divers means, Doctrines of Devils, and worship of Devils, with sundry corruptions, superstitions, and heretical Doctrines were continually springing. The Churches left their first love, zeal, watchfulness and diligence. and when the Empire, the with-holder was dead, presently after, multitudes of heretics arose, 2 Thes. 2.6. which with covetousness and ambition of Bishops exceedingy furthered the appearance of King Abaddon, and his Locusts out of their bottomless Pit. 2. For the first, second, and third Centuries, this was generally received of the faithful Jew and Gentile, that God was One in holy Trinity, Apot. 7.9, 10. and Unity, and salvation was ascribed to God, and the Lamb Christ's sole mediation. And in the Confession of this faith, all the Saints, the Elders and people cast down their Crowns before God's Throne, and fell down before God and the Lamb with all joyful acclamations of praise, blessing, honour, glory and power, for the mighty Creation and gracious Redemption. 3. But after those three Centuries, heretics and false Teachers, more corrupted the Doctrine of God and Christ, and Saints, and angels, were glorified as Mediators, and prayed unto, etc. But the Lord God takes care, (as Apoc. 7.) for his elect both of Jews and Gentiles, that they might be kept safe: the foundation of God remaineth sure, and hath this Seal: the Lord knoweth who are his. Therefore he takes order for their sealing to be kept from the deceit of the perilous times that hastened, and those that are sealed make a most holy, solemn, and glorious confession of the faith, according to the Prophets and apostles Doctrine, and by this Confession, the sealed servants of God are known in all ages: The rest of the seventh Chapter shows the gracious privileges of the Saints. 4. And Christ forewarned the backsliding of the Churches by the seven Trumpets, and shown much mercy for the fourth fifth, and sixth Centuries, by stirring up the Spirit of some Christian Emperors for summoning Bishops to Counsels to repress their ambition, contention, schism and heresies, of the which, the first four general Counsels were the most orthodox. 5. Also in those Centuries were many worthy fathers, who by teaching and writing with great constancy resisted Satan in his undermining of the faith. Only one thing they did not so discern, Satan's project and enterprise, the mystery of iniquity, the spiritual Supremacy, one of the greatest heresies, most of them being so corrupted with desire of priority and superiority. QVest. 7. What other things might be a means of the furtherance of the mystery of iniquity? Answ. The open or visible Church by certain steps insensibly, not all at once corrupted, and schismed from the sincerity and plainness of Doctrine of the written word, and the gifts of the offices of Christ's ministry, and the ministration of the Seals of the new Testament, and censures, and followed and managed their own decrees, orders, additions, inventions, and heathenish superstitious, ceremonies and traditions, with worldly wisdom, pomp, ambition, hypocrisy, selfwilled humility, faction, covetousness, envy and cruelty: extreme corruption in manners, 2 Tim. 3, 1. etc. And even thus it was in all apostasies of the Church since Moses wrote. Add also to these, that the Teachers and Pastors rejected the fountains of Hebrew and Greek, from which all things proceeded, a great decay of all right proficiency in all Divine and humane studies. (:) Read and consider these things as sin, and the punishment of sin: the desolation of holy things never come, but as effects of great sins, and a forerunner of mighty plagues. Esa. 5. So Mat. 21. QUest. 8. How was Christ's severity manifested on the Churches for their idolatry and apostasy from the Commandments and words of the apostles Doctrine, not hearing what the Spirit spoke to the Churches? Ans. 1. Christ the Lamb slain cast fire on the earthly apostate world, despising his Person and Mediation; plaguing (. it by) the ambition, heresy, spiritual whoredom, etc. of the falling and wand'ring stars, and the badness and negligence of Emperors (but especially of Apolluon, King of the Pit, that did exalt himself, and his Catholic Locusts against them all to be Pests and Tempests of hail, * Vid. Mr. Cade Lib. 2.73, 74. fire and blood, a Mountain full of fiery, bloody, bitter, poisoning, and unutterable miseries! to all States and Churches. These things were in the four Trumpets, yet as Preparations to the fifth Trumpet and first woe, in which all these evils were coincident and complete. Of the which fifth Trumpet and first woe, the Pontificality, and its Corporation is an explication. 2. Idolatry and other sins increasing in all hardened impenitency, the King of Mount Zion plagued the Christian world by four messengers of his wrath let lose from Euphrates, that is, the people of the Eastern Countries, which troubled lesser Asia, and also much of Europe, with horrible vastations, and at last possessed great part. But least that the Popish, and Turkish Factions, should wholly drown the world with raging & impetuous inundations of outward and Spiritual calamities, the angel of the Covenant descended, clothed with a cloud, and a Rainbow about his head, his face as the Sun, his feet as pillars of fire, and in his hand the little Book of Scripture opened; and standing on the earth and sea, roareth like a lion, thundereth, and sweareth secret, bitter, and inevitable destructions to the Enemies. Also God tormented the King of Locusts Sodomitical-Egyptian Corporation, by the two Prophets, in their teaching, praying, and martyrdom, and by their resurrection; which caused a great Earth quake in the Papacy, that a tenth part of the King of Locusts polity fell. This is under the sixth Trumpet and second Woe. 3. Christ, the Rock, and Lion of the Tribe of Judah doth grind to powder, and also tear in pieces mystical Babylon's polity, by Kings and Princes, that in the later times should fall from the Papacy, and they and their People following the Lamb. And also maketh a further earthquake in Star-wormwoods' Kingdom by greater voices of godly Teachers and Witnesses that with the eternal Gospel fly through the heaven of the Church, preaching terror to the Corrupters of the faith, and the eternal blessed reward to the Saints. This is under the seventh Trumpet, and third Wo. 4. Thus God hath once revealed all unto the end in Seals, and Trumpets by sevens, to teach the profane world of the resurrection. The rest of the Apocalypse repeateth again and again in sundry varieties, as briefly is touched, these matters of Empire and Papacy, and affliction of the Church by them, and the overthrow of the King of Locusts, and all his corporation of mystical Babylon. Deprivation of all their spiritual and corporal merchandise, and temporal destruction with all shame, horror and lamentation, and their eternal sorrow in the world to come: and lastly the glorious joy and comfort of the saints being revived from their dead State under mystical Sodoms polity, to be of the corporation of the Holy and Beloved City. Each blessing is here begun, and shall be perfected when the Lord Jesus shall show himself from heaven in that day of his bright appearing. Annotations upon the Questions and Answers of the fourteenth Chapter. QUest. 1. and Answ. The High Sacrificers, the Pharisees] Is●ael which is after the flesh despised Christ, and his Rest, and fell after the same example of disobedience and unbelief (or misbelieving disobedience) as their Fathers both in the Wilderness, and in the revolt of the ten Tribes, and of Judah also, and would not receive the word of exhortation, Heb. 3. & 4.10, 12 & 13. chapters. Ibid. That the Seed of the Serpent] All that persecute the faith are the seed of the Serpent from Kain to Caesar's and Popes. But the gates of Hades could not prevail, because Christ had the keys of death and H●des. Here observe, that the Apocalypse in two sorts draweth all the Law unto it. It showeth Christ from all the Law and Prophets, and the curse of mystical Babylon from all the old cursed since the Serpent deceived Eva. Jehovah from Gen. 2. & 3. & Exod. 3. & 6. is expounded in Apocalyps, i. e. Who was, Who is, Who Will be: and this draweth to the last acts looking to the first Counsels, that all may be seen to depend upon One God. The Apocalypse setteth forth the last acts. Therefore they that expect new Revelations besides that which was le●t us by the Lord Jesus the Son of God in the writings of his Prophets and Apostles, shall never be settled in a sound judgement in the Gospel: and those that pretend they have new Revelations, in such thoughts, they are of them that add to the word of God: but let such tremble at the curse, Apoc 2●. 18, 19 Such shall bear this blame, that they are an adulterous generation they would adulterate the faith, Mat. 12.39. Quest. 2. and Answ. by sait●● they ebtained good report with God] Heb. 11.1, 2. conferred with chap. 12.1, 2. and Rom. 1.5. & 16.26. Gal. 3.8, 9 Apoc. 14.12. & 21.3. & 2 Cor. 6.16, 17, 18. As many as received him to them he gave prerogative to be the Sons of God, to them that believe in his name, John 1.12. & chap. 5.24. is fit for this answer both of the commendation of faith, and the blessed fruit of believing, eternal life and rest. Ibid. heavenly exercise of prayer] Who shall stand before the son of man at that day of his bright appearing: even such that watch their hearts, & that pray much: watch therefore & pray continually that you may he counted worthy to escape all these things that shall come to pass, Luk. 21.36. Ibid. Of eternal Rest, etc.] As all the faithful of the old Testament in their blessed spirits had an immortal life, with God in the heavenly Tabernacle, in the bo●om● of Abraham (the happy part of Hades) in Paradise, and were the heavenly family, so all since that have died in the faith are In heaven, and also of that blessed family. We are taught to pray Our father which a●t in heaven, therefore as our affections should ●e heavenly, so heaven is our Country. And therefore a● they of old were not to mourn immoderately, being the sons of Jehovah their God, Deut. 14.1, 2. neither are we to sorrow as men without hope of the better resurrection, 1 Thess. 4 Behold what love the Father hath given us that we should be called the Sons of God. 1 John 3.1. This adoption is from the Son of God who died and risen again, to give us hope who is Lord of quick and dead, Rom. 14, 9 Quest. 3 and answ. Sitting as King on a Throne] Observe the fourth and fifth chapter of the Apocalypse is to be considered as a Platform of the divine Majesty's administration through the stories of the Church, and the enemies thereof: we shall find mention made of the Throne of God, and the twenty four Elders, and the four lively wights, under the Dracon Caesar's, and Dracon Papacy, and after that, the King of Mount Zion beginneth to consume the Kingdom of Abaddon, with the breath of his lips, and to shine in glory to the comfort of his people, Apoc. 11.16. & 14.3. & 19.4. The Rainbow about the throne Apoc. 4. is an ●●lusion to Gen. 9 and Ezek. 1. and is to be remembered through all the stories of the troubles of the Church; also mind that in all the Apocalypse the Church is termed commonly heaven, to show that its Polytenm●, conversation, trading, dealing, should be heavenly; and also that the State of Abaddous Kingdom is called the earth, and the bottomless-pit, as indeed it tends to these two. Quest. 4. and answ. The cares of ambition Schisms and Heresies of Ecclesiastical Teachers] Note that Churchmen, and for the most part Bishops were the beginners of Schisms, and founders of heresies, and then with open and full mouth like dogs (Enemies of the heavenly Icrusalems' peace and glory, Apoc. 21.) they cried, heresy, heresy, schism, schism, faction, faction's, sedition, sedition, anarchy, anarchy, of all that would not obey thei● constitutions, etc. so of old it was, The Leaders of my people have caused them to err, who destroy the way of their paths, Esay 3. So the Scribes and Pharisees made constitutions and canons, etc. and then all were questioned and heretics that questioned their traditions, John 9 Acts 24.14. & 28.22. Ma●. 15. They cannot be truly called Schismatics and Heretics that cleave to the Words and commandments of the Apostles of our Lord and Saviour, but they that do departed from the purity and sincerity of the Apostles doctrine, Romans 16.17 Mark what is said, of your own selves (and St. Paul spoke to Bishops) shall men arise speaking perverse things to draw disciples after them Acts 〈◊〉 so such, although Bishops, were Schismatics, factious, sed●ious and heretical persons; and it was they that brought all to anarchy, and Princes became subject to King Abaddon, that lawless man of sin. And let Princes take heed of such Spirits that still speak lies through hypocrisy. The Prelates of our native Country for most part, have been exceeding culpable in urging their Canons and inventions, and for setting the hearts of Q. Elizabeth, K. James, and K. Char●s against faithful Teachers. Quest. 6. and answ. Yea, for the Spirit spoke evidently] 1 Tim. 4. Now the Spirit speaketh expressly that in the latter times some shall departed from the faith giving heed to seducing spirits and doctrines of devils, speaking lies through hypocrisy having their consciences seated as with an hot iron. Teaching not to marry, and to abstain from meats, which God hath created to be received with thanksgiving of them which believe and know the truth. It hath been observed before for the old Testament, and so it must be for the New, that the Government of Christ (for essentials) is the same. The plot of his counsels, expressing itself in an uniform manner. Men of old time apostating and pleading against the Gospel were given over to Devils and false Prophets. So, men despising the healing doctrine in the Words and commandments of the Apostles were given over to lying Spirits and strong delusions of ●lse Teachers. Mr White, Way of the true Church page 385. hath this speech cited out of Egesippus. That the Church continued a Virgin undefiled, as long as the Apostles lived, but when that generation was passed, the conspiracy of wicked heresy, through the seducement of those which taught other doctrine, took beginning: Consider the like speech, jud. 2 6, 7. and so long as the flames in Smithfield, and other cruelties of King Abaddon, and his Locusts were fresh in memory, so long Orthodox Bishops and zealous Protestants, and no peace with Rome and our good Laws were executed against the Locusts, and other Babylonish traitorous sectaries, of the man of sin: but now against Christ and his ambassadors and servants: how were the godly of late disgraced at the assizes, etc. and now the Catholic Roman church, is a true church of Christ, &c etc. The first love and works are best, Apoc. 2. and we hope and pray Christ will make his Scriptures good upon us; which are written, Hosea 2.6.7. & Ez●k. 20.32, 33. etc. etc. Ibid. N. 11. For the mighty Creation] A●oc. 4. Setteth forth God's glory in the Creation: and affordeth meditation against Heathens Rome's Gods. They worshipped Stars, and Juno in the air, Aeolus in the wind, Neptune in the Sea, Pan in their sheep, etc. etc. These were their Dives and Divas, He gods, and She gods. etc. And this was the the cause of the wars against the heaven of the Church, Apoc 12. whether Jupiter, Apollo, etc. and the heathens oracles, or the eternal Son and his Gospel were to be followed: and the same war was with the tail of the Dragon, for their refined idolatry. Ibid. and gracious redemption] Apoc. 5. Gives Meditation for Christ's Mediation, by whom all is restored, who is the Head of all Principality and Power, as all Creatures acknowledge, joying that they shall be for the service of Christ, for being turned to service of idols they groan in Gods esteem as corrupted. This is against the Divos and Divas of the New Empire of Holiness in title. They had and have Patrons, and Pat●onesses of Countries, Cities, Houses, Cattles, Trades, etc. as the old heathen. As the covenant of God in Christ was the same in the old and New Testament, only the outward administration changed: so the idolatry is the same, only the names and administration changed, putting a new face on things. But the Lord Jesus Christ is the head, and all things are put under his feet, Psal. 8. and he ruleth all for the comfort of his redeemed: All things were created by Him, and for Him. See for one trade or handicraft, of great use in the world what is said, Esa. 54.16, 17. and as the Smith may be an enemy, yet he is further encouraged by Counsellors, and men of State, who sit and conspire against the Lord and his People, the Saints, by slanders and lies, and false suggestions, etc. But Christ over rules the trade and Counsel of the Smith, Vul-kain was the God of Smiths to th● Heathens: a Clement a titulary Saint to the Papists. The Jews from heathens had Citic-gods, jer. 2. so Vigilins was the tutelary Saint of the valley of Trent, Hist. Council Trent. lib. 2. But when the Saints held the faith sincere, see their holy protestation, Psal. 46. & 48. & 127. and well they might so protest upon the promise, Exo. 34.23, 24. And who hath been the Redeemer and Protector of England (not tabulous St. George) from the people of that cursed Kingdom of the Beast in all those treasons and invasions of theirs, specially in eighty eight, and one thousand six hundred and five. The eternal God hath been our refuge, his everlasting arms have been under us, he hath been the Shield of our help, and the Sword of our glory But we may now sear the Scripture of Deuteronomy. 31.16, 17. etc. will be fulfilled in our nation, and that we nor our children shall see such seventy six years of the Gospel with such protection, peace, plenty, riches, honour, victory, and all prosperity, as enemy 13.11. ah! our glory is departing. N. 4. The Spirit of some Christian Emperors] but in after times Princes had not that love to the truth: for Emperors' strife was with the Popes for authority, little or nothing for Divinity. And so alas to this day men would never search God's word, the wealthy and Principal of State, but remit that over unto others, as a base work for themselves to regard, whereby God then and now doth cast of the world: and hence it was that subjects in Parliament, ever stood greatly for their own liberties: but for the sincerity, liberty, and power of Christ's ordinances they never so contended: wherefore he chastised them, and will still in causing their Liberties to be infringed, and their Landmarks to be removed. N. 5. The spiritual supremacy] Heresin pestile●issimam, vid. Mr. Cade, justif. lib. 1.53. The mystery of iniquity did not simply consist in Superiority. But the B. B. and D. D. not holding sincerity to the Head and Foundation, Christ jesus, inventing each his opinions, and superstitions drawing disciples after them. And they would be angry, etc. if they were not believed and obeyed, because that they did was not without a show of wisdom and Holiness, Col. 2.16, 18 23, and this went on by degrees from age to age, till all iniquity was perfected in the pontificality, Cade justif. lib. 2.57. lib. 1.31. Corruptions began even from the Apostles times. But the Papal authority chief corrupted and darkened the glory and honour of Christ's kingnome in all things. It corrupteth the written word, the Seals of the covenant, the Ministry of Christ's ordination, and the Censures, etc. Therefore the warning of the Spirit must prevail with God's people to remember the commandments and words of the Apostles, that is their doctrine, the Pattern of wholesome words. All learned in things controverted concerning the Worship of God, or any doctrine should have recourse to the Scriptures of the Prophets and Apostles, for definitive sentence, not to Fathers and Councils, nay not to the best reformed churches. Therefore of old it was said, To the-Law and to the Yeslimony, Esay 8. and also it is said, He that kn●w●th God heareth us, 1 John 4. But man born a wild asse-colt would be self-wise. And we naturally bear in us an onimious mind to God's revelation, ever since our first parents harkened to Satan, Gen. 3. Oh cursed corrupted nature, that is now more ready to follow man or devil, than the Son of God, Christ jesus, the second Adam. Christ is wonderful tender of his own ordinances, he is nice, touchy, and jealous: this maketh our corruption fret, vex, and fling, and to hate Christ, Exod. 20. thinking him to be too curious, as Kain, Gen. 4. because his own commanded or dinances is our rule, and him to be worshipped in them, withal the mind, all the soul, all the strength, all the understanding, even all our alls. And an honest heart will say as the Saints have said, Thy 〈◊〉 does very pure, therefore thy Servant l●veth it: a gain, I hate vain inventions but thy law do I love, Psalm 119. An holy soul is as scrupulous, as jealous, as nice, as Gods is. It is impossible but he should be so in the regenerate part: and he will not speak in thought, that God's commandments are burdensome: but unbelievers and superstitious hypocrites and masters of traditions in a raging and fretting mood (they are so always) called Christ's ordinances, bands and cords, Psalms 2. Quest. 7. and Answ. With worldly wisdom, pomp, ambition, etc.] Mr. White, way to the true Church, pa. 140. Mr. Cade justif. lib. 2.256, 257, etc. Wretched and unlearned Scholars turned all the doctrine of God, to ambition and tyranny; superstition and heresy: Politicians to profaneness. In those days and after the sweet influences of comforting airs and winds of wholesome doctrine was with held, and did weakly breath in the church, and shortly turned to hellish smoke out of the pit, Apoc. 9 But the sealed of God in all ages Christ took care of. Then was fulfilled, that which was prophesied, The time will come when they will not suffer wholesome doctrine, or healing doctrine: but having sore ears after their own lusts shall beap to themselves teachers. and shall turn their cars from the truth, and shall be given unto sables, 2 Tim 4. Acts 20.30. Then they became naked of holy truths, Apoc. 16.15. The second Adam and his doctrine is the garment with which our inner man is bravely clothed, Romans 13.14. Ephestans' 4.20, 21. Apocalyps 3.18. Ezekiel 16. Quest. 8 and answ. N●t. Christ the Lamb slain cast fire on the earth] the seven Trumpers sound the mischiefs that wicked apostate Rome should cause, consider Psalm 110 for their robellion against the true Melchisedecs kingdom and sacrificehood, jude 11. Ibid. as preparations to the first Trumpet] The mystery of iniquity was working from the Apostles times, and men successively arose that spoke and wrote perverse things: wherefore the reformed are too blame in two respects. 1. In yielding too much to the Papalines to prove points from the Ancients, for that doth not satisfy them, and there is no end with them. 2. To urge against their Brethren, that desire sincerity, the opinions and practice of the Fathers in doctrine, church-polity, or ceremony. The Apostles being Prophets, and foreseeing evils, gave this precept, To remember their words, 2 Pet. 3.2. And it is safest so to do. This must be often pressed & thought upon by all that love our Lord jesus Christ, with incorruption of spirit It was said plainly, Beware lest any man carry you for a spoil, through the traditions of men according to the rudiments of the world. Augustine was of mind that Councils and Bishops ought not to be objected for trial of controversies, but the holy Scriptures, August. Cont. Max. Wherefore give the controversy about altars no quiet, no not for an hour, for the truth of the Gospel else will not continue with crifice to officiate upon his altar. Mordecai was sure to overthrow Haman. God had sworn and said, that be would have war with Amalek till he was rooted out. O ye servants of the Lord contend by meek writings, by fervent prayer, and bold confession, for the maintenance of the faith once given to the saints, for Christ hath sworn and said, Rome's apostate politic should be perishing to the end, Exod. 17. Num. 24.2 Thess. 2. Apoc. 10. & 17. ●l●ars are a main prop for abaddon's Kingdom, and it is a complying with it, and therefore some learned men have done amiss in pleading for that innovation. Ibid. and fi●st woe] Whereas Christ pronounceth Woe, woe, woe, to the apostate churches, it showeth the ignorance and vanity of a childish, belly-god spirit of many that say it was a good world in the days of Popery, of such good neighbourhood, plenty, and prosperity, and cheapness of things. Thus of old apostates pleaded against Christ and his Prophet jeremiah ch. 44. But his answer will stop all mouths, but the obstinate in superstition, profaneness and man's inventions: lyea such are ignorant of our own chronicles that so speak. Quest. 8. and answ. N. 2. which troubled lesser Asia] The seven churches of Asia, and others falling from the faith, Christ removed their Candlesticks by the Turk, which shall be further touched in the comparison of the seven Trumpets and seven Vials Ibid. and by their resurrection] The two Prophets that were killed by the beast stand upon their feet: that is, other godly of their spirit Christ raised for the good of the Church: as the Spirit of Alias rested on Elisha. N 4. Thus God hath once revealed] The eleven former chapters of the Apocalypse revealeth the State of the church to the end of the world: and the rest of the Apocalypse goeth over the same things with sweet variety. Ibid. Eath blessing is here beg●n, and shall be perfected] all the saints that are in this vale of tears do sit in the heavenly places, and have chambers in the Jerusalem that is from heaven. And here God wipeth all tears from our eyes. And when they change this life they fully possess that of which they had an earnest, as the godly of gold were in the heavenly Tabernacle, Psalm 15.1. The heavenly Father hath but one family, yet two Tabernacles, or two dwelling places, the one in heaven, the other on the earth: When any of his Servants hath done so much service or factorage (Polyt●uman, Phil. 3.20.) as he thinks fit, than he calls for him home, from that part of the family on earth, to the other in the heavens to possess the joy of his Lord. Here an entrance is given us into the everlasting kingdom of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, 2 Pet. 1. here we pass from death to life, John 5. It is said we are in the second Adam renewed after the image of God that created us, and as here we bear his image, so shall we bear it in the heavens, and there be fully satisfied with it, Psalm 17.1 Cor. 15.49. and further the Scripture saith, he that hath prepared us for immortal glory after our earthly house of tabernacle is taken down, is God, who hath also given unto us the earnest of the Spirit. Another Scripture saith, He hath made us meet to be partakers of the inhertiance of the Saints in light, 2 Cor. 5.1, 2. Col. 1. We are made meet in this life for that blessed possession. Christians trained up in the word of Christ, must hold anathema the Ovidian and Virgilian doctrine of the Popish purgatory, etc. Beware left there be any man catry you for a spoil through Philosophy and vain deceit, Col. 2. CHAP. XV. Questions, Answers, and Annotations, Proving that Rome in God's just Judgement, is the place that he hath given unto the power of Satan for the setting up the mystery of iniquity. QUest. 1. and Answ. What place by God's unsearchable judgement was permitted to Satan for the setting up of the Mystery of Iniquity? Answ. Rome in Italy, for after those ruins it was brought unto, it began in process of time to be in credit again. Then Satan used all signs, and lying wonders to advance there the Throne of the Beast, the man of sin, or the pontificality: (a) As most churches so Rome in special was broken off by misbelief: and for not continuing in God's goodness, as they were forewarned, Rom. 11. And when the pontificality was set up by the decree of God, than nations from East to West; obeyed and Worship the Pope, and the image of the Imperial State as of old time they did the profane Emperors, Whereas if it had not been for the Pontificality, Rome and its Empire should never have been revived, but left a most filthy lodging of Oxen and Hogs (b) St●uchus against, Vallo, Lib. 1. in the beginning. Even this do the Roman Catholics themselves confess. And so there the wounded Head was revived by the Pontificality. QUest. 2. But Rome (totidem literis) is not named in the holy Scriptures to be the Mother of Whoredoms and abominations. How do you know that all these evils were thence to arise? Answ. By divers notes and marks. 1. It is evident that the fixed Head of the Roman State and Power, the Polity of Roman Caesar's, crucified our Lord. 2. By the Locusts and their King, the Angel of the bottomless-pit, which can agree to no politic corporation in the world but to the Pope, and his spiritualty. QUest. 3. and Answ. How is the King of Locusts described? Answ. 1. It is showed that the King of Locusts was a star in the heaven of the Church, but did opostate, and became not a Messenger of the Church of Christ, but the Angel of the Pit. 2. The keys which formerly he had being an Angel, and a Star, were for the honour of CHRIST'S Kingdom, but apostating his keys, are the keys of the bottomless pit. 3. When he used the keys of Christ's authority well, then light of truth he taught, to the opening of the kingdom of heaven, and to glorify Christ; but apostating with the keys of the Dragon, and his own authority, he let out of the pit a smoke of heresies to corrupt the earth, and to darken Sun and air, Christ the Sun of Justice, and his Mediation, and the Scriptures by which light cometh to our eyes. So in all this he is not a Star of Heaven, nor a Messenger of the Congregation of God, but Apolluon, a King of Pit-darknesse. 4. In that the Holy Spirit gives the King of Locusts the appellation of Apolluon, it was to teach the sealed of God, that all his Polity, his Laws, (crossing common reason) his mass, his idolitry; his (c) Especially on Gen. 3.15. translating she for he. false translating of Scripture, his false litigious rules of faith, his false miracles, lying signs, and wonders, (d) Mr. Calvin and others writ of their Relics. forged relics, his reviving of Aaron's office and ceremonies, (e) As eloquent and learned Viretus in his Christian disputations hath showed so also a book of the three conformities. and heathenish customs, and fables, etc. etc. that all tendeth to eternal destruction: so he is another Apollo, a Devil of Delphos, destroying all such as spoke at his mouth. QUest. 4. How are his Locusts described? Answ. 1. Out of the smoke of the Pit, the Pope's Clergy ariseth, They be Locusts for their Great swarms, and idle bellies, bred from the pit (fruges consumere nati) to consume the fruits of other men's labours: Millions of Monks and Friars, etc. void of all actions for Political use, are fitly compared to Locusts. 2. They be as Scorpions having stings in their Tails, showing they be false Prophets by close-poisoning and terrifying doctrine, to sting and vex, enthral and torment the hearts and minds of men. 3. They are for the Wars which they are their king cause and make, and for strengthening and defending their own authority and doctrine, as horses (f) This is too manifest ever since the Bishop of Rome got the Supremacy by the Murderer Phocas. ready for battle, with wings of Chariots, with Breastplates of iron. Also they have teeth of Lions to devour all, and to hold fast that, which by fraud our violence they have once gotten. 4. They would seem to have no secular power, yet their deal show they wear Crowns like Gold: as hating God's ordinance of Magistracy. How have they and Abaddon their king contested against Princes, how have they given the affront to the greatest Potentates, etc. etc. 5. For private State in pretence they are said to have faces of men: for cloister keeping, and womanly-life, and for many of women-sex in their orders, they are said to have hair like women. This denoteth also their counterfeit modesty and simplicity, and alluring enticements by good words and fair speeches, deceiving as Balaamites the hearts of the simple to spiritual fornication. 6. They are three unclean spirits like frogs, spirits of Devils, that come out of the mouth of the Dracon, and out of the mouth of the Beast, and out of the mouth of the false Prophet, from whom they have commission to creep into king's Courts, to teach and persuade by false miracles, and froggy slimy, unclean doctrines of devils, to ignoble and dangerous attempts, cruel and tyrannical projects, etc. But their croaking hath not that event for their purpose, under the Phials, as under the Trumpets. These notes all agree most fitly to the Roman Catholics. QUest. 5. How furthermore hath the holy Spirit described Rome in its abominations? Answ. By the arms, that God hath set out the Empire and Pontificality: first by the great red Dracon and his tail: by the body of the Dracon, is meant the Empire under the Caesars: by the tail is meant the false Prophet, that deceived the world with false doctrine. QUest. 6. How secondly? Answ. The Empire is described by one Beast coming out of the Sea, who hath seven heads and ten horns: yea also in this Beast is comprised the Pontificality, being the Reviver of the wounded Head. This beast hath his arms, from i four Beasts in Daniel chap. 7. For Rome having subdued all those Countries that those Beasts ruled, and being like them for idolatry and cruelty in afflicting the holy City descending from heaven, is a monster compounded of all four: Being a Beast of seven heads and ten horns, mouthed like a Lion, footed like a Bear, and spotted like a Leopard. QUest. 7. How thirdly? Answ. By the Beast that arose out of the Earth, having two horns like a Lamb, which meaneth the false Prophet, the Angel of the Pit, the usurping Vicar of Christ, which is the Pontificality, or the Corporation of Popes. QUest. 8. What is meant by the seven Heads of the spotted Beast? Answ. Two things: First the seven Hills on which the City of Rome was builded. Secondly, the seven Kings or Polities, or kinds of government, that were and should be of that City. QUest. 9 How many governments had been when the Apostle wrote? Answ. Five had been, one than was, and another should come after. QUest. 10. What Head was it that then was? Answ. The Caesars ruling the Empire. This description of a City that then reigned (when the Apostle wrote) over the Kings of the Earth, by seven Hills, and seven changes of Government agreeth with no City in the World, but Rome. QUest. 11. How long did that Head live, which was alive, when the Apostle wrote? Answ. About three hundred years, and then godly Constantinus made it dead, as is said, removing the Constantinople. QUest. 12. What Government did come after the Caesars, the fixed Head was wounded to death? Answ. The Pontificality, that is, the Government of the Roman State by Popes; This is meant by the Beast with two Horns like a Lamb, who revived the wounded Head, of the Empire, and made it to live. So the double power of the pontificality is a Seavensh, and after a sort an eighth Head or Polity. QUest. 13. What is meant by the ten horns of the Spotted Beast? Answ. The Kingdoms that committed fornication with the great Whore, and that gave their power to uphold the kingdom of the Beast, that revived the Empire. QUest. 14. How further is Rome's Policy under the Empire, and the Corporation of the Papacy, described? Answ. By mystical allusions to Countries and Cities: to Sodom for filthiness of life, pride, excess, idleness and oppression: to Babylon and Egypt for false Religion, bondage, and cruelty. And observe, it is said plainly, That our Lord was crucified in the great City, or large Common-weal, which Spiritually is called Sodom and Egypt. And Apolluon the King of the Pit, the King of Locusts, and his Locusts did cruelly murder the faithful Witnesses of Christ; that they found in that their policy. QUest. 15. How doth the Apostle to the Thessalonians, set forth unto us the Beast with two Horns, like a Lamb? Answ. By what he is, and by what he doth. 1. He is called like Jeroboam (a) As God taught Adam to give names to express natures, Gen. 2. so God in these names teacheth Princes and People what they shall find, in the Beast, that was, and is not, and yet is. A man of sin: called the Son of Perdition, like Ishcariot, a new Antiochus, an adversary, and in the estimation of his corporation, a God: called also the Wicked and Lawless: add hitherto the other names, and titles of the Father of the Papacy: an apostate Star, Wormwood, Angel of the Pit, King of Locusts, Abaddon, Apolluon, i. e. destroyer, false Prophet, Beast of the Pit, Beast like a Lamb, Healer of the wounded Head, of the Dragon, Antichrist, Pope (b) The common name which we and Papists give the Pope unawares, is to be marked, how Christ over-ruleth our tongues, for Pope and Daemon are all one, as learned have observed. or Daemon. 2. His actions are, he causeth an Apostasy or Rebellion from the faith, and when that apostasy came to the height, he set him and his corporation above all authority of the Magistrate. And in the Church or Temple of God would do those things, which are proper unto God: forgiveth sins, maketh new articles of faith, (c) Vid. Mr. White, way to the true Church Epistle to the Reader, and Mr. Junius on the Apoc. 13.12, 13, etc. maketh his Decrees to be obeyed and followed, as, yea before, and above the very Scriptures (d) He dispenseth with Gods Law. of God, and Lord of faith and conscience, etc. and saith of himself; I am a God on Earth, and that all the Kingdoms of the World are his, and giveth them to whom he will. Now all this iniquity is administered in a mystery by the effectual working of Satan with all power and signs, and lying wonders in all force of deceit and violence. Annotations upon the Questions and Answers of the fifteenth Chapter. QUest. 1. The man of sin or the Pontificality] The Corporation of Popes is termed as one man. Mark such Corporation speeches: Moses speaketh to all Israel as to one man: so all the wicked from Kain to the wicked Jews are but one corporation: yea to the end of the World, Mat. 23.35. So the four Beasts are termed four Kings, that is four Kingdoms, Daniel chap. 7. So the ten horns of the Roman Beast are ten Kings that is Kingdoms that gave their power to the Beast. And all the godly from the beginning of the world to the ending are one corporation in Christ, Ephesians 1.10. Quest. 3. N. 3. with the keys of the Dragon, and his own authority] Keys argue deputation of office, as Esay 22. Matth. 16. Apoc. 1. And we may see what deputation to office Satan gave the Beast like a Lamb, Apoc. 13.11, 12, 13, etc. So here note King Abaddon is Satan's Lieutenant to destroy Hebrews and Greeks, Jews and Gentiles, by advancing and urging his Keys, to the rejecting not only the holy doctrine of Christ in the old and new Testament, but those two languages of Hebrew and Greek, and making a Scripture of his base Latin, and urging it upon the Church. Therefore he ought to be esteemed, of Jew and Gentile, not only Abaddon but Apolluon. Ibid. Smoke of herestes to corrupt the earth.] Apolluons apostatical kingdom did corrupt the earth: and the seven thunders of God's judgements of the Lord God omnipotent attend to corrupt it, as in the seven Vials: as God did corrupt the corrupters, Gen. 6. Ibid. and the Scriptures by which light, etc.] the lawless man of sin, and his Locusts by their strong violent, and usurped authority, and false doctrines set up a Religron more after Homer, Ovid, Virgi●, and Plutarch then after the Prophets and Apostles: such a fearful darkness they brought upon all the doctrine of Christ: that to this day our nation in many places is full of heathenish customs and traditions. N. 4. His false litigious rules of faith] even their own learned men that were at ●rent could not understand the meaning of some points, and wrote one against another, like the old Babylonian bvilders. Things were so craftily set down of purpose, like the oracles of Apollo. vid. the Hist. Coun. Trent. page 229. edition 1620. read Mr. Cade Justif. pag. 281. and 282. Quest. 4. N. 1. Out of the smoke of the pitthe Pope's Clergy ariseth.] Thus view them. Devouring Locusts, Stinging Se●rpions, Ar●●● horses. R●n●●ng Li ns. Crowned usurpers, Croaking frogs, Spirits of Devils. All noisome creatures, vermin not to be suffered in any wise or godly polity: they are the creatures of a Destroyer: These attributes show their conditions. Warm weather of policy puts quickening in the Locusts, and then they will devour, and if you look not to them betime, they will prove stinging Scorpions, then barded horses, than rending lions, then crowned usurpers; if they find not their party strong enough, than they creep like frogs into other King's Courts, to excite to war; and then Spirits of Devils to walk over Land and Sea to destroy all them that oppose them: they are the stigmatical sworn slaves of Satan, and Abaddoon: O ye Princes and Nobles, and Gentry, and Commonalty, our fathers found them so, vid. the reigns of King john, Henry 2. and Henry 3. etc. N. 2. Poisoning and terrifying Doctrine.] Singultu cruentato: the Scorpions sting men's hearts, that death was desired rather than life, Apoc. 9 6. Vid. Mr. Cad●, his worthy labours, justif. lib 1.128. & lib. 2.88 & 89. and the Appendix, li. 1 & 3. So we may observe how the Histories of our forefathers do comment on the Apocalypses. Also observe these stinging Scorpions in their Doctrine: of Purgatory (especially on men's death beds) pilgrimage, and anathemas, and treasons, etc. And how no man must dare to question any thing, vid. the book of the Spanish Inquisition. N 4. They wear Crowns like gold] Note, not only King Abaddon wears a Crown, but it is said his Locusts have Crowns like Gold, each Locust dethronizeth, and uncrowneth godly Princes in his heart. A sharp Winter of policy will and must make the Scorpion-Locusts flee to the hedges to hid themselves, or else we shall all grieve it is good to remember the two noble Henry's of France. Let our Nobles, Gentry, and Commons, all our blessed Nation, advisedly think of businesses for't posterity. The Spirits of Devils are traversing the earth and Seas, as much as Becket, Petrus de ●u●ibus, and the Archpriest under Hen●y the fourth, Gardiner, Bonner, Raviliac, etc. etc. Ibid. N 4. Hating Gods Ordinance of Magistracy.] Obedience to Princes, the Doctrine of Sems Tents, and the sons of S m, Rom. 13.1 Pet. The contrary is the Doctrine of Apolluons Tents, and his Locusts, and their deceived, who make but a mock of Princes and Governors, as it was foretold of such, Likewise these silt by dreamers defile the sl●sh, despise dominion, and speak evil of Dignities, Judas 8. N. 5. By good words and fair speeches.] Like the old schismatical Romanists, that by such means made Divisions and offences against the Doctrine of Christ, See how the mystery of iniquity began to work even in Rome in the apostles days, Rom. 10.17.2 Thes. 2. In Rome they not only schismed from the holy Doctrine, but from the righteous Doctrine of lawful powers ordained of God. Rom. 13. N. 6. To creep into King's Courts.] Such are fittest for Achabean Kings Courts, which hate the true Michaiahs. Let Jehosaphats Court look to it. They can never make an holy Court, if there were 400 of them, and 450. If Jehosaphat notwithstanding what Michaiah said, will yet go to Ramoth G●lead, with Achab, Jeroboam-man of sin, his Religion— Let the Princes of the Papacy wrangle together: Let the Reformed maintain the glorious Gospel, and keep at home, and stand upon their defence, and not weaken themselves in men and money, and ammunition: yet to do as Simeon and Judah did, and to help the Lord against the mighty, Jud. 1. and 5. Note also, as it was a plague to Pharaoh, and old Egypt, that God brought frogs into his Land, into his bedchamber, and upon his bed, and into the Egyptian houses, so it is a plague that the frogs of Rome-Egypt come into the Territories of Princes, to have entertainment either into their Courts, or their subjects houses, chambers and beds. The same must be noted for the other plagues of blood, darkness, blains, boils, and sores that were on old Egypt, are and shall be on old Rome-Egypt. Apoc. 16. Ibid N. 6. Cruel and tyrannical projects.] They said, as their Predecessors, we have a Law, and by our Law they ought to die, and that it was not lawful for them to put any man to death, and so craved aid of the secular power, which men durst not refuse. The Popish company and their friends make Decrees and Cannons, and Princes must be their men to punish the transgressors. Thus they make Princes executioners of their best subjects. Vide Mr. Cade Justis. p, 166, 167. etc. and who were worst enemies to the Prophets, our Lord, and his Apostles, but the ecclesiastics of their days, whose eyes ran a whoring after their father's idols and vanities, Icremiah durst not humour, but reprove the wicked apostate Prelates, therefore forsooth the King and Princes must put him to death, jer. 26. So because our Lord from Galilee to jerusalem taught against the traditions of the Elders, and reproved their errors of bodily exercise, their superstitions, their ignorance, blindness, hypocrisy, and false glosses on the Law, therefore he was a perverter of the Nation, and a mover of sedition, and so it was in the case of the apostle Paul, and therefore our Lord and his apostles must be put to death. Trouble wicked and apostate Prelates, you are ipso facto, a seditious person, and a troubler of the State. O ye Magistrates take heed how you give c edit to the flatteries and Diabolical slanders of such creatures, that you slain not your hands with innocent blood, Luc. 3.5 Acts 24.5, 6. R. B. Latimer in a Letter to King Henry 8. sheweth how it was the practice of the Scorpion locusts, to convey their own inventions, and Proclamations under the King's name and authority. Princes that have cast off mystical Nimrod, and have made their commonweals our Lords and his Christ's, will not rule subjects as the Princes of mystical Egypt and Sodom, to conquer honest Subjects, as such apostate Shepherds did of old, which were rebels and robbers, Ezek. 1. Ezek. 33. such know not the ways of peace, which is the fruit of holy and just government; but godly Princes in the policy of the heavenly Jerusalem, will be as it is wtitten, I will make thy government peace, and thine exactors righteousness, Isa. 60. as Ezekiel further saith, chap 45.9. and 46.18. Sad events have been when Princes have removed the Landmarks. The Covenant with the Gibeonites was a Land. mark, which was broken and severely plagued, Ahabs and Naboths story confer, see the plottings, and projects. Princes that will have their wills and lusts satisfied, mind nor him that ruleth in the heavens. See a Landmark concerning the liberty of the Subject. Christ ordained, how transgressed, how plagued, Jer. 34. Again, I●hriak●m thought his Kingly Prerogative would bear him our in covetousness, oppression, innocent blood, and in usiug the labours of his Carpenters and masons, without pay, jer. 22. what came to this son of Belial. So here were Landmarks of an ancient sanction, of men's possessions, of I●berties, and of goods transgressed, and mightily plagued. God is Jehovah, his Judgements are for ever unchangeable, he is neither wearied by long process of time, nor won to give his blessing in one●age, to that which he hath carsed in another. There are Landmarks of Christ's own making in those ten words, Exod. 20. (and in other places expounded) between all relations divine and humane, which none may will ully violate, but will fall on the point of his own sword, Hos 5 Deut. 27 Job 24 Prov 28.16. Quest. 6. and Ans. This beast bathe his arms from the four be ●sts in Danie The Apocalypses, and some other places and parcels of the new Testament is a new Prophecy of Christ, of new States, and governments, both of the Church, the new jerusalem, and its enemies, but expressed in old terms. This we must well observe how the Spirit of endless wisdom and foresight, contriveth like revolutions, and the former to be the stamps of the latter. If we mind not this, we shall run (as we do) into great confusion of story: so he that is A. and Ω. from the beginning to the end, ruleth the world in a most wise course to show his judgement and mercy: where in this last book of the Apocalypses, calling old speeches to new matters, goeth through the Alphabet of old ages, that he may be seen to join the first and last stories in wise order, Mr. Bro. in Apoc 304. and upon Daniel page 3. chap. 13.9, 10. Quest. 9 and Ans. Five had been] The seven heads of the Roman Beast afflicting the Church, Apoc. 13. 1. Pompey, 2. Crassus, 3. Julius Caesar, 4. Brurus w. Cassius. 5. Antonius, 6. Caesar's, 7. Popes, The Popes their double power is a seventh, and after a sort an eighth head: these are the seven States over the faithful, as John and all the Jews knew * the story ofe six of these heads. their story full well. The Church hath great comfort, that the Pontificality is the last head of the Beast. Heathen stories may sit those other States of Rome, of 1 Kings, 2. Consuls. 3. Decemviri. 4. Dictator's. 5. Triumvirs. 6. Caesar's. 7. Popes. The more fall out fit, as often many do to one speech, the more Rome that crucified Christ is condemned, when God turneth continual revolutions to have Rome called into mind. Quest. 12. and Ans. So the double power of the Pontificality] Caesar and Ponisix. It is worth the noting, that the Caesars titled themselves Pontisex, that showeth the Pontificality revived the wounded head of the Caesarian Pontifex. Quest. 13, and Answer, what is meant by the ten horns of the spotted beast?] Ten Tribes followed jeroboam, the Man of Sin, Ten Kingdoms followed King Abaddon the Man of Sin, Ten Tribes rebelled against the Kingdom of David, and the Religion of the Temple. Ten Kingdoms under the Papacy despised, the Kingdom of the Son of David, and the holy Temple in the heavenly Jerusalem. Steuchus a mystical Babylonian recordeth the Kingdoms of Europe, that gave their power to the Beast, 1. Spain, and Portugal, 2. Hungaria, 3. Great Britain, 4. Denmark, 5. R●ssia, 6. Croatia, and Dalmatia, 7. Arragon, 8 ●ohenna, 9 Suevia, and Nornegia, 10. Dacia. These paid Tribute to the Pope. Quest. 14. and answ. By mystiall allusions to Countries, and Cities, to Sodom, for filthiness] no sin so vile, but it reigns in an Apostate Church, so it reigns in Abolah, and Aholibab, Ezek. 23. are said to do worse than the heathens before them, to transcend in excess of impieties, Sodom and Gomorrba. The apostate State of King Abaddon became the mother of Harlots, and all abominations of the earth, Christ, his holy Gospel is cords and bands, post and rail to man's corrupt nature, but that taken away, men do degenerate into all profaneness. Ibid. That our Lord was crucified] Asdruball long as we protest in the Symbolon of our faith, that the eternal Son, the Lord of glory was crucified by Pontius Pilate, Rome must be held accursed● The Pontificality doth not take away the curse, but continues it, because it revived the wounded head, and doth as it did, persecuting Christ in his witnesses, Them that keep the Commandments of God, and the faith of JESUS CHRIST. Ibid. called Sodom and Egypt.] The former be stamps of the latter, it is said, I am jehovah thy God, which brought thee out of the Land of Egypt, out of the house of bondage This is a Preface to all the Commandments: so the same must be a reason to all the Israel of God, to walk with God, for bringing us out of Rome-Egypt, out of that house of cruel bondage. Look what cause Lot had to be thankful, for saving him from Sodom's destruction, such cause have we for being delivered from Rome-Sodome, and what cause of thankfulinesse and praise Israel had for deliverance from Egypt and Babylon, such have we for that great and marvellous deliverance from Rome-Egypt, and Rome Babylon. All those Psalms of praise, wherein deliverance from Egypt is mentioned must be sang of us for Rome-Egypt, and the holy Spirit teacheth us so to do, Apoc 15.3. & 19.1. All the faithful under the new Testament are the Israel of God, Gal. 6 Note this by the way, if we under the new Testament are under a Covenant of grace, than was Israel of old under a Covenant of grace, for we sing their songs. Observe the note in chap. and page infra Again consider, is Rome called Egypt; What shame should cover those apostate mouths and faces, that say, there is little or no difference, and an easy reconciliation may be made between the faith of the Church of England, and the Roman? What an apostatical slander is that to our Vine and vinedressers, that our God brought forth of mystical Egypt, yea to our Princes and Parliament, in all their Statutes that they made against the people of that cursed religion: when as manifest a difference God hath made, as of old he did between old Egypt and Israel, Exod. 8.22, 23. and 10 23. etc. as the RR FF. D.D. D. Jewel. D. Abbot. D. Fulk, D. Carlton, D. Reynolds, D. ●●hitakers, Mr. Perkins, and all our worthies have demonstrated. See also Mr. white way to the true Church, who wrote most whitely, the Epistle dedicatory, and the Epistle to the Render But very like none of all these, neither Princes, nor Parliaments, Books of Controversies, Teachers, and Laws understood, what is Popery, properly so called, as Bishop Lawa saith in a book of his. But for all their plotting, the old enmity shall never be reconciled, while light and darkness continue, God hath put the enmity, Gen. 3.15. What, will ye reconcile the Kingdom of Christ, and the Kingdom of Abaddon, of Satan's darkness: goodly day's men, thou thinkest saith God, that I am like to thee, Psal. 50. These umpires, forsooth, will make Christ yield something, yea any thing on his part, and the false Lamb must yield something on his part, and so our Atheistical hearts think a good end is made. There was a time when our Laud said, No peace with Rome, What a spirit of slumber and giddiness hath covered our Seers? Christ was angry of old for these sins of his sons, and of his daughters, halting between two opinions. And thirdly, is Rome called Egypt, than the Magistrate must not bring the people of Israel back to Egypt, nor go to Egypt for horses, or any help, Deut. 17. Accursed be their project, that by fair speeches, and plausible pretences, but indeed speaking lies through hypocrisy, do insinuare to corrupt the breasts of Princes, to reduce their people into Rome-egypts' bondage: Judah is blamed for these projects, Isa. 30. & 31. Most of the stories of old Egypt and Babylon must mind us of their allusions. Note two things, 1. Israel doted on the Egyptians, and Babylonians their lovers, traversing projects with them, Jer. 2. Ezeck. 16. But Christ befooled their do, that these nations were their plague, and ruin. 2. A deal of profaneness, oppression, and much wickedness they brought from Babel, as Ezra, Nehemiah, and Zachary do show. Let all true English hearts, that love Christ and his Gospel, and their native Country, greatly humble their souls, and pray that the Ephah of wickedness (Zac. 5.6.) may be carried unto its own place, into the Land of mystical Babylon. O heavens be astonished at our 2 evils. Ah Lord God, what iniquity do we find in thee, what iniquity is in thy ordinances, thy commandments, thy Gospel, thy true Christian servants, all which now are reputed vile, mean, and as anathema, but thou hast not been to us in these a wilderness, or a Land of darkness, but a God of glory, riches, honour, plenty, victory and protection from those accursed of that cursed Religion of the breaden God. O unthankful Nation. Let our souls weep in secret. Quest. 15. N. 1. Antichrist.] And what if the title Antichrist ●e not totidem literis attributed to the Pontificality, yet if the other titles are to be applied to it, than this is truly predicated of that Corporation; must not he be the Antichrist (can we think a worse to come) for persecuting them that held the testimony of JESUS, and for cleaving to the word of God, Apocalips, chap. 13.12. Ibid. N. 2. I am a God on earth.] Like the proud Prince of Tyrus, Ezek. 28 2. But that Tyrian God was not a God, but a man in the hand of him that killed him. The holy Spirit hath phrases from Tyrus its destruction, to show how the Lord God will render the mystical Tyrian god, his strength, his glory, and his Gammadims, and all that love his merchandise, a thrice execrable terror, and make them die the death of the unbaptised, and settle glory in the true Church, the Land of the living Jehovah of hosts hath purposed, (and let us believe it) to slain the pride of all glory, read Ez●k. 26. & 27. & 28. & Isa. 23.9. Apoc: 18. Consider like revolutions, and how the former be stamps of the latter. Ungodly Princes and men of place have proud thoughts, and think themselves some Deity: This comes from the old Adam, to whom Satan said, Ye shall be as gods, Gen. 3. CHAP. XVI. With Questions, Answers, and Annotations; Proving that the mystery of iniquity begun to get head from Constantine's time. QUest. 1. and Answ. How long was it before the mystery of iniquity came to the full? Answer, 1. From Constantine's time, Ecclesiastical Teachers were never quiet, but still aspired after Supremacy, and drew Princes to their factions till 600 years after Christ, then about that time, Boniface the third Pope of Rome, obtained by the help of the murderer Phocas, to be called universal Bishop. And this universal Supremacy did so increase until the tenth Century, that then Satan was let lose every where, and few Martyrs and Confessors were found to hold the Testimony of Christ sincerely and constantly. The Locusts and their King Abaddon had so obscured Sun and air, the office of Christ * The holy Bible though air to see Christ. and Law, by which we see him, and prevailed in the world by all deceivableness of unrighteousness among them that perish, because they received not the love of the truth in the holy and blessed Scriptures. 2. Note, that the Pontificiality continued in that height of Supremacy to about the 13th and 14th and 15th Century. All which time it was and is still upheld by Rebellion, treasonable and cruel practices, unsatiable Covetousness, and ambition, and by speaking lies through hypocrisy, and by strong delusions in false Doctrine, concerning the holy Scriptures, Latine-service, the attained Supremacy, images, perjury, covenant-breaking, urging unlawful oaths, and killing of Kings, giving Dispenlations for incestuous marriages, dissolving one to contract another, and all for Popish interests, to shore up their tottering Babylon, etc. And also their Index Expurgatorius, corrupting all good ancient authors, and their own Modern, yea slighting with great contempt, the worthy (a) M. cade Justi●. ●ib. 1 p, 48. Mr. White way, etc. 323. all that 47. digression. ancient fathers, calling them Heretics, liars, orroneous, instead of the great things of God's Law, they obtruded their lying Legends, etc. Mind also their detestation of the thoughts of any Reformation, either of Doctrine and manners, etc. etc. etc. 3. Oh the abominations of that apostate Church: Oh the intricate and investigable paths, the flatteries, (b) But her steps are not as her lips, Prov. 5.3, 4, 5. Rom. 16.18. smoothness and fairness of speech, pleasurable delights of eyes and ears, etc. clamourous and impudent subtleties, lies, and slanders, formal pretences of palliated holiness, and outward strength and glory of that great whore, enchanting, and merchandising the Kings of the earth, and the Nations, all which that Church yet managed with a secret Scorpion-like stinging terror in their Legates and Emissaries, Bulls, and Breves, etc. 4. What pen can delineate the miseries of the Christian-world, when and after the polity of Apolluon became a perfect mountain of fire, and that specially appeared in the deepness of Satan, when he drew all the West for 200 years, into those calamitous and superstitious Wars, the 11. and 12. Centuries, for the Low Jerusalem, that all the force of the Kings and Princes of the West was weakened to be under the Pontificality. In those days was the Jerusalem from heaven, the holy and beloved City of Christians besieged, as if old Gog and Magog were alive, and still the Papacy will fight against it, till Michael, the mighty angel of the Covenant, our Lord JESUS CHRIST, utter the seven Thunders of his power under the * They shall feel unawares the power of Christ, the seventh Trumpet, as Jericho felt the seventh day the seven Trumpets. seventh Trumpet, and the seventh Vial against abaddon's Kingdom, to give the enemy a final destruction. QUest. 2. What is that you call the mystery of iniquity? Answer, It is the spiritual Supremacy of the pontificality, that the Sea and Church of Rome only, with the Head thereof, is the oracle of the world, and of infallible judgement and cannot err, and that therefore all States and Churches, as children must be subject to him the Head, and to her as Mother, † As old Babylon said, I shall be a Lady for ever, so mystical Babylon saith, she sits as Queen. Their wisdom and their knowledge perverted them, Isa. 47. Apoc. 13. Queen and Mistress. And this is the faith of its Corporation, which also hath through the transformation of Satan into an angel of light, some points of truth conjoined, but exceedingly defiled and over clouded with worldly decrees and humane devices, heresies, and blasphemies, which in conclusion contradict and overthrow the truths they hold, and renders their polity execrable to the Saints and their King, the holy one of Israel. QUest. 3. Who were followers of the King of the Pit-darknesse, and Pit-bred Locusts, that revived the Empire. Answer, Kings, and peoples, and multitudes and Nations, and kindreds and tongues, small and great, rich and poor, bond and free, who wondered at the glorious rising and standing of this new kind of Govenour and government. This Corporation of the Papacy, the Locusts, and other mystical Babylonians, fitly enough call, the Roman Catholic Church. But the First and the Last, the faithful and true Witness, teacheth to call it the Kingdom of the Beast. The annotations upon the Questions and Answers of the sixteenth Chapter. QVest. 1. and Answer, N. 1. Until the tenth Century.] 1000 years there were Churches, and many godly that did reign with, and live the life of Christ. Apoc. 10.6. But the tenth Centurie, reckoning from the Apostle john's death) Rome the cause of fall to all, and then the State of the Church or a great part was a dead State, being wonderfully estranged from the testimony of JESUS, and the word of God, the only mean of the first Resurrection. Ibid. N. 1. Among them that perish.] Those in the Book of life, and the sealed of God, the Locusts did not hurt; but others turning their ears from the truth were given unto Fables, 2 Tim. 4. This Spiritual judgement was on Israel, Isa. 29 9 A gainsaying people shall be hardened, and given up to their own hearts lusts, Rom. 10.11. Psal. 81. N. 2. Unsatiable covetousness.] Unsatiable covetousness and ambition introduced many corruptions in Doctrine, as it was foretold, the love of money the root of all evil, and makes men err from the faith and a godly life, 1 Tim. 6. another Scripture saith, and through covetousness shall false Teachers with feigned words make merchandise of you, 2 Pet. 2. And the souls of men was one kind of the vendible things in Rome-babylons' politic, Apoc. 18.13. and here must be remembered their Pharisaical Co●ban ●obbing all Churches. N. 11.— Images.] Old Babylon was a Land of graven Images, and were mad upon their idols, Jer. 50.33. Dan. 3. so mystical Babylon; Papists although plogued by the Turks wars would not repent of their idolatry, Apoc. 9.20. as Israel Ezek. 16.26. Ibid. And killing of Kings.] For ●illing of Kings (of whom they are jealous) see a book of the State mysteries of the Jesuits, that is translated out of French, and dedicated to Sr. Tho. Penistone Knight and Baronet by Peter Gosselyn, printed by G. E. for Nicholas Bourn. Qui cum jesu itis, non itis cum jesuitis, the indoctrinated Iscariots of the world. Ibid. Any Reformation.] See the history of Council of Trent, page 553. and all our godly men's labours, by teaching and writing, that all the reformed Churches may truly say of mystical Babylon, as the Saints said of old Babylon. We would have healed Babylon, but she is not healed, forsake her, and let us every one go into his own Country, for her judgement reacheth unto heaven, Jer. 51.9. All the godly writings and endeavours of the Reformed Churches, shall rise up in judgement against them. N. 3. Sub●llties and lies] See Sir Edwin Sands relations of his travels, he shows their sleights in reports, etc. all histories and experience of Reformed Churches show their plots and devises. But Jethroes Speech doth comfort the Church, Exod. 18.11. Subtle Hypocrites, and Inventors of false Religion, Christ will defeat all their counsels. Job 5.12, 13. read Mr. Cade of Popish policies, lib. 1. p. 6. lib. 2. page 159. Ibid. N. 3. Great Whore] Because of the multitude of the whoredoms of the well-favoured Harlot, the mistress of witchcrafts, that selleth the Nations through her whoredoms, and the familles through her witchcrafts, The two Sisters followed the idolatryes of Ninive, Neh. 3, 4. 2 Kings 16. Ezek. 23.5. so did the Nations the glorious well-favoured Whore, through her enchantments, Apoc. 17.1, 2, 3 4, 5. etc. And the same plagues that came on the former shall come on this latter 2 Pet. 2.1, 2. N. 4. a perfect Mountain of fire] Where King abaddon's Locust● and subjects be maintained, it will make that Kingdom a burning Ae●na. The King of Locusts, and his Locusts, the great incendiaries of the World, and all is to minister advancement to Popish interests. They excite Princes against Princes, yea Turks against Princes of Christendom and Princes against subjects, etc. Ibid. N. 4. Drew all the West for two hundred years] woe and alas, it is to think of those miseries when presently after, Apoc. 20.7. the tenth Century, Satan was let lose. That age was an unhappy age: even as the Locust Genthrard spoke, and the Locust Bellarmine saith, Never age more unlearned or unhappy. Cited by Dr. Usher, in answer to a Jesuit, pa. 7 Mr. Cade, lib. 1. pa. 40. Ibid. 4. For the Low Jerusalem] Christ had told that Jerusalem should be desolate so long as the Gentiles calling continueth, even to the world's end, Marth. 24 Luke 21. as he caused Moses to foretell Deut. 28.63. Num. 33.56. But the Pontificality the false Prophet to weaken Princes who would be deceived, and not excel in God's word, as they most of all might do: He caused them to go from England, France, etc. men women, and children to recover the cursed Land. Compare the apostasy of Nimrod, and the man of Sin in Israel, with the apostasy of mystical Nimrod, the man of sin in the Christian Church; and the miseries thereupon depending. Far from Justice and Peace, 2 Chron 15.3, 4, 5, 6. How do men of power that are crafty and plausible draw men away from the Gospel of Christ? Ibid. As of old, God and Magog.] By God and Magog, Apoc. 20. is meant all oppressors of the faithful Christians, whether Turk or Pope, ●s Michael our Prince, captain of the Lords host, calmed old Gigs waves, Daniel 12. So he will mystical God and Magog, Apocalypse chap. 10. & 20. Quest. 2 and answ. It is the spiritual Supremacy] The Locusts say such as submit not to the Pope's supremacy do renounce Christianity Mr. Cade Justif. lib. 1. pag. 98, If Satan had not mightily possessed men's hearts, Rome the only place plainly cursed, should not rule Religion. But the rejected of God must strive, where God warneth to do otherwise, Mr. Bro. in Sinai Sight. The Romists seeking to have Rome a peculiar Citie●, do revive the shadow of the old Covenant: for now we are not tied to no one Mountain, much less to Ahaddons City of seven Mountains, John 4.21. And the name Catholic, used of old in the Church destroyeth that opinion. Catholica qu●esse potest quae Romana dici●u? And seeing the partition Wall is broken down between Jews and us, why make they another partition between us and them Rome for this and all of that Synagogue, are to be h●ld accursed till our Lord cometh, for it is accursed. And some of our Divines do little better than Judaize about the Jews possessing Canaan and Jerusalem. Ibid. Some points of truth conjoined] The Whores cup of Fornications was gui'ded with some truths, but filled with the waters and wine of Sodom, and doctrines of Devils, A Mystery. By thy Witchcrafts were deceived all nations; cauterised consciences speak lies through hypocrisy, Apoc 18.23.1 Tim. 4. Ibid. Heresies and blasphemies] And I saw a Woman sit upon a scarlet coloured Beast, full of Names of blasphemy. Their translations, Psalters, Rosaries, etc. show this. The Lord hath rebuked such Satan's, and still will. Quest 3. and Answ. Kings and Peoples, and Multitudes, etc.] Here you may behold a Roman Catholic: here is their universality, multitude unity, outward glory, etc. let them boast: but rather let them tremble, and consider Apoc. 13.8. & 17.8. They whose Names are not written in the Lamb's book of life from the foundation of the world followed the beast. Their Diets, Counsels, Parliaments, Synods, etc. were to enslave themselves to serve a Beast, and blasphemous Whore, a Witch, etc. God shall send them strong delusions to believe lies, 2 Thess. 2. Be wise now therefore O ye Kings, be instructed ye Judges of the earth. Serve Jehovah, kiss the Son, the Heir of heaven, Psalm 2. Mat. 21.38. Hebr. 1.2. O ye Princes study your Kingdoms, Principalities, and your commonweals. O ye Nobleses and Judges study to advance the Gospel, the glory of any Nation, that embraceth it, and that walketh after it. Oh be persuaded it is a good, light, and easy yoke, 2 Chron. 12.8. ye are the chief Bishops from God and Pastors: oh do not ye by negligence or transaction of your power to the unworthy, cause the Lords flock to be scattered. CHAP. XVII. With Questions, Answers, and Annotations, Concerning the two Witnesses, and the mark of the Beast: And the decay of the mystery of iniquity. QUest. 1. Who kept the Testimony of Jesus, and the word of God that came from Sems Tents in the times of the rising and height of the Pontificality? Answ. Many in the times of the rising of it, and there were here and there two Witnesses, some that followed the true Lamb, and that in the height of it, prophesied, misliked, and cried out against the proceed of the mystery of iniquity. But this company were not so conspicuous and visibly glorious, being for divers Hundreds of years driven as into a Wilderness through a red sea of fire and faggot by the Beast of the Bottomless pit, the counterfeit Lamb, and the prevailing faction of his six hundred sixty six apostatical number, yet at the last, the Brethren overcame by the blood of the Lamb, and by the word of their Testimony, and they loved not their lives unto the death. QUest. 2. Then the papacy would not bear with such as contested against it? Answ. Christ's faithful witnesses were caused to mourn in Sackcloth: No man might buy or sell that would not Worship the Image of the Beasts imperial State re-erected in the Pontificality, Like their forefathers, the servants of servants, the cursed Canaanice. Deut. 2.28, 29. and receive the Mark of the Beast, in his hand or forehead, or the name of the Beast, or at least be of the number of his name: yea, else were most cruelly used (as is said) throughout their large Common-weal. That Whorish Church, was and is drunk with the blood, and martyrs, of Jesus. QUest. 3. What do you understand to be the mark of the Beast? Answ. The Pope's Canon-Law telleth that none may live under the Empire, but by yielding to the Pope's Laws, in his subscribing to his Imperial and Ecclesiastical Supremacy, and oath of fidelity as a mark on the hand, and some open token of communion with him, and profession of his decrees as a mark in the forehead: The saying of the Ave Maria, went over all to the poor beggars, and reverence to the cross, and coming to their most wicked Mass. Forbidding and refraining from reading and teaching the holy Scriptures, but for licenced and auricular Confession. Briefly all differing from their Dracons' Laws were heretics, and mightnot use policy having not the marks of his Polity. QUest. 4. Did then the pontificality and Papacy (as the old Empire) porsecute the faith of the Prophets and Apostles doctrine. Answ. Yea, for it is said that the latter Beast like a Lamb with two horns, did all that the former Beast did. He had the voice and speech of the Dracon- Caesar's: and did maintain the same War against the * For the wars of the dragon- Caesars, and dragon-Pope●, see former notes. Saints, and for the same cause, and that was, the keeping of the commandments of God, and the faith of Jesus. And this is the very mark of those that have Gods Name in their Foreheads. Note as the old Beastlike enemies fought against the faith of Jerusalem Sem's Tents, and the People of God: so Rome-Egypt, Rome-Babylon, with like cruelty and intestine hatred both in the Caesars, and Popes against the same glorious faith of Jerusalem the holy. City that came down from heaven. Kain began the War, the Pontificality and Papacy follow Kains ways. The former be stamps of the latter. As there is a like revolution of time, so there is of other matters of Christ's administration. QUest. 5. But the mystery of Iniquity the spiritual Supremacy did not still continue in that strength and repute in the Christian world, as it had in former times? Answ. The Apostle foretold that the Lord Jesus would consume that wicked, that man of sin, and his corporation with the Spirit of his mouth, and abolish it with the brightness of his coming; so the fifteenth century, the Lamb, the King of mount Zion appeared with one hundred and forty four thousand, attending on him who caused the Gospel to break out again, and the light of it in the holy city increased to our days that Christ the Sun of justice shineth and reigneth in England, Scotland, France, Germany, etc. Blessed be his glorious name. And let the four and twenty Elders, and the sour lively Wights, and all that fear God both small and great, give thanks and sing Hallelujahs with all hearty courage, as Apocal. 15. & 19 QUest. and Ans. 6. Shall the Papacy be still decreasing? Ans. Yea, for the preaching of the eternal Gospel falleth Rome-babylon, and buildeth Jerusalem. This the Sword of Christ's mouth, hath consumed the Kingdom of the Beast: and chief through this, Abaddon the son of perdition, the angel of the bottomless pit, and his cursed earthly polity and corporation shall be perishing to the end, and is every day going to utter perdition. QVest, 7. But the Polity of Rome. Egypt is strong by power and subtle counsels, through the Kings and Princes that give their power to the Beast, and through the swarms of innumerable Locusts, and all his Worshippers: all which are confederate with him, and say, b So said the Atheists of old Egypt, and old Babylon, Dan. 3.15. Exod. 5.2. Jer. 50.34. who can war with the Beast as Apocal. 13.4. Answ. Strong is Lord God of Hosts, the King of Kings, and Lord of Lords, that will judge the great Whore, and overthrow that habitation of Devils, that hold of every foul Spirit, that Cage of every unclean and hateful Bird. For he fitteth as on a White Cloud with a sickle in his hand, and as on a White Horse of truth and might, and in righteousness doth judge and make Warr. And the godly * The called, the chosen, the faithful, are on the Lamb's part, Apoc. 17 14. Warriors † All those cry mightily to him that sits on the Cloud, to thrust in his sickle, and their prayers are heard, Apoc. 14.15. Princes, † Teacher's and † people, as on White Horses in his truth and might will follow him. † And that we might be assured of Mystical Babylon's destruction, Gen 6.11, 12, 13. & 11.8. Jos. 10.11. Jud. 4. & 5.19. Jer. 25.10. Nah. 3.4.17. Ezek. 17. & 28. Deut. 2.27, 28. with Apoc. 13.17. Esai. 63.3. the holy Spirit alludeth to the stories of the old enemies, the old world, Sodom, Egypt, Chanaan, Edom, Tyrus, Niniveh, Babel, and apostate Jerusalem, & to the four cursed Kingdoms in Daniel chap. 7. & to Gog and Magog, Ezek. 38, & 39 As God's wrath and vengeance came on them, so most surely shall the cursed, bloody, heathenish, apostatical polity of King Abaddon be trodden in the winepress of the wrath of the Lord God omnipotent, and perish. The seven * The seven phials show how Rome shall as it dealt in the Trumpets, as shall be more largely showed hereafter. Phials set forth this, how the just God doth pour out plagues on the Throne and Kingdom of the Beast. QUest. 8. Shall the Gospel of Christ increase in glory? Answer, It shall: Christ will raise up holy Teachers, who shall by his great power cause the earth to be lightened with glory. And the Temple and Testimony which the Beast of the Pit had shut up, shall be further opened, and the Lord the Almighty One shall reign. The same Kingdoms that gave their power to the Beast, shall regain, and shall revive from their dead apostatical condition, and hate the Whore, that loathsome Corporation of the King of Locusts, make their Kingdoms our Lords and his Christ's, for they shall embrace the Gospel which shall shine among them. This is called the marriage of the Lamb, Apoc. 19 And verily, as that whorish Polity hath been desolate and naked, in respect of England, Scotland, and much of Germany, etc. so shall it be of France, and Spain, and others, when God's purposes are fulfilled. QUest. 9 What is the final judgement given on the second beast with two horns like a Lamb, who is the Beast of Empire revived, and also with his Locusts is the false Prophet? Answer, It is said the Beast was caught, and with him the false Prophet which worketh miracles before him, by which he deceiveth them that receive the mark of the Beast, and worship his image, both were cast alive as Sodomites into the Lake burning with fire and Brimstone, and shall be tormented with the Devil's day and night, for ever and ever. Even so, Amen, Lord God omnipotent, holy, just and true are thy ways, and judgements, O King of Saints, QUest. 10. What is the judgement on them that are seduced by the great, glorious, and Catholic Whore, and were drunken with the cup of the Wine of her fornications, that had the Mark of the Beast, and did worship his image? Answ. They shall drink of the Cup of the wrath of God, the wine mixed in the cup of his anger, Psal. 11.6. and 75.8. and shall be tormented for ever and ever, without rest day or night in fire and brimstone, in the presence of the holy angels, and in the presence of the Lamb, Apoc. 14. This should be a most serious admonition, for men to come out of mystical Babylon, mystical Egypt, to use no garments, no prayers, no laws of the Pope's making. QUe. 11. What are we to think of all that go under the name of Papists, that are under the Papacy? Answ. Fearful judgement is pronounced on all those that worship the image of the Beast, or have his Mark or print of his name in hand or forehead, but sentence is not so passed on all that are of the Number of his name, yet they are in great danger, unless they obey the voice from heaven, Come out of her my people. O thrice blessed is that Kingdom, O thrice blessed is that family, O thrice blessed is that person, that not only hath gotten victory over the Beast, and over his image, and over his Mark, but also and over the number of his name. QUest. 12. What is the end of all that know not God, and which obey not to the Gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ, which will not be of the Corporation of the holy City? Answ. Everlasting destruction from the presence of the Lord, and from the glory of his power: for so it is said, without shall be dogs and sorcerers, and fornicators, and murderers, and idolaters, and the fearful and unbelievers, and the abominable, and whosoever loveth, and maketh a he, Apoc. 21. and 22. QUest. 13. What is the end of the godly that would not obey the Papacy, and of all that sincerely walk with God? Answ. The Apostle John heard a voice from heaven, saying, Writ, blessed are they that die in the Lord, even so saith the Spirit, for they rest from their labours, and their works follow with them. Phil. 3.12. They shall not be unclothed, but clothed upon: in them mortality be swallowed up of life. 2 Cor. 5.4. Luk. 20.35.36. And in the day of the all-joyfull resurrection, our weak, vile, and corrupt bodies, shall be raised up incorruptible, and be fashioned and made like our Lords glorious body. And the Saints that are alive, and remain unto the coming of the Lord, shall have instead of death a sudden and unspeakable * changing in their bodies, and shall together with them of the Resurrection, be caught up in the clouds to meet the Lord in the air, and to be ever with the Lord, not to die any more, but are equal unto the angels, and shall shine like the Sun in the Kingdom of their Father, Amen, Even so come LORD JESUS. Annotations upon the Questions and Answers of the seventeenth Chapter. QVest. 1. and Ans Here and there two witnesses.] See Mr. White, Way, etc. page 384. etc. and Mr. Cade, Justif. l. chap. 4 and lib. 2. chap. 1. and many others, Christ still raising up his witnesses, was an argument that his cause should live till better times. All the power of the Western world, that Pope, and Emperor, and other horns of the Beast could make, could not root out the Church, nor the faith of the Primitive purity. It did and shall increase in spite of fire, and faggot, prisons, Massacres, Index Expurgatorius, etc. the King of Locusts, and his Locusts prevailed against the bodies of the Saints, but not against their Testimony to the true faith of Christ. Ibid.— Prophesied, misliked, and cried out.] Here is a sore combat of Michael's servants, called the patience of the Saints, as with the Caesar's, so now with the Tail of the Dragon, the King of Locusts. All the fight was for the salvation and power, and Kingdom of God and his word, and the authority of of Christ and his Testimony, Apoc. 12.10. and this still is, and must be intended for unto banishment, spoiling of goods, bonds, and death: Yea it shall be contended for till the seventh Trumpets sounding sheweth Christ's reigning over the Kingdoms of the world in the glorious manifestation of his Ordinances, Apoc. 11.15.19. Ibid. For divers hundreds of years] In those days the Temple was shut, and Christ's Ordinances abandoned by the authority of the Beast with two horns, like a Lamb, so there is two kinds of authority, and for this was the great strife, Jehosaphat much reform the State, and took away the high places, that had Groves, but the other high places stood still, for the people's heart was not able to comply with purer worship, 2 Chron. 20.33 So in our days our people are full of superstitions, and hate faithful teaching, therefore pure Reformation shall not be yet, nay now the the things not reform by Queen Elizabeth and King James, are a means of introducing more things of Popish abominations. Ibid. Of his 666. Apostatical number.] Observe the Roman Catholic Church of Kings, multitudes, peoples, Nations and kindreds, and tongues rejoiced, when the Beast of the Pit had killed the two witnesses, and Martyrs of jesus, so they are the many that go the broad way, and Christ's witnesses sew that go the narrow way. Papists ask where was your company before Luther, the answer is easy, where was it not? and they themselves known and saw where it was well enough. They did not murder men that were invisible. And it doth not alter the Cas● in respect of truth, that Christ's witnesses were mean, weak, and few, Christ was among them, 1 Cor. 14.11, 12, 13.2 Cor. 4.8. 9, 10, 11. and 13.4 vid. Mr. Cade, lib. 2. page 181. etc. What unreasonable prating do the Locusts use, (the foolish woman is clamorous Prov. 9) that we must show a visible glorious company, professing the Gospel in all ages, when the Spirit forewarned of perilous times, and of apostasy from the faith: and evermore they that spoke or did any thing to question Popish Doctrines, or their usurped power were killed, etc. Question 2. and Answer, No man might buy or sell.] Apoclyps' 11. and 12. and 13. and 14. chapters, set forth their cruelties, the just is an abomination to the wicked, & contra, a Proverbof experience from the first and last Counsels. It is more dangerous to speak against, and withstand their decrees and decretals, than the commandments of God, a speech of the good and noble Lord Cobbam, is worthy of place, lo good people lo, for the breaking of God's Law, and his great commandments, they never yet cursed me, but for their ●●wn Laws and traditions, most cruelly do they handle me and other, men. Thus that good Noble man spoke to the people with a loud voice of those bloody stinging Scorpions, the Bishop of Canterbury and other Locusts. Babylonian Lucifers that exalted themselves against the Kingdom of Christ, and the Laws of the Land, Acts and Monuments 731. of the last Edition. Whores that break wedlock are cruel, Ezek. 16. and 23. Sicut Patres vestrietiam v●s, Acts 7.51. How are men's inventions yet pressed in these days of the Gospel (1636.) But for God's Commandments how slighted. Experience, the Saints of God, both godly ministers, and people have of this continually. Ibid. worship the image of the beasts imperial State.] The imperial State of the Pontificality was a glorious image, that all the world wondered and worshipped, but John and all gracious know that that State is a Beast, and is going into the lake of fire. Quest 3. and Answ. In subscribing, etc.] All had, must have communion with the Beast in one manner or other. Gods marked hated the Beasts mark, and the Beasts marked hated God's mark. Ibid. Revec●●nce to the Cross.] So do the Bishops in their Canons, that in the sign of the Cross in Baptism, the child is dedicated thereby to him that died on the Gross, Can. 30. And many of our people, that will not be Papists, yet are very superstitious, and defend themselves by the Cross in Baptism, Mat. 18.7. Luc. 17.1. That is a sad speech which Christ saith, Cursed is he that maketh the blind to go out of their way, and let all the people say, Amen, Deut. 27. Ibid. Of the 3. Quest. and Answ. Forbidding and refraining from reading and teaching the holy Scriptures.] It is great wickedness, that any should forbid any of the simplest to read the holy Bible, or any godly learned, requested by a company not to expound it, as in the Primitive Churches, this order for every man able and faithful to utter his gift continued to the time of Theodoret, yea long after, Theod. upon 1 Cor. 14. See what the Spirit faith by the Apostle Peter, 1 Pet. 4.10.2 Tim. 2.2. But Gregory the ninth, a Pope of Rome prohibited, that no Layman should preach, of whatsoever degree he was. Quest. 4. and Answ. He had the voice and speech.] Laws be the Speech of a polity, so that many have fitly compared the new Religion, of the Pontificality with old Rome's, because it is so stuffed with old heathenish Customs, after the Theology (rather the Popologie) of Virgil and Ovid, etc. Add hereunto the Pope's decretals overruling States, are wicked commonly, and the more they be, being urged by men unlawful. Ibid. Keeping of the commandments of God, and the faith of Jesus] Blessed is he that watcheth against cunning craftiness and deceit, that he may keep his garment close to him. Apoc. 16.15. Christ hath made us Kings and Priests, and then we must bear holiness in cur hearts and forcheads. And let the just hold on his way, and let the clean in hands increase in courage, Job 17.9. Apoc. 21.11. Truth is better than our lives or States: be independent, and God will be with the good; for whosoever saith the Lord shall be ashamed of me and of my words among this adulterous and sinful generation, [that is, that doth adulterate the faith by heretical Doctrines and men's Precepts and traditions] of him shall the Son of man be ashamed also, when he shall come in his own glory, and the Fathers, and the holy angels, Make 8. Luc. 9 Here note, how the Corporation of the seed of the Serpent, esteemeth Christ and his servants, and the holy Doctrine, anathema. And contrarily the Corporation of the holy seed, esteem the Serpent and his seed, and their commadements and inventions, anathema, maranatha. This hath been the deadly feud and enmity and war from the beginning, ever since Kain flew Habel. This is the fire, sword, and division that Christ hath sent on the earth, Gen. 3.15 Mat. 10. Luc. 12. This must be constantly observed for Kingdoms, towns, and families, and persons. Qu. 5. and Answ. The King of mount Zion appeared with 144000.] Observe the allusion in the term Mount Zion, which showeth, all that follow the Lamb under the new Testament, harp the same song of holy faith, as the faithful of Mount Zion of old, Apoc. 14. answerable to this the Apostle sweetly protesteth, Acts 26.6, 7. and all the Epistle to the Hebrews showeth this most evidently. Likewise any part of the old Testament, cited or paraphrased, or any way expressed by our Lord and his apostles, proveth that cursed Popery should be accursed, that objecteth. novelty to our most holy faith, and this well considered will strengthen the godly Student, against the Anabaptist and Antinomian, etc. In Apocal. chap. 7. there were 144000. that the first Beast warred against: and in chap. 14. the same number (that held the faith of the Patriarches and Apostles) The second Beast wars against them. The tenth Century Satan was let lose to deceive, and then the Churches were in a dead State from a Church-life, but now the Churches begin to recover life, to live again is, as it were, a Resurrection, as the Jews in the return from Babel, Ezek. 37. Apoc. 20. Ibid. And all that fear God, both small and great gave thinks.] None but one made gracious, as john can see the holy jerusalem, and sing praise, Ezek. 43.11. Worldly look to worldly pomp, and every man as he bears a person Christian, will praise the Lord God for his salvations from the idolatry, heresy, strange language, and tyranny of the man of sin, of Rome-Egypt, Psal. 98.1, 2, 3. Psal 114. Oh the fearful judgement of Christ giving the world over to slavery and befottednesse in former times: Rejoice over her thou heaven, and ye holy Apostles, and Prophets, for God hath avenged ye on her, read attentively, Psal. 81. and in all this book of the Apocalypses compare old things with new. Quest. 6. And chiefly through this Abaddon.] States miss much the mark that think to overthrow the Kingdom of Abaddon, if liberties, and not the quarrel of the Gospel be not sincerely intended. Let the King of Swedens do advise them; And consider Zac. 4.6. chief so must the Temple be built, and Fathers and Counsels, Doctors, and School men, are not the sword of Christ's mouth, much less a dumb, base, idle, and proud ministry: those and these humane helps we have used long enough. Ibid. Shall be perishing to the end.] As those four beasts Da●●y perished by the time of our Lords first coming, so the Roman Beast made of those four shall by his second. A greater curse cannot be to terrify us in partaking with them. For what State will seek to uphold the Kingdom of the Beast, King Abaddon must sink with it, as a great millstone that Christ casteth into the sea, and let each State whose Kingdom is the Lords, and his Christ's, take heed how they tamper in leagues and Treaties with any of the horns, that yet uphold and give their power to the Beast, and mark events. Christ hath and will preserve his commonweals that rule for him, that in truth defend his faith, as D. Cariton in his thankful remembrance hath evidenced to our ingrateful and forgetful Nation. Will we not yet mind that theme of theirs, nulla fides observanda baereticis: yea it is more than a theme; it is one of their Papal Laws, a Canon in the Couneel of Constance, Sess. 19 Will not we believe a man to be bald till we see his brains, vide Cade Justif. lib. 2. 80, 81. etc. and the apdendix: Ques salvos suscita●, ques destruit dementet. Just with God that they that will not know his holy faith, should not know reason. The children of Noph, and Tahpanbes have broken thine head (contrary to Gen. 3.15.) Jer. 2. Isa. 9.13. and 30.4. The harlot Aholibah doted on the Egyptian and Babylonian worships, which were her ruin: they sent for the brave Gallants of Babel clothed inred attire, a type of Scarlet Cardinals of mystical Babylon, Ezek. 23, 14, 15. Hos. 9.2. and 10.6. etc. etc. Dear Queen Elizabeth would not suffer Jerolamus Martinengo to come over into England for any Treaty, Hist Council of Trent 440. but now Treaties, and Locusts are either sent for or suffered to swarm. Alas what means it? that an ambassador should be sent to the seven Mountain, City, of mystical Babylon. What have we to do to drink the waters of Tiber, Jer. 2.18. (1636) Ezek. 23.16. in King Edward's days the State sent for P. Martyr, and Martin Bu●er, and for many years countenanced men of their Spirit, but now etc. The sincerity of the Gospel is the sure Basis of all prosperity to a State: and notwithstanding all this, Elias, and Elisha, and Sam●el, etc. will be the Chariots of Israel and the horsemen thereof. False Religion and oppression is the earthquake of a State, as Mr. Cade most affectionately showeth in the Appendix. Quest. 7. and Answ. That gave their power to the beast.] The Kings that did traffic with the Pope continually for his confirmation, they felt Christ's anger for it, for he would have them know, that by him Kings reign, that all power in heaven and earth is his, that the most high ruleth over the Kingdoms of men; as the proud King of old Babel, who was made a beast, did confess to warn the Beast of mystical Babylon, of his blasphemous arrogancy, Prev. 8. Mat, 28.18. Dan. 4. Rom. 1●. 1. i.e. Kingdoms that will not stick to God's covenant shall find this Scripture made good on them, 2 Chron. 12.8. Ibid. The King of Kings, and Lord of Lords.] The Lamb shall overcome and revenge the blood of his servants, Apoc. 19 Five beads were fallen for God's people's sake, when John wrote, and the sixth head was wounded to death for persecuting the faith, so shall the seventh Head feel the curse of the living God Ibid. That will judge the great Whore.] God shall judge them and his Prophets, and their enemies shall judge them, and the righteous men shall judge them after the manner of adulteresses, and blood is in their hands, Ezek. 16.38. and 23.45. Ibid. That hold of every foul spirit.] Whom do these foul spirits, conscience-cauterised hypocrites seduce? on whom do these Vultures, kites, and ravens seize on? surely on none but those men and women, that have sore and itching ears, and cannot abide sound Teaching, and have no love to the truth, and laden with sins, and led away with divers lusts, lusts of the eyes, of flesh, and pride of life, 1 Tim, 6.10 2 Tim. 3, 6, 7. and 4. and 3, 4.1 John 2.16. Apoc. 18.2 This verse of Apoc. 18.2. may be an allusion to Isa. 13.21.22. as old Babylon was troubled, Zim, Jim, and Ohim, so mystical Babylonians in our Land, in these days of darkness have been troubled with spirits, and hobgoblins, and night-terrours, etc. But blessed be the father of mercies, the God of all consolation for the Gospel of his Son, which hath scattered these evils from us. Ibid. For he sitteth as on a white cloud, with a sickle in his hand, and on a white ho●se.] Let the Saints remember with joy how Christ the King road on a cloud, in bringing Israel out of old Egypt, so now in bringing us his Isael out of Rome Egy●t, Gird thy sword upon thy thigh, O most mighty, Psal. 45. in Apoc. 6.2. Christ road as on a white horse in his instruments the angels invisibly, men visibly against the Caesar's, till he had wounded to death that head of the Roman State: so now against the reviver of the wounded head, he road on a white horse, Apocal. 19.11. as against old Egypt. Hab 3.8. Jehovah shall reign for ever, and ever. Moses and all faithful so sing, Exod. 15. Apoc. 15. At the figure of the † The holy spirit alludeth to the stories of the old enemies.] Apocalyps 18. etc. showeth the great fall of mystical Babylon from old stories (Oh that our brethren would be conversant in the holy Scriptures) the Roman polity killing men for the Prophets and Apostles Doctrine, is as guilty as if it had killed them and all holy in the same faith. All the righteous blood shed from Habel the righteous to this day shall be required of them, and it should admonish our Nobles, Gentry, ministry and Commonalty, to take heed how they comply with that bloody, whorish Church, lest they acquire the guiltiness of its massacres, treasons, Gunpowder plot, etc. consider Job 9.4. to help the Reader to compare the Apocalypse with old stories, somewhat I will mention for these present expressions. The old world, Gen. 6.11, 12, 13. corrupted the earth by apostasy, and God would corrupt, that is destroy it, so the Lord will corrupt the policy of the man of Sin, Apoc. 11.18. God plagued Sodom. Gen. 19 Rome is called Sodom, and God will destroy it, Apoc. 11.8. We know how God plagued Egypt. Rome is called Egypt, Apoc. 11.8. and many of the plagues of Egypt are and shall be on Rome-Egypt, Apoc. 16. Sicho● the King of the Amorites would not suffer Israel to buy and sell bread nor drink: so the Popish policy. Apoc. 13.16. but God destroyed the one, and will the other, Edom Isa. 63. with Apocal. 19.15. Tyrus, Ezek. 27. 30, 31, 32. with Apoc. 18.15, 16, 17, 18, 19 Niniveb, 3, 4, 17. Apoc. 17.4. and for Ninivebs' Locusts, Apoc. 9 Apostate Jerusalem, Jeremiah 25.10. Apoc. 18; 22; 23. Of the four beasts in Dan. 7. spoken of afore, in applying them to the Roman beast. All the Apocalypse, almost every Sentence is taken from the Prophets, expressing old rerms for new States, and places, and times, but that would be too long a work here to describe, it is done other where. Quest. 8. and Answ. The same Kingdoms that gave their power.] A man even bymans' wit, might marvel why Princes would suffer such a deceiver, as Apolluon to stand one year, his Doctrine being against all light of the blessed Scriptures, & each Prince being able to cast him from his Territories. God's ways are unsearchable. God hath chosen a few only, and none can come to Christ, unless the heavenly Father draw him, but the things revealed belong to us and our children. Ibid. They shall embrace the Gospel.] The holy City shall be yet more glorious. The streets of the City are pure gold, as clear as glass, then shall the Saints walk cheerfully, when God's commandments and the faith of Christ are purged from the filthy scum of man's inventions. Our Lord Christ, the Teacher appointed of the Father, and his apostles in their Doctrine were like Refiners fire and fullers soap to the Rabbis of traditlons and bodily exercise, Mat. 5. and 6. and 7. and 156 and 23. but they were not able to abide it, but as Cain, persecuted with intestine hatred: so Christ in his martyrs, and his angels in the Reformed Churches, hath been and will be as refiners fire and fullers soap to the King of Locusts, and his Locusts Doctrine, he will purge his floor of the fulsome stuff, and the chaff of the decitfull hypocrites. Ibid. And verily, as that whorish polity hath been.] As Israel in Egypt under Pharaoh, so the cause of the Gospel seemed unrecoverable under the Egyptiacall Kingdom of the Man of Sin, but the say of God are true; he is Jehovah, performer of promise, as Israel felt for old Egypt, Exod. 6.3. so we have felt for Rome-Egypt, and as we have seen the loving kindness of God, so shall others, Rome-Egypt, shall be more and more desolate. Que●●. 9 and answ. With his Locusts, is the faise Pro phet.] The Pontificality is a Beast of Empire in its power, and it with its Clergy is the false Prophet, a Corporoation speech, false Prophet; that is the body of false Prophets. Ibid. Cast alive as sodomites.] The common-weal of King Abaddon is called Sodom, and his Catholic company and Church faith of herself, she is a Queen, Apoc. 18. yet she is but the Queen of Sodom and Babylon: all the Kings and Princes that are of that polity, let them fear the punishment of Sodom, unless they repent, and make their commonweals our Lords and his Christ's. Quest. 10. and answ. Without rest day and night.] God gave men over, that loved not the truth, to believe lies, that they might be damned. Terror, it is said without Rest, and then what lies and witchcrafts do they teach and believe, of Masses, Trentals, Requiems, Dirges, Libera me's, etc. No rest to them that follow the Beast. Ibid. To use no garments] Their Cannons and prayers, and apparel, are all bend to a blind drift, and not fittest to have been used in our tongue, the whole frame is out of order, Mr. Bro. in Apoc. 94. and 156. Quest. 11. and answ. But sentence is not so passed, etc.] We judge well of many of our forefathers, that they are Saints in heaven, for they made divers good Laws against Devilish Popery, and were still complaining of Popish enormities, and many in their last Wills, would not bequeath any thing to maintain Popish Masses, etc. etc. and in their judgement and affection were much against Popery, and did come very far out of that polity, yet through fear went under the name of Papists, and the number of his name, and durst not, through the diligent tyranny of the Scorpion-Locusts, openly confess the truth, as there are now such in Spain and Italy etc. that hate Popery, yet go under the name of the Beast, and the God that multiplieth to pardon, the God of all mercies, no doubt did, and doth pass by the weakness of his servants in those days and places of darkness, but that is no comfort to Papists that are in Reformed Churches, for they in obstinacy still worship the Image of the Beast, and have his mark, both in hand and forehead Ibid. Come out of her my people.] They must not be of worldly glorious, mystical Babylon's part that will condemn her, but absolute free from her. We must be as in a wilderness, as Israel from Egypt, and as on an high mountain in the Spirit, as John and Ezekiel afore Christ will show us the glory of his own ordinances, and the great Whore, and her abominations, and till we be ashamed of all the wickedness that we have received from the man of sin, we cannot so clearly see the form and fashion of heavenly things, Ezek 43.10, 11. Forty nine thousand were persuaded to leave old Babylon, in hope of Christ his first coming, so they that hope of comfort at Christ his second coming, must come out of all mystical Babylon's polity, R. R. B. Jewel and other Worthies of Christ in our State, Def. Apol. chap. 22. Divis. 1. But in departing from the Papacy. Godly Teachers must not think of a new Constitution of Churches, but of Reformation, part off all additions from the holy Scriptures, from offices in the Church, and officers, seals and censures, and the open profane from seals, and the Primitiye apostolic purity will appear, if we otherwise do, we shall not avoid the ungodliness of Anabaptistry, and other pratlers that do dischurch Churches and Members. Ibid. O thrice blessed.] The Lord JESUS faith, Blessed is he that readeth, and they that hear the words of this Prophesy (of the Apocalypse) and keep those things which are written therein, Apoc. 1. and 22.7. Again, Blessed are they that do his commandments, that they may have ●ight to the tree of life, and may enter in through the gates into the City, Apoc. 22. 14 Mark the phrase, Blessed are they that do his commandments, what is this? a covenant of works, is not this the same language of Levit. 26. and Deut. 28 and 30 vain talkers must vent their Mateologisme? Quest. 12. and answer, That know not God, etc.] Many will not be Papists, and yet are ignorant (and love to be so) superstitious, ungodly, and unrighteous in all their life, they hated knowledge and did not choose the fear of the Lord, and such shall eat the smit of their own ways, Prov. 1. and 5.12 Answer, without shall be dogs.] Without, the Lord J●sus Christ in his holy ordinances coth make a marvellous separation of the precious from the vile, but at that day shall be the perfection, Psam 1. Mat. 25. Also note all these sorts of sinners are not to be understood as commonly men apprehend them, but they stand in opposition to the peace, quietness, holiness, zeal, purity of worships, truth, grace, and glory of the heavenly Jerusalem.— Shall be dogs.] The Concision were dogs and murderers, Psalms 22 Phil. 3. and cast our, Gal 4. they resisted the building of new jerusalem, maintaining bodily exercise (opus operatum) their idol and vanity: this made their house and habitation desolate to this day. And is not this written for our admonition. Those mine enemies which would not that I should reign over them, bring hither and slay them before me. Luc 19 2 Thos. 1.9. as it was observed at the beginning that CHRIST his Doctrine, and servants were held anathema of the godless, so it will ever be. Ibid. And sorcerers.] Or poisening Sorcerers, read Thankful Remembrance, page 193. A●ias translates venefiei, Apoc. 22.15. It is thought the Jesuits are such creatures, the book of their State mysteries mentioned doth imply such things, it must be taken also spiritually, bewitching people by feigned words, etc. to make them believe false Doctrine, G●l. 3.1. All this the Locusts must do, for we are sure that the holy Lord God doth not answer them by dreams, nor by Vrim, nor by Prophets: so that the next course is to go to Eudor, they know who will there readily attend them, 1 Sam. 28.6. Ibid.— And the fearful.] And I say unto you my friends, Be not asraid, of them that kill the body, and after that have no more that they can do, Luk. 12. I, I, a● he that comforteth you. Who art thou, that thou shouldest be afraid of a man that shall die, and the Son of man who shall be made as grass, and forgettest I●bovah, the eternal being, thy maker, that hath stretched out the heavens, and laid the foundation of the earth in the waters, Isa. 51. If God's word bear Supremacy in our hearts, and faith evidence to us things not seen, we shall as men of another spirit and independent as those three noble martyrs and Confessors, Dan. 3. and as Daniel himself, chap. 6. as Moses Heb. 11. as Calch and josua, etc. etc. Quest. 13. and Answ.— Saying, Writ.] Observe still the bless● comforts of the written word, and mark the command Writ, Apoc. 14.13. Psal. 103.18. Ibid.— For they rest from their labours.] Let him that hath an ear to hear, let him hear what the spirit saith to the Churches. Those that keep the commandments of God and the faith of Jesus, Writ it, they shall have rest. They shall have Rest that follow the true Lamb's Religion, let liars and cursed dogs bark never so much to the contrary. let all that bear the name of Christian, hate and accurse the fables of the heathenish Papacy of Purgatoty, that men walk when they are dead, and their vain Doctrine of prayer for the dead, and their anniverssaries, and other ceremonies and superstitions numberless, as the Christian Disputations of Mr. Viret show. O ye all that are Gods jesurum, the Israel of God, study the blessed Scriptures, your inheritance, cursed, smoky Popery, and all deceitful vain Doctrines will flee before the glorious light of the word, Amen, Amen. A Postsrcipt BVl ye Beloved, Remember the words which were spoken before of the Apostles of our LORD JESUS CHRIST, 2 Pet. 3.2. and judas Thaddaeus verse 17.1 john 4.6. etc. etc. The holy spirit seeing and foreseeing that false Teachers were and continually would arise after the apostles times with fair speeches, flattering and feigned words, philosophy, a show of wisdom, cogging and vain deceir, spurious Epistles, feigned revelations of the spiris, and h●ocriticall lies and slanders, and by bringing in fables, superstitious, voluntary humility, will-worship, men's Precepts, Decrees, Doctrines of Devils, perverse things, damnable heresies, and rejection of Magistracy, to cause divisions and offences to beguile men, and to carry them for a spoil from the plainness and simplicity of the Apostles Doctrine, and these evils were pursued by all deceit and violene of flesh and blood, being driven on by the fury of spiritual wickednesses, principalities and powers, the rulers of the darkness of this world, that did war against the Church about supercelestial things: therefore this warning and many others were given to regard the Prophets and Apostles Doctrine. Thus the Holy Ghost did as is noted in the conclusion of the old Testament, refer them that feared God to the Law of lively oracles, given by the inspiration of the SON OF GOD, the angel of the Covenant, and by the ministry of Moses at Horeb, Malipiero 4. Thus Christ was taught to day, and so shall till the time of his coming, 2 Cor. 11.26. Heb. 13.8. The Caesars persecuted the faithful for The word of God and the Testimony of JESUS. Apoc. 6.9. ch. 1.9. Keeping of the commandments of God, and holding the testimony of JESUS. Christ, Apoc. 12.17. The Popes persecuted the faithful for Keeping of the Commandments of God and the faith of jesus, Apoc. 14.12. The Testimony of JESUS, and for the word ●of God, Apoc. chap. 20.4. THE THIRD PART. CHAP. XVIII. Of the seven Trumpets in Apocalyps 8, 9, 10, & 11. chapters: In which the Pope's Rising to his Antichristian Hierarchy is first described, compared with the seven Phials in chap. 16. under which the Antichristian Hierarchy doth fall, and is consumed by degrees. THE Seven seals destroyed the Roman Empire, and the seven Trumpets do forbid that Rome being overthrown (as Jericho) should be built again, and as Hiel endeavoured to re-edify Jericho, contrary to Gods will, for which act God in Justice took away his eldest and youngest son. So Princes that joined with the Pope to hate the Greek Empire, that they might se● up Rome, for which act the Lord in justice made it the means of their woe and great misery. The comparison of the Phrases for the Trumpets in Ap●. 89, 10, & 11. chapters, with chap. 16. for the Phials is diligently to be marked for the understanding of the true scope of the Apocalypse. The Phases concerning the Plagues; for the ruin of the Papacy in the phials are wonderfully fitted to the former Phrases in the Trumpets, by which the Pope's rising was first described. SECT. 1. The first Trumpet, and first Vial .. UNder the first Trumpet, Satan endeavouring to advance his project, The Mystery of Iniquity, than the Earth had hail and fire mixed with blood cast into it: which metaphoricaly importeth stormy, fiery, and bloody contentions, which Churchmen were full of, from Constantine's times, about P●●ority ●nd JESUS Christ his alone mediation wa● neglected, this made the profession of christianity to be full of Hypocrisy, and full of coldness in the pure worships among people, & thereby love to the truth waxing cold, the people began to be given over unto fables, etc. for when B.B. Unlearned Scholars turned all to ambition and heresy to politicians to propsenenesse. strove for superiority, then Monachi fell to idleness, and to extol Saints and Angels, &c, and to hate painful and orthodox Scholars, as Athanasius, Chrisoslome, Basil, etc. In like sort from the first Vial) most grievous Ulcers and Boils of State are poured upon the Popish Earth: The plague of old Egypt is upon the minds of Papists, his Jannes'es' and his Jambres'es', namely on their seduced one's that resisteth the truth, after the LAMBS appearing on Mount Zion, with his 144000 attend on him, in the fourteenth Century, but more in the fifteenth. SECT. 2. The second Trumpet and second Vial. UNder the second Trumpet, the Mystery of Iniquity still increasing towards the sixth Sentry, ecclesiastics never ceased affecting superiority, and the spiritual supremacy (one of the greatest Heresies) that they became a Mountain (but not as yet come to his full growth) of fire cast into the Sea of Nations: burning and throwing out sulphurous and bloody matter of contention, by heresies, errors, Ceremonies, etc. every where, so that true Religion was burned up greatly, both in Magistrates and men of place, and in ordinary Christians, and in Teachers compared to ships. This was a further degree of misery to the Church, (more than the first Trumpet warned) to the quickening of the Beast. In like sort, under the scond Vial, the Sea of Nations, namely the most potent Kingdom of King Abaddon hath been and is within itself, full of bloody commotions, through divers factions, and sharp contentions, which came out of the Vial of God's anger, to consume the bowels of that viperous Hierarchy: and holy Martyrs discovered that the whole Sea of Ordinances of their Religion, was of no more soul nourishment, than the putrified blood of the dead, so that all became his marked, were like the dead Sea Asphaltes', being full of hypocrisy, trusting in bodily exercise, idolatry, sorceries, idleness, murders, pride, covetousness, filthy lusts, etc. This also was a great plague to the King of Locusts, and to his Locusts. The conscionable study of the holy Text, from the Hebrew and Greek Testaments was much neglected by flothfull contempt, and only translations from translations were used with us, bred uncertainty, and it bred disdain, and it bred blindness, and it bred contempt of Christ, and at last it bred rejection to Machomed, and to the man of sin. Locusts went from all professions, as Franciscans, Dominicans, Carmelities, Priests, Levites, etc. SECT. 3. The third Trumpet and third Phial. 3. UNder the third Trumpet, a great star fell from the heaven of the Church, which denoteth an apostasy of many learned men, and they became wormwood, and each one to strengthen his Faction, made bitter by false and bad expositions, the sweet fountains and waters of holy Scripture, so that a third part of their Church became dead in all abominations, and through much addition of heathenish Customs. They instead of being comfortable and clear lights, were but stinking torch lights, and full of contentions, which caused much innocent blood to be shed. This did further help on to the three Woes of great misery, that were yet to come on the world. So in like sort, the third Phial pours out wrath upon the Papal fountains and and Rivers, their canons, decretals, cathedral Expositions, Monastic studies, all their divine Services, as they called them, etc. Also their feigned relics, Papal dispensations, Papal indulgences, hallowed amulets, holy Shrines, etc. etc. all which were rivers from their Sea, to convey and transport maintenance and glory to their glorious Monarchy of the King of Locusts, King Abaddon. All these things by this Phial were made known to be but rotten dotages, lying sables, This bred effusion of much blood in all countries from their Princes, Shipmen, and their people; which also in all occasions, as rivers and fountains did show their Subsidious relation to the great Pontifician Sea, by all endeavours, but especially, in that their Princes were then Carnifices, the executioners of the Papal Breves and determinations, & c. against the Saints, and Prophets. Now these from the just judgement of God do drink blood, measure for measure, by the Prince's Teachers, and people that fall from the Papacy, God is unchangeable in his justice on the cain's of the earth, from the blood of Abel the righteous to this day, as he was, so he is, and will be still the same. Our native country chief did pour out this vial in wickliffs days, burr more in K. H 8. and K. E. 6. and Q.E. and K.J. And Luther and others did it in Germany. SECT. 4. The fourth Trumpet, and fourth Phial. 4. UNder the fourth Trumpet, the apostate churches not being warned by the three former Trumpets, the fourth sounded a further degree of apostasy, that sad and dark evils of most grievous blindness and ignorance should be in the Church (yet in these times, Christ that restrains apostasy, had his two Witnesses) that a third part of Sun, Moon, and Stars, were smitten with the day and the night. Jacob expoundeth Sun, Moon, and Stars to be his Church: Learned men and Scholars greatly fell away, that the Mountain of fire came to a further greatness, and more burned in the world. In like sort (under the fourth Phial) a great part of Apolluons Sunglorious universality (and by Synecdoche, all his inferior glories) is smitten by the godly Witnesses: as Elias smote Achab● Kingdom, that brought it into a desperate burning fever: and as men so affected speak strange things; so the Pseudo-Catholicks be in a great boiling heat, torment and vexation, because as it is seen in all countries', more or less cast off Popery. So that whereas they should have repent and glorified God for his inestimable mercy of the everlasting Gospel, they fret as Moab and Balaam, and utter great blasphemies. SECT. 5. Of the fifth Trumpet, and si●st Woe, and fifth Phial. 5. IN the fifth Trumpet is showed that the Beast Abyssige●a, when he with his Locusts crept out of the Pit of deep darkness, they conjured up with them a smoke of all former errors and heresies and heathenish customs that Christ the Son of Justice, his Throne and Kingdom, and his blessed Law (the air by which we see him) were darkened. And also he with his Locusts set up a pompous throne exercising universal Supremacy in temporal and spiritual things like old Babel. And so as old Babel is call●d a destroying Mountain: so now Abaddon of mystical Babylon became a Mountain of fire of most grievous calamities to all Christendom: What an incendiary was he. 1. Against Constantine's Kingdom in exciting the Turk to invade it. 2. In the Wars for the Low Jerusalem after the Tenth Century. 3. By intestine garboils among themselves still to uphold Popish interests. 4. By cruel dealing against any that contested their enormities: as will be said more in the sixth Trumpet. The name of the King and Beast of the Pit is Abaddon and Apolluon a destroying and beastlike Prince. As his Name is, so is he. And his Locusts are filled with his spirit of all deceit, hypocrisy, and cruelty. See more of this in them, and their King in their Dialogue. The Pontificality or Corporation of Popes whose Kingdom was so glorious, and whose Throne so radiant that all the world wondered (Apoc. 13.3, 4.) at the beams thereof; and thence he like the Sun did rule the day of that State, (so that his Creatures and Parasites say, he is as the Sun) And from this throne he sent his Decretals, and the power of his counsels, and the fulminations of his excommunications etc. into all his Kingdom to the terror and amazement of all opposers (our native Country is a sufficient commentary of this) A very Leviathan, job 41. A Dragon as Pharaoh of old in his Waters, Ezek. 29. and acted by the old Red Dracon. This is the first Wo. In like sort in the Phials that glorious earthly Throne, Kingdom and Supremacy is made vile and much darkened, for more godly Teachers in pouring out the fifth Phial, have polluted the Pride of all the glory of that mystical Tyrian god, and brought into Contempt, in some places, all the honourable of that earthly State. Ezek. 28.2 6, 7, 8, 9 Christ the mighty Angel roared like a Lion in his faithful witnesses. Apoc. 10.3. & 19.14. They discovered abaddon's and his Locusts hidden abominations and blasphemous impieties that some well-minded and courageous Princes have taken from him his usurped authority: and yet in spirituals they have, and do still tamper with him in temporals, as Venice and others, and now his Throne is much ecclypsed, that it shines not in many places, his mandates are slighted, his excommunications are of no terror, etc. And now the King of Locusts in some kingdoms is experimentally known to be Apolluon, an apostate Star, the grand impostor of Christendom: the man of sin that made all the World to sin. He and his Locusts got land by begging for monasteries and got other unclean cages, for unclean birds of every wing: Locusts of all professions, by these he had a great Kingdom, and his Throne of Government was set up in every nation: all which together made his great Polis, or large Common-weal. So that now under the fifth Phial, the Throne and kingdom of the Beast is darkened by contempt and pillane of land in some of the kingdoms that had given their power to the Beast: and all the other kingdoms will do the same; as England hath done of late in the extirpation of the Tail of that episcopal Hierarchy. But yet in all this mercy of glorious light and reformation, the Beasts marked, are transported with implacable ●ury and envy: for so it is said They gnawed their tongues for sorrow and blasphemed the God of heaven, for their pains and sores (of State) and repent not of their works of their idolatry, murders, sorceries, fornications, and thefts, etc. deifying the Pontificality and teaching his Decrees to be infallible. This is often laid to the charge of the Papalines, they repent not: like old Babel of whom it is said, We would have cured Babel, but she is not cured, Jer. 51. This argues great obduration of heart, like Pharaoh like jericho, like the Chantanites, etc. their state is compared with and alluded to these old Enemies of the Gospel: Therefore they shall not repent till they be all destroyed, as the other were. It is hard, yea impossible for men to repent which will not learn from the word of God how their case standeth; and they have so blasphemed the holy and blessed Scriptures, and corrupted them as far as in them lieth putting she for he to bring the virgin Mary into Christ his honour to destroy the Bible, and the world, G●●. 3.15. making Peter the Rock of the Church, etc. thus they have most reproachfully corrupted the blessed Seriptures, and cannot mind them in sincerity, because the Lord Jesus hath in his just judgement blinded their eyes, stopped their ears, hardened their heart for their utter confusion. SECT. VI 1. I think it will be pertinent to touch a little the tenth chapter of the Apocalypse (before I go to the sixth and seventh Trumpet) for it is most comfortable for the Church to observe it against the evils that came, and are yet upon the Church by the Beast of the Pit, and by the Turkish desolating forces under the fi●th, & sixth and seventh Trumpet, and under the first second, and third Woe, and under the fifth and sixth, and seventh Phials: yea all the Phials do expound this tenth chapter. 2. This chapter sets forth a glorious description of the mighty Angel of the Covenant, the Lamb, the King of Mount Zion, that although king Ab●ddon came out of Pit-darknesse with his Locusts to darken all knowledge of Christ, and his Word, yet here it is for the joy and comfort of all the godly that our mighty Redeemer is come from heaven, and is described full of glory. And this description of Christ is from Moses, Esaias, Daniel, Ezekiel, Mat ●7. and Apoc. 1. 1. He is clothed with a cloud, and his feet as Pillars of fire: this remembers the conduct of Israel from Egypt, to assure us of the same mercy of Redemption from Rome Egypt, what old Egypt found and felt Rome Eggpt shall feel the like. 2. The Rain bow remem●reth Gen. 9 and Esay 54. Ezek. 1 that in all storms, floods and inundations of Pope Dracons' Tyranny (Apoc. 12. & 13.) the Rainbow doth assure us that God will remember his covenant for his church: and that the Waters of trouble, the rod of the wicked shall not ever be upon the Lot of the righteous, Psalm 124. and 125. 3. His face is as the sunshining in his strength, Dan 10. Mat. 17. Apoc. 1. his eyes in every place behold the evil and the good. Christ is greater than Moses, Moses face did shine, but not as the sun: For Christ's glory darkened his (yet not his but Christ which he put on him) for when he came to Christ, he put off his vail. If we pursue the tenor of the Law that Christ gave to Moses, our faces shall● shine as M●ses, through Christ's brightness upon us, if we delight to study the holy Bible. And his face so shining, doth assure us that he will utterly dispel the Popish frogs, and that in the Lords due season the whole earth shall be filled with his glory, Apoc. 18. 4. One forth on the Sea, and another on the land, doth show from Da●● 12. and Psalm 8. that the Lamb slain, though he once were the afflicted Son of sorrowful Enosh, yet that now he is ●●●lred above everyname, and that to him all power in heaven and in earth, was and is committed, and that he rules all by Sea and Land: and therefore little children and faithful evermore did, Apoc. 6. & 7. & 12. & 13 & 14. chap. and evermore shall say Hosanna to him that now is in the highest heavens. The great Cry of Hosanna destroyed the Caesar's Empire, so it shall the Reviver of the Empire, King Abaddon. 5. His voice is as the voice of a Lion when he roareth: he being the Lion of the Tribe of Judah: hath made all the Beasts of the Pit to tremble: and this teacheth what the Pope and Turk shall find: Christ with his called, chosen and faithful, full of courage in teaching the Gospel, shall take the prey and recover the spoil, and the King of the Pit, his Locusts and all his marked shall not be able to help themselves from his just judgements. 6. The seven thunders from him uttered their voices of secret un-unspeakable wrath to the Enemies of the Church: which the Phials in chap. 16. declare abundantly: and the enemies shall not perceive it, but go on in hardness impenitency as Pharaoh did, to their utter destruction. 7. Christ hath in his hand the little book of the Holy Scriptures always open for great consolation to the Church, from which the Holy Angels of the Churches, and other Witnesses do still prophecy to nations and Kings of their great Trespass in advancing the seven Mountain City. All abaddon's power and his Locusts could never shut this book, nor hinder prophesying. This our native Country showed in the days of King Henry the eight and Queen Mary. and in times before See the story of the Saints Marbeck and Tindal, etc. etc. 8. All this is managed with an oath to comfort and establish the hoirs of promise that the Lord Christ the only Potentate (1 Tim 6.) will put an end to all the troubles of the Church under the voice of the seventh Trumpet: and last Woe, and seventh Phial: 9 It is of necessary consequence to observe some circumstances about the sad times of the fifth and sixth Trumpets, because some say the Beast of the Pit, King Abaddon did utterly root out the church of Christ, and that no visible true church did appear when Anti-christ possessed all in outward show. 10. But this is impossible: for the promise is that the gates of (Hades) death and destruction, should not so prevail, Matth. 16.8. and that promise also is firm as a Rock, which saith, that Christ must reign till he make his enemies his footstool, 1 Cor. 15.25. Abaddon could not put ●he Son of God, the Rock and his cause so under his feet; for as i●●aid, Christ the great angel of the Covenant did ever show that he ●uled as King in his Kingdom of mount Zion (Apoc. 14.) and had ever one foot on the Sea, and the other on the Land, and the fifth had sixth Trumpet, to rule all things both by Land and Sea, and that he had the little book of the holy Bible ever open in his hand, which he still put into the hearts of his witnesses to prophesy, though in sackeloth, and full of troubles, Apoc. 11. this book Christ still kept open in spite of all the new Antiochus devises. 11. Therefore let this teach us with strong assurance, that though the Papacy did so overspread, yet that Christ had here and there two witnesses, some godly ones that held the fundamental truths, when the Beast of the Pit had most darkened the surface of Christendom, and they are also called the two Olive branches, and the two Candlesticks, which Christ made still to abide before him, that in every age his Saints might see the light of holy Doctrine. 2. This likewise is for great consolation to the Saints, that the Gospel of the Kingdom, as it hath, so it shall continue, notwithstanding all the opposition that hath been and shall be in the world against it, 3. Hence many are sharply to be reproved and rebuked, that think and utter blasphemies, that Christ did not reign, and that he had no witnesses under the Papacy, and that the Beast of the Pit had annihilated the Church of God. And hence new upstarts, vain men that wait for new apostles, and new Revelations, would dischurch the Reformed Churches, and dischurch members thereof, that have come (according to the commandment) out of mystical Babylon. And in great wickdednesse they cast off Magistracy, and the ordinances of the public ministry, and the care of Religion in family, etc. and so themselves become very antichrists, yea, some in new England, 1. Do abhor the baptising of the infants of godly parents. 2. Account our Congregations antichristian. 3. Make no regard ●o sanctify the Lords day. 4. Despise Magistracy. 5. Scorn our godly Teachers: the Lord grant that such as do openly profess this abomination, may never have a toleration among us, but if the Lord please to be gracious to them to enlighten their minds by the word of truth, than they will soon see how they are given to Satan, and lying spirits, 12. Remember that apostasy from the faith was foretold, and that the brethren must be put in it, that they might be careful to be nourished up in the words of faith, and in good Doctrine, such holy brethren ever were, and ever shall be, because God from the beginning hath elected such to salvation, through sanctification of the spirit, and the belief of the truth. 13. Can such a thought enter into our hearts, that the Man of sin hath destroyed Christ's kingdom utterly, that it should not have a being ever since the apostles days. Let us mark what our Lord Jesus Christ hath said to his apostles, I have chosen you, and ordained you, john 15.16. that ye should go forth among the Nation●, and bring forth fruit, and that your fruit should remain. Let us not therefore be deceived, that Antichrist hath ever been able to root out the Kingdom of Christ, although they killed some witnesses, yet still Christ raised others to prophesy, and the most holy faith is builded on Christ the rock, the polity of the heavenly Je●usalem is builded more sure, then that the seed of the Serpent should ever be able to prevail so far, as to destroy it utterly: It is builded on the twelve foundations of the faith of the holy Patriarches and apostles Doctrine, and this city is compassed with a wall of holy truth unvincible. And what hath shaken abaddon's Kingdom, but the prohesying of the two witnesses, from the opened book, that is in Christ his hand. Thus much by way of Parenthesis to Apoc. 10. Now I will go on with the Trumpets and Phials. SECT. 7. The sixth Trumpet, and second woe, and sixth Pbia●. 1. THe sixth Trumpet showeth how Christ raised up the Turk from Euphrates: they were four evil Angels or messengers of Christ's wrath, before whom Christ roared as a Lion, so that nothing could hinder them: they are described in terrible manner to plague the idolatries of the apostate Churches, whom Christ sent to destroy the third part of men, who came westward, and wasted the Asian Churches, those wars were most fearful and bitter, and because the seven Churches of Asia, and others fell from the faith, Christ therefore in his just judgement removed their candlestick by the Turk, who brought lamentable crrours and profaneness into Asia, and at last into Europe. But Rome was the cause of the fall and of weakening to all; for the Pontificality seeking to advance its Supremacy, did by all means weaken Constantine's Empire, and the Popish Princes did assist the Papacy therein, for the Pontificality, and its frog locusts excited the Turk to war against the Greek Empire, and to overthrow new- Room, or Constantina, but Princes to their sorrow and detriment, saw that it was unrecoverable to this day, and so will be till Princes cast off the Man of sin (that made them to sin) and receive Christ as their King and Lawgiver. Here was great woe the churches of the East, and then it came to the West. 2. So in like sort, under the sixth Phial, the Turk getting the Greek Empire, Christ maketh him to plague the Papacy (The kings of the East from Euphrates in the sixth Phial are the same people, and scourge of Christ, in the sixth Trumpet that are mentioned in the sixth Trumpet, Apocal. 〈◊〉.) And we may well say, that the Lord Jesus Christ the only potentate made the Turk in some sense to be an Armageddon in part to the Pap●●y, When the Turks plague the Papacy, than the frogs croak up and down in King's Courts, and so when the re form Churches departed from the man of sin (as the godly from Ie●oboam, 2. Chron. 11.13 16.) and his policy, than frogs bestirred themselves in Kings courts, mark now in Apoc, 16. and the 13. verse is immediately inferred from the 12. verse. and to some Papal Princes that were excited to those wars by the frogs, as histories show. But it must chief be understood that when the Reformed Churches one after another departed from the Papacy, than the frogs that came out of the mouths of th● Boast, and false Prophet, and the Dragon, did creep into King's Courts, and stirred them to war against the two witnesses, the two Candlesticks, and two O. live-trees. But Christ made all the enemies projects and endeavours to be an Armageddon to themselves, as among the Waldenses and the Albigenses, etc. and in Bohemia, etc. The Beast hath and still rageth and warreth with the Saints in many places, as he can muster his forces. 3. But under the Phials Satan and the double power of Rome, although they stir up all their forces against the Reformed churches by their three froggy spirits, Devilish Emissaries, yet they do not fight more prosperously than Jabin King of Canaan at Mageddon, to be cut in pieces. Then the great and only Potentate, Christ Jesus the great angel, Apo●. 10. shown how he had one foot on the sea, and the other on the Land, and overruled war, and guile, deceit and violence, nor to pass bounds. Then the Rainbow in the cloud, and the feet as Pillars of fire were remembered and manifested. Then the Saints did sing the song of Moses and Deborah, to the praise of the angel of the covenant, Jehovah of hosts mighty in battle, and still we have cause to sing Hallelujab for those and our deliverances, and other countries shall have such mercies, and sing such praises. But the people of God must be careful to watch and keep their garments, that when those frogs have croaked up any expedition against us, the Lord Christ may not behold the nakedness of our unworthy walking ecclesiastically or civilly, lest he depart from us, when he seethe any filthiness in our camps. 4. Also under the sixth trumpet we must be careful to observe that although the power of the Beast of the Pit hath been great and spread far and near (and it is yet great) yet there was the society of holy people two witnesses, that did worship God as in his Temple, and still he hath looked to them, as to Israel of old from the Temple, ever measuring them, and caring for them, but yet the King of Locusts and his Locusts, the seed of the Serpent shall do a deal of mischief, trampling the holy city, in all their large Polis, where ever they shall find such as are holy wor● ippers, how then can the prattling Locusts say, where was your Church before Luther. 5. Though the Beast and his marked are strong in worldly power, yes the two Witnesses by their praying, prophesying, and martyrdom, were as great a vexation, and a torment of woe to the Papacy, as ever Elias and other Prophets, were to Ahabs and Jezabels' Kingdom by their prophesying, praying, and sufferings, yea martyrdom in the full intent and endeavour of Achab and Jezabel, And the Martyrs are as Moses plaguing mystical Egypt with spiritual plagues, as with spiritual darkness, etc. And the two Witnesses by praying, prophesying, and sufferings brought great troubles to the Popish kingdom, not only by people's falling from them many seeing the Pontificality an incendiary of all their troubles depart from it, and not only that, but in taking up arms in their defence as in Bohemia and others to this day: yea, not only that, but by intestine troubles in the Papacy itself, the Princes thereof full of tumults among themselves as was in Achabs' kingdom, this wrought much good to the reformed in two things. 1. The enemies were so busied about their own interests that they could not so well mind how the reform got strength. 2. When the Papal Princes were thus weakened, than the Protestants could stand upon their defence. And this also was a great torment to the Beasts Kingdom, that the two Prophets that were slain did stand upon their feet again (that is Christ raised up others of their spirit, as Elisha was raised up with the spirit of Elia. (that is gifts of Elias) rooted out of Achabs' kingdom So the martyrs caused a great Earthquake of State in Star-wormwoods' kingdom to its fearful terror amazement and overthrow in many places, that a tenth part of that large Polis, or Common-Weal fell since the preaching of the everlasting Gospel. SECT. VIII. The seventh Trumpet, and third woe, and seventh Phial. UNder the seventh Trumpet, and third Woe is showed the further Torment and Woe of the ungodly and profane kingdom of the Beast of the Pit after that the Martyrs had by prayer, prophesying and martyrdom called for fire to burn it. And under this seventh Trumpet it will in further events of things be more fully manifested to the great rage and anger of the King of Locusts, and to his Locusts, and to all his marked, when in Christ's appointed season every nation, kindred, tongue, and people of the Papacy shall submit to the Everlasting Gospel, to fear God, and to give him glory, and to worship him that made the heaven and the earth, and the fountains of water: and upon this mystical Babylon shall fall more and more by faithful Angels, one after another (Apoc. 14.) But this will not be of Kingdomès together all at once, casting off ●baddons Kingdom, but it will be successive, one Country and Kingdom after another. 2. Now the seventh Vial is much like the seventh Trumpet: one will explain the other; But this we are diligently to observe, that in the fifth Trumpet, it is mentioned that the Air is darkened, as well as the Sun, the Air is such a medium, that by it we see the light of the Sun, the blessed and holy Law of Christ, his lively Oracles, is the Air by which as the only Instrument we see the Son of God. This Air was darkened by the cursed smoke of Heresies, from the pit of darkness, blaspheming the purity of the Hebrew and Greek Testaments, hindering by all possible means, Translations into our own Languages, and forbidding the Study of the Scriptures, urging their unsound Translations, as authentic, * Especial. Gen. 3.15. corrupting most Satanically, the holy Rolls not fearing an eternal Pillory: obtruding also idle and erroneous, and heretical expositions, wicked decretals, golden Legens, Apocrypha Books, their Rosaries, Missals, Lady's Psalter, transcendently blasphemous, Heathenish customs, etc. etc. By all which the Beasts marked knew, What and Who King Abaddon was: these declared him to them. By these they saw and believed him to be their God, their most holy Father, that he had power to forgive sin, and had power to send them into Purgatory, and to recall them, etc. etc. There was a kind of invisible spiritual power, that w●nt from him to all his marked. How did they reverence him, and submit themselves to him in his Cardinals, Nuntioes, Priests, Jesuits, even all his Seminaries and Locusts of every kind. 3. Now the wrath of Christ in the seventh Phial, is poured on all this smoke, this pontifician Air, all these were dispelled by the light from Christ's Throne set up in the reformed Churches; by the Angels that he sent, holy spirits invisibly his Christian servants visibly. They by learning Hebrew and Greek, and teaching in the Schools of the Prophets: And by the help of the blessed Spirit of Christ, the great Rabboni, and Doctor of his Church, did by sound and learned Translations and Orthodox expositions, and by many excellent and worthy endeavours, both by teaching and writing (the Enemy being Judges) and by the practice of noble Arts and Sciences, especially Printing, and by courageous Parliaments in the days of King Hen. the eighth, and King Ed. the sixth, and Queen El. and King James, and King Charles, and by Diets in Germany, etc. make such Voices, Thundrings, and Lightnings in the Popish Air, Yea the Lord Jesus hath so ordered in his providence that some learned in the Popish Kingdom have been a means to overthrow i● as A●ias Mont. that it did dispel the fogs and smoke that Apolluou and his Locusts had formerly raised: and as the Angel- Jehovah, at the giving of the Law of his Gospel, did by his voice with Thunder and Earth quake dispel the Idolatry of old Egypt from his Israel, so now against Rome-Egypt, he did thunder and send forth lightning by zealous Luther, Tuelancton, and divers Martyrs in Germany, etc. and by painful tindal, etc. and by Martyrs in England, Germaney, France, Scotland, etc. And after this by faithful prophesying, and Orthodox writings of many worthies of the Lord in England, Scotland, Geneva, etc. but yet something is still to be reform for the be-smoked Air is not fully cleared amongst the best reformed in some points. 4. In abaddon's Kingdom, that shall yet be by the just providence, of Christ a further terrible Earthquake of his Government, that it shall be greatly divided, the Cities of the Nations shall more and more fall from it, which will also be a cause of more wars and commotions, and such fierceness of wrath shall come on the Papacy, as there did on the Chanaanites, by hail, Jos. 10. and such alteration of policy shall be in the King of Locusts Kingdom, as if Islands and Mountains were not found, and such alteration and breaking, as of the b Gen. 6. the Earth is corrupted, and I will corrupt them, saith Christ Jehovah. old world corrupted, and Chanaanites destroyed, that the Isralites might dwell in their stead; and the Kingdoms of the world shall become our Lords and his Christ's, and he shall reign for ever and ever. 5 Then the twenty four Elders which sat before God on their-seats shall fall on their faces, and worship God saying, We give thee thanks O Lord God Almighty which art, and waste, and art to come, because thou hast taken to thee thy great power, & hast reigned, and the Nations were angry, and thy wrath is come, & the time of the dead, that they should be judged, and that thou should give reward unto thy Servants the Prophets, and to the Saints, and them that fear thy name both small and great, and shouldst corrupt them that corrupt the Earth. And the Temple of God was * The apostate and wicked Kings of Judah shut the Temple, so did both godly 2. Cor. 6.16. opened in Heaven, and there were seen in his Temple, the Ark of his Testament, and there were Lightnings, and Voices, and Thundrings, and an Earthquake, and great hail, Apoc. 11. the Man of sin, by burning and destroying the holy Temples of Christ, Teachers, and godly Congregations, 1. Cor. 6.15 19 Ch. 3.16.17 6. Thus great Babylon shall hear the voice of the seventh Trumpet as Jericho did, and feel the seventh Phial of God's wrath in the Lords due season, when Nations oppressed by them shall learn skilfully to sing Halleluj●th, and with understanding shall praise the Lord: the Lord must, for vain is the help of man, consume that bad King Abaddon of Kittim Italy, in the end at his glorious appearing as those Beasts in Daniel, by the first coming of Christ into the World were wholly consumed, for whom God sat on a fiery Throne, so the Beast compounded of those four shall not wholly perish until the second coming of Christ, for whom a white Throne of Justice is openly revailed, by sentence thence the false Prophet Pope, and the Beast of his Authority, shall ay feel God's wrath until they be both ●ast with the Dragon into eternal fire. Amen. SECT. IX. Consider these things advisedly about the Phials. 1. THe seven Phials do distinguish the manner of Christ's dispensation, not the time, as it is apparent. 1. Because these Phials are not yet poured out in all the Kingdoms that gave their power to the Beast, as not on Spain, etc. 2. All these phials have been, and are now in further execution in our Native Country. 3. The holy Spirit, as is noted, transfers the plague of the Papacy in dispelling its Air to the seventh Phial; under it, it shall be utterly dispersed (though as yet it is still much in some places) from all the Countries where the Beasts Kingdom hath been and yet is. 4. As the fiery Mountain of abaddon's Kingdom, increased by degrees, and in some Country's * Great Britain was the last that fully yielded to Rome's polity, and the first that cast it off. Jer. 28. more and sooner than in others, so it decreaseth in the same manner. If this had been seriously marked, some would not have not been (may I say) so peremptory, and definitive for the Pope's utter destruction in 1650. or 1655. we are not to talk what the Lord Christ can do, but rather to observe the course of his providence, as it hath been exercised since Wickliffs' days, both concerning the enmity and wars of the holy seed, and the seed of the Serpent, I wish, as Jeremiah said to Hananiah, that the Lord would perform your words which you have propheseyed. But it shall not be so. 5. Rome, Kittim, Italy, shall be a mark for God's Judgements to the end, it shall hold some strength in their iniquity to the end. For the Church shall be troubled in one place or other with Dogs, Murderers, Fornicators, There shall be persecution and vexation from the seed of the Serpent in one place or other, more or less, secret or open, while the Church remaineth in this World: notwithwanding all that is alleged for the glorious personal reign of Christ here on Earth, they mistake the Tropes used in the Prophets, from the visible to he invisible Church here on Earth. Sorcerers, Liars, and other abominable. Let us not flatter ourselves, the seed of the Serpent shall be to the end; and all outward Enemies shall not be put (though more and more weakened) under the feet of Christ till the end. The Heavenly Jerusalem hath been from the Apostles days, and shall be to the end, and the seed of the Serpent shall bruise to the end. The holy Spirit doth show us the Counsel of Christ, that there is no age in which the vanity of this cursed World shall not be manifested, Gen. 3. Eccl. 1. Such peace as many talk of under Christ's personal reign is not for this World, but for the World to come. etc. 6. There is no Vial poured on the Turks tyrannical Kingdom, for he was raised up, only to be a scourge to the Apostasy of the Greek Churches, in the Trumpets, and of later years of the Papacy in the Phials. But when the Kingdoms that gave their power to the Beast of the Pit, and his Kingdom of Kittim, do revolt from him, and embrace the Gospel in sincerity and purity, than God will throw that Rod of the Turk into the fire. Chap. XIX. The dead Bones, Ezekiel, 37.11, 12. etc. must not be understood of the Jews calling after our times, but only of their return from Babel. THen said he unto me, Son of man, these bones are the whole House of Israel, behold they say our bones are dried, and our hope is lost, we are cut off for our parts. Therefore Prophecy, and say unto them, thus saith the Lord God; Behold O my people, I will open your Graves, and cause you to come out of your Graves, and bring you into the Land of Israel— and I will place you in your own Land. 1. The coherence of this Scripture, about the dead bones, with the former Chapter is not to be understood of the Jews, calling at all after our times, but must properly and only to be understood of their return from Babel, the Land of the North, and other Countries where they had been scattered by the Kings of Ashur and Babel. 2. But before I go on, I will premise some principal overruling providences of Christ, which the holy story doth declare unto us; 1 Concerning the progeny of Solomon being extinct, 2. Concerning his Kingdom being overthrown, 3. Concerning the Temple and City burnt, and laid in an heap of dust, and thus Christ in the indignation of his wr●th did loath both King and Priest, 4. Concerning themselves in sad captivity, 5. Concerning the Temples holy Vessels carried captive, 6. Concerning other grivous evils of scorn and derision, and of other daily dangers, both corporal and spiritual, Dan. 1. & 3. Who is able to recount their sorrows and calamities: Now being thus disconsolate: It is no marvel it caused them to say, our bones are dried up, So the Apostle useth this same argument, 2. Cor. 1.9. to his comfort, so Esai. 26.19. & Hos. 13.14. and our hope is lost, we are cut off for our parts. But now at last is pleased the Lord God to comfort them by an allusion to the Doctrine of the Resurrection, that as surely as they believed the Doctrine of the Resurrection, so surely God could and would revive their dead State. Now we are not to think that the Prophet doth comfort any but the present age then in Bondage and captivity, and therefore he doth not proph●sie of the Jews calling to inhabit Chanaan again, and build Jerusal●m again, now after our times, as too many doc misinterpret the Prophet's meaning. 3. They were so disconsolate under Babel's Yoke, that when Cyrus made that Proclamation, of their return, Ezra. 1. they thought they rather dreamt, then that it was a truth of their deliverance granted, Psal. 126. M●ny acts of unbeleif were in their hearts, and in their speeches, and so it is with us in afflictions: Yet Christ was faithful in his promises, he cannot deny himself. Some object, that the Apostle then in Rom. 11. might well then have spared the Jews in so deep a question as touching their calling. Answ. I dare not say so, for the Apostle being a Prophet, it was as authentic as if Esatas or Ezekiel had foretold it. And by the same answer it may be questioned (notwithstanding all the plausible speeches of some) whether any Prophet of the old Testament did prophesy of the Jews calling yet to come, for the Apostle doth only by allusion, cite Esaias and Ezekiel to show that as the Lord God did formerly show his power and mercy in their restauration from Babel, so he would once again call them to the faith, after so long a time. To the same effect the Apostle dealt in Act. 13.40, 41. in citing Abakuks prophesy. Abakuk propheseyed of the Chaldeans to arise; But the Jews than would no more believe that Babel should overcome them, than they believed the Apostle Paul, citing Abakuks words of God's wrath, by the Romans, to make an end of them. And so Saint Paul doth, in like manner, cite Dan. 11. in 2. Thess. 2. concerning the man of sin, the new Antiochus of Rome by allusion only. 4. Whereas the present age of ezekiel's days was so disconsolate, and lamented, one would think the Prophet comforts them, and doth not 〈◊〉 of men that should live two thousand years after, it is not rational 〈…〉 to think (most impertinent assertions) As if a godly soul, or a 〈…〉 under grievous pressures and afflictions at present, should 〈…〉 for consolation, must the Teacher then tell stories to 〈…〉 that neither they nor theirs for many genera. 5. Again these in captivity were godly and faithful, and knew they were chastised for not regarding God's * The jews now are persuaded of no such thing, although forewarned, Heb. 10.25, 26, 27. covenant in Christ, and therefore they did humble themselves and confess their sins, as Levit. 26. foretold and had gracious promises of return to Canaan, and of building city and Temple, and that the City should be builded on its own heap, and that they should have a policy to buy and sell, jer. 32. and the Prophet Ieremi●h knew well enough that the godly in the state of judah were or would be much cast down in their spirits, even as jeremy himself was concerning their most grievous calamities, as jer. 32. * It was ●n that age of God people, that needed this satisfaction. and thereupon the Lord God did comfort him and all the godly of those days, and did revive their hearts in divers passages (even as he did by Ezekiel) see Jer. 29.30 31 32, 33. chapters. 6. But the Jews now are not godly, but grievous apostates, for they hold Christ, and his Gospel, Kingdom and people anathema, they are exceeding hard of heart, and blaspheme our Christ, & look for Christ yet to come, not one of 1000 is godly of them, nor have been for many hundred years. 7. A glorious calling of the Jews from Rom. 11. is not denied in all places where they are scattered, and will not this be a wonderful glory to them and us, that they in all places where they are shall yield obedience to the Gospel. This should suffice, for more cannot be proved, and when Christ came we Gentiles were received into their sheepfold, john 10, Other sheep I have, etc. but hereafter the contrary, Rom. 11.11. To provoke them to follow them, that, was their glory, this ours. 8. So certainly, this speech of Ezek. 37. was spoken for the present disconsolate age, These were not yet cast off, All Zac. z. was consolatory to the returned who were vexed by the Samaritans, and others, jerusalem, being as yet unwalled, although the providence of Christ was as a wail of fire for them, till it was walled. nor cut off from their own people, but they only were as yet God's people, and that made Zachariah say * that the Lord will yet choose Zion and jerusalem, and that yet he would be jealous for jerusalem, and Zion. This was to comfort them under many pressures, being under the government of the Persians, and under such like pressures, they should be under javan whole, and javan parted, namely in much affliction, therefore it was fit and convenient, so to comfort them, for the Lord doth always speak sitly to his olive, and so the Lord did yet choose them, even after this, for the time of the Seventy Sevens of years, in which space of time they should be the peculiar holy people, and jerusalem should continue to be the holy City, but after the Seventy Sevens of years were accomplished, according to Dan. 9 they had not any peculiar privilege, nor ever shall. We m●s● not regard that strange Doctrine, that teacheth otherwise, but what tends to that Zion in Hebrews 12. and in Apocalyps 14.1. and to that Jerusalem Hebrews 12. Gal. 4. Apoc. 3 and 21. in too many things we do hinder the conversion of the Jews in Judaizing with them: They hope for the building of jerusalem, and daily pray for their return to Canaan, and many of us thus Judaize with them, in teaching their return thither to b● a glorious Church again. 9 And whereas the people of God in jeremiah's and Ezekiels days were much dejected in spirit, for the sorrows which they felt by Babel the golden head (as they had cause) & went weeping to Babel, not clearly discerning God's counsel, yet at the end of the captivity, the holy counsels of God were fully opened by Gabriel the holy angels glorious message from heaven to Daniel, * This Text of Dan. 9.24. did comfort them for the loss of the Ark, Jer. 3. and the shaking of the rest of the Ceremonies, and because the Lord foresaw what he would once more do by the Roman polity, therefore he gave to Daniel that glorious revelation, that they should expect the MESSIAH, the holy of holy, to confirm the Covenant for the many by his death. Dan. 9.24. That they need not mourn nor lament for destroying salomon's Progeny and Kingdom, because the holy angel had told them of the MESSIAH their King greater than Solomon, who was also of the house of David, for it is said, he shall be great, and shall be called the Son of the most high, and the Lord God shall give unto him the throne of his father David, and he shall reign over the house of Jacob, for ever, and of his Kingdom there shall be no end, Luc. 1.32, 33. and hence we learn that Christ's spiritual kingdom shall never be ended, nor overthrown, nor his heavenly progeny extinct, who are Princes and Priests in all the earth, Psal. 145.16 and the Metropolis of his kingdom, is the heavenly Zion and Jerusalem, builded by the Gospel, over all the four quarters of the world and this city 1500 mile square, compassed about with a wall of precious truth, invincible, that no power of the enemy can scale it, or make any breach in it, and the foundations of the wall are twelve, compounded of twelve precious Jewels, (The holy Doctrine of the Lambs twelve apostles) that there can be no Satanical pioners to make any mines to blow it up (no, if they be as deep in their counsels as Garnet and Faux, of that hellish crew) and the Temple within this holy city, is so glorious, that it secretly affrights all opposers, more than that in the times of Psal. 48. For the Lord God of hosts, even the LAMB is the Temple, who is also the Rock of defence of his Church. 10. Now though all this be our glory under the new Testament, yet the Doctrine of many is contrary, for in effect they teach the Jews to lament and mourn for earthly Canaan, and for the low jerusalem and Temple. Teacher's may as well follow their Thalmudicall fables, as this doctrine, and so they do in part, for they look for a pompous Kingdom in Canaan, and continue against God's oath, the line of Solomon, jer. 22. These things will be touched again, as the argument calls for it. 11. The Prophecy of Amos chap. 9 is expounded in Acts 15. by the holy Council, and it will confine all our expositions that we make upon Esaias, Ezekiel and Zacharias, for such a calling of the Jews, as I have showed. The last of Amos expounded by the Apostles themselves, I take it is a key to open all these matters: to this agree the words of the Prophets, Acts 15. he speaks plurally, Prophets, yet citys but Amos, and let us mark how the apostles interpret, and because almost all the Prophets shut up their Prophecies like Amos, therefore I suppose Amos and that Council do expound them all, and so Amos will expound, Jer. 30. 31, 32, and 32. and 33. chapters, some part of them, as also Ezek. 37. the latter part of it, as it shall be touched about the two sticks, which come next to be considered. CHAP. XX. Of the two Sticks, Ezek. 37. in confutation of them that say, it is not yet fulfilled that Ephraim was joined to Judah, also some observations are annexed from Zach. 2. Zach. 8. Zach. 9 Zach. 10. and chap. 11. SECT. 1. ANswer. 1. It is evident by an express promise, that the other Tribes, as well as Judah should return from captivity out of the Land of the North and from other countries where they were scattered, Consider these Scriptures. Jer. 3. In those days the house of Judah shall walk with the house of Israel, and they shall come together out of the Land of the North, to the Land that I have given for an inheritance to your fathers, with this verse, the 16, and the 17th verse should be minded. Jer, 50. In those days, and in that time, saith Jehovah, the children of Israel shall come, they and the children of Judah together, going and weeping, they shall go and seek Jehovah their God, and many such expressions the Prophets have. 2. The 49000 that did return with Zorobabel, Ezra 2. many of them might be of the ten Tribes, for at this time all the Tribes were called Jews, but before I go further I would note two things. 1. The angel gabriel's glorious message from heaven of the Seventy sevens, and the holy Doctrine therein contained. 2. The mild government * although the Medes and Persians were likened to a savage Bear to Babel, Dan. 7 yet they are likened to a tame Ram for the comfort of Israel, Dan. 8. of the Kings of Persia, under Da●ius Artaxast 41 year, that so favoured Ezra and Nehemiah, and eight years under his successor Da●ius, and 42 years under Artaxtrxes his successor, almost 100 years, this long space was of much rest to Israel. These two things doubltesse would cause many to remember Zion and jerusalem, and to return and flock to Canaan. And in the time of that comfortable quietness they might get , Silver● and gold, apparel, etc. as in these 80. years of David & Solomon, Ez. 38. how did they increase in riches, and honour, in multitudes? and so in our native Country, in the days of Q.E. and K.I. How did England increase in people, honour and wealth by our blessed peace, which the Lord in great mercy gave us for 66 years? 3. Again, it is said plainly, 1 Chron. 9 that some of Ephraim and Manasseh were of them that returned, and some of Bethel that idolatrous City of the ten Tribes returned, V Tremel. in 1 Ch●. 9 & Neh. 11.12, 3 these of Ephraim, and Manasseh were an earnest that more should return, and Mr. Pemble, Zach. on 13. showeth that of the 49000 that returned, 12000 of them were of the ten Tribes. and it is showed that they dwelled with judah in jerusalem, and many more in the other Cities of judah, this is an history to the prophecy of the two sticks to be as one. SECT. 2. SOme object that those of the other Tribes besides Judah, were but a sprinkling & not worthy of consideration in respect of the Prophecy. Answ. 1. I think we may be much to blame to say so, 〈◊〉. what is 38000, 38000 besides the Levites, and Nethinims and their servants and hand maids, in all 49000. that returned (suppose they were all of judah) to the infinite numbers of judah that were carried captive, & that still remained in the nations abroad? that number would be but a thin replenishing of the land of judea, and jerusalem, and Benjamin, and we are not otherwise to think, but that many moe of Ju●●ah returned afterwards. 2. I suppose I may take up the argument of the Apostle, that the promises of God were not without effect, though so many of the ten Tribes did not return, as did of judah, some did return, though not to the State of a Kingdom by itself, yet we are not to make question, but that multitudes did return after ward according to the Prophecy, The term Nations, jer. 3.17. may intimate jiphraims' nations, as Gen. 48.19. many myriads of them, as is evident by the wars under Javan, as Dan. 11 and Ezek. 38, and 39 shows that very many of the whole house of Israel, did replenish the land of Judah and Benjamin, josephus and the Maechabees show it was so, and it is said, there were besides them that had returned, and that did separate themselves from the filthiness of the heathens, Ezra 6.21. and Darius Artaxast gave great encouragement, Ezra 7 13. 3. judah's Tribe was principally to be nominated in the returned, because of the Prophecy to judah, the fourth son of jacob, who should have his Tribe chief to exist, because of his Shitob, according to jacobs' Prophecy. * So Tremellius, Gen. 49. A Tribe shall not sail to Judah till his Son shall come. 4. This is considerable that all the time of the Seventy Sevens, the Tribes were kept in some distinction, yea, until the destruction of jerusalem by Titus, but not so afterward, * The jews writ that none knew their own Tribes. Dr. Lightfoot, and others show the vanity of their modern genealogies. for they could not, being so scattered. The deceitful unbelieving Jews did trouble the believing Gentiles, by darkening the holy Genealogies of the Scriptures by their endless genealogies; for after the Evangelists, Matthew and Luke had cleared the case of our Lord, by uncontrollable private Records, which the Jews could not deny, that our Lord sprang out of Judah, than the apostle charged the Churches to take heed of (not only that, but to avoid) Jews fables, and their endless genealogies. And now let us consider the 21. verse of Ezek. 37. I will take the children of Israel from among the heathen whither they be gone, and will gather them on every side, and bring them into their own Land. Can we think, but that this was spoken of to the present age, and therefore in that respect it cannot be understood of the Jews calling yet to come; for we all know, they shall not be called till the fullness of the Gentiles be come in, and when is that? I will gather them from among the heathen, when is that? mark it, for the Lord speaketh reproachfully [the heathen] but now many of the Jews are among Reformed Churches, which cannot be called heathen. The Apostle said long since, whether we be Jews, Scythians, bond or free, all are one in Christ Jesus, shall we then be accounted dogs, unclean. Certainly, Ezekiel so speaketh of Israel, that the heathen should have nothing to do in their policy, as long as their Prerogative did continue: and whereas Ezekiel saith [whither they be gone] he calls to mind all their oppressors, as well ashur, as Babel, and from [these heathen] they shall be brought into their own Land, but when the jews are called to the faith, they will est 'em of Canaan no better than any other country; as indeed they ought not. 5. Now we will touch a little of Zachariah, who utters many consolatory promises, and prophecies to the present age of his time (and for the times of the Seventy Sevens) because they were slack in returning to their * It is a singular observation (I think of B●roaldus) that Hamans' Plot against the jews in 127 Provinces was a chastisement to them for their slackness in returning, they loved their outward comforts, and settled habitation too much, they should have done, as 2 Chron. 11.13, 16. I hope the Lord will remember poor new England, and our posterity, as jer. 2.2, 3. brethren that had already returned, & had ●elt some hardship by some of the former Kings of Persia, and were put into many fears by Sanballat and his associates of the Samaritans, yet the Lord God promiseth that he would put into their hearts to return, to be as one with judah. 6. I will express some Scriptures of Zac. 26, 7 Ho, ho, come so●th, and flee from the Land of the North, saith the Lo●d, for I have s●●ed you abroad as the four winds of the heaven saith the Lord. Deliver thyself O Zion, that dwellest with the daughter of Babylon. This earnest call of the Lord might well cause Ezra and his company to return, and of them many might be of the ten Tribes, as well as of judah; his return was four or five years after, for this Prophecy was uttered in the second of Darius' Artaxast, and Ezra returned in the seventh 7 Zachary 8. showeth that the returned were somewhat disconsolate, because jerusalem was so scant of inhabitants, as (Nehemiah 11.) read Zac. 8. Therefore God promiseth, I will save my people from the East country,, and from the West country, and I will bring them, and they shall dwell in the midst of jerusalem, etc. in verse 13. it is said, And it shall come to pass, that as ye were a curse among the heathen, O house of judah and house of Israel, so will I save you, and you shall be a blessing, fear not, we are not to doubt, but the Lord brought them of the ten Tribes, as well as of judah, read verses 20.21. 8. Zac. 9.13. When I have bend judah for me, and filled the bow with Epraim, and raised up thysons O Zion against thy sons O Javan, and made thee as a sword of a mighty man. The Lord made juhah and Ephraim a bew and arrows against the enemies, in the days of the Seleuco-Logidae, as the Macchabees show, and this showeth that many of the ten Tribes had returned, as well as Judah. See Tremellius on Zac. 9 Zach. 10.6. I will strengthen the house of judah, and I will save the house of joseph, and will bring them again to place them, etc. and they of Ephraim shall be as a mighty man— I will hisse for them, and gather them v. 10— I will bring them again also out of Egypt, and Ashur into Gilead, and Lebanon, etc. These speeches and others do show, that Ephraim had returned as well as Judah, and were as one stick 10. And the new Testament showeth, that Israel in the Tribes were multiplied, great multitudes fol'owed the Lord Jesus where ever he came, and he dwelled and taught much in those places where captivity began by the Kings of Ashur, there the light of the Gospel first began, in the Land of Zabulon and Naphtali, Esaias had prophesied it should be so Esai. 9, And there are histories and writers, that show how at the holy feasts of the Jews, there were hundreds of thousands that assombled, which showeth, that many of the ten Tribes had returned, and were as one stick joined together in holy worship. 11. And this will further be evidence by Zac 11. that they had returned, both judah and Israel, and were as one, because the Lord threatened them, that he would break the brotherhood of Ephraim and Judah, for their departing from the faith, and did not regard the Law of the Angel of the Covenant, which he by Mases gave at Horeb; for he had charged them by the Ministry of Ma●achi, to remember the lively oracles, Mal. 4 4. with the Statutes and judgements, that were commanded for all Israel, for they should have no more Prophets ●ill John-Elias. 12. But they followed the wicked doctrine of the three shepherds, Sadducisme, Pharisailme, etc. & many Jews that despised the holy Covenant, became treacherous; therefore God brought upon Jerusalem &c all Jullea, heavy miseries that they destroyed one another before our Lord's incarnation and after: very many sorrows by civil dissensions, and schisms, so that then was broken the brotherhood of Judah and Ephraim, and thus, Zac 11. must be understood of these times, and to this effect. 13. And further to dilate on the Text. They took Jerusalem from one another by domestical seditions, and they cut down the Cedar-great men, spoiling and destroying the great ones among themselves, and the great ones did roar like Lions on the meaner sort, as they had gotten power over them, so their vintage of consblations was taken away, not so much literally to be understood, but the Temples holy worships, were heathenishly, and otherways corrupted, and their exercises in their Synagogues were greatly suspended; for as either of their factions prevailed, they blessed themselves, as though the Lord God favoured them! But the Lord took his pity from them, and did deliver them every one into the hand of his neighbour, and into the hands of their Kings, the Seleucidae, the Herod's and the Romans, whom they also called to their quarrels, and yet for all this, Canaan was yet the holy Land, and jerusalem was yet the holy city, & Zion the holy mountain, for in all these troubles the Lord had a care of the poor of the flock that waited on him. 14. the stories of these things are manifest, and that Zach. 11. must not be understood of the times, after [now our days] many passages will tedder and confine the times of some men's apprchensions, as that Scripture of their under-valuing MESSIAH their King, the Lord of glory, at the price of a slave, and so applied by the Evangelists, upon which followed a further breach of brotherhood, and civil dissensions, Zac. 11.10, 11, 12, 13, 14. horrible distress and wrath, vid. Tremellius and Zach. and josephus on the wars of the Jews. 15. Zach. 11. may well and must be accommodated to the times somewhat preceding our Lords days, and some what after, but there is not the least show of intimation, of applying the Prophet to the Jews calling now after our times. Let the godly Christian Student, diligently read the Scriptures (We err not knowing the Scriptures) and then Josephus and Macchabees and other authors: and with all observe the times, the families or Nations, and the places of their habitations, and for the times of the new Testament, mark allusions, as hath and will be touched, but so far as Propriety will reach for times and persons that must be still adhered unto. CHAP. XXI. Of the Jews calling, the 12, 13, & 14. Chapters of Zachary, that it cannot be applied to the Jews calling yet to come, as many Ministers do too unadvisedly teach. WE are to consider many passages in Dan. 7, 8, 9, 10, 11, & 12. Chapters, 1. That all the time of the Holy Angel, gabriel's message of the Seventy Sevens, the Jews were called the holy people, Michael's people, daniel's people, their Religion is called the truth, Zion and the Temple is called the holy Mountain, Jerusalem the holy City, and the only place of holy worship in the World, Joh. 4. And the Son of God is called MICHAEL, the great Prince before his blessed Incarnation, and that he had over them a special regard during the date and lease of their prerogative of the Seventy Sevens. 2. Therefore we are diligently to observe, Zach. 12. that although those troubles were among them, yet still Jerusalem was the holy City, and that God had respect to them, because the holy faith of the Gospel was among them, and also among the Godly dispersed Jews, and the same holy faith was maintained by the many godly that exhorted one another, but the most of them were of the meaner sort, called the poor of the flock, and for their sakes, Jerusalem was a burdensome Stone to all the ungodly, whither the Heathens, or the lawless Apostates of daniel's people (Dan. 11.) And sometimes the better part that had some life of Religion were their Leaders, and did govern them, and they were as a Torch of fire in a sheaf to burn and devour the Enemies, and Jerusalem was defended, and as yet, adhuc permaneat, did abide in her own place, and so it was to abide until the ending of the S●venty Sevens, Zach. 12.6. 3. And whereas Zachariah saith in Chap. 12.6. Jerusalaima adhuc permaneant, Jerusalem is there, and I think in all other places in the old Testament, in the plural teaching them celestial meditations (as Psal. 15.1.) And that although the Saints of them the high Trinity, should yet inhabit the Low-Jerusalem, in much affliction, they should notwithstanding account themselves but strangers (Levit, 25.23.) and should rather look to the Jerusalem that is above, the sight of true peace, the Heavenly City, as Abraham, Jsaac, and jacob did to the Heavenly Country, Eby. 11. 4. This speech that jerusalem should yet abide, and be inhabited, is consolatory, both for the present State of the Church against the plottings of Sanballat, etc. and for that Daniel had showed that javan in the fourth Beast, should bring great affliction of trampling daniel's holy people, and taking away the daily sacrifice, and altering the times. (of the the holy Feasts) and the Law. And that Antiochus should distress the holy Mountain, jerusalem, and the Temple, etc. notwithstanding all these troubles Jerusalem should yet abide an holy City (They were not yet to be cut off from their Olive Tree) And Gods dealing for his people was a burdensome Stone, and a Torch of fire to all the Horns of the fourth Beast, and all the Enemies to the ending of the Seventy Sevens. 5 And Zach. 12. saith God, would raise up noble worthies for them, so God gave them sometimes valiant men to be for their comfort, as the worthies of old in the reign of David. Valiant in acting and suffering for the truth's sake that was only among them. The Jews were then the holy people, and Ie●usalem the holy City, and Zion the holy Mountain, though b So Babel going about to dash jerusalems' hope, is bend to set his Throne above the highest, in destroying his Temple, but God's vengeance was a burden some stone to make the golden Head, dust, Esai. 14. Jer. 50. Dan. 2. Anti●chus had greatly polluted the Temple. And the godly the poor of the flock did observe these things, and still did inhabit jerusalem (or still did so desire, though driven into Mountains and Dens, and Caves of the Earth) looking for the Kingdom of Heaven to appear, now drawing on towards the ending of the Seventy Sevens. And for their sakes, as is said, God destroyed all Enemies that came against the holy City jerusalem, whither the Heathens, or the Lawless Jew's that profaned the holy covenant, Dan. 11. 6. And we must not slightly pass over this Epithet, jerusalem the Holy City. It is so called at the beginning and ending of the Seventy Sevens, & likewise so called at the beginning of our Lords Preaching, and at his Resurrection, Mat 4 & 27 mark, it was so, at that very time they had crucified MESSIAH their King, the Lord of glory, but after our Savidurs' a●eension, that title was never bestowed upon it. For then the date of their prerogative was out, and the Gentiles brought into equal Covenant. But for the whole time of the Seventy Sevens, as the Angel from Heaven had declared, while the preferment of the circumcised Jew was in honour, Christ had a special eye to them and the Low- Jerusalem. As when it was destroyed by the Chaldean, the Lord bade his dispersed people to remember it in all Countries. jer. 51.50. and so Daniel did and 49000. though in the dust, Psal. 102. But after our Saviour's ascension, and sending the Spirit, furnishing his holy Disciples with gifts to be Master-builders for the erecting the New Jerusalem, there is not any word of intimation in all the Evanglists, Acts, Epistles, or Apocalyps (nay, nor in any Prophet of the old Testament) that they should remember the Low- jerusalem, etc. But more of this hereafter. 7. jerusalem, the sight of peace, the faithful held and looked to hold in possession till our Lords days, Esai. 66. Psal. 110. & 95. would instruct them so to believe, as they did. Observe well, 1. King. 11.13.32.36. & 2. King. 21.4. jer. 51.50. Dan. 9 Psal. 102. And we must consider that although the Kings of North and South afflicted Israel and jerusalem, Dan. 11. and had a great hand in bruising the holy people, yet Christ plagued those Kings and Kingdoms. And although the Jews in the times of the Macchabees were mutinous and became wicked and Lawless, and brought much trouble to their own Brethren, as also did the Remainders of the Sel●ucidae, the Herod's, and the Romans, yet among all these Enemies of the faith, Christ caused from his fiery Throne (Dan. 7.) that Rivers of fire ran among them; God had ever a special eye of regard to them for his promise sake, Zach. 2.8. 1. King. 11.32. He shall have one Tribe for my Servant David's sake, and for Jerusalem the City which I have chosen, out of all the Tribes of Israel. The Providences of Christ in a constant progress, of the holy story, made this promise good to the ending of the Seventy Sevens. Then was the Period of Israel's peculiar glory. CHAP. XXII. Expounding Zac. 12.10, 11, 12, 13, 14. Verses. 1. ZAch●riah showeth how the faithful should mourn for the sins of the times, every godly Family, chiefly them of David's progeny, of the Family of Nathan (Solomon's Brother by Bath●hebah) of whom our Lord lineally ascended. As also of the godly of the Tribe of Levi, and all the godly Families that did remain, for then to them was the blessed Fountain for sin and uncleanness opened. And our godly translators do confer, Act. 2. in the 3000. converted by Peter's Sermon to be an History to this Prophecy. And Act. 1.14. is fitly to be conferred for their godly private exercises. 2. Also we must diligently observe how John Elias, the forerunner to Christ, by his powerful Ministry did turn the heart of the Fathers to the children, and the children to hearken to the wisdom of their godly Teachers, that the evil Spirits of the three Shepherds, and their Doctrine was much quailed, and were made ashamed of their evil ways. And our Lord Jesus Christ the great Apostle, from Heaven coming after john Baptist, he brought his Fan of holy Doctrine in his hand, and by his holy Spirit separating the chaff of persons and Doctrine in wonderful manner, as in Mat. 5, 6, & 7. chapters, and at other times, which Sermons of Christ made them rage against him, and were never quiet, laying snares still for him, till they had his life. And when they had smitten this blessed Shepherd, and destroyed the Temple of his precious Manhood, he raised it again and gloriously ascended. Then afterward the Lord Christ gave a mouth and wisdom to his holy Disciples and Apostles, that all false Doctrine, and all Worldly wisdom of Satan's Kingdom, fell (like Dagon) before them. All their idols of the Doctrines of justification (ex opere operato) bodily exercise, and their Traditions of their Abotheru, and the Sadducisme of the Sadducies', and other errors among them. All these idols of theirs, and the Heathens were famished and so perished, Zeph. 2.11. 3. That Doctrine of Justification of bodily exercise was the great controversy of those days, and it was their idol and vanity, as Deut. 32. compared with Rom. 10. that idol cleaving to the letter, made them despise MESSIAH their King, whose most precious obedience, through his manifold sufferings made his death a most acceptable Sacrifice, and so it was the end of the Law, for justification to every one that beleiveth, and by him all that believe are justified from their sins guilt and punishment, Moses Doctrine given by Christ taught the sure mercies, Act. 13. Deut. 30. Such an idol it was, and is, that it hath cast off the Jews to this day; For by it they despised the Son of God and his justification. which the bodily exercise of all the Law of Moses could not do. And that they might not think of justification by bodily exercise from the Temples worships, Christ destroyed City and holy Place to this day, who brought to us by his once offering up of himself to an everlasting Righteousness or justification. 4. After the Jews had rejected the cornerstone, their King for Caesar, many heavy and unexpressable sorrows came upon the Jews and Jerusalem continually, until by the Roman power, Titus Vespasian, who came against Jerusalem, took the City, rifled the Houses, and the unclean infidel Soldiers ravished the women, slaughtered multitudes, and carried may thousands of Iewes Captives, and sold many numbers of them for Slaves. All this came to pass about forty years after our Lord's ascension. Our Lord sitting on Mount Olivet, and beholding the City told these things of Zachariah (Ch. 14.1, 3, 4) to his Disciples, Mat. 14. Luc. 19 & 21. 5. And the Apostle as a Prophet, Act. 13.40, 41, 1. Thes. 2.16. Ebr 6 8. & 10.26, 27, 28, 29, 30. Act. 13. threatened by allusion, H●bb thicks prophecy against them (noted before) that as the Chaldean had done, the Romans should execute further and greater wrath upon them, even wrath to the utmost. And so the Apostle had told the revolting Hebrews, that they and their Nation would be Briars and Thorns, and must look for violent fire to consume them. Moses and David foresaw all these evils; Deut. 32.22. 2 Sam. 23. Then the corner Stone which the Builders refused, fell on them and bruised them to powder. 6. The Prophet Zachariah having spoken of the destruction of the Low- Jerusalem, makes this transition to speak by way of b Jer. 31.38, 39 Is literally prophetical, and performed in Nehem 3. but this of Zac. 14.6. is allegorical, see Tremel. on Zach. 14.10. etc. allegory of the building and setting up of the High Jerusalem: As by the returned from Babel, Jerusalem was builded from Benjamins' Gate, etc. so sure shall the Heavenly Jerusalem be builded, notwithstanding all oppositions of Enemies. And whereas it is said. Zac. 14. Jerusalem shall be inhabited in her own place: it is to be understood that the Heavenly Jerusalem should begin to be builded in the Earthly, as it was fittest. Thence the Law went forth of Zion, and the word of the Lord from jerusalem, than the Mountain of the Lords House was lifted above all Mountains, and all Nations ftowed unto it, to build on that Mountain, and this promised blessing was performed before Salem was abolished. and the word of the Lord did not fail, that japheth must have religion from Some Tents. 7. There were skilful Master-Builders at Salem, the Fishers of Galilet, and the other Apostles with others to the number of six score, and five thousand after, which, with the Physician of Anti●ch, and the Tentmaker of T●rsus that might carry the healing and wholesome b Our Lord in his Apoc. 21. expounds, Zach. 14. & Ezek. 47. For these waters that run through the streets of the Heavenly Jerusalem, and no better waters shall ●ver come among us then what the holy Prophets and Apostles have let us in their most sweet, and blessed writings. Let us beware of deceitful opinions of new Apostles, and new Revelations. waters of holy Doctrine to the uttermost parts of the Earth. Oh how wonderful and unutterable was the glory of Christ in and by them, that he was King over all the Earth, that, as the Apostle saith, God was not the God of the jews, only, but of the Gentiles also, Rom. 3. 8. Zac. 14.12. showeth that all montanous opposions could not hinder the building of this Heavenly jerusalem, this City was lifted in glory and did and doth abide notwithstanding all the wrestle of the misbeleiving and unbeleiving jews, and the Roman Empire against it. And all that fought against his Holy City, both the Caesars, the old Pontificality (the sixth head of the Roman Beast afflicting the Church) and the new Pontificality, the Papacy, the seventh Head (and Turk afterward) found great severity of thundering wrath and terror of most bitter plagues: as if their filthy flesh rotten from their bones, and their idolatrous and adulterous eyes did consume in their holes, and their blasphemous tongues in their mouths. 9 And the Lord MESSIAH to whom the Father of Heaven had committed all authority and power, raised tumults among them, first on the jews, then on the Caesar's Augusti, and their people in most fearful manner. That the Caesars and their Assassins had death, and a gulf and grave of destruction by intestine garboils in their Armies, destroying one another for three hundred years, the six seals do also show this in Ap. 90 Ap. 6. 10. Zach. 14.16. When the Heavenly jerusalem was builded on twelve precious Foundations, all of precious jewels, the Prophets and Apostles Doctrine, b These are the same waters Ezekiel speaks of, that came from the Temple, Ezek. 47. and Christ JeAsue, expounds, Zac. and Ezek. in Apoc. 21. & 22. than those holy waters (as is noted) of healing Doctrine issued, and had free course into all quarters under Heaven, East, West, North, and South, and every quarter had three Gates into the City. And the godly in all times of the New Testament, did flee like Doves to nestle in this City, they came to it b Constantly, continually, from mouth, to mouth, etc. Esai. 66.23. these are allegorical expressions. anniversarily to keep the Feast of Tabernacles. And the Apoc. 7. is an Historical prophecy, that 144000. of Israel, the twelve Tribes that held the faith, and an innumerable company of all Nations come to this City to bless and praise * All Nations did bless him, as they were in him, Psal. 72.17 Gen. 12.1, 2, 3. the Eternal Son of God, who did Tabernacle or Temple in our nature for 〈◊〉 redemption: and when they came, they brought Palme-Branches in their hands, crying Hosanna, Salvation to our God that s●●teth on the Thorn, and to the LAMB for evermore. 11. And they that will not come to the Feast of Tabernacles, to serve Christ jesus (the true Tabernacle or Temple) in his holy Assemblies in this his jerusalem they shall have no Rain to moisten their dry and barren hearts. They shall not know what means the Dews that fall on Mount Hermon, and the sweet small Rain that distilleth on the Holy Mount aine of Zion (Apoc. 14.1.) All the Gentiles that will not yield obedience to the faith of the Gospel, Christ will bring upon them positive and privative plagues, as the stories of the Church show this in all the Centuries, in all Countries. 12. And because Christ jesus our Lord hath made us Kings and Sacrificers to God, his Father, Holiness to Jehovah, which was graven on the front place of the high Sacrificer, shall be written on the Horse Bridles, and on every Pot in the Heavenly jerusalem, thus Zachariah, as Dan. 9 & Esai. 66. showeth an utter abrogation of the Ceremonies of Moses, Chanaan, City, Temple, and worships. 13. And let this be noted that the holy Apostles expounding the Prophets, never taught the Saints that ever they should expect any outward glory to return to Chanaan, City, Temple, or Kingdom, but taught them of the Heavenly I●●usalem, and therein the Lord God of Hosts, the Lamb to be the Temple, and the holy worship to be che●fly spiritual, prayer to be every where in lifting up pure hands and hearts in all godly qualifications, as our Lord Messia● told the woman of Sama●ia, joh. 4. 14. And therefore the Apostle Peter, the Apostle of the circumcision, taught the scattered Tribes of Israel, in Pontus, Asia, Galatia, Bithynia, Capadocia, and Chaldea, of the Heavenly inheritance that fadeth not (as Canaan) and that themselves were lively Stones in the spiritual building, to be an holy Preist-hood to offer up spiritual sacrifice, acceptable to God by jesus Christ the true Temple. And that they that were and had been for many days Lo-ammi, and Lo ●uchamah, Hos. 1. & 3. were now by the glorious Gospel made God's people, and had obtained mercy and pity, and warns them that they be not as their Fathers, to stumble at Christ, and his Doctrine. And further instructs them that the Prophecies which they so looked, to be fulfilled in an outward manner, were not to be taken properly and literally, as Ezikiels' Land, City, and Temple, is taken to this day of the Jews in propriety of speech, that Peter blameth: And the teaching otherwise was damnable heresy, and a denying of Christ Jesus (as the Apostle said of Circumcision, Gal. 5.2, 3, 4) as experience also tells us these fifteen hundred years. And therefore let Teachers beware how they harden Jews in their idol● and vanity. Solomon's Kingdom was shaken, but we receive a Kingdom that cannot be shaken, the Low- Jerusalem was destroyed, but the Heavenly City cannot; The Priest hood of Levi is passed away, but Christ's Preist-hood abideth for ever, etc. and we cross all the Doctrine of Christ's new Testament to plead any more for Terrestials. Chap. XXIII. Expounding, Zach. 12, 10, 11, 12, 13, 14. & Zach. 14.10, 11, etc. SECT. I. It is objected that Zac. 12.10, 11, 12, 13, 14. is not fulfilled. AND; I will pour upon the House of David, and upon the inhabitants of jerusalem, the Spirit of grace and supplications, and they shall look upon me whom they have pe●rced, and they shall mourn for him, as one mourneth for his only Son, etc. and the Family of the House of David and Nathan shall mourn, and the House of Levi, and the Family of Sbimei shall mourn. 1. I think, Act. 1.14 is an History to the prophecy for David's House † The Apostles argument is strong, that although must did not mourn yet the saith fullness of God is not without effect, and God had not cast off all, the Apostle reasons from himself, as if there should not have been no more than himself, Rom. 3. & 11.1, 2, 3. but in the Acts there were five thousand and more, and in ●erusalem, su●●ly the faithful are but a little stock. these all continued with one accord in prayer and supplication, with the women, and Mary the Mother of JESUS. and with his Brethren. In this company was some of the House of David, and some of the Family of Nathan, and some of the House of Levi, for it is said, a great company of the Priests were subject to the faith, Act. 6. and Ba●nabas a Levite became a gracious Son of consolation to the Church: And that the Lord poured on the inhabitants of jerusalem, the Spirit of his grace and supplications is historied in Acts, ch. 2.37 and many more afterwards, ch. 4. and in after times of every Tribe twelve thousand, Apoc. 7. 2. I doubt not but when the jews be hereafter called according to Rom. 11. they will mourn for their own sins; and for the sins of their fore Fathers, but we must stick to propriety, unless it opposeth the analogic of faith in other Scriptures, that so we may confer History to prophesy, and that is one of the surest ways of understanding the Holy Scriptures, if we ●●n rightly attain unto it. 3. For now we are not to expect new Revelations to tell the Church which man is of the House of David, and what of the Family of Nathan, or which man is of the House of Levi, and of the Family of Shimei. But if we will understand, Zach. 1●. of the jews calling yet to come, we must expect new Revelations, and some that have a prophetical Spirit to tell the Church which man is of which Family and Tribe: But the truth is, this distinction of Families must be as evidently manifested by their geneologies at the time of the Jews calling, by the preaching of the Gospel, as it was to Zachariah, when he prophesied that the House of David, and Family of Nathan, and the House of Levi, and the Family of Shimei should mourn, that so the Saints then may be comforted in that prophes●y, that it was fulfilled by themand to them. 4. For unless they be genealogized, how shall, they know that the Prophet spoke true for the consolation of their named particular Families. And there will be further reason of this distinction, they of Judah and L●vi being the noblest Families, and so should be perspicuous, and exemplary to all the Jews, for they are so spoken of that they should go before the rest in holy Worships. Either the jews have now evident demonstration in their genealogies for these Families, or else a Prophet must arise to show them these Families, but the former they deny, they say that none knows his Tribe, much less of which chief Family: Then a Prophet must arise to show them, which is of David, and which is of Levi, that the particular promise to those Families may be applied to them, and then they in special only are to regard it. 5. Again, it may be the Families of Nathan and Shimei, may be ignorant or careless to perform that worship, but if a Prophet declare to them which is of which Family, and call upon them, it might be a comfortable invitation to perform the worship fore told, that the blessing promised might be made good to them, Zac. 13.1. And as I conceive this distinction of Families, must be as evident for the performance as it was in the days of the prophecy. 6. Distinction was kept carefully in some Families, all the time of the Seventy Sevens. P● Chr. 24. And the wisdom of God saw it was very needful it should be so, our Lord's genealogy was undoubtedly known, though much in private records, and so Zacarias, juc 1. of the course of Abia, Levi, the eighth course, and Paul of Benjamin by Father and Mother, and Barnabas a L●vite. But these distinctions of Family's 〈◊〉. Tribes could not be so kept after the desolation of Jerusalem by the Romans, who lcat●ed them into the sour winds of the Heaven for 1600. years together, the wisdom of God therefore saw it was most needful to confound all their Tribe genealogies; and themselves now say, that none knoweth certainly of which Family, and of which Tribe any of them be, and if any of them shall affirm otherwise, yet by Apostolical canons we must not believe them. 7. And some modern Doctors of theirs that follow their Forefathers steps in denying the Lord Jesus Christ, writ thus, Mr. Broi ●col. 37. in the days of Messiah the King, when his Kingdom shall be settled, and all Israel gathered unto him, all they shall be genealogiced according to their Families. Thus if we will not stick to propriety, we must run to Jewish Fables and endless genealogies, and look with them for new Revelations, and so not cleave fully to the words and commandments of the Apostles of our Lord and Saviour. 8. There is also a like necessity of genealogies, if we refer Eze●. 37. to the jews calling yet to come, that they might know which is of Judah, and which is of Ephraim. But what hath been above written must serve for this also. SECT. II. Also it is objected and much pleaded for, from Zac. 14.10.11. etc. that jerusalem in Chanaan shall he restored, that the jews shall have a Kingdom there, and all Nations must flock to them, etc. 1. ANsw. We dare not understand, Zac. 14.10. etc. literally, for if an Angel from Heaven should preach that our posterity must keep a worship anniversary at jerusalem, namely there to keep the Feast of Tabernacles, he must be held anathema, for it is plain ludaisme and not a genuine interpretation of the Prophet's meaning, and contradicteth the most sure word that bathe been given by any holy Angel to Daniel, Chap. 9 That Seventy Sevens are exactly accounted for, jerusalem to be an holy City, and that in the next generation following the ending of them, the City and holy Place should have final and utter desolations, which hath been verified for these fifteen hundred years, and more. 2. This of Zac. 14. hath the same analogy of faith, with Esai. 6●. from month to month, and from Sabbath to Sabbath shall all flesh come to worship before jehovah at a Jerusalem, and Mal. 1. expounds, Da●. 9 & Esai. 66. & Zach. 14. From the rising of the Sun to the going down of the same, my name shall be great among the Gentiles, and in every place incense shall be offered unto my name, and a pure offering, for my name shall be great among the Heathen saith Jeh●wah of Hosts. And the Lords conference with the woman of Samaria is pertinent: Job. 4. And the Apostle Paul showeth that after our Lord and blessed Mediator had given himself a Ransom for all, and that Testimony in due time, as Dan. 9 had foretell, then saith the Apostle, it is the will of the Lord, that men pray every where lifting up pure hands, 1. Tim. 2. 3. Must the Teachers of England teach their Auditors, that they must keep an anniversary worship, namely the Feast of Tabernacles in Low-Iorusalem in Chanaan, or else that such grievous judgements both privative and positive, as are there threatened will come upon the Nation, Zac. 14.17.18. Or must I teach these things to my Children, and must my Children teach their Children so, and theirs the after Generation, as all are bound to do, if it be understood in a literal sense, Ps. 48. (as some have intimated for Jerusalem in Chanaan) but I dare not receive this Doctrine, and therefore I say to mine, take heed what you hear, and I am assured that time will show that such as expound otherwise about the Jews calling have run into many absurdities. CHAP. XXIV. Gog and Magog in Ezek. 38. & 39 must be taken properly, but Gog and Magog in Apoc. 20. must be taken in a mystical sense. SECT. I. 1. THE consent of Moses, and the Prophets, and of the New Testament, is wonderful in places, times, and Families, but few mind such studies, and that makes many write and speak at random, drawing prophecies and stories to the times after the great mystery of godliness was manifested (the holy Incarnation of God manifested in the flesh) when their events are before it. 2. The Apocalypse all of it is by allusion to the old enemies of the Low- Jerusalem, as the stories of Egypt, Babel, Tyrus, etc. are alluded unto, that the heavenly Jerusalem should have many enemies in all quarters. The Apocalypse expresseth new times, states, and governments in old terms, so it openeth all the old Testament for us, that all the old enemies fought against Christ and his Kingdom then, as now Rome and Turk do against Christ and his holy City from heaven. 3. Magog, Meshech, Tubal, etc. were Nations known in Ezekiels days, and without mixture, and their dwelling undoubted. But now the Lord God hath made great confusion and scattering of all Nations by th● wars and commotions that have been in the world, that those places are not known by such Princes and Nations. 4. The very phrase of the holy Prophet, concerning the Nations he describeth, Magog, Meshech, Tubal, Gomer, Togarmah, and the North-quarters, that is, the North quarters from Israel, with the times, do argue, that it was of Israel that returned from Captivity, from all the Countries of Ashurs' and Babel's dispersion (not of the Roman) And it cannot be said, that the Jews now are in such a captivity as formerly, unless it be the spiritual captivity to Sin, Satan, and Unbelief: at all Nations are, without the Gospel. These Considerations would make one conceive that the Prophecy of Ezekiel, chap. 38. and 39 must be before the ending of Gabriels Seventy Sevens. People must be taught to distinguish between Gog and Magog spoken in propriety, and of Gog and Magog taken mystically. 5. If we regard the holy story well, we shall find that most Prophecies of these things reach not much further than the first coming of Christ, Balaam goes as far (if not further) as any Prophecy of the old Testament concerning Kingdoms, and Countries, and their affairs: He prophesied of Kittim afflicting Heber (the Jews or Hebrews) and especially of Christ Jesus, the chiefest of all Heber's sons, and so all Christians, as in the Caesors and Popes. 6. Tremellius, Mr. Forbes, and many others expound, Ezek. 38.39. to be of the Nations that were under the Kingdom of Seleucidae, called the Kings of the North in Dan. 11. SECT. 2. I Think it is to good purpose, to examine some verses in Ezek 38. and 39 concerning Gog. Thus it is said, chap. 38.16. 1: And I will bring thee against my Land, that the heathen may know me when I shall be sanctified in thee O Gog before their eyes. The Lord God of Israel did not bring Gog and his armies unto the mountains of Israel to war only, but that the knowledge of God might be dispersed among the heathen, by the dispersion and affliction of his people, doubtless those wars had that effect, doubtless it caused after a while much dispute in many points about Religion, and the calling of the Gentiles now drawing on, and for these days of affliction, it is said, many shall greatly search, and knowledge shall increase, Dan. 12. So then the persecution of the two witnesses by the Beast of the Pit, caused much study in Christendom, as it did warring with mystical Gog. The wars among the Seleu●●-lagida were many and great, and many fearful slaughters among them, the which the Jews could foretell to the heathen by the Prophefles of Ezekiel, Daniel, and Zachariah, Dan. 11. and 12. as by an historical Prophecy, and it is reported by divers writers, that the Jews were skilful in Prophecies, and By Daniel they might have understanding to foretell many events about the Kings of the North and South, yea, and of many other great matters about the coming of Messiah, Mr. Bro. hath this in the Consent of Scripture, Anno mundi 3910, that Sibyl writ that which Virgil is thought to follow, and Lactantius citeth, may well be made by some witty men, taught of a Jew, or the spirits otherwise might well speak of those times what Daniel taught plainly. These things of Gog would cause much knowledge of Jehovah, the God of Israel, for it is said, the Heathen shall know the Lord God of Israel when these things should have their events above Gog and Magog, Thubal, Meshech and Togarmah, etc. There were great expectations in the world, but especially of Israel by daniel's Prophecies, which would cause great rumours among all sorts: so we may well think that Jehovah the God of Israel brought those wars of Javan, in the Land of Gog, for this purpose, that the heathen may know me, saith Jehovah, the everliving God. By these wars there was spread a report among the heathens what Laws Israel had, better and more ancient than all the heathens: and although the heathens captived the Jews, * A wonderful providence of Chest. yet their Law captived the heathens. This rumour of the holy Scriptures stirred up Ptolemy Philadelphus' King of Egypt, to endeavour to have the old Testament translated for his Library, which was done for him by seventy two learned Interpreters of the Jews. And this their work to this day, is called the Septuagint. 1. Ezek. 38. ult. Thus will I magnify myself, and sanctify myself, and I will be known among the Nations, and they shall know that I am Jehovah. Christ did make himself great over Gog, by the bloody slaughters, that he sent among his Camps, but all these troubles of Gog among the people Israel, were so ordered as is noted, that the heathen might know Jehovah the Lord God of Israel, therefore there was a further Providence of Christ, to show his power to be great over God's Kingdom in the les●er, Asia, when in Antiochia, the chief City of the Kingdom of the Seleucidae, (Kings of the North) the saith of the Gospel of the Son of God, so prevailed, that the disciples of Christ were there first called Christians. So the seven Churches of old God's kingdom, doth further look to Ezekiel, That these events may plainly show they are an history to the Prophecy of Ezekiel, and Christ in their own language doth conquer them to his Kingdom and faith of the Gospel. 3. Ezek. 39.23. And the heathen shall know, ' that the house of Israel went into captivity fo● th●●r iniquity, because they trespassed against me, etc. This Text will afford these meditations, 1. It must be well observed, that the knowledge of all the providences of Christ that befell Israel by Assu●, and Babel came not to Israel, as the heathens had foolish conceits of the people of God, which made them have these Proverbs in scorn of Israel, yea in scorn and de●sion of jehovah the God of Israel, that they w●re a Nation born to bondage, and their holy Religion was a barbarous superstition, etc. 2. But now the heathens by the Septuagint, and the Jews being so dispersed among them of javan in God's country, and in Egypt, The heathens by these providences of Christ and by his word that they began to have among them, know what iniquity was, and for what principal iniquity Israel was dispersed by Assur, and Babel. did know that all these captivities came on Israel for their iniquities and apostasies from the faith of the Gospel of the Son of God. 3 These things might be a means to procure much knowledge of the Lord God of Israel among the heathens, and it did so, for Zac. 8. shows that the heathens should take hold of the skirt of him that is a jew, and so consort much with the people of God, and this reason should the heathens themselves give, we have heard that God is with you: yea, further they should say, Surely our fathers have inherited lies, vanity, and things wherein there is no profi●, jer. 16. 4. The ways of Christ are unsearchable; for this knowledge might well come among the heathens, by the jews daily conference, and by preaching the word among them, in their Synagogues, and by the Septuagints translation. The Septuagints translation was much used among them. Saint Luke and the Apostles chief used that translation, and cite many times the Text of their translation (as learned men observe) and the godly Proselytes did much read it doubtless, and the profane heathen might also read it, because Horace and Ovid mock at their Sabbatismes, as the Chaldeans had done. It is also as true, they might have knowledge by the jews being so dispersed, and having Synagogues in all great Cities, by which means jews matters would ●e much celebrated. Beloved Reader, if we were better versed in the holy Scriptures of the Son of God, we should know more of him, and the managing of his Mediatorian Kingdom in mercy, and severity from Gen 3 15. cocerning the holy Seed, and the Seed of the Serpent. SECT. 3. OBject. Some say, there shall be a great Battle, which hath never as yet come to pass, as Ezek. 39 and Apoc. 20. 1. But for answer we ought to understand the warriors there and here are of divers times, and peoples and places (as is above noted) That of Exckiel is of Israel and the low Jerusalem, this of Gog and Magog in the Apocalypse, is meant of the troublers of the Church (the holy City from heaven) wheresoever, and that at divers times. 2. Neither place, either of Ezekiel, or of Apocalyps most be understood of any one Battle, there never was, nor ever shall be any such one Battle, as some would understand in Ezek. 39, although it be said that all the arms and weapons of war, of bows, and arrows, bucklers, shields, etc. should serve the Cities of Israel to burn seven years, and they shall not need to go to the woods and forests, to fetch home fuel to their fires What, shall not the Cities of Israel fetch home fuel for their necessary uses, for their families to burn for seven years? We must labour to understand better, when the literal sense must admit of allegories, Tremellius understands seven years to be very long, and very often, nume●u fin●tus pro infinito. 3. Gog and Magog, and all the North quarter's mentioned, are the Kingdom of the Seleucidae, one of the iron legs, Dan. 2. and explained chap. 11. and their war with the other leg, the Lagidae of Egypt, and their camping in Israel brought great troubles to them for 250 years, and moe, so that all their arms, utensils, and weapons of war should last seven year for firewood: and because they were a continual vexation to Israel for above 250 years, it is spoken as one battle: such are Corporation-speeches, and so the Apocalypse must be understood, not of one battle, but after the tenth Century, than the holy City of Christians was besieged in all quarters, and is still even to this day, and yet still it shall be vexed by the Beast and false Prophet (that also is a Corporation speech) for the Beastlike Empire of the Papacy, and the false Prophet-Pope, and all his Clergy have been in being these 600 years and moe, and is still as yet in being, and so for a while shall be, till they be with Satan cast into the Lake of fire and Brimstone. 4. Corporation Speeches must be observed diligently, as, Man of sin, not to be attributed to one man, 2 Thes. 2. but it is the Pontificality, the whole Corporation of Popes, they are that Man of sin, that Adversary that exalts himself, etc. and so the two Witnesses, are not properly two, but they are all the godly, that have, do, and shall witness against the Beast, and false Prophet, the holy Scripture is full of of such manner of speaking. Moses often speaks to all Israel as to one man, so it is said, the Prince of Tyrus was in Eden the garden of God, Ezek. 28. but it is not meant of that Prince of Tyrus in Ezekiels days, but of him in david's and salomon's days: lie in Ezekiels days was an apostate and an enemy to Israel and, did not care for that honour, as to be of the household of God, and common weal of Israel, in which Hyram Prince of Tyrus rejoiced, 1 Kings 5. 5. It is not said, Israel shall have such a battle against Gog, but that Gog and his companies shall fall on the mountains of Israel, and this came to pass by the Ptolemy's of Egypt, overcoming Gog the King of the North in divers battles. The Sel uco-lagidae made marriages to strengthen one another, but it did not take that effect, for they dealt deceitfully one with another; therefore it is said, they shall be destroyed one of another, Ezek 38.21. But all this came 〈◊〉 them for afflicting the Saints of them, the holy Trinity, and Christ was a burdensome Stone to them for their oppressing jerusalem, the holy City. 6. It is true also the Jews had (as in the Macchabees and josephus) a great hand divers times against Gog, as against Antiochus the vile, and afterwards also. CHAP. XXV. Some Observations on Jeremiah 30, 31, 32, 33 Chapters. IT is evident; that the Prophet must in these Chapters be taken in proprier for the return from Babel's captivity, and from all other Lands of the North. where they were chief scattered For Jer. 30.18. Ezra and Nehemiah do show the fulsilling of that 18. verse. Also chap. 31.23. these words, ahyet, they have been often touched, and for chap 31.38, 39 Nehemiah in chap. 3. is an express history; for chap. 32. the godly being much disconsolate, yea Jeremiah himself for that incurabl: breach (in man's apprehension) and grievous wound in the Common weal of Israel, yet Jehovah the performer of promises doth assure them they shall return from Babel, and have a policy to buy and sell, to set and let, etc. and this promise was as sure as the order of the heavens, and chap. 33. hath speeches of like comfort. The godly it may be were troubled, Heb. 6.8. and 10.27, 28, 29. as the Thessalonians, 2 Thes. 2.1.2. For when the Jews saw that Babel had so ruinated them, they could not choose but have many sad thoughts of discomfort, that they should never return: So when the Churches saw wrath so full of fiery indignation on the Jews, they thought the day of Christ was at hand. The Apostle satisfied them, and the Prophet Jeremiah comforts them with this speech [as yet] and the Prophets often reiterate these words, which must be marked. And in all those prophecies of their return, there are many promises of Christ mixed, for he is the radix of all comforts to the Church, because God will send Christ to destroy Satan's work and his seed, and to bless us, All promises are made in him to be yea and Amen, as that promise to Achaz, although he despised it, Esai 7. and would not put the safety of his Kingdom on such promises, but would seek as his stubborn and unbelieving heart taught him, help from Assur, but because God had made promise [yet] to protect jerusalem, the City he had chosen to put his name there, therefore he would protect it, and because our heavenly Father would send his Son to be immanuel, God with us: therefore he would yet save judah, Zion and jerusalem. jeremiahs' Prophecies are of this nature to be understood. Esaias before jeremiah, had said by prophecy, that although Babel had sorely afflicted the Church, Isa. 14, 1.2, 3. notwithstanding the Lord would have mercy on jacob, and would yet choose Israel, and set them in their own Land, the Land of jehovah, called elsewhere the Holy Land, and pleasant Land, and so it was to the ending of the Seventy Sevens, but then any Land, City and Assembly, where the Gospel of Christ was and is taught, believed, and professed, was and is as holy as that Land. CHAP. XXVI. That the Covenant of God in Christ made with Israel in Deuteronom. is the very same, that God made with Israel in Exodus and Leviticus, and so to the end of the 19 chap. of Numbers, in answer to them that hold the former to be only a covenant of works, and the latter in Deut. to a covenant of grace, because it is said in Deut. 21.9. beside the Covenant which he made with them in Horeb. Mr. Ainsworth saith, it is the same Covenant, but only renewed to the children. And Tremellius speaketh to the same effect, we must remember, that Malachi in shutting up the old Testament chargeth Israel from Christ to cleave to the Law, given by Moses at Horeb, Malipiero 4. as the only good means to secure them from the Apostasy that would come upon them in the days of Antiochus Epiphanes, yea it began even in the days of Malachi, then stout words were spoken, that it was in vain to serve God, etc. Like the apostasy of the old world, Dan. 11.14.30 31, 32. Job 21. 14, 15. and 22.17. Mal. 3.13, 14. And the angel foretold of the lawless crew of daniel's people, that would deal corruptly concerning the holy covenant. 2. It was greatly consequent to renew the covenant to the children, for now all their fathers were dead of the first numbering: and so it was very fit that the children should be taught the father's holy Religion, by way of covenant, the better to watch over their hearts, before they went over Jordan, to possess Canaan. 3. Moses repeats divers passages of Christ in three former chapters of Deuteronomie as a preparation, and then most pathetically exhorteth to the obedience of Christ, Deut. 4. and prosecutoth the same exhortation in chap. 5. where he repeat. Exod. 20. and mark the second and third verse of chap. 5. in these words, The word only must be understood, as in Cor. 1.17. Deut. 6.13. & 10 20. and so the Rabbins of the Jews understood it, vid. Mr. Ainsworth Not with our father's [only] made Jehevah this Covenant, but with us. This doth not only look to them of the first numbering, that died in the wilderness, but to Jacob, Isaac and Abraham, and so Tremellius, it was verily the same covenant for substance, that was made with Abraham, renewed in the wilderness, and exhibited fully and plainly in Christ, but in respect of times and persons, it is called a divers form of covenant, vid. Heb. 8. So he, yea, I doubt not but we may go higher, even to that promise of God to our first Parents, Gen. 3.15. and to Noah Gen. 6. Promise and covenant are often taken promiscuously, and it is for our comfort so to understand. It is much for our edification and comfort in the holy faith, so rounderstand the same promise made to our first Parents concerning Christ (for they had sacrifices to seal the covenant of their salvation to him, the same was made with Noah Gen 6. and the same with S●m (whose God was God, blessed for ever) Abraham, Isaac, and jacob, and in that covenant all the visible Church were engaged, before Moses to observe it, and it is called the way of Christ and his charge in his commandments, statutes, and Laws, Gen 26.5. These were enjoined by Christ, and by most godly tradition propagated in godly families from father to child, until Christ commanded Moses to put all these Laws and histories of Genesis into writing, with sundry other Laws, because the Church was now grown into a large common-weal, and were to dwell in a Land by themselves, as Christ's peculiar people. I will add one Text in Leviticus to establish our hearts in sound Doctrine, chap. 25.23. The Land shall not be sold for ever; for the Land is mine, for ye are strangers and sojournens with me. This text shows what all the Polity of Christ by Moses aimed at, even faith and love in the Son of God Christ jesus: this text hath irradiant beams over all the holy Doctrine. What a worthy exercise might a godly Orator of a congregation, a Scribe taught unto the Kingdom of heaven, that hath his wits exercised in the word of righteousness make hence to an Auditory? 1. You are strangers and sojourners with me. How might he amplisie this from other Scriptures? 1 Chron. 29. Psal. 39 and 119. Heb. 11. by the godly example of the Nobles of all ages, 1 Pet. 1. and 2.11. 2. From the coherence of matter in the verses preceding, and following, that those that confess in heart this Doctrine of Christ, that they are but strangers and sojourners in this cursed world, they must not oppress and vex one another, in setting and letting, in buying and selling, but deal justy and mercifully one with another. 3. It will afford an heavenly meditation to consider, how and why the Lord should say he is a stranger, and sojourner in this world, surely this Text showeth how Light, Life, and immortality was brought to light by the Gospel in Moses, and in Leviticus. 4, All Deuteronomie is the abridgement of Moses Sermons for one month. The Apostle, Heb. 9 doth dilate much on Exodus, and showeth it was a Covenant of grace in Christ. Deuteronomie must be understood to be the same covenant with Exodus and Leviticus, for we must observe that the Son of God, the holy Angle of God's presonce repeateth divers Laws that were formerly commanded in Exodus and Leviticus, the holy Law with the exposition was first delivered in Exodus and Levitecus, See Exod, 10 21, 22, 23. and 24. chapters, and that holy covenant was made in the b●ood of the covenant, Exod. 24. as it is said, Assemble my Saints together, that have made a covanant with me by Sacrifice, to walk in his holy Law, and as the breach of it is charged on them, Ps. 50. So it is the same covenant that is made with the children in Deut. for (as it is said) Moses repeats the Law to them, Deut 5 and makes large Expositions upon it, and then renews the covenant, even the same Covenant in Deut. 29. Note also that the same promises for obedience to the law of the Gospel, and the same curses are spoken to the fathers, as are repeated to the children, Leu. 26. Deut. 28. Yea, which must be well observed, Numbers 20. Numb. 20. to the end of that book, and all Deut. is but the history of one year, and Aharon died the fortieth year, in in the fifth month, Num. 33. and forwards may and must be called Deutera-nomie, a second Law, for all is spoken to the people of the second numbering, all the Father's being dead. Consider Num. 28.2. also confer Exod. 19 with Deut. 76. and 14.1. and 26. And the covenant that josua made with Israel a little before his death, is but the renewing of the former, and saith Mr. Ainsworth in Deut. 29.1. Here the covenant is renewed between God and the people, and it is the same in effect with the covenant made at Horeb, Exod. 19 and 24. save that Christ who is the end of the legal covenant is here more clearly recalled, and saith he on Exod. 20.2. here he especially intendeth the covenant of grace made with his people, whereby they are blessed that have Jehovah for their God, Psal. 3●. 12. and Tremellius speaketh to the same effect, and divers others might be cited to their sense. Men man and will speak their pleasures, but let us take heed, we do not darken God's counsels by our own words, or by his words misinterpreted. CHAP. XXVII. Short Collections out of Genesis, Job, and some part of Exodus; showing that the Gospel of the Son of God (Mark. 1.1, 2) was manifested and taught among the faithful before Moses wrote the same. SECT. 1. CHRIST the eternal word, the light and life of men, inspired holy Prophets in all ages to teach men his way and charge, which consisted in Commandments, Statutes and Laws, from the apostasy of our first Parents to Israel's coming from Egypt, that is two thousand five hundred and thirteen years, all which Laws were to bring men to fear and love Jehovah, and to love the holy Seed, their Brethren, and to give no just occasion of offence to any, no not to the seed of the Serpent, Gen. 18.25. & 26.5. And that this holy faith and religion might abide, and the fruit of it remain, Christ gave holy Prophets, who were of long life, and of great authority, which were a great help to preserve the faith for those years, and propagate the same by tradition to posterity, till those commandments, statutes, and laws were written. And because many things before the Flood and after the Flood do set forth the Law of faith rather by way of narration then by manifest precept (though doubtless they were commanded even from the beginning I will briefly set down some particulars, in which the Son of God reveiled himself even before Moses. 1. The Holy faith for Doctrine was taught in that great and precious fundamental promise concerning the Son of God, his person and office, I will ●u● enmity between thee and the woman, and between thy seed and her s●●d: He shall break by head, and thou shalt break his heal, Gen. 3.15.2. We are to consider that this holy promise or covenant was opened by divers providences and ordinances, which the Saints most religiously observed, that so they and their posterity might abide in the Doctrine of Christ, and not transgress from it. For they knew, they that did not so, had no communion with the holy Trinity, but they that did abide in it, had communion both with the Father and the Son. SECT. II. 1. TThey had Sacrifices to make profession of this holy faith of the son of God taking humanity of the Seed of the Woman to be the Mediator and procurator of justification, sanctification, wisdom and redemption, by his death, and sacrifice, and thus sacrifices ever taught of life coming by death Now we are to consider how this way and charge of Ch●ist was made known to Moses in commandments, statutes, and laws, he wrote the very some that was formerly practised by the Saints, Christ indeed commanded more laws to Moses, because the church of God became into a great common-weal and kingdom; Therefore hence observe that all ancient godly tradition is according to the written word. 2. Moses is frequent in this. They had Altars, on which they sacrificed their offerings, which made the sacrifices acceptable, because it sanctified the offering, signifying the in effable Divinity of the Son of God made man to uphold the humanity in that great work of our Redemption. 3. So in Moses most sericusly the Sabbath is enjoined, likewise in the Prophets. The holy Trinity; Father, Son, and holy Spirit, Jebovah, Eloim appointed the Sabbath, to be a sign between him and his people, that in it they might meditate on the mighty Creation and gracious Redemption. And it was to sanctify them unto himself, and to s●perate them from all the profane, and so to be a means of holiness in their persons, soul, body, and spirit. The Sabbath was made for man to meditate how the holy Trinity rested in Christ's Redemption. And the Subbath was kept before it was commanded in Exo. 20. for Moses speaks of it in Ex. 16. as being observed before, and teacheth them there further the holy use of it, as it was at the first enjoined, Ex●d. 16 23. but Israel in Egypt apostating from the faith, and following the Idols of Egypt, neglected the Sabbath very great , as the word Remember, in Exo. 20.8, doth argue, and we see that where men care not for, or do corrupt the holy Doctrine of faith, that they either neglect the Christian Sabbath, the Lords day; or utterly cast it off Eze. 20. And 100 manifest miserable experience in our days, of rejecting the fourth Commandment and its Doctrine, as Papi●ts do the second Commandment, do witness. Again, further note, all the Patrarches entered into the sabbatical Rest, from Gen. 1. to Moses times: God did not rest but in Christ, and the Sabbath taught that, and the faithful kept it, but the Families most wickedly followed Nimrod, Gen. 26.5. and would not be persuaded to embrace the faith of Se●●s Tents, which was the charge of Christ contained; in Commandments, Statutes, and Laws, which Abraham observed, therefore the Families were cut off from the Sabbath, and all the Ordinances of it, and then followed abominable and lawless idolatries. The observation of the Sabbath would have kept them in the faith of the Creation of the World, and the faith of Redemption. Object. But it is not said, they kept the Sabbath. Answ. It is comprehended most certainly in the charge of Christ, which was contained in Commandments, Gen. 26.5. Statutes, and Laws, which were extant in Sems and Abraham's days. We may object as well, they kept not Sabbaths for the times of three hundred and fifty years, all the time of the Judges, and but little mention of it for many years together. And it is not recorded that they kept the Sabbatical year of Rest, butonly once in Zedekians reign, and he a wicked King, and it is not recorded, they kept any jubilee year. But we ought not to doubt but they did keep Sabbaths, and the years of Rest, and the Jubilees. 4. In all their Sacrifices they invocated the holy name of Jehovah, the everlasting God, Psal. 116.17. Psal. 20.1.2, 3, 4. yea all of it. Gen. 21.23. This is in commendation of Abraham's faith, and in opposition of all the idolatries of the Families. Here I think it is meet to observe, sometimes offerings are mentioned and no Altar and sometime Altars and no Offering, and sometime both are mentioned, but not calling on the name of Jehovah, and sometime an altar was builded, and invoca●●n was performed, and no sacrifice is mentioned, So in Moses and the Prophets, holy convocations are called the presence of God. False ●eatheys do as their first evil master did, Satan promised our first Parent's w●e●y, when himself was a Servant of cor●untion, Satan used flattering speeches and fair words, and great swelling words of vanity, Ye shall be as Gods, etc. Gen. 3.5. , semetime calling on the name of Jehovah is mentioned, but no Altarnor Offering But we may be assured that all the faithful did all three; built Altars, brought Ostrings, and made invocation, all this before Moses. 5. The place of worship where the Saints assembled is called the presence of God, Gen. 4. there he did put the remembrance of his name. The Lord God thus shown great merey to enjoin such assemblies for our good, we should else ay forget our MAKER and Redeemer, and by this nercy of Sabbaths and alsemblies enjoined, we have communion with God, our exceeding joy in the redemption by Christ, Observe diligently. Although our first Parents were shut out of Eden Garden or Paradise, and from that Tree of life, yet the Lord God would have an Eden in another way for the comfort of his chosen ones. For where He puts the remembrance of His Name, that is an Eden, a Garden of God, as Israel having G●ds Ordinances among them. The Ensign of his presence was there set up for fourteen hundred years. And it is called Eden, the Garden of God, Ezek. 28.13. And there Christ the Tree of life was fed upon by holy O. dinances. No marvel that Solomon did sing so much of this Garden, out of which he had almost excluded himself from the Tree of life, but the Icdidia was helped to overcome himself, and all Satan's Instruments. We should much think on this, what a blessing it is beyond comparison, that God should make us his Garden, and set up his Tabernacle among us, the Church is called the Garden of Eden, from the first we are excluded by Adam's sin, but in this we are Inhabitants by faith in Christ, and there Christ doth meet with us to bless us, Exo. 20, 21. Exo. 29.43. And so Israel was God's Garden, Cant. 4. and so is the Church gathered from the Gentiles, Apoc. 2.7.2. Cor. 6 16.17. And mark how Ezek. 28. and Cant. 4. and Apoc. 2. do allude to the first stories. It is said to us, to him that overcometh will I give to eat of the Tree of life, which is in the midst ' of the Paradise of God, this looketh to the first stories. Ever since Adam's fall man's corrupted nature is exceeding apt to forsake the faith, and to cleave to the false Doctrine of Devils. Our first Parents were piled by Satan of God's Image, and of created comforts, and shut out of Paradise, etc. to be sojourners here, they and their children as pilgrooms, in hope of a better Country by Christ, 1. Pet. 1.3, 4. We are poor grooms, piled and bold by Satan and his Seed, and so shall be till we come to our Father which is in Heaven, 2. Cor. 5.1, 2, 3, 4. 5, 6, 7, 8, 9 Here we are pild-grooms and sojourners in this cursed World, but live in hope of the Heavenly Paradise through the blessed tidings of the Gospel of Christ, who hath brought life and immortality to light, by that promise of Gen. 3.15. Israel being made Gods Eden and Garden, they had the Tree of life among them, so the Church of the Gentiles, while they abide golden Gandlesticks, and overcome false Doctrines and worldly lusts, they do and shall eate of the Tree of life, and shall be nourished by it continually, Apoc. 2 & 21. & 22. The meditation of these things are a refreshing, but my intent is not now for manifold explications. The godly soul by holy study will help to enlarge an hundred fold. 6. They had the Law of distinction of Beasts and Fowls, of clean and un clean, and might offer in Sacrifice only of the clean, Gen. 7. the like Law of distinction is Moses. 7. They must not eat blood, that they might have a reverend apprehension of the blood of Redemption by Christ, Gen. 9 the like is in Moses. 8. They had divers kinds of Sacrifices, the Meat-offering of Kain, but the offering of Habell was of Beasts, also they had Burnt-Offerings, as in Noah (the effect of Noah's sacrifice is termed as our Lord his passion) and Drink Offerings, Ephes. 5. and Oil Offerings, Gen. 35. 9 They had Sacrifices often, Job 1. they knew as they asked for daily Bread, so they needed daily forgiveness of sins, so in Moses they had a daily Sacrifice; this Antiochus put down for a while, Dan. 12. 10. The chief Father was Priest, and * Jacob wrestled for that honour of the birthright. most commonly the eldest, as in Exo. 24, son was trained up to that function, yet for many hundreds of years they had a peculiar Priest, Sem the Son of Noah, sir-named Mechizedek (a figure of the Son of God, Sem the great and reverend (Deut. 28.) the great High Pfeist of our profession) who was Sacrificer to jehovah; God most high, Possessor of Heaven and Earth. And he was a director and strengthner of the godly in holy ways for five hundred years after the Flood (to the fiftieth of Isaac) Sem was a great stay to the Church of God, to uphold the faith so shaken, against the revelt of Nimred and the apostate Families, Gen. 11. 11. They paid Tithes to maintain holy worships, and other charitable uses; And so it was in Moses. 12. They had Teachers which were Preachers of righteousness (of the justification that is by faith) which of old was called propheseying, Noah was a Preacher of this righteousness, and the godly Peophets did teach others the ways of Christ, as it is said, Abraham would, and so did jacob, etc. and so it was under the polity of Moses. 13. The Spirit of Christ in the Prophets did strive with the people of their days, to turn them from darkness to light, from the power of Satan to God, Gen. 6. Neh 9 14. Although the Prophets were godly, yet what ever profection or any earthly or spiritual comfort they had from the Lord, all was of grace, as it is said, Noah sound grace in the eyes of the Lord (Gen 6) to be saved by waters, and if of grace, it is no more of works. So Moses saith, understand this day, it is not for thy righteousness that God brought you from Epypt, and placed his Tabernacle among you, and gave you Chanaan, but God's love and mercy, Deut. 9 15. The corruption of nature taken from Parents is told, Gen. 5. that they were but flesh, that the thoughts of man's heart were evil from his youth, Gen. 6. & 8. and so all the apostate Families were un-regenerate; job is plentiful on this subject: Col. 3.5. Rom. 12, 1. This showeth how Abraham taught his House hold, and Circumcision taught the same, and the offering and burning of the rump, kidneys, and far, taught them Mortification. 16. In matters of doubt that concerned their particulars, they went to holy Prophets to e●quire of God, as Rebecca did to Eber, or her Fatherinlaw Abraham. Gen 20. and so it was in Moses, if any doubt did arise they asked Moses, and he inquired of God for them. 17. We are constantly to observe, that the same holy Covenant made to our first Parents, was continued to some special persons for the comfort of the present age, and posterity, as to Noah, Sem, Abraham, etc. 18. As occasion was offered, they made vows to God, to bind themselves to a watchful care, and to cheerful thankfulness, and willing obedience, and so it was under Moses. 19 In all which holy Doctrine, and holy profession of it, they knew that without faith in the Son of God, it was impossible to please God: therefore in all their worships they came in faith, receiving and resting on Christ in the holy promise and Covenant, Gen. 4. Heb. 11. and so Moses taught them in Exed. 12. and in Dent. 30. 20. And by this holy faith receiving the Son of God (as Mediator from the Father; for their Prophet, Sacrificer and King, Receiving and accepting the Son of God in all his Offices, trusting in him for doctrine, government, and expiation. That speech of John ch. 1.12. As many as received him, is expounded of them that believe in his name. Remember it still for a more clear definition of faith is not revealed. and resting on him for Doctrine, expiation and government, were adopted the sons of God, (Gen 6.) and were made heirs of the Julification that is by faith, Heb. 117. and this receiving and believing on the Son of God, was accounted of God above any righteousness they could do, and this is the same holy faith, that the Son of God imbreathed in the Prophets and Apostles, to teach and write, and all Moses taught the same Doctrine, Deut. 30. Rom. 10. 21. Want of love to the brethrens, hypocrisy, envy, ill Gestures, and hanging down countenance, bodily exercise, murderous thoughts, etc. in the woship of God, is reproved, as in Cain, and Christ in all, Moses called them to holiness, truth, and love, etc. * See hers how the Prophets expound Moses and teach the people of their generations. and the Prophets do so expound him, Psalm 50. Esai 1. God seethe not as man seethe, the Sacrifice of the wicked is an abomination to the Lord, but the prayer of the righteous is his delight, again the Sacrifice of the wicked is an abomination to the Lord, how much more when he bringeth it with an evil mind Proverbs of experience from the first and last counsels, Prov. 15. and 21. David saith. I will wash mine binds in innocency, and so compass thine a ta●, Psal 26. So Christ faith to us, Let men pray every where, ●●fung up pu●e hands, without wrath and doubting, 1 Tim. 2. 22. That the holy faith of the holy Son of God might not be violated or adulterated, they were to take heed of unequal yoking, by ungodly morriages, Gen. 6 1, 2, 3, Christ in Moses speaks m●ch to this purpose. 23. Upon any great design they sought God by the intercession of Christ's Sacrifice, as Jacob Gen. 46.1 2, 3. And Abraham still shown the same in building altars, so did the faithful in after times, as Psalm 20.3. 24. To all the holy Doctrine revealed, they had Seals of the Covenant. The Sacrifices were Seals of the justification that is by faith, and the flood was a Sacrament of saving by waters, as Baptisms is to us, 1 Pet. 3 21. Christ renewing his Covenant to Abraham instituted Circumcision, a seal of faith, Rom. 4. and so in Moses was the Passeover, and the other Sacrifices. 25. It was required of all that did call on the name of the Lord to be upright in heart, and to walk as before him, and to testify their faith by good works of obedience, as Habel, Enoch, Noah, Abraham, Job, etc. the same is taught us, 2 Tim. 3 Tit. 3 and Christ in Moses taught all this. 26. They had washing or persons and garments, that they should hate the garment sported by the flesh, or for any defilement of worship, & c. &c. Thus for many things we may see, The Modern Doctors of the Jews say, that all was Tohu, till Abraham, that in him their glory might begin, Mr, Br. 1 in Mele. p. 75, 76; all was not a Tohu, an emptiness from the apostasy of our first Parents, to the death of Terah, that apostated to idols, but that the Gospel of Christ was revealed to out first Parents, and by them taught, as is evident to the Fathers, and great severity came on despisers, neglecting the word of faith, both in the flood, and in the confusion of tongues. And we may well perceive what was their conversation, Jesus Christ, yesterday, and to day, and the same holy Doctrine in him shall be for ever. Their conversation was according to Christ's way and charge, in his commandments, statutes and laws, as in all Genesis, and Job: it is said, they walked with God, and before God. Hence we may see and discern the close life that is scattered in the short say of Moses, (especially) for 2083 years, to the death of Terah, in Gen. 11. and in all Genesis, and to the twentieth of Eaodus. CHAP. XXVIII. Of Divine Tradition. I Think it is to some purpose to write a little about Tradition, in reference to the last mentioned short Observations. 1. Although the Church was taught by Tradition for 2513 years, From the creation to Israel's coming from Egypt, is 2513 years. yet the written word, was no other Doctrine, th●n was formerly taught, by Tradition for all Genesis and much of Exodus was first delivered by Tradition till Moses wrote Genesis. 2. The Eplstles to the Romans and Galatians. open, Gen. 12. & 15. So John 1. and 1 John 3.8. open. Gen. 3.15. So the Apostles Doctrine and writings are answerable to God's Doctrine by Tradition for those 2513 years. Ezek. 28. 3. That which Moses received by Tradition since Adam, or by inspiration, or both, till he was 80 years old, was no other than Christ gave him on Mount Sin●i (which he wrote when he was shepherd to Israel 40 years) So it is said by faith Abel offered, by faith, Araham when he was tried offered Isaac, and by faith Moses kept the Pa●leover, and this holy faith hath commendation, for all the godly of the old Testament, Heb. 11. And the same faith we of Japhets' house are exhorted to follow, that Christ may be to our consolation to day, as he was to them yesterday. 4. And for that 2513 years, wherein Religion was taught by Tradition, God's providence so ordered the affairs of his Church, that while the families that hoped in Christ were few, there were (as is noted) rate prophets, long-lived, and of great authority, who although the Gospel was not written (for aught we know) till Moses times, were most able to strengthen the faithful of their times. 5. The men that continued the Gospel by infallible Tradition, from the creation to the giving of the Law, are the first ten Fathers afore the flood. Nine of them living together, were a noble consistory to uphold the faith, so shaken by the Apostasy of their own children, and the wicked families of Cain 6. Then after the flood there were nine Fathers also of the holy line that lived together, worthy Pillars against Ni●rods revolt: these nine were Noah, Sem, Arphaxad, Selah, Eber, Peleg, Regu, Serug, Naho, and so Sem, Arphaxad, Sela●, Eber, might and did instruct Abraham, Sem, Selah, Eber, and Abraham might and did teach Isaac, Abraham, Isaac and Eber taught Jacob, Isaac and Jacob the twelve Patriarches, who left many godly that lived to Moses. Moses Parents were godly, Heb. 11. There was but 64 years between joseph's death, and Moses birth. 7. More briefly thus, Adam taught the Gospel to Mathuselah and godly Lamech, they two to Noah and Sem, Sem taught Isaac, Abraham and Isaac taught Jacob and Isaac and Jacob the twelve Patriarches, and they in Egypt held Religion sound while they lived, and Joseph lived after jacob's death 50 years, and Levi 70 years after, and there was 42 years between Levies death, and Moses birth. 8. The wisdom of God is admirable in the long life of the few families of the old holy men, to preserve the faith by Tradition, that Sem, who lived with godly Lamech, and Machuselah, who saw Adam, taught the Gospel to Isaac. These four men, Adam, Lamech, Sem, Isaac, could reckon years above 2000, but when men's ages were divers times shortened, and at l●st brought to 70 years, Psal. 90. and when the Church of God consisted of many families, and that the purity of Religion was forgotten and neglected (after the death of the said Patriarches) of the most in Egypt (for Israel in Egypt fell to the idols and Religion of Egypt) than God commanded Moses in the wilderness to write the word of faith, and ever after it was the Standard and Cannon of faith and manners, as all the Prophets after, and our Lord Jesus Christ, and the Apostles kept themselves to the written word, and to this all the Israel of God is enjoined. To the Law and to the Testimony saith Esaias, Starch the Scriptures, saith the Lord Jesus. Let the word of Christ dwell richly in you in all wisdom, saith the Apostle of the Gentiles, & c. &c. This word of Christ, is the holy Scripture, and it teacheth us wisdom to salvation, 2 Tim. 3. we are exhorted to give heed to the old Prophecy, 2. Pet. 1. and thrice blessed are they, that with an honest and good heart so do 9 All the Patriarches were Bishops for their families, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, using all care to teach theirs from their Father's speech, what Sem, i. e. Melchizedeck learned of Mathuselah, taught of Adam, of the holy Trinity, and how our Lord should come of Judah, the King of glory, the eternal, the framer of the world, of that poor shepherd, to be man, to have his Tabernacle in us, to look through the windows within our wall, and also how Christ by death should vanquish him that had the power of death, they did know that he should come down from heaven, and did feed upon his flesh and blood, comforted in sorrow by this hope: they would not miss to catechise their sons in this point, as Joseph gave 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, to feed his brethren, Gen. 47 12. so all godly gave 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, to feed their families souls. In one word, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, never used afore, but in joseph's story, with the Septuagint. Our Lord his gracious tongue calleth us to the Patriarches story, Luke 12.42. compared with Gen. 47.12. to look to the Kingdom of heaven, not to the earth, which God hath cursed, so Mr. Br. in Lords Fam. Luke 12 42. 10. Observe a little more concerning Tradition in those 26. Collections above, that we should consider that the Spirit of Christ in the holy, Prophets by Tradition, and in the Law written by Moses is like itself, one and the same Doctrine, and all for the glorifying of Christ, as it is said, The spirit of Prophecy is the Testimony of Jesus: He is the mark of all, Apoc. 19 Let us consider briefly for the new Testament: therein also God took the same course, though not for so long a time by Tradition, I conceive it is a good instruction for us, to strengthen us against the false Positions of Roman Catholics, concerning their unwritten verities, for we shall easily perceive God to be without shadow of change, whether by Tradition or writing. 1. The Birth Life and Death, the Doctrine and Miracles of our Lord Jesus Christ were by Tradition, till the four Evangelists had written them, but when written, than it was the rule of our faith, John 20.30, 31. 2. The teaching of the Corinthians, the Institution of the Supper of the Lord was a Tradition, 1 Cor. 11. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉,. 3. The Doctrine of the Resurrection of the dead to them was by Tradition; 1 Cor. 15. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, the 1 Cor. 15. was the same Doctrine, he taught them. 4. The Apostles teaching of the Man of sin, that Son of Perdition, was a Tradition to the Thessalonians, 2 Thes. 2.5, 15. 5. Painfulness and diligence in a man's calling, was a Tradition, 2 Thes. 3. 6. The Doctrine of Devils should ever be remembered, or tradited to Posterity, to be warned, and taken heed of; all the Doctrine of the Gospel should be tradited or delivered by the faithful to others, that there might be a godly feed in the Church, 1 Tim. 4 6. 2 Tim. 2.2. But all these Traditions are now written by the Apostles, yea what they taught was according to the Scriptures of the old and new Testament, as ever they proved their Doctrine b● the old Testament. 7. The Doctrine to the Galathians was by Tradition at the first, but we see what the Doctrine was by the Epistle unto them, it could not be but by word of mouth at the first, and they were accursed that taught other Doctrine than the Apostle taught by preaching and Tradition, and the same was as is written; else the Apostle had incurred the anathema pronounced by himself. Again, consider the Doctrine to the Galath●an, was no other, but what was taught to Abraham, Moses, and the Prophets. 8. Observe again, 2 Thes. 2.15. and 3, 6. These two places show what Traditions he gave them when he was present, none other than those he wrote unto them, as confer chap. 2.5. and chap. 3, 10. So we may be sure by such conference of Scripture, that none of the Apostles gave any Tradition by mouth contrary to their writings, & contra. 9 Now then, Traditions are of two sorts, some agreeable to the Scriptures, some disagreeable, that make the word of God of no authority. The Pharisees are the true fathers of the Pontificality and Papacy for these latter, but for the former, all that fear God, and love the Gospel, and love their posterity, will follow the example of the old faithful, Psal. 78 1, 2, 3, 4, 5, 6. and obey the commandment of the Spirit of Christ, of holding fast, and standing fast in the now-written word, and the comandments of the Apostles; of our Lord and Saviour, 2 Pet. 3: So this Apostle exhorted the Saints of his Bishopric, to regard the Prophets, and reproved them for follwing ●yain Traditions of their fathers, 1 Pet. 18. and 2 Pet. 1.20.21. And therefore to conclude with the Text of Romans, The same holy Lord God as Abraham worshipped, Gen. 21.33. in chapter 16.26. When the Apostles and Disciples were enabled with the gift of tongues, they were sent, by the commandment of the everlasting God, among all Nations to preach the Gospel and mystery of Christ, by the Scriptures of the Prophets, for the obedience of faith. Bless Jehovah, O my soul, and all that is within me bless his holy name. Bless Jehovah, O my soul, and forget not all his Benefits— who m●de his ways known to Moses the Prophets, and his holy Apostles, Psalm 103.7. CHAP. XXIX Being an answer to them that say, that the Polity of CHRIST, given to Moses, was not a Covenant of grace. SECT. 1. TO answer this sorry assertion, we are to consider, that Moses on Mount ●ivai talking with the Angel of the Covenant, saw the whole Doctrine of our salvation, in what sort all ages had and should have it among men, what Moses saw his Law offereth to our fight. The Prophets and Apostles saw the very same, and happy are they only, which study to see these things. The Dialogue with its annotations, and ch. 14. doth endeavour to show this, and therefore I shall not now be large: I will touch a little of Circumcision, and of the Passeover, and of the place of holy worship, with the practice of the Saints, I will speak somewhat promiscuously upon all, in which the errors of the Concision will be occasionally spoken of. 1. Crn cerning the Seal of Circumcision, we must mark diligently the Doctrine of it by the Lord himself, Gen. 17. and of his Apostle, Rom. 4. and of the practice of faith in the S●i●ts, how they understood it, and made use of it, the Dialogue showeth these things. 2. Of the Passeover, it was a Doctrine of faith in Christ, as it is most evident by Exodus 12. Heb. 11. john 29.1. C●●. 5. etc. and the practice of the Saints is much to be observed, 2 Chron. 30.22.— The Levites taught the good knowledge of the Lord concerning the Passeover, and they did eat throughout the feast seven days, offering Peace-offerings, and making concession to the Lord God of their fathers. Thus the Levites taught the good knowledge of Christ-Jehovah in the Passeover, as well as the Apostle, to us, 2 Cor. 11. They made confession of their sins, and of their faith in the Son of God, thus the godly and faithful did, and did not doubt and say, Who can go up to heaven to bring Christ down to dwell in our Tabernacle? or who can go to the deep of the grave to bring Christ from the dead? but they confessed the Son of God should come to be a second Adam, and give himself our Passeover to be sacrificed for our atonement, and that the Godhead would raise the manhood to ascend the heavens to find eternal redemption, and heavenly mansion for us. And the Apostle doth show us how and what they understood of the Passeover, and the feast of unleavened bread, 1 Co●. 5. So it is said of josias, that he commanded the people to kee● the Passeover unto Jehovah their God, 2 Chron 35. as it is written in the Book of the Covenant. What is that, a Covenant of works? No such matter, but a Covenant of grace in Christ. Thus in brief of the Seals of Circumcision and the Passeover, which were seals of the justification which is by faith, and all parts of worship that Circumcision initiated them unto, must be understood of the Doctrine of a Covenant of grace, Covenant and Seal must not differ, neither do they in God's ordination, Psalm 119.04.128. 3. Of the places of worship, these are to be understood generally, and specially: the place of their general worship was of all the Tribes together, the more special and particular places were their Synagogues. O● both which we must observe what Gracious Promises of the presence of CHRIST is spoken Exod 20. In every place where I record my name, I will come unto thee, and bless thee, Exod. 29. Where I will meet with you to speak with thee, and there I w●l● meet with the children of Israel, and Israel shall be sanctified by my glory, and I will sanctify the Table of the congregation and the Altar: I will also sanctify both Aaron and his sons to minister unto me in the Priest's office, * The same ●is said to us for all the faithful christians are the Israel of God, 1 Cor. 6. Gal 6. Apoc. 21 and I will dwell amongst the children of Israel, and will be their God, etc. etc. Unto the place which the Lord your God shall choose out of all your tribes to put his name there, unto his habitation shall ye seek, and thither thou shalt come, Deut. 1● 5. and seek his presence evermore, Psal 105.4. 1 Chron. 16.11. Who is able to utter the comfort of these Scriptures. 4. God in Christ was the Shepherd of Israel, and they are called the sheep of his pasture, and in all places where he put his name, there he fed his flock first at Shiloh, 350 years, seven Jubilees, and after, in 〈◊〉, to the end of the Seventy Sevens, in both places three times a year, most solemnly they did enter the Courts of jehovah, there they ascended his presence with great joy, praise, and thanksgiving, etc. The godly did so (a) 2 Chr. 29. and 30 & 35. and when they did not serve the Lord with gladness of heart, see what was threatened and performed, Deut. 28 47. etc. , & all were exhorted so to do, also they had other smaller Sabbatical Convocations in their Synagogues, the Tents of the Shepherds, where also Christ fed them, and where God manifested himself, it was called the presence of God, and the gate of heaven, where always the ladder stood, as the godly Shunamite found, and many thousand even among the ten Tribes, 2 Kings 4. Thus the Common-weal of Israel was the Kingdom of God, above 1400 years. 5. I will show some Scriptures, where the Saints felt the comfort of the promises, when they did meet with Christ in the greater and lesser Assemblies, Psalms 65.4. Blessed is the man whom thou choosest, and causest to come to thee, that he may dwell in thy Courts: we shall be satisfied with the goodness of thy house, of thy holy Temple: So Psal. 36. Let the godly heart meditate on Psal 42 an 63. and 81. and 84. and 100, etc. and in Psal. 122. In all their holy assemblies they testified ●heir faith in he incarnation and redemption by the Son of God The twelve Tribes came to bear witness by their faith, to that holy Testimony of the Son of God, in expectation of him the Testimony, to be manifested in due time, 1 Tim. 2.6. and the twelve Tribes, instantly serving God, day and night, did hope of immortality in the Resurrection of the Son of God, the second Adam, the Lord from heaven, Acts 26.6, 7. 1 Pet. 1.2, 3, 4, 5. 6. A little more for the smaller sabbatical Assemblies, Psalms 111. It is is said, I will praise the Lord with my whole heart, in the Assembly of the upright, and in the congregation. The Hebrew word, as the learned say, signifieth lesser Assembles, and in Psalm 74. it is spoken in a mournful manner, that heathens making inroads into the Land of Israel, burnt up all the Synagogues of God in the Land, which showeth the great benefit God's people found in the exercises there performed. Now the new Testament is plentiful for these sabbatical Convocations, how the dispersed of Israel practised in all nations. This hath been plentifully showed of late, in a book entitled, A Discourse, touching the Jews Synagogues, that there is no necessity to insist more upon this Argument. SECT. II. Now I will speak promiscuously upon what hath been observed, with reference to the errors of the concision. 1. ALthough the Law of the pass over came four hundred and thirty years after the Promise, yet that was not another Covenant, but a further exposition and confirmation of the former promises. The Concision mistook the meaning of the Law, and regarded not the promises teaching of Christ, but thought after the Law was given by Moses, to be saved by bodily exercise, whereas the Law, truly understood, was but an expansion or dilatation of the promises. 2. And they might have learned the same from their forefather's, even the pattern of the holy faith and love that is in Christ Jesus. For Abraham, when he called upon God, he called upon him by an Altar and Sacrifice, as it is said, Abraham built an Altar, and called, on the name of Jehovah, the † The same holy saith was taught to the Gentiles at the commandment of the everlasting God, and not Gentiles worship the same everlasting God as Abraham did, Rom. 1. & 16.20. everlasting God, so Jacob, although Joseph had sent for him with all necessary accommidations for the journey to Egypt, yet he durst not, or rather would not proceed till he had sought God by the intercession of Christ, Gen. 46.1, 2, 3. To teach us what we should do in all our journeys and undertake, so it is said when they sacrificed, call upon me, in the time of trouble, and I will hear thee and thou shalt glorify me, Psal. 50 See Psal. 20.3. And so Samuel by faith in Christ's sacrifice, had good report, and put to flight the armies of the Aliens. And thus also did David and Solomon, and all the Prophets, and all the faithful. 3. And Malachi by Christ's command, concludes all the old Testament to Israel, to regard the holy Law that he gave in Horeb, and to look for no more Prophets till John Elias the Baptist, but study the statutes and judgements of the Law and cleave to it, that Fathers and Children might be blessed, Mal. 4. 4. And thus the Concision should have understood all, for Moses wrote not a new Covenant, for Abraham received circumcision as a seal of the justification that is by faith, and so all Israel should have professed the same in faith, as our Lord tells them, that circumcision was of the Fathers, not so much of Moses, Joh. 7.22. 5. It is true, circumcision did further oblige Abraham to keep the way of the Lord and his charge which was comprehended in commandments, statutes, and laws, and those Laws, etc. with many others that Christ ordained, Moses wrote, as hath been at large before noted. 6. And what did this way and charge of the Lord tend unto, even surely this, repentance towards God and faith in the Son of God, our Mediator, and love to the holy Seed. Which way and charge was taught ever since the promise, Gen. 3.15. even the Breastplate of wholesome words, Faith and Love. And all Moses and the Prophets and Apostles do still bring their Doctrine to these two heads, Faith and Love which is in Christ Jesus. 7. This is in Habell, how he made the like holy uses of the Sacrifices, as 1. Pet. 4.1, 2. Tit. 2.14. he did bear on his Breast, Faith and Love, as he was a beleiver, so he ceased from sin, being purified to be of Christ's peculiar people, and was zealous of good works, as it is said, his works were good, Habel by all this we see, was gathered into Christ the Head, Eph 1.10. 8. The promise saith to Abraham that in the holy Seed, Christ we are blessed, what is this blessing, but chiefly in spiritural things in Christ Jesus, Eph. 1. Him to be our Peace-Offering, Sin-Offering, Trespasse-Offering, Whole burnt-Offering, to be our Washing, cleansing hissop, etc. And in the years of R●st and Jubilee, to be our freedom (or justification) from the bondage and servitude of sin (as deaths) death and Satan, and to be our fore-goer into the mansions of the Heavenly Paradise. Luk. 23 etc. etc. Now the concision mistook all, and turned all to be their own idol and vanity in their bodily exercise to be so justified from sins, guildnesse, and filthiness. 9 Questionless Moses polity was a Covenant of grace in Christ and not a bare covenant of works. For all the ceremonies were implicit promises, all sponsorious of a better hope in Christ, and because they despised to believe this, God was a consuming fire to them, though they were never so exact in bodily exercise, Ebr. 12. examine well, how the Apostle speaks the same speech to the Hebrews, as Moses did to them of his time, Deut. 4.24. 10. And whereas Saint Paul saith, that the Law of the Passeover came four hundred thirty years after the promise, Gen, 12.2, 3. He doth not speak it as his judgement that it was a new covenant, or all the Laws following it, to be a covenant of works; but reasoneth against the false Apostles, taking up their phrase, a Law of Works, for he knew and hath witnessed that Christ delivered to Moses the Law of faith, Rom. 10. conferred with Deus. 30. 11. And whereas the Apostle saith, Rom. 10.5. For Moses describeth the justification that is by the Law that the man that doth these things shall live by them. This speech he citeth as it may be supposed from the allegations of false teachers * There is a Law for the ransom of the Soul by half a Shekel of Silver, and so this was a tradition even in the Apostles days. The Jews dispersed sent Silver to the Temple for their Redemption, but the Apostle calls it a vain tradition of their Abothenu, not looking to Christ the end of all, read Exod. 30. 12, 13.1 Pet. 1. so did Papists in carrying the H●st to sick men's houses, etc. that so interpreted all Moses to be of the outward letter to build their comfort on themselves by bodily exercise. And in this doing, they must not misle in any eternal point, no, or in ceremonials commanded, because of the course, Deut. 27.26. And suppose they could have fulfilled all externals, yet they could not have eternal life, as the reward thereof: it is not any exteriors only that procures life eternal. And in deed to all externals, was too heavy an Yoke, as the council showeth, Act. 15. 12 It is true, the holy Apostle useth though phrase (as abovesaid) Law of Works, in divers places. I have often thought, that the Apostle, in reasoning and disputing with false Teachers, useth their phrase, not that Christ in Moses commanded a Law of works to attain eternal life, ex opere ope●ato, the * In those days, Apostasy from the saith was great, and Christ ●ame to revaine this de●ection, Dan. 9 Teachers before our Lord's incarnation invented this phrase (to rupting all holy Doctrine) a Law of works, as a Schooleterme of their own against the true intent of the Spirit of Christ: They by their false interpretations and expositions made all Moses a Law of works, to themselves; Christ in Moses did not make it so, for they are reproved for stumbling at Christ, the drift, aim and scope of the Law, though they might be unrebukeable in exteriours. 13. But one would think that speech in Leviticus 18.5. truly understood according to Christ's intent, was part of the Law of faith, for that Text is prosecuted in N●h. 9 29. but not as a Law of works, for we may suppose that the godly did not in the day of their humiliation confess their sins, and the sins of their fathers, for not doing the Law of works but for the disobedience * According to Exod. 23.20.21, 22. and it is true also they despised Christ in not doing, but casting off all the exteriors Christ commanded, and when they did so, they much less cared for internals. Exod. 30.12, 13. of faith to the Son of God, our Mediator that gave to Moses the lively Oracles of faith, and Ezekiel ch. 20.11 handles this Text of Leviticus to the like effect, and that speech of Levit. 18. is among the Gospel Statutes and judgements. 14. In one sense it might be truly called a Law of works, as thus, if an Israelite had touched any unclean thing, he might not come to the Tabernacle in his legal uncleanness, that he died not by some sudden stroke, as Nadab and Ab●hu, and so the Priests must wash also, that they died not, etc. etc. These externals they might do (though they cared not for heart-worship in the faith and Love which is in Christ Jesus) and so have their bodily life continued, but life eternal is only promised to them that look to Christ by faith, as he was typified by Moses rites, and so bodily exercise by doing the outward works of the Law did profit a little for a bodily life, and for an outward justification in their persons in respect of liberty to come into the Sanctuary, but not for eternal justification in God's fight. 15. And in such exteriors, the Apostle was exact, but all his Justification by bodily exercise of the Law which he was mistaken in, were most vile to him, when he knew Christ, as he saith, Phil. 3 7, 8, 9 But the things which were vantage unto me, the same I counted loss for Christ's sake, yea doubtless, I think all things but loss for the excellent knowledge sake of Christ Jesus my Lord: for whom I have counted all things loss, and do judge al● things to be vile, that I may win Christ, and might be found in him, not having mine own justification, which is of the Law, but that which is through the faith of Christ, the justification which is of God (the Father) through saith (in Christ) So 2 Cor. 5.19.2. 16. And therefore if Levi. 18. be understood as some would, yet than God was a consuming fire to all (though exact in externals) that despised Christ, resting in the most exact bodily exercise: then what life was that in Levit. 18● 17. Whereas it is said, Heb. 12. Ye are not come to the fiery mountain, but are come to Mount-Sion, etc. If they of the Concision had seen the Son of God (according to the Prophets, Mark 1.1. (as Mediator) it had been no fiery mountain to them to destroy them, but if they saw him not in his Law he would be a consuming fire, and persecuting Saul, would have found him to be so, for all his Law justifications, but he was received to mercy being in his unbelief of the Son of God. 18. Mount Zion and jerusalem in Canaan, was a city of bondage, an Hagar, and a fiery mountain, after the ending of the Seventy Sevens (Dan. 9) they not giving diligent heed to the holy Angel Gab●iels message, but perversely swerved from it. But jerusalem was not a city of bondage in david's and in salomon's times, but it was an holy City, and a faithful Town, yea, it was so for the most part to be accounted, till the ending of the Seventy Sevens, but not any longer, they doing, cleaving to, and resting in Salems' ceremonies, which could not procure justification, Acts 13.38, 39 and, 2 Cor. 3.3 must be understood to this effect. The Letter killeth, but the spiritual discerning Christ gave life, the Letter only was the ministration of death, all were lively oracles in Christ, as ●●●ephen witnessed, and lost his life in that cause, and that was the great controversy, after the ending of the Seventy Sevens. 19 Israel after the flesh, and proselited Jews boasted in and trusted to exterior glories, (and so do at this day) as God's writing in the two Tables, the Tabernacle and Temple furnished with all dignity of matter and form, and all their append●nces, doubtless the outward glory was great in these things of the Priesthood of Levi, but when outward things were only * See Exod 30. 12.1 Pet. 1.18 noted above. prized, esteemed, and trusted in, and that their hearts were so vailed, that their worships terminated in the outward action: then God left all in small regard, and shook them all by Babel, and abolished them by Rome, and so all that outward glory was done away, that Christ might be known to be the building in which God delighted to dwell, and to take up his rest for ever, Psal 132. Christ was the sacrifice in which God was well pleased. Christ was far more glorious than all by Moses, yea he was all in all, and the glory of all. But we must not think that the ministration, that Christ ordained by Moses was simply the ministration of death and condemnation. Is not the ministration of the Gospel under the new Testament, the ministration of death and condemnation? Doth it not savour death unto death, to some, as it savours life unto life to others? So surely the Doctrine of life in Christ by Moses is the same after Moses had set down the sum of all the holy Doctrine of his Gospel Law, Deut. 13.11.12, 13, 14. then saith he from Christ, See I have set before thee this day life and good, death and evil: in that I command thee this day to love Intruth thy God, to walk in his ways, &c Deut. 30.15, 16 &c and in vers● 19 it is said, I call heaven and ●arth to record this day against you, that I have set before you life and death, blessing and cursing, therefore choose life, that both thou and thy seed may live, that thou mayest love jehovah thy God, that thou mayest ober his voice, and that thou mayst cleave unto him, so he is thy life etc. What is said more in the New Testament, if any man love not Jehovah, the Lord jesus CHRIST, let him be anathema, 1 Co 16.22. etc. and consider these Scriptures as relative to Moses, John 3.35, 36. and the speech of the son of consolation, Acts 11. 23. Acts 28. with Isa. 6. etc. etc. etc. Therefore that speech, 2 Cor. 3 is to batter down the error of the concision, who misunderstood, misinterpreted, and so misbelieved the whole tenor of the Doctrine of Christ by Moses, turning all his Doctrine of faith to be terminated in bodily exercise. Our brethren would be exhorted to study the holy Scripture, the errors of these times are impetuous, but they shall not prevail long, although they be driven on by the principalities and spiritual wickednesses of the powers of darkness in all hellish fury. And therefore again, let us know the ministration of Christ by Moses, was the Ministration of Justification to the Faithful of the old Testament, and the Gospel is not the Ministration of Justification, to unbelievers and hypocrites in the new Testament, but we are to consider the controversies of those days were marvellous, that the Polity Christ gave by Moses should be abulished, and the Apostles teaching of this was the chief cause of all their troubles and sufferings, Gal. 6. Stephen so found. CHAP. XXX. Showing further, that Israel under Moses law, was under a Covenant of grace. 1. IN general it is said You have I chosen above all people, though all the earth be mine. Take this speech how you will, and still it was Grace. 2 They were all redeemed or bought from Egypt by the blood of the Passeover. Take this how we will, it was grace, in respect of the Apostate families, so us redeemed from Satan, and Satan dragon Caesar's, and from Satan-Dragon Popes. It is true, many despised the Lord that redeemed or bought them, and so did we under the new Testament, and still do, wretches that we are, 2 Pet. 2 1. Heb. 10.29. how ready for Apostasy, 1 Tim. 4. etc. But yet this Covenant of grace was not without effect to eternal life to many, and the argument of the Apostle holds good in all generations, Rom. 9 10, 11. As Christ promised, I am the God of Abraham, and the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob, and it is his memorial to all generations, to all of their faith, whether Jew or Gentile. 3. So by this, if we mark well the process of the holy story, we may understand, that the sons of Adam never were, nor are plagued for not doing a Covenant of works, but for despising Christ, his Gospel and Kingdom. That unexpressible plague of the confusion of tongues, 2000 years, came not but for despising Christ, and his Kingdom, and the Jews are cast off for this, and to this day Turks and Papists are destroyed for the same, and the ungodly, and unrighteous in the Reformed Churches. 4. They were under a Covenant of grace, as much as any Reformed Church under the new Testament: for all (we may fear) are not elect among the Churches, finis operis did intent them all, it did not exclude any from being under the covenant of grace to outward apprehension, though finis operantis was for the elect, as Moses speech, D●ut. 29. ult, would argue, and so it is in all Reformed Churches. No Nation but Israel were the household of faith, and had the covenant of promise, and enjoyed God and Christ, Rom. 3 and 9 Ephes 2. and 3. therefore they were under a covenant of grace, if they had not been in that state, not one of them should have been saved, and if they had been under a covenant of works for salvation, they needed not to have been a Kingdom of Priests, mark that speech in Epb. 1. We which first trusted in Christ, that is, we of Israel under the old Testament, this is a most evident proof, that they were under a covenant of grace. 5. Examine well Exod. 19.4 Christ saith to Israel, I have brought you to myself, as the fathers had appointed him, as Exod. 23 21.22. He saith the same Doctrine to us in the new Testament. All things are delivered to me of my Father, Mat. 11. and so it is showed, Christ made a covenant with them to be their God, and to bring them to the Father to reveal the Father to them; The Apostle prayeth, that we may attain to comprehend the height depth, length and breadth of the love of Christ, and of his calling, etc. Ephes. 1. & 3. this is a mercy past eupression, that God should make a covenant with such as we are, this is the radix of all, and therefore it is said, 1. That they were his peculiar treasure. 2. A Kingdom of Priests. 3. And holy Nation. 4. God placed his Tabernacle among them, and 5. called them the Kingdom of God, and the joyful shout of so just, good, and merciful a King was among them. Who can but shout with all exultation, if we did but understand our own comfort. These things, and other Scriptures show, they were under a covenant of grace, if we be, they were, for their spiritual privileges and promises are now conferred on us, 2 Cor. 6.16. Apot. 21.3. Ephes. 2. and 3.1 Pet. 2. conferred with Exod. 29.45. Levi●. 25, 23. and 26.12. D●ut. 7.6, 7, 8. now as Israel was God's peculiar treasure, so the Gentiles called to the faith are, 'tis 2.14. this well considered will make the Doctrine of Anabaptistry to be abhorred of us, touching our infants. 6. If reformed churches can make it good that they are under a corenant of grace (and we may truly say it, blessed be the name of the Lord) than they were, and we could not be so, but because their privileges are transacted to the wild olives, and we are graffed into their olive tree, we received from them all our glory, all our spiritual things for Christ our salvation, and all his holy Doctrine is of and from them. I will collect some brief heads of Doctrine, which were taught, believed, and professed in the common Weal of Israel. 1. They had the Doctrine of the Trinity and Unity, Deut. 6.4. 2. They had the Doctrine of election and rejection, Psalm 65. Exod. 9.16. and 33.19. 3. They had the Doctrine of the great mystery of godliness. God manifested in the flesh, to be a second Adam, and to be a sin-offering, and to rise from death the third day, Gen. 3.15, and 12 3. Gen. 49. and they went three times a year, according to the Testimony, to Israel, to testify their faith in this, this was the main. 4. They were taught, that the Father, the Word, and the Spirit, one infinite nature created the world, Psalm 33.6 Prov●●. 5. They were taught that the Father had committed all power to the Son for governing the church and the world, Psal. 2. and 8. and 110. Gen. 19.24. Exod, 23.20, 21, 22. all expound Gen 3.15. 6. They were taught justification by faith in Christ, Gen 4 and 15 Heb. 11. 7. They were taught Sanctification, Be ye holy, for I am holy, Levit. 19 2. 8. Under Moses Polity they had hope and rest in Christ, Psal. 130. Ephes. 2. Jer. 6.16. and 50.7. Mat. 11.29. Christ complained they had forgotten him their resting place, he was the rest of the Saints evermore, Jer. 50 6, 7. the Apostle saith, the Gentiles were without hope, but Israel had hope in Christ, both for remission of sins, and eternal glory, Eph. 2.12. Ezra 10.2. 9 The spiritual graces of Circumcision and the Passeover were required, and so practised, Deut. 10.16. and 30.6. Exod. 12. Heb. 11.28. 1 Sam. 1.7.36. 10. The heavenly inheritance was taught them, Levit, 25.23. 11. They were taught to account themselves strangers and sojourners in this cursed world, Levit. 25 23. and so David taught his generation, 1 Chron. 29 and so believed himself Psal. 39 12. They had hope in the Resurrection, Job 19 Psal. 49. Exod. 3.6 Mat. 22 32. 13. They had the holy Spirit to lead them in all holy ways, 2 Cor 4. to write the Law in their hearts, to seal to them all holy Doctrine of the word, whether promises, threaten, commandments, all good examples, etc. One may make a large volume of this Subject. I think this question may be asked, what one new doctrine is taught in the new Testament, that the Saints of the old Testament knew not, when grievous crimination of heresy by the Council, were laid to the Apostles charge, he protesteth he taught no new principles, Acts 14.15, 16, 17. and 26.7. now if the commonwealth of Israel had all this holy doctrine, they must needs be under a covenant of grace. CHAP. XXXI. A Prosopopeia on Solomomons' fall, by the Temptations of his idolatrous wives to the ruin of his Kingdom and posterity, in granting them the liberty of conscience for the practice of their idolatrous Rites, framed by way of Dialogue between King Solomon, and Tirzana the Queen. TI●zana being a Princess of the house of Moab, and being called for did enter into the presence of King Solomon, and after some dalliance with her, and after she had fitted his humour, by giving him all the best content she could, she took the opportunity, and said, my Lord King Solomon, I have an humble Request to make unto your gracious Majesty, I pray you, say me not nay. K. What is that my sweet Ti●zana? Q. My most gracious Lord and Sovereign, I have been some years with you, & though you have often spoken to me to be a Proselyte to the Religion of Israel's common-weal, yet I cannot bring my heart unto it, you well know that my education was not in the way & manner of Israel, and my affection is not toward it, it is not so pleasing to me, for I cannot forget my father's house, nor forsake his Religion: In this case I shall blemish my father, and my mother, brethren, and sisters, and people, in case I should apostatise from our ancient Religion, and in my opinion far the better, we have more zeal in ours, and many more pleasures to give man and woman content, than is in your profession: your Religion is very cross to man's nature, and is urged with great terror and strictness, your Religion reproves thoughts, words, and most men's actions: no Religion under heaven doth so as yours, and that makes so few to embrace it. Yea many of Israel have formerly been more addicted, unto ours, and the worships of neighbour's Nations than to this of Israel, and they will not follow it but by compulsion of Governors, whereas religious worships should be freely exercised according to every man's conscience; when if your subjects should be left unto, you well know which way the ride will run, it is a pitiful thing that man of a noble and free spirit should be so tired with hard injunctions, and heavy burdens, as with bands, cords, and fetters, and it may be, that reformation that your noble Father endeavoured, and yourself have prosecuted, would not and will not be so convenient, as due liberty, which would be a more noble design than rigid reformation. And if Antiquity make things reverend, than our Religion is more ancient, or if not more, yet as equal for Antiquity, for aught I can learn (I am but a poor Historian being a woman) but I am able to prove the Religion of our God Chemosh, to be above four hundred and fifty years old. This I can attest and prove by your own Records, and you had yours but in the wilderness when ye came out of Egypt. King. Then said King Solomon, what my Tirzana, doth all your speech tend unto? Queen. I humbly crave your Grace's favour to finish my speech, I remember I have heard my Father and Grandfather speak what plenty of peace, and prosperity our God Chemosh hath given us, nay what victories we have had against our mighty enemies, the Giants called Emims, and as it was your God that conquered the Chanaanites for you, so it was our God Chemosh that conquered the tall, great and terrible Giants, the Emims for us. Yea, which I am loath to utter, our God Chemosh hath given our Father's power over Israel for twenty years together: Oh, should not we then have a most devout opinion of our Religion. But why should I your handmaid thus be bold to speak to your royal and sacred Majesty, your great favour and respect unto me hath quickened my spirit, and then with an humble deportment of body with her face to the ground, she said, the intent of all my speech is, that it would please my Sovereign Lord the King, to grant my small request, I humbly beseech that I may have leave to build a Chapel on Mount Oliver to worship our famous and reverend Numen, Chemosh the God of my Fathers. King. What is this I hear from you my Dear? Did your speech drive at this? Oh I may not do this; Jehovah our most holy Lord God whom we worship in his holy Temple is the true everlasting God, and he can command nothing but what is good and perfectly good, so that we need not add any thing, and he forbids nothing but what is evil, which we must not disannul; and he is the Sovereign Lord of Heaven and Earth, and it is most requisite that man should subject himself to the most high, who is King of Kings, and Lord of Lords, and God above all Gods: and therefore all the Children of men must be subject to his Laws, and whosoever harden himself against him by disobedience shall never prosper, and whereas you talk of strictness, etc. you are to know, man by nature is borne a wild ass colt, and there is no coming of corrupt nature but by a strict course of holy Laws, which to a regenerate and godly soul is an easy Yoke, and to which he is willingly subject: yea, man by nature is sometime so refractory that he will not be brought unto God but by affliction, yea, neither Law nor affliction profits till the Lord himself deal with the heart, such perverseness is in man: It is most true, that man is addicted to his own vain heart, Pro. 4. vid. the Margin. and accounts the Law of our God most vile, and is altogether contrary to God, and would run to all licentiousness, if there were not holy and just Laws, and good government (God's ordinance) to keep men within bounds. 2. And whereas you talk that man is of a noble and free Spirit, you are deceived in your apprehensions, he is of a most ignoble Spirit, ready to fall into all vile opinions, and to all sin and wickedness, and to follow all tentations to evil, as for his freedom of spirit, he is free indeed to all evil as an horse rushing into the battle, and not one spark of that celestial fire is in him to any good till God put it in him, and maintain it when he hath so infused it. Man's mind, will, and affections, are all corrupt, and in himself no healing can be found: How merciful then was our God, that he from whom we fell would give us a holy Law to be a medicine and healing. Doctrine to restore the soul, as his mercy and goodness is unspeakable in giving us his word, for our need (which is better known to God than ourselves) called for such blessed Heavenly Revelation as is declared in our most holy and most righteous Law which Moses received of God for us. And we and all men must obey this Law, and be reform by it if we will have any comfort or protection in this world or hope in another. 3. Whereas you talk of due liberty, my beloved, Tirzena I would have thee to consider all the reformation we can possibly attain unto by the careful industry of my royal authority, and of our Priests and Prophets, and Schools will not come to that purity and exactness, that the Lord our God requires. Many imperfections in omissions, and commissions will appear continually through the lusts of corrupted nature that war in our souls, by reason of the darkness of the understanding, and the untractableness of the will and the affections. And none that have a feeling of the most holy Lord God, and of his truth in the heart, but find this thus. And therefore to give the least liberty to thy opinion is such a design that will provoke to anger our gracious and mighty Lord God, and if I give liberty to thy opinion, why not to the abomination of Moloch of the Children of Ammon, and to the opinion of Ashtaroth, the abomination of the Zidonians. And so in the end to root out the holy faith of the Son of God, our great high Priest Melchizedek, and then that you desire will prove an evil impetuos, to the down fall of truth and godliness, and hardly ever be reclaimable, yea, let me enforce this further, that there cannot be any liberty granted in any respect to false worships, and ungodly opinions, such liberty will bring us and our posterity to miserable bondage, as our Fathers felt in the Wilderness, and in the times of the Judges: And if we that now live, and our posterity do not keep close to that reformation which is now settled in Israel's Common-Weal, Jehovah our God who is a jealous God, will destroy this glorious Temple that we have built to his name, and shake this Kingdom by many grievous calamities: and at last weed us out of this good Land that he hath given to us and to our Fathers, therefore you speak most unworthily, to call our Reformation rigid. And whereas you talk of pleasures, etc. you must know the pleasures of sin are but for a time, which wast before we can enjoy them: And all such lusts and pleasures do but war against our souls, as for the fewness of them that follow our God the Lord of Heaven and Earth, it should put you to a stand whether the most do not go the broad way to destruction. 4. I will inform you a little more, because you boast of Antiquity in your Opinion and Religion, you are deceived: for our holy faith is as old as the first man and woman that was created, yours is but of late, from a God newly come up, and indeed no true God: Our God created the Heaven and the Earth, and from him is our Religion, and He destroyed the World by waters for profaning the name of the Lord by false worship's, and it was our God that cursed the Nations with strange Languages, for despising this our holy faith, by which most heavy plague, all the Families of the earth are in the bondage of Devils, following atheism and abominable and lawless idolatries: and it was this our God that brought up Israel out of the Land of Egypt, and destroyed Pharaoh and his people with great plagues for despising this our holy Lord God and his people. And your fore. Fathers knew this, and sent for Balaam the Enchanter to curse us in the Wilderness, and it was our God that saved our Fathers from Balaam and the King of Moab, and as for the other King of Moah by whom our Nation was afflicted, it was for falling to the idols of the Nations, 5. I must warn you of a great error: whereas you say your Chemosh conquered the Emims for your Ancestors, no such matter, it was our merciful God that destroyed those Giants and gave you their Land, this our mighty Lord God did, because your Father Lot loved our Father Abraham, and did follow his faith and holy Religion, and he did bless our Father Abraham, and God blessed him, & for this cause our God gave ARE unto the Children of Lot for a possession. And this you may read in our holy stories, Deut. 2.9. And your God is a false God; an idol, but our Jehovah is the Eternal Lord God who made the Heavens and the Earth, and a jealous God, and will be very angry with us if I should grant in his Land any more Temples to be builded then his own, And you cannot be ignorant of this, nor your own kindred, that our Eternal God is not such as your false Gods, even all our Enemies being Judges, and you have heard of these things by our Priests, and Prophets, and all my Court still have told you these things. Therefore, my Dear, thou art much mistaken in all thy speeches, and thou hast been instructed in an evil manner, I have, as you have heard, spoken to you in an easy and mild frame of Language to persade thee, therefore be advised by me if ever thou hope of comfort in the World to come: Do as your Father Lot did, and do as Ruth your faithful and godly Countrywoman did, forget thy kindred and thy Father's House, and serve the Lord our God with a good heart. Queen, Although the King had thus brayed her as wheat with a pestle in a Mortar, yet her folly departed not from her. But having this denial, tears fell from her eyes which bedewed her cheeks, having her Handkerchief in her hand, with snubs of umphs and imphs, fell at the King's feet, and further said; Oh, and it please my gracious Lord the King, it is but to build a Chapel for me and my maids, and some of my retainers, which cannot fancy this worship of Israel. I will promise your Majesty that not one of Israel shall come into our holy places. King, This may not be done, it will be a snare unto my subjects to set up the abomination of Chemosh in Jehovahs Land. I may not do it. Queen, Oh why doth my gracious Lord call our Religion, the abomination of Chemosh, I assure your Majesty by the faith of a woman that there shall be dore-keepers, that none of Israel shall come to have communion with us in our worships. It is for myself and retinue, and some of mine own Nation as they have occasion to come and see me in their visits. King, I may not, I may not do it. I pray thee talk no more of this matter. Queen, Ymph, umph, tears: And thus she is dismissed and departs the presence of the King: But yet another time assaults the King, and sends an honourable personage, her Brother before hand, a notable insinuating crafty instrument, who on a time came to salomon's Court, and having seen and heard an excellent consort of music, of Instruments of all sorts, as also the voices of singing men and singing women, which he admired and praised, and extolled the King, as if all had been of his invention, Kings and Princes when they came to Solomon, would bring their Physicians and their learned men with them, and they would gather into writing much of salomon's speech of natural philosophy, etc. also he magnified the King for his excellent endowments in contriving his plots for buildings, and his wisdom in natural philosophy, and his rare gift in song, and his wonderful instinct to speak of the natures, vi●tures, and effects of Trees, Shrubs, and Herbs, of fowls, beasts, fishes, and creeping things, etc. And that all Princes of the Earth that come to visit your Majesty, and bring their Physicians with them, will carry notes and writings home with them that shall stand all ages and people in great stead for ever. And as for your Religion in worshipping Jehovah in his holy Temple, he is the great God, and above all Gods, and all your performances are glorious. But yet other Nations have much joy, content and comfort, every Nation in serving their own Gods. For they cannot be persuaded to embrace your devotions, as too strict and rigid: you may not add any thing to what your God commands, nor take away any thing he forbids: But we may add any thing as just occasion calls for, and sometimes take away what was not so fitting, which things are rational to all Nations, for what is it, but may be amended? Yea, I have heard of your Priests, Prophets, and learned men that there will be a great alteration in your Religion after some certain time, that all this service that you do shall be ended as if it had never been, for they do say there shall be another manner of Kingdom, Priests and Temple, and Sacrifices, and Worships. These things considered, is it not an hard thing to persuade your bordering Princes to embrace your Religion which shall have such a great change among yourselves, and therefore they may well think it is more rational to hold their own then to be of yours, seeing your own selves say it shall be changed, and therefore they suppose their worships shall continue as long as yours, for if we go to Kittim, Kedar, Chaldea, Ashur, Ammon, Egypt, etc. what Gods they have, they ever had, they change not; and they think greater glory, honour, wealth, prosperity, and victories should not befall them if they should embrace your God, for they all know that Israel hath had heavy pressures of famine, wars, and pestilence under your God, yea, of late years in the reign of the noble and royal King David your Father, and it is not likely that such mighty Nations wise and politic, should be all deceived in their worships and yours only good and perfect. And so these causes it is that those honourable women, that your royal Majesty hath taken into so near society to yourself, and into your most honourable Court, cannot be drawn to your Religion, and among the rest my most honoured and noble Sister, your sacred Majesty's consort, to whom you have manifested much love and respect in an high degree, for which all the Family of my Father and Mother do much rejoice. And although your most excellent Majesty have given her (out of her gracious respect to her) good counsel, and she is much grieved that she cannot give content to her most Sovereign Lord in changing her judgement in Religion from that she was educated in: Wherefore if I may be so bold to implore your grace's favour on her bohalfe in granting her small request to build her a Chapel on Mount Olivet to satisfy her mind, it is but her fancy: I am sorry, for my part, she cannot comply with your devotions, she is but a woman, and I hope no hurt will accrue to yourself or Kingdom, and if I may have leave of your sacred Majesty to say it is but too much strictness, for I am well persuaded of your Religion, that you may be saved with your profession, and so I hope we shall as soon also come to the Elysian Fields of all happiness as well as you. At this speech of the Queen's Brother the King was somewhat moved, and began to be angry, but he fell at the King's feet and besought him that he might speak two or three words more in my Sister's behalf, and I hope I may speak freely, that you did covenant with my Sister that she should use her conscience, and that she and her attendants of our Nation should have free exercise of their devotions, and therefore let it please your Majesty, give us leave to put you in mind of your promise, and how can they perform their devotions unless they have a place of assembly, else it had been better for her never to have come to the Land of Israel: But as you have given us cause to admire your special love to my Sister: So we humbly pray, let us have no occasion to distrust it: And let me say one thing more, it will marvellously affect our Nation, and it will persuade them that you love us, if you please to grant this request to the noble Daughter of our Liege Sovereign Lord the King of Moab my Father, and yet one thought more comes into mind which I suppose will be pleasing to your sacred Majesty, that if you perceive any damage or danger is like to issue upon it, you may pull down every stone of the building and level it with the ground. King, The King said, trouble me no more with these matters; I will g●ant no such thing, your speeches are unsavoury and full of ignorance: I could answer all your fond allegations, but it is not for Kings to dispute with them, that have nothing to do with us in such cases. Where the word of a King is, there power is, and let that suffice you. This Brother went and told his Sister of all the discourse with the King, and of his denial, at which report she fell sick and was very sad, upon which the King gave her a visit and she wept abundantly, now the King had some relenting in his heart, for the King perceived it was grief and trouble of heart, he spoke very kindly and tenderly to her. A man of ingenuity cannot endure, unless a Nabal, a Fool, a Churl, to see his near and dear consort to weep, a woman endowed with excellent parts of wit, understanding, grace of speech courteous, loyal, comely, sweet and beautiful, and what may give a man content (I speak simply of man and woman) The King after he had in a most pleasant manner saluted her, departs, and then her spirit was revived. colour began to be in her cheeks, and lightsomness in her countenance, Although a woman be as a man's self very desirable, yet in case of Religion, and the worship of the most High, who is a jealous God, and his worship is pure and holy, and will not abide our Tresholds to be set by his Thresholds. In this case we must deny ourselves (as not to be servants of men, much less of women) and her that is most dear, of earthly comforts, that lies in the Bosom, and dearer than all other relations what ever, rather than to be a means that the name of Jehovah be profaned by false worships, he that doth not so, the Son of God saith, is not worthy of him. The story of our first Parents must be conferred, when our first Father was persuaded by his Wife with herself to break the commandment, it should seem she persuaded him, for it is said; Because thou hearknest to the voice of thy wife, G●en. 3.17. and ever since women are weak to be seduced, but strong, even Satan's engine, to seduce the man with her Enchantments (for so they may be very well called) of her eyelids, lips, tears, etc. The Son of God laid this danger before his people, Exod. 34. And Satan put this in practice by his wicked Prophet, Numb. 24. & 25.1, 2. And Satan thus dealt by the Jannes' and Jambres'es' under the New Testament times, who did and do creep as Serrpents into Houses, to lead captive silly women laden with sins and led away with divers lusts, 2 Tim. 3. The wife she is still at home with her children and servants, and how insensibly doth she corrupt them: And if a Woman be active, she will corrupt other women, and after a little while, men follow their wives, and so corruptions gangrenate quickly, and spread far: This the Apostle foretold, which came to pass afterward, but especially concerning Mahomet and in the Papacy. Pardon this digression. Queen. About certain months after that the King had called for this honourable and royal Lady, she prepares herself in all costly raiment, cloth of Gold and Silver of curious needle work, with chains of inestimable Jewels about her neck, that the beams of her spankled raiment with the precious gems made radiant beams (the Sun shining through the Windows) upon the walls of the King's palaces as she passed, and at last enters the chamber of presence, honoured Virgins attending her, and presents herself before the King, with her morient eyes, damask rosy cheeks, twinkling eyelids, cherry lips, and all festivity and grace of speech, with comely and pleasant deportment, fell at the King's fear, the King took her up by the hand, and falls a kissing her, with all loving embracements, and after many pleasant passages, the night drawing on, the King and she had sweet complacency in the bed of love, the next morning she retired herself to a close secret Chamber by, and after she had washed and perfumed herself, and had put on other change of raiment very costly, craves leave to do her humble duty, and take her leave of the King, whom when the King saw, he was taken again with her eyelids, and closes her fast in his arms. Then she ponders how she may enforce her old errand, and after much and pleasant compliment with the King, as soon as she had perceived she had entangled him, than she utters the oracles of the old Serpent, and saith to the King; How do I admire and wonder at the great respect and love that my Sovereign Lord doth manifest to me high handmaid, that he should afford such his amiable society; I do perceiv your most ardent and endeared love to me above any of your honourable women, your kind and fervent desire towards me though most unworthy, hath fired my heart towards your sacred Majesty: I am your Servant and at your Grace's command, and so ever will be to perform all loyal and dutiful observance: I would I were able to express the fervency of my heart unto my Sovereign Lord, and seeing it hath pleased the King so royally to manifest himself, I hope I may present and importune my fo●mer humble request unto my Lord my gracious Sovereign, for the building of a Chapel for my maids, and my Household Servants and Attendants, it shall not be so much for myself as for them, whom I humbly confess are not worthy to come into the confines of Jerusalem your holy City, 1 Chr. 8.11. much less into the Palaces of Zion, the City of David your Father, your love is so great unto me, which if I should distrust I should most highly offend: For I know you hate Atheism, and as it is an, abomination unto you it grieves my heart that I have no place of devotion to resort unto, when all the Ladies of Israel may resort unto your Temple and I and my maids sit moping at home all amort, as they worship their God so would I serve my God, the God of my Father. And she gave the King a gentle stroke on the breast, and said, my noble consort, my Sovereign, my ●oyall Lord, I know I have your heart, I know you love me, and what shall or can be wanting from a loving heart, etc. etc. And the King being ravished with her love, and with such words sweeter than honey, softer than oil, and all subtle flatteries, and after some discourse the King was captivated with her dalliance and snared with her devilish devices, and her hands were as bands, she persuaded him, she enticed him, and forced him to yield, that she had his licence to build a Temple on Mount Olivet to Chemosh, the Devil, the idol, the abomination of Moab. Now the Queen and her Attendants followed their businesses with diligence, they slacked no time. Masons and Carpenters are sent for to hue Stone, and to square and saw Timber, and so an high place was builded on the Mount of corruption, which did give a most vile affront to CHRIST'S holy Temple, for they could overlook all Jerusalem from Mount Olivet. When King Solomon was thus caught by this Lady of Moab, than all the other strange wives might thus prattle, and they plied their businesses diligently, and used all their agents, men and women, as there ever are in King's Courts too many time servers and hypocrites for such projects and negotiations. And things went so ill in the State, that not one of his thousand Wives and Concubines would dissuade the King, if half the World were a Church, a Troop or squadron of a thousand of such creatures (if suffered) would overturn all, these were so pampered with pride, ease, wantonness, and fullness of bread, that no holy Doctrine could take with them, but rather the Jedidiah the precious servant of the Lord was taken and snared, and corrupted by their pleasing and insinuating incantations. Those thousand wretches could not spend so little, each of them with their Maids and Attendants, as seven hundred or eight hundred pounds per annum, and some of them would consume more (like the Locusts, Apoc. 9 fruges consumere nati) And the charges in Building their Temples was great. All these expenses might amount unto eight hundred thousand pounds per annum, if not to a million, an excessive charge, which very likely the subjects stumbled at, and after Salomons death craved ease of taxations of Rechoboam. They would not take it ill, to build strong Cities, and Chariot-Cities, and Store-Cities, etc. that charge was for the profit of the Common-Weal. But to be at such rates, excises, and taxations for the maintenance of such a number of base creatures, the subject was not able to bear, and craved release of such oppressions. commonweals should have a diligent inspection that rates and taxations collected for the common profit, be not employed by men to private interests to make great purchases, to maintain themselves, wives, and children, and flattering Attendants in pride, idleness, and luxury. Such covetousness, self-love, and loving of pleasures more than lovers' of God, will breed perilous times and undo all. The Son of God to whom the Father hath committed all authority and power, who is King in Zion and the only Potentate, King of Kings, and Lord of Lords, he knows how, as we have seen, to put fire into Subject's hearts to destroy oppressors. An● let Rulers and Governors consider, all the Chariot-cities, fenced Cities, and Store cities which Solomon had repaired, fortified, and furnished with all provisions and ammunitions in the ten Tribes, and in part of Benjamin, all this fell to Jeroboom in one day. 1 King 9 Thi● was a punishment to the Kingdom for salomon's transgression in toleration of false Religions and bad opinions. And observe also the story of Gideon; He was a man of no great estimation and authority in the Tribe of Manasseh, or among the thousands of Israel, his was the meanest, yet when the Son of God would advance him to do his work, he made him General of Israel's Common Weal, and he by the Sword of Christ and his own Sword avenged the quarrel of God's Covenant against the seed of the Serpent in many exploits, upon which the people were so affected that they would have conferred on him and his posterity, the Government of the State, which he modestly and religiously denied, but his wicked opinion of will worship in making an Ephod to worship God by, was the ruin of his house & the cause of much trouble to the whole Common-Weal, Jud. 6.15. & 8.27. & ch. 9 Wherefore let all States be admonished concerning toleration of wicked opinions in pretence of conscience, especially of the papistical opinions, which draweth to the second death, we must remember the whoredoms of the seven-Mountain City, is a mystery, and Christ hath said, Mystical Babylon shall fall and be cast as a millstone into the Sea, and what State soever seeks by toleration to uphold it, must sink with it, undoubredly. We have the providence of Christ fresh before our eyes, how he hath resisted all cunning plots and wit of man to bring in Popery, the toleration of Popery is a countermanding of Christ's project, for it is said, the Kingdoms of the world shall be our Lord Gods, and his Christ's, and he shall reign for ever. Toleration of Popery doth uphold the King of Locusts Kingdom, and the Lord JESUS saith, he that gathereth not with me, scattereth. CHRIST saith, come out of her my people, and toleration hinders their coming. The reverend Master Perkins, in his reformed Catholic, declareth the impossibility of reconciliation, and which was written of purpose against such intendments, and many others have testified against such State-abominations. Yea, Christian reformed States and commonweals, that have departed from abaddon's Kingdom, should be well advised what treaties they make with the King of Locusts Subjects. But by no means to yield them, while such aid of men or ammunition, not to receive from them any help,: It is best, that the reformed look to their own commonweals, States and polities. Let the holy stories of Asa and Jebosaphats' Kingdom with Achabs' House be our instruction, as also the holy Scriptures that show us the miscarriage of a maziah King of Judoh, 2 Ch●on. 25. & 18. & 19 and 1 King. 22. confer also Esai. 30. etc. etc. Let all Princes and Common Weals take heed of idolatrous and wicked women, there are wealthy, politic, and of high countenance: Such have caused much grief and trouble to the Church of God and the Republic, a common mische if in most places, from Gen. 6. even to this day. But godly gracious women that have in them the power of godliness, to love the word of God in the holy Scriptures of the prophets and Apostles, and to love the holy public assemblies of Christ Jesus, and be sober, discreet, temperate, merciful, meek, humble, chaste, and be keepers at home, to train up their dear children in godly ways, and to have a special care that servants do not corrupt their children (they have been an occasion of much evil in children) also to be careful in overseeing and guiding the affairs of the house, especially in the husband's absence, etc. Such are a Crown of glory to their husbands, the Common-Weal, Town, and Family. I will transcribe a speech out of josephus, pertinent to this conference of Tirzana the Lady of Moab, which will also manifest the wickedness of these apostating and perilous times, josephus Lib. 4. chap. 6. When Moses, the faithful servant of the Angel of the Covenant, the Son of God, was zealous against the Apostasy of Israel especially of the Tribe of Simeon for joining themselves to Baal-Pebor and separating themselves to that Shame, than Zimri to make a mutiny most audaciously uttered this speech to Moses. Moses, saith Zimri, use thine own Laws, whereunto by long use thou hast added strength and confirmation, which hadst not thou done, oft times ere this hadst thou suffered punishment, and learned to thine own misery, that the Hebrews were not to be deluded; for myself, thou shalt never tie me to thy tyrannical decrees, for hitherto hast thou endeavoured nought else but under pretext of Law and Religion, to bring us into servitude and subjection, and thyself by thy subtle and sinister means to honour and sovereignty, taking from us the pleasures and liberties of our lives (things that belong to free men, and such as appertain or live not under any man's government.) For this should be worse than an Egyptian thraldom, to punish every man by thy Laws,, according to thine own pleasure, whereas thou thyself art more worthy to be punished, in that thou disannullest that thing that is approved by all men's consent, and desirest that thy decrees should be of more force than all the resolutions of all other mortal men whatsoever. But I (as touching that which I do) in that I suppose it to be well done, am not afraid to confess in this Assembly; namely, That I have taken a stranger to wife, thou hearest mine actions, from mine own mouth, as from a free and resolute man, neither do I desire that they should be hidden, I likewise sacrifice to the Gods contrary to our custom, because I suppose it to be both just and necessary, that from many I seek the truth, and not (depending as it were upon a tyranny, or living there under) to build my faith upon one only, for no man shall please me that will have more interest in my actions then myself. Dear and beloved Reader this expresseth the unclean and vile spirit of Satan in these evil days. CHAP. XXXII. Brief considerations about Sheol, Gehenna, and especially about Hades, as it relates to the Article of the Creed he descended into Hell. BEloved Reader, there hath been in some places, not a little stir about the sufferings of our Lord, which doubtless were marvellous great, even greater than can well be expressed: But yet unless a man will say as some say, that he suffered the very Essential Torments of Hell, they will account such little better than Heretics. The very first occasion of his assertion, was as I conceive from the misunderstanding of the holy Article of the Creed, commonly called the Apostles Creed, which speaks thus in the original Greek, K 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, in Latin, descendi ad infe●os, in English he descended into Hell: But this Latin and English Translation do come much short of the large sense and meaning o● the original Greek, I mean the said Translations do not fully express the large elegant meaning of the Greek word Hades, as it ought to be understood, and therefore from this barren and bad Translation, sundry erroneous Expositions have been broached by sundry Authors which hath filled most Churches with much trouble. 1. The controversy between Doctor Bilson and Master Broughton was this, Wither the holy soul of our Lord Christ went at his death, hence to Hell or hence to Heaven, Doctor Bilson after much sweat, and labour for his journey to Hell, at last concludes thus in his Sermons, p. 219. we have no warrant in the word of God so to fasten Christ's soul unto Hell for the time of his death, but that it might be in paradise before it descended to Hell. 2. On the other hand there are some learned men (not all) and some Churches (not all) that expound this Article of Christ's suffering the essential Torments of Hell in his soul in the Garden, and on the Cross. Now that we may attain to a true understanding of the Article, we may do well to consider the Terms Sheol, Gehenna, and Hades. 1. The word Sheol is only Hebrew, and it hath several exceptions, of which see Ains. in Gen. 37.35. & in Ps. 16.10. and in sundry other Authors also. 2. As for the term Gehenna 'tis a dialect from the Hebrew, and 〈◊〉 signifies properly and only the place of Torment, for in all the New Testament it is ever taken in that sense, in Mat. 5. Ma●. 9 Luk. 12.5. etc. 3. As for Hades: It is very needful that light may shine in our paths to consider well in what sense it is used in the New Testament, and in what sense it must be taken in the Creed. It is noted by Mr. Bro and Mr. Robert Wilmos, and by some others also that Hades hath these three principal significations. 1. It signifies death to the person, or destruction to things. 2. It signifies the grave to the dead body. 3. It signifies the world un-seen, namely the world of souls to the souls that are separated from. he body, without distinction of joy or sorrow, that must be gathered from the person and his cause, whether it be good or bad, and therefore Hades is not always used properly, and only for the place of Torment to all departed souls, but it hath two parts, the one is a happy part for all the godly, and the other is a most miserable part for all the wicked that dye in their sins. 1. Hades doth signify death to the person, or destruction to things, as in Mat. 11.23. Thou Capernaum which art exalted to Heaven shalt be brought down to Hades, that is to the lowest Earth, this City was destroyed by the Justice of God, because they despised the days of the Son of man, and did not regard his blessed visitation, although he was much conversant both in preaching and working miracles among them, so that now there is but a little remainder of it left, as Sir Walter Raleigh excellently shows in P. 347. The words of Christ doé show the once greatness of that City both in temporal and spiritual respects: It was one of the principal Cities of Decapolis, and the metropolis of Galilee, and though some marks of this City's magnificence were seen in Saint Jeroms time, it being then a reasonable Burge or Town, yet those that have seen it since (as Brochard, Bradeinbech, and Saliniac) affirm that it consisted but of six poor fisher-men's Houses, and thus it hath pleased God by his providence to direct that Histories should show the sad event of Christ's prophetical threatening, and in this sense Sheol is also used in Num. 16.33. for the death and destruction of persons and things. 2. Hades in Mat. 16.18. doth mean ' each to the person as the scope of the place doth best bear it, and by the Gates of Hades is meant a cruel and violent death which should be inflicted by the Roman persecuting Emperors, & after them by the Popes & by the Substitutes of each, that should have power to fit in the Gates of Judgement, to condemn to death by grievous tortures, all those that did build their faith on the Rock, Christ, as Peter did, and for saying as he did, Thou art Christ the Son of the living God, on this Rock Christ (faith Christ) I will build my Church, so that the Gates of Hades shall not by any sentence or torture of death prevail against them to extinguish them. 1. Hades is used to signify the grave to the dead bodies, 1 Cor. 15. 55. O death where is thy sting, O Hades where is thy victory, Hades in this place, faith Master Bro. in Exp. Anti. P. 15. Is the holy body's lodging. 2. In Act. 2.27. Thou wilt not Jeave me or my vital soul in (Hades) the Grave that it should corrupt (as other men's bodies do in that space of time) before it was raised. 3. In Apoc. 6 8. death sat on a pale Horse, and Hades followed him, now that which follows death must needs be the grave to the body called Hades, and in that respect Master Bro. in Apoc. 56. calls Hades the gulf of the grave, and saith he in P. 165. A gulf of a grave was opened, to show how the Casa●s warred and perished miserably three hundred years with their great Armies, and such a Sheol, Grave, or great Burial is spoke of in Eze. 39.11. and in Es. 14. which places the Seventy translate Sheol by Hades, and so Hades hath as wide a mouth as, Sheol, and therefore in Apoc. 6.8. death rides on a pale Horse to hasten the death of persecutors in abundance, and that Hades the grave follows death, and therefore the Seventy translate Sheol in Pro. 30, 15. by Hades the grave as being one of the three things that saith It is not enough, and in Pro. 27.20 Sheol and destruction are never full, in which place the Seventy have Hades. 3. Hades signifies the world un-seen, or the world of souls to the souls that are separated from the body, without distinction of joy or sorrow, but as it may be gathered from the qualification of the person and his cause. The Apostle Peter in Act. 2. was to prove the Resurrection of Christ from death to life against the Saducees, he did not dispute of the second death, nor of a journey to Hell (as many understand Hell) nor of suffering Hell Torments in his soul, as some do also understand Hell in Act. 2. for if he had so disputed with the Saducees. (which were many in those days) he had disputed besides the question, which was about the Resurrection of his dead body, and it may also be a grei●e unto us that such an Heavenly Article of our Christian faith, as is the immortality of the souls: passing from the dead body to the joys of God, should be so much misinterpreted as hath been and yet is in some Churches in the aforesaid un-sound senses. The holy rational soul of the Lord Jesus Christ at his death went to the happy part of Hades, namely to that part of it, that is called Paradise. The rich man's soul at his death went likewise to Hades, but yet it was to that part of it that is called Gehenna, to torments in the lake of fire. ‛ Abraham's Bosom was in Hades, and the rich man was also in Hades, and there Abraham, and the rich man spoke to each other, which showeth that they were in the same world of souls, though in several distinct lots, and it is evident by Es. 66. that the godly and the wicked kn●w one the others case, therefore we are not to think, that Hades is low in the earth. It would be ridiculous, that in a Dialogue one should talk with another above his head millions of miles, see Bro. in Rep. 11, 12, 13. All souls ascend to God's Throne, Eccl 3. and 12 yea even the wicked ascend to God's Throne, in the proper term of ascending, and have their lot there before the Throne of God, and in the presence of the just, and are tormented in the presence of the holy angels, and in the presence of the Lamb, Apoc. 14. these places show that the place of joy and the place of torment are in sight and some near distance to each other, and that Hades is the general term of them both. Hence therefore I conclude, that it is the person, and his cause, that must interpret the word Hades, as it respects the departed soul, either for j●y or sorrow, either for heaven or hell. I may exemplify my meaning by this similitude: Traitors go from Westminster to the Tower of London, and so do faithful State. 〈◊〉 men also, but traitors and proditors go to prisons and torments in the Tower: and so also faithful States men go to the Tower, but they go to the pleasant chambers, and gardens in the Tower: so in like sort all godly souls go to Hades, but they go to the pleasant places of Paradise in Hades, in the unseen world of souls, but the wicked when they die, their souls go to the dark places of torment in Hades, in the unseen world of souls, and in this sense also Hades is also used in heathen authors, and in some Greek Fathers, being rightly alleged as it hath been well observed by Dr. Ligh●foot in Acts 2. and by M. Bro who hath also observed, that in no Greek author, nor in a●l the new Testament, Hades doth only and properly signify the place of torment, So in philemon's Jamb●i●ks, two paths are in Hades, one of the righteous, the other of the wicked. 4. The Reader may please to take notice, that in these interpritations. & explications, I have not run without good company, but learned men and Churches that have suffered much for the truth of the Gospel, have thus thought, taught, and written: P. Martin, and M. Buce●, that held the stern of Religion in the days of King E. ward the sixth; The first at Oxford, and the other at Cambridge. These two godly men, were as good Divines as the world saw for a 1000 years (as it is testified by Mr. Bro in a Treatise of the Article printed 1599) they brought into our native Country the Zurick Confession, which was allowed by King Edward the sixth, and by Queen Elizabeth. The Confession is in these words. Per inferos intelligimu●, non locum supplicis designatum impiis, sed, defunct●s sideles, quemadmodum per superas ●dbuc supper flies in vita; proi●de anima Christi descondi● ad inferos, id est delat● est in sinum Abrak●, in qua collects fu●runt omnes d functi fideles: ergo cum lat●oni secum crucifixo dixit, Hodie er●s mecum in Paradiso, promisit ei consortium vita, & beatorum spiritum, Licet enim Dominus descend●s●e dic●tur, fit tamen, ex more ●●quendi. Confitemur in hus articul● animas esse immortales, ●asque p●otinus a morte ●o●porealy ansi●e ad vitam. And the right Reverend Mr. Hen. Bullenger, the godly Tigurine Professor doth record this very Confession on the Article of Christ's descent, as it is to be seen in his seventh Sermon, in his first Decade towards the latter end of that Sermon. I acknowledge that I never saw the Zurick Confession, but as I find it recorded in other men's writings, but that of Reverend Bullenge● is translated into English, and printed many years ago. His words translated run thus. By (Hades) Hell, we understand not the place of punishment appointted for the wicked, but (the place) of the faithful that are departed, even as also by the higher parts, we understand them that are yet remaining alive: wherefore the soul of Christ descended inro hell, that is to say, it was carried into Abraham's bosom, wherein all the faithful already departed were gathered together; therefore when he said to the thief that was crucified with him, this day shalt thou be with me in Paradise, he promised him the fellowship of life, and of the blessed souls, etc. And prefently after Bullenger calls this article, The article of the souls immortality, in this article (saith he) we confess that the souls are immortal, and that immediately after death they do pass to life, and this he speaks of all the Saints that have died in the faith of Christ from the beginning of the world. 5. I find that many learned men of our native Country have and do wave (as evil) the translation, He descended into hell, and do hold the two former interpretations to be impertinent to the true scope of it, and I believe that more and more will do so daily, unless such as be too careless in taking the pains of the mind to search into the true knowledge of the things of God, for indeed many Students care for no more, but what they have received by Tradition. 6. There is a Dictionary, that is called Portus Dictionary, and another little book a kind of Dictionary, called ●lementa Graeca, which show that Hades (among other acceptations) doth signify heaven as well as hell, and some learned do record, that in the Macedonian Greek dialect, children are taught to pray, Our Father which art in Hades. Also there is another little book of 22 pages, put forth lately in English by a godly learned man, entitled, Of the Article of our Creed. Christ descended to Hades, or ad inferos. This little Treatise will much help to guide common Readers on this Subject. 7. It is very useful for the godly Reader, to be well acquainted with the several phrases of the holy Scripture, and in special of the term soul the Reader may see the various acceptations of it, in Ainsworths' Tables, after his translation of the five books of M●ses. He showeth that the term soul is taken. 1. For our natural estate, Gen. 2.7. 2. For person, Gen. 12 5. 3. For life, Gen. 19.17. 4. For mind of will, Oen. 23.8. 5. For Ege, 'tis, ille, I, thou, he Gen. 17.4 6. For ones self, Deut. 4.9. 7. For a dead body, Levit. 19.28. 8. The word translated descended in the Creed, is of great use to be rightly understood, for in that place it doth not mean a going down, but it means only a passage from one place to another, as they may easily observe that have but a little skill in the Greek Concordance to the new Testament, Also it is to be noted that the Pronoun ille, he, spoken of the person, must yet be understood of the Soul in this Article. He, i. e. his soul passed from his body to Hades, to Paradise, to heaven, to God. Again, it is spoken of the person, he risen from the dead the third day, this must be understood of the body. Some Objections answered. Objection 1. He was crucified, dead, and buried, and went to Hades, (to the unseen world) The third day he arose from the dead, and he ascended into heaven. Whence some object, that then Christ ascended twice, which is not likely, say they, that there should be such a Tautology in so short an Abridgement of the faith. Answer, Is it not great pity that we should be educated in the Articles of our faith, as to make such an ignorant Objection, as this? I grant, that Christ ascended twice, but yet it was in two differing sorts, as it is expressed in two several Articles of our faith. 1. In his holy rational soul, only when he died on the Cross, and that passed from his body immediately to Hades, or to the unseen world of souls, and in those days it was heedful to profess this Article of the souls immortality, as an Article of the faith, because of the Sadducean Tenent. 2. Forty days after his Resurrection, he ascended into heaven, both in soul and body together, as the first fruits of them that sleep, 1 Cor. 15. 30. And thus you see a necessity, that the Articles of our faith, should profess his ascending twice in these two differing sorts. Objection 2. Some do scoffingly object, because we make Christ to bless God in Psal. 16.10. and in Acts 2.27, because he would not leave his soul in Sheol, or in Hades. Answer, 1. I have formerly, showed, that Nephesh, which we translate soul in Psal. 16. must be understood of his vital soul, and not of his rational soul. But suppose it were meant of his rational soul, yet it is not to be scoffed at, that he should bless God for not leaving his soul in Hades heaven, till his body saw corruption, C●ristopher Carlisle in his Descent, shows in page 47 48. That souls in joy have an earnest affection to be united to their dead bodies, that so they may both together partake of the same glory, and Weams in his Portraiture, Pag. 33.34. speaks just to the same effect. Objection 3. Some object, that many Creeds have left out this Article, and thence they conclude that it is but a suppositious Article. Answ. 1. * Is it not strange, that any should be so far blinded as to think that the pen man of the Creed should speak of the crucifying death and burial of the Lords body, and yet should omit to record the immortal state of his holy and precious soul? when he sent out his Spirit into the hands of his heavenly Father, s●eing there were so many Sadduces living in those ancient days, that denied the immortality of the rational sou? 2. Some reasons may also be rendered why some Creeds might after a while leave it our. 1. when the immortal state of the soul was generally believed and not doubted of it might be left out. 2. When other tongues could not find a fit word that could attain to the large sense and elegancy of the Greek word Hades, than the learned, seeing it might be misunderstood, might in wisdom rather choose to leave it out. 3. When the mystery of iniquity did so increase, that Christendom was darkened by the smoke of the Pit, as hath been touched from Apoc. 9 and that learning was grown so weak, that most did not know whether the soul of man did ascend, or descend, or whither the godly soul went after death, I say when the holy doctrine was so exceedingly darkened a● it was in the 10, 11, 12, 13, 14, and 15 Centuries, and that the Article of descending to hell was so corruptly expounded then also, some learned of latter times might leave it our, as they did in former times, for the former Reason. These things I thought necessary to advise the Reader of, because not many, though some have written of this Subject, I thought it my duty therefore to add these Considerations for the benefit of the godly and studious Reader, and I hope that my endeavour will not be in vain in the Lord. CHAP. XXXIII Of the Phrase of Abraham's Bosom. THis Phrase, The Bosom of Abraham, did arise, and was made familiar (as I suppose) by the faithful Hebrew Rabbins before our Lords days, upon this Consideration. 1. The Covenant of God in Christ was made with Abraham, and his Seed, that in his Seed all nations should be blessed, and thereupon such as desired to be partakers of that blessedness, must be of Abraham's faith, and must testify their desire by receiving Circumcision, the Seal of that Covenant, and then they were also received into his house, or into his Church, and so they were as it were nourished in Abraham's Bosom, where they were nourished by God's Ordinances, and so Abraham was very hospital to all, but especially to them that were of the household of his faith; he received and nourished such, not only with temporal, but with spiritual food, he taught them the way of God in Christ, and instructed them in the true meaning of his Commandments, Statutes and Laws, all which Abraham observed and kept, and he is commended of God therefore in Gen. 26.5. and long before this, God said of Abraham, I know him, that he will command his sons and his house after him, that they shall keep the way of the Lord, that is, the true Religion, faith and obedience, prescribed for men to walk in, as in Gen. 18, 19 compared with Acts 18.25, 26. Deut. 8.6. and 10, 12. and therefore all the faithful of his house might at their death expect to be made partakers with him of the heavenly City, which God had prepared for them, and therefore when they died, they might still be said to be in Abraham's Bosom; for all the faithful, whether they continue alive in this world, or departed this life in the faith of Abraham, are called Abraham's children, and therefore when they die their spirits go to Paradise, to Abraham's Bosom. In like sort, the faithful being yet abiding here in this valley of tears, are said to sit in heavenly places, and to eat and drink with Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, in the Kingdom of God, Mat. 8. and in this respect all the godly, whether living or dying are called Abraham's children, cherished as it were in his Bosom, family, and Church, both militant and triumphant. 2. The holy Patriarch Abraham was so highly honoured of God, that he is called the father of the faithful, and the heir of the world, Rom. 4 12.13, 16. so then his house was the Bosom of the Church, into which he received all that professed the true faith for almost 2000 years, and in this respect, the eternal and blessed estate of the faithful, might well be called the Bosom of Abraham. 3. That Parable of the rich man in Hades in torments, and of Lazarus Soul that was carried by the Angels into Abraham's Bosom, in Luke 16.19, etc. Was spoken to the unbelieving Jews and Pharisees and Sa●duces, especially to such as were contemners of Abraham's faith, and cared not for the days of the Son of Man, and therefore they were not glad to see his day, as their Father Abraham did and was glad, but instead thereof they despised and disdained such as were godly Eleazar's whose hope and help Christ is, and that he will send his Angels at their death to carry their souls into the happy part of Hades, to Abraham's Bosom, where note that Lazarus and Eleazar, Faithful factors in far countries, for their Masters need not fear to be called home: so the great Lord and householder, when the servonts are called to give account of their trading by the Talents they received, we know what the Lrd will say to them that can give a good account, Ma●. 25. are but one name, though differing in Dialect. 3. That Parable of the rich man in Hades in torments, and of Lazarus Soul that was carried by the Angels into Abraham's Bosom, in Luke 16.19, etc. Was spoken to the unbelieving Jews and Pharisees and Sa●duces, especially to such as were contemners of Abraham's faith, and cared not for the days of the Son of Man, and therefore they were not glad to see his day, as their Father Abraham did and was glad, but instead thereof they despised and disdained such as were godly Eleazar's whose hope and help Christ is, and that he will send his Angels at their death to carry their souls into the happy part of Hades, to Abraham's Bosom, where note that Lazarus and Eleazar, Faithful factors in far countries, for their Masters need not fear to be called home: so the great Lord and householder, when the servonts are called to give account of their trading by the Talents they received, we know what the Lrd will say to them that can give a good account, Ma●. 25. are but one name, though differing in Dialect. 3. That Parable of the rich man in Hades in torments, and of Lazarus Soul that was carried by the Angels into Abraham's Bosom, in Luke 16.19, etc. Was spoken to the unbelieving Jews and Pharisees and Sa●duces, especially to such as were contemners of Abraham's faith, and cared not for the days of the Son of Man, and therefore they were not glad to see his day, as their Father Abraham did and was glad, but instead thereof they despised and disdained such as were godly Eleazar's whose hope and help Christ is, and that he will send his Angels at their death to carry their souls into the happy part of Hades, to Abraham's Bosom, where note that Lazarus and Eleazar, Faithful factors in far countries, for their Masters need not fear to be called home: so the great Lord and householder, when the servonts are called to give account of their trading by the Talents they received, we know what the Lrd will say to them that can give a good account, Ma●. 25. are but one name, though differing in Dialect. 4. Let me yet give the godly Reader, one lift more to the placing of their souls in Abraham's Bosom when they come to die: Remember that the Lord God our heavenly Father. The Lord God our heavenly Father hath but one Family, part of it is in the heavens, and part of it in the earth, and when any one of his servants have finished their factorage, Phil. 3.20. (their Politeuma) among that part of the Family on earth, than he sends for them home to the other part of the Family that is in heaven (all the faithful for the days of the old Testament are so called) And so the Apostle, Paul finishing his course, he went to receive his Crown in the Kingdom of the Father. So Peter the Apostle, 1 Pet. 1, 2.3, 4. 2 Pet. 1. therefore let us strive for the prize of the high calling of God in Christ Jesus, that when we think or speak of death, or are near to the approaching to it, we may be without much disturbance in mind or heart, as Abraham, Isaac, Jacob, David, etc. Delight in the stories of the faithful, that ye may be more transformed. This made the Saints to say, Why should I fear in the evil day, when our iniquities shall compass us about, and trip up our heels unto death; for God will redeem us from the power of the grave, for he shall receive us to himself, to Abraham's Bosom, Psal. 49. Christ, the second Adam, the Lord from heaven, hath destroyed death, and him that had the power of death, he hath opened the gates of death, and himself hath passed through them, to deliver the children of God from the guilt and bondage of sin, and from the fear of death, unto which we are subject. Christ our life is our justification, for he hath freed us from the sting of sin by his precious death and Sacrifice, The Law the strength of sin, Gen. 2.17. and 3.19. and although the curse of the Law is the strength of sin, yet he hath fulfilled the Law for us, and so became a most perfect Mediator for us; For such an high Sacrificer and Mediator it became us to have, who was holy, harmless, undefiled, separate from sinners, and made higher than the heavens. Again, death is but an harbinger to bring us to Christ, it is said, that death is ours, it's our servant for our good. Again it is said, that Christ is our life, and therefore death must needs be our advantage, 2 Cor. 3.12. Phil. 1.21. and therefore we should not be troubled at that which is so advantageous to us, we cannot live holily, righteously, and comfortably, unless we live above the fear of death, 1 Cor. 15 34.58. 2 Cor. 5 15. to be well instructed in this point, is a point of great wisdom, Moses prized it at a high rate, when he prayed, Teach us to number our days, that we may apply our hearts to wisdom, namely to be prepared for death, and Solomon doth exhort us saying, Remember thy Creator in the days of thy youth, before the evil days come upon thee, Ezech. 12. This wisdom is to be valued above gold and silver, and the most precious Jewels of the earth, but it is wonderful how averse our hearts are by nature from the practice of this heavenly wisdom, we commonly put off the thought of our death, until the Lord bring upon us bruising miseries, and then we begin to think of God and Christ, and of death, as it is said, Destruction and Death say we have heard of the fame of this wisdom with our ears, and when men come to the doors of death, then is this wisdom of some fame with men, than they send for a godly Minister, or for a godly neighbour, whose person it may be they hated in the time of their health, and abhorred his teaching with their godly counsels. Death was a terror indeed to Aristot●e, though a wise and great Philosopher, and to all such Job doth call it the King of terrors, that speech of Bildad in Job 18. doth import, that God is a just God, to whom all souls must ascend to have their judgement, and so in 2 Cor. 5. knowing the terror of the Lord, &c This made that most miserable Cardinal to say, that he had rather lose his part in Paradise, than his part in Paris. But let all the godly be still mindful, that though they depart from their Families hereon earth, yet they shall still continue to be of God's family, they go from brethren and sisters here, to brethren and sisters there, and above all remember the dying, or rather the living words of the Lord Jesus the night before his death, Job. 13.14, 15, 16, and 17, chapters, Oh the ineffable love and care of our blessed Mediator for his apostles, and for all his faithful servants to the end of the world. CHAP. XXXIV. Some Propositions and Expostulations concerning the true nature of Christ's Sufferings. 1. BEloved Reader, we are yet further pressed, and orthodox Churches are called up as Troopers against us (about the true nature of Christ's sufferings) we acknowledge that the very remembrance of them is reverend, and doth joy us, not annoy us. I know we shall not fight but treat: for they may perceive that we have otthodox Churches with us, and as learned Leaders though perhaps not so many: That is not much material, for the book of God must lie between them and us, and they and we must search the holy pages, that so by them we both may be composed. 2. It is to be lamented, that the Article of our Lords going to the joys of God taught in 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, should be taught people of suffering hell-torments, that when we should be taught to understand Hades of heaven, we have been instructed to understand it of hell, but we hope it will be so no more, to put darkness for light, and evil for good. 3. But now of latter times some learned seeing the native meaning of the greek in the Article, will neither justify the translation, nor the exposition that is made upon it, and yet still they do labour to make the matter good about hell-torments, and therefore they have endeavoured by the Scriptures to fortify that opinion, which how orthodoxly they have done, it is hoped men may have leave to examine, which if it be denied, than we shall transfer the infallibility of the Pontifician chair (justly decried) to them whom we know will not arrogate any such thing. 4. Are Orthodox Churches so infallible in all things, may not godly learned men utter unsound Doctrines, and much miscarry in matters of sound judgement and application? It is possible they may. There were in times past three godly Divines, none like them now on the earth, yet they did not speak of God right things, although they thought they spoke in the behalf of God. I will transcribe what is spoken of them. 5. Hear now my reasoning, and hearken to the pleading of my lips; will you speak wickedly for God, and talk deceitfully for him? will ye accept his person? will ye contend for God? Is it good he should search you out? Job will tell us that it is not good to defend God's cause with an error, pretending Religion. or as one mocketh another, do you so mock with him? He will surely reprove you, if you do secretly respect persons. Shall not his excellency make you afraid, and his dread fall upon you? Your remembrances are like to ashes, and your bodies to bodies of clay. Hold your peace, etc. Job 1●. 6, 7, 8, 9, 10, 11, 12, 13. They were holy men, and spoke most excellently, and we see by this, that though they exalted Gods holy justice in their applications, yet they spoke not righteously, as Christ testifieth for the comfort of his servants, Job in chap. 42. Thus Job spoke to his three friends, and we hope we speak to friends, and we doubt not but they will remember that we ought not to have the faith our glorious Lord Jesus Christ in respect of persons. 6. And we hope our learned will say, as Elihu, What shall we say to him, for we cannot order our speech by reason of darkness, Job 37. and they will acknowledge they know in part, and prophesy in part, and we hope they will not be angry, if we judge of what they say, the Apostle would not be angry, but said, Judge ye what I say? 1 Cor. 10. and we hope they will not deny, but that they may know (we will not say, be instructed in) the way of Christ more perfectly. 7. May not godly Ministers now speak things not fitting about the sufferings of our Lord and Saviour, as if any shall say, that he suffered the second death, else we should have suffered it: if any shall say, he suffered Hell torments for the same reason. If any shall say, that the Son of God was not Christ for a time, when he underwent the wrath of God. Also if any shall say, that in his agony in the garden, or upon the Cross, he did enter the lists to fight the great combat hand to hand with his angry Father, & c. &c. Are these speeches, if any shall so say, the Dialect of the holy Spirit in his holy Scriptures which he hath conveyed unto us, by his infinite, good, and gracious providence? Again, if some good men shall have these passages, that it was not the violence of his crucifying, that cut off his life, but the wrath and curse of God swallowed up his spirit, and made his heart fail him, and that his soul left the body in that agony. Thus, if any shall say, than one may inter, that he felt not the love of God his Father, before, he yielded the Spirit, but died in a cloud, but we are taught of God, Gen. 3.15. Psal. 22 the cycle of two. that when the Seed of the Serpent was so busy in breaking the foot sole, piercing the hands and feet of the * morning Star, that he with an holy peaceable, and quiet spirit, as a sheep dumb before the shearer committed the cause to him that judgeth righteously, and prayed, Father forgive them, for thy know not what they do. And it is said in Psal. 16. that he did always behold the Lord his heavenly Father before him, and that he was still at his right hand, that he could not be so moved, or disturbed in soul as some talk. The world was made to show principalities and powers, and thrones, and dominions, the contrary that he would rule all his souls affections, in an holy and glorious manner, and by that Justice make a new world, and that he the second Adam had power over his affections more than ever the first Adam, he had power to trouble himself with grief and sorrow, and to be affected with grief and sufferings from others, and to rejoice as he saw occasion: he could rule his affections as he did the waves of the sea, so far to go, and no further, such an holy Majesty appeared in all his Sufferings at all times, but especially in his agony in the garden, and sufferings on the Cross. In all which he carried himself beyond the comprehension of men and angels. And this doth more appear, if we consider the sweet, heavenly and calm conference he had with the repenting thief on the Cross. He that bade us possess our souls in patience, that so in all afflictions we might enjoy ourselves, he much more did enjoy himself by his patience and obedience, and as David in type saith, I waited patiently for the Lord, and he inclined his ear unto me, and saved him from the pit of tumultuous as flictions. So the Lord Jesus was from the fear of death, Heb. 6▪ 5.7. Again he loved his enemies, and did good to them that hated him, and prayed for them, and bade us so to do, and to overcome evil with goodness, thus the LORD ruled his affections, and gives us grace for grace so to do, as Stephen, etc. And in that agony in the garden there was an angel from heaven, strengthening and comforting the humanity, so that he was neither forsaken (as some understand forsaken) of the Father, nor of the holy Angels, and if God had forsaken him, what Angel durst come to comfort him? That we may better understand the term forsaken. The rich man (we know) was forsaken of God, for he was in torments under the second death, and therefore he might not have so much as a drop of water to cool his luxurious palate, much less might he have an holy Angel from heaven to comfort him: and it is most evident that Christ was not forsaken, for the holy Angel did not come from heaven to the Lord Jesus without a commission from the heavenly Father, to whom the humanity prayed, and therefore in the closure of his meritorious sufferings, his heart rejoiced, and his tongue was glad, and being full of faith and comfort he said, Father into thy hands I commend my spirit, and then he sent out his Spirit from his Body. 10. Again, if some shall say, the wrath of God (as some understand wrath) killed Christ. We should be well advised what passeth the door of our lips; for Christ our holy Mediator said, I have power to lay down my life, J●●. 10.17.18. and have power to take it again This commission or commandment, have I received from my Father, also he said, As the Father knoweth me, so know I the Father, and lay down my life for the sheep— therefore doth my Father love me, because I lay down my life, that I may take it again, Joh 15. As the Father hath loved me, so have I loved you, continue ye in my love If ye keep my commandments, ye shall abide in my love, even as I have kept my Father's commandments, and abide in his love, John 16. Ye shall be scattered every man to his own, and shall leave me alone, and yet I am not alone, because the Father is with me. These Scriptures and others are prevalent to make one think and believe that he was not under, the wrath and curse of God in any respect or consideration (as some understand wrath) not for one minute of an hour, for surely the Son of God our Lord Jesus Christ was a most willing Mediator and Redeemer, for us to God our Father, he gave himself a voluntary and free will offering to our heavenly Father for us, and therefore no force did separate his soul from his body, but he did that act by his own power, as the formality of his Sacrifice. 11. Many Ministers have some expressions about our Lords Sufferings, which many godly, and learned Divines have testified are not warrantable, for what are we dust and ashes to speak of God and our Redeemer, and Mediator, words not comely, but we all should consider, that a● Moses spoke nothing of his own mind, nor Christ in the flesh, nor his Apostles from him, but what he taught to Moses and the Prophets. So we should all speak from his holy Scriptures, sound Doctrines, wholesome Doctrines, plain and pregnant speech, sound and uncondemnable. 12. The assertion, that our Lord suffered hell-torments in this life, in his soul (or body) appeareth not true by any Scripture. True modesty would look to Scripture phrases in handling our Redemption. The ill translation of the Article, and the bad interpretation of it, but especially the mistaking of the Greek 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, hath filled the Church of Christ with much trouble, and the smoke of the Pit, which hath troubled many men's eyes, hath also been a great occasion thereof, but now the smoke is much vanished, blessed be God. 13. Beloved Reader, we desire to reverence his word by whom the world was made, his word is of sufficient authority with us, and to that we through the strength of Christ will cleave as to our life, & therein is these words, And the Bread that I will give is my fl●sh, namely, that I will give (in sacrifice) for the life of the world, Joh 6. And this is at large expounded, Heb. 9 But Christ being come, an high Priest of good things to come, by a greater and more perfect Tabernacle, not made with hands, I mean not of this building, neither by the blood of goats nor calves; but by his own blood he entered once into the holy place, having obtained eternal redemption for us. And it is also sald, that without shedding blood is no remission, and this is further amplified: How much more shall the blood of Christ, who through the eternal spirit offered himself without spot to God, purge your consciences from dead works to serve the living God. And for this cause he is the Mediator of the new Testament, that by the means of death (this is not the second death) for the Redemption of the transgressions that were under the first Testament they which were called might receive the promise of the eternal inheritance. Chap. 10. By the which will we are sanctified through the offering the body of JESUS Christ once for all, Herald 10. And so he doth most sweetly and confortably speak in verse. 19 20, 21. and in deed all that Epistle doth open. joh. 6. most heavenly. 14 Again, if Orthodox Churches (yea, the most Orthodox) are so infallible that our faith must be resolved in part into their commentaries, expositions, etc. how cometh it to pass that some do differ in Church discipline from so many reformed Churches, both from Geneva, Zurick, Scotland, Low Countries, etc. that they neither scotize it with the Scot, nor Genevate it with the zealous Town of Geneva, they fall, it may be, under reproof, in not agreeing with, but discording the judgement and practice of the best and reformed and Othodox Churches in discipline. And they had need to show very good reasons of their so dissenting, or they are to blame, or else some may say, came the word of God out from them, or came it unto them only? yea, and may not others say so too of the best Orthodox Churches, came the word of God out from, or came it unto them only? that men must be judged by them. But the Holy Ghost hath charged us, in his cause, be not the Servants of men, 1. Cor. 7. 15. The Pontificians said, that our fore. Fathers had the word of God from them, and therefore they did by Egyptian Bondage tie our Ancestors to their Doctrines and Councils, and at last to the Pontifician chair, and caused all Christ's Witnesses to mourn in Sack-cloah that would not obey their constitutions. But the Lord our God hath delivered us from that house of cruel bondage of mystical Egypt. And Christ saith his Magistrates must not bring his people back again to Egypt, Deut. 17. 16. We are of Japhets' posterity: And it is said, God persuade Japhet to dwell in the Tents of Sem. So that we must know Japhet our Father and his faithful posterity had their faith from Sems Tents, and not from the Tent, of the seven Mountain City of King abaddon's Kingdom. And this holy faith was taught to Japheths' posterity, by the Sons of Sem, the Prophets and Apostles. The Apostles and Disciples taught this faith from the Scriptures of the Prophets, at the commandment of the everlasting God, to the Romans, Corinthians, and Galatheans, Ephesians, Philippians, Colossians, Thessalonians, and the other Churches of Asia round about from jerusalem to Illiricum, and also to Dalmatia, Croatia, and doubtless to Spain, Rom. 15. And also to great Britain, as ancient Histories, and as Master Speeds chronicle declareth. Therefore it is good for us to hearken to the counsels of the Scriptures of God, the surest way is to consult with them. It saith, ask for the old way, Ie●. 6. Again it saith, he that knoweth God heareth the Apostles, 1 joh. 4. Again we are built upon the Foundation of the Prophets and Apostles, Jesus Christ himself being the chief corner Stone, Eph. 2. And again for perfect resolution, we are referred to the words of the holy Prophets, and commandments of the Apostles of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, 2 Pet. 3. And judas Thaddaus speaks the same. And they all were the Sons of Sem. The Scriptures of the Prophets is the faith of the Nations, and it is said often in the Apocalypse that Christ's Witnesses suffered for the word of God, and the Testimony of Jesus, with which orthodox Churches must have no vote granted to them to stand in competition for authority. 17. The Pontificians so dealt and deal that they will in show at last yield honour to the Scriptures, so that we rest in their Church's exposition and determination, we suppose godly Christians should not be like them in such tergiversations. Beloved Reader do not conceive that we and reject Orthodox Churches, or the writings of their godly Divines, no such matter: But we highly prise them as most gracious mercies of Christ Jesus our Lord, and as they by whom the Temple of God in the Heaven of the Church hath been opened, and the, Ark of his Testimony manifested. And as such by whose voices, teaching and, praying, writings, and martyrdom, they have made such a thunder in the Pontifician Air, that the smoke of the Pit is much vanished, and a tenth part of abaddon's polity is fallen. And the great Angel of the Covenant, the Lord Jesus Christ will still send forth godly Teachers, that the whole Barth shall be lightened with his glory, Apot. 18. We may and aught to have them in godly and respectful remembrance for their works sake, both of them that are departed, and of those that are yet living, though we make them not Lords of our faith. 18. I will yet-speake a little more of that speech which some affirm of Christ that he did combat with his Angry Father, shall the Son of God, faith that treatise, suffer the second death for you? Shall he unchrist himself, for a time for you? Shall he suffer Hell Torments for you? † Treatise of sac●ed divinity published by Mr. John Downame, in the year 1619. p. 1. 317. Shall the Son of God enter the lists to fight the great combat hand to hand with his angry Father for you? God the Father to fight with God the Son: Is this good Orthodox Theoligie to be sold or taught in Pulpits, or in Books to the people of God, doubtless there is a deep silence of such expressions in the Book of God. And from this time forwards, I hope our godly Teachers, will have the same deep silence, and make no stir, and utter plain Doctrines and then our inventions will vanish. 1. I pray consider it well, did the humanity of our blessed Saviour and Mediator, cope or combat with the Divine nature of the God the Father? Alas! the humanity, though holy, yet it was but a finite creature created in time, and what is a finite creature to the infinite creator? The humane nature in a such a case could not abide the least touch of contradiction: But I suppose we must seriously consider that the humanity did evermore from its conception subsist in the Divine nature of the second person (by way of support) else it could not have borne such sufferings as the holy Scriptures declare from the power of Satan, death, the grave and wicked men, ye●, else his oblation of himself had not been meritoriously satisfactory, and therefore it is a strange saying that the second person did combat with the first, for then the whole person of the Mediator must combat if any combating, my heart, yea, whose heart would not tremble at such speeches as this? 2. Gen. 3.25. doth hold forth a declaration of a combat of enmity between the seed of the woman (namely her special seed Christ) and the seed of the Serpent, but no mention is made of any such combat with God the Father, nor that the second person should combat with himself; the humane with the divine nature: These Tenentes do jar much from the Divinity that was taught to our first Parents in Gen 3.15. 3 Is it not strange Doctrine to affirm that the Lord Jesus with the help of a holy Angel did combat with God, for in his Agony in Luk. 22.43. there was an Angel sent from Heaven to strengthen him. 4 Was it ever heard that a Mediator between two at variance, should fight with the stronger opposite to bring him to agreement? some Teachers in teaching such Doctrines must use some such like strange language. 5. The Lord Jesus did commit his cause to him that judgeth righteously, 1. Pet. 2.23. This argueth (although the Devil's instruments did in wrath and rage condemn him for a sinful malefactor, as all presecutors did the Martyrs yet) that God the Father did not judge him for a sinner, but justify him as one that was every way Innocent, therefore the Heavenly Father did not combat with his Son, for he committed himself and his case to him as to a righteous judge. 6. The Martyrs in like sort being Baptised with the Baptism of Christ in sufferings, committed their case to their Heavenly Father, in Apoc. 6.10. And therefore as Gods essential curse, Hell Torments, and the second death, was not on the Martyrs in their sufferings, so neither was it on the true and faithful. Martyr the Lord Jesus in his sufferings. CHAP. XXXV. Observations upon that distinction which some make between the local and penal Hell: which penal Hell some say Christ suffered. 1. SOme say that God can make a man's Hell here in this world, by which speech they must mean (if they mean any thing to he point in dispute) that God can so plague a man in this world that the will not bring him to eternal destruction in Gehenna in the world to come: I grant that the eternal Lord can do what he pleaseth both in Heaven, Earth, Sea, and in all deep places, Ps. 135.6. 2. The same eternal Lord can also make a Heaven for his children here in this world, and never bring them to everlasting glory in Heaven, in the World to come: But Teachers, must not bring their own speculations, let them be true seers to show us the visions of God from his word rightly expounded, even his Reveled will, for nothing else belongs to us and to our children. 3. The holy Scriptures tells us that there is an everlawing blessed estate for all Gods chosen not hear but in the Heavenly paradise, though each blessing is here begun by justification, is freedom from sin, death, Satan; whence ariseth peace and joy in the holy Ghost, the first fruits of the spirit: In like sort there is a place appointed for the Reprobates, for their everlasting torment not hear, but in Hell, in the world to come, hut yet man) times some of these Reprobates have, as it were the first fruits of Hell torments here, in this world, by an accusing and tormenting conscience, as Kain, Caligula, etc. but not the essential Torments of Hell till they come into the very place of Hell itself. 4. And yet some have said that local Hell is but a circumstance, and that our Lord suffered penal Hell, though not in local Hell: In like sort they may as well affirm that the glorious place of Heaven in the world to come is but a circumstance, and so in this sense all created things in respect of God are but circumstances. 5. Is it well done to make this distinction and division of a penal Hell from a local Hell, our old English Saxon word. Hell, will not manage this cause, neither for Plaintiff nor Defendant. It is not Hades unto which our English Saxon word doth not answer but Gehenna, that ecclesiastics must clear about our Lords sufferings for all the Saints do in one kind or other undergo Hades in this world, and so our Lord did undergo Hades in two of its significations, namely first in the death of his humanity, and then after that death he was put in Hades the grave, and thirdly the wicked Ecclesia of he Council was a Gate of Hades to him, and so in like sort all wicked Courts are Gates of Hades: to the Godly Martyrs, & therefore such Courts are in Mat. 16. called the Gates of Hades, godly Martyrs must remember when they are going to such Courts that they are going to the Gates of Hades, and yet they must encourage themselves, and one another, with that speech which Christ spoke by his Spirit to the Churches in Apoc. 1. Fear not I have the Keys of Hades and death, and that he shown in his own Resurrection, and will one day in ours, so then persecuting Tyrants, have not power simply over the bodies of the godly, they could not retain Peter's body in Prison, Act. 12. nor the bodies of Paul and Sylas, Act. 16, Christ did not as yet grant leave to their persecutors to turn the Key to let them into Hades, though afterwards he did, Steven and James were the first Martyrs of the New Testament that were sent to Hades, and Christ Jesus was the last great Martyr of the Old Testament whom they sent to Hades, for the old Testament was not disannulled, but by his death. 6. It is a great comfort that persecuting Tyrants can send the godly no further but to Hades, they cannot send them to Gehenna, and if our ecclesiastics will Rest hear, we will, with good will, join with them both our hands and heart, that Christ Jesus underwent a penal Hades in this world: But I suppose they mean further matter, or else they mean nothing, as indeed their meaning in this distinction will come to nothing. 7. This than I conceive is the state of the question, Whether there is a penal Gehenna in this world out of local Gehenna in the world to come: I say that God's blessed Book doth not show this, and if any shall yet affirm it, we must be bold to say it is but a dream, not the Revelation of God, which evidently showeth that penal Gehenna is in local Gehenna. 8. Let these Scriptures be diligently marked for the place and punishment of Gehenna, Mat 5.22.29.30. Mat. 23. Mar. 9.43.45.47. Luk. 12.5. And now compare these Scriptures with the case of our Lords sufferings, whether any spark of the penal fire of Gehenna fell upon his soul or body? or whether that cursed worm did ever gnaw one minute of an hour on his spotless soul, as some dread not to affirm. 9 Hence the Reader may see the necessity of a right translation and exposition of the words Hades, Gehenna, etc. the learned keep the term Amen in all Translations, and many Greek words are commonly understood, and how full is the English of Latin words, see H. Bro. in L. Fam. 60. 10. Observe that in all the Evangelists, the holy Spirit doth not change phrases (as in other passages he doth) to put Hades for Gehenna, or Gehenna for Hades, neither is Hades taken properly and only in all the New Testament, for the cale of Reprobates: But still the person and his cause must judge of the matter where Paradise in Hades is the lot of the godly and Gehenna in Hades is the lot of the wicked. 11. Shall we say we deal worse than Papists about the holy Article of the Creed, they say the Lord went to H●ll to Triumph over the Devils and not to suffer: Let all the godly put away this misinterpretation of that holy Article, first, that Christ went to Hell only to Triumph over the Devils, and secondly, that poor jejune distinction (which doth not honour but dishonour the pen of a godly Scholar) of our Lords suffering Hell Torments in a penal Hell out of the local Hell. CHAP. XXXVI. Observations on the second Death which some say Christ suffered. 1. THE Lord Jesus did not undergo wrath as some understand it, of the Essential wrath of God, which also they term the second death, must not we understand that whatsoever is in God is God touching the holy deity; and therefore as God is love, that is essential love, so his wrath is essential wrath, and can we say that Gods essential love was ever on Christ, and therefore he is called his beloved Son or the Son of his love, Joh. 15.10. Act 2 25. yea, and that God loved him to the end as he loved the Brothers, Joh. 4. 2. When he was in that most lad agony, in the Garden, there was an Angel sent from Heaven to strengthen him, which doth evidence that he was not then under the second death, nor under essential wrath, for than it had been impossible for any Angel, or for all the Angels in Heaven to strengthen him or support him. 3. If he had suffered the second death which is indeed the effect of the essential wrath of God, he could not have said My God my God, why dost thou leave me, and, O my Father if it be possible let this cup pass, and Father forgive them, and Father into thy hands I commend my Spirit, neither could it be said that he did always behold the Lord at his right hand (as a loving Father) Act. 2. and that he did abide in the love of his Father, Joh. 10. 4. When did the Lord Jesus suffer the second death? was it before he died the first death, or after, or did he suffer both deaths together? if you say yea, then give me leave to ask who told you so, did the Apostles at the commandment of the everlasting God? Preach that Doctrine out of the Scriptures of the Prophets for the obedience of faith? show that Scripture evidence by Scripture rightly expounded, or did he suff●● the second death after the first? 5. When and where did the Lord of glory suffer the second death? if you prophecy to the going down of the Sun there will be no answer, many Ministers will have the Lord to suffer the second death before the first, or in, and with the first: They must exercise their wit (but there is no Divine Revelation) what to affirm, lest their imaginary Doctrine be lost. 6. We must know and that by Divine Revelation, that as there is a first death, so there is a second death, and that the second death must be after the first, or else if we by our wit and learning will affirm the contrary, we shall destroy God's order, but no acuteness of wit or learning shall ever be able to do that; what! shall man's subtle wit nullify the order of nature, of first and second, and the order of Divine Revelation which showeth that the first death is in this world, and the second death in the world to come. The Spirit of Christ said by john, He that overcometh (namely that overcometh the will of Tyrants by suffering the first death for the truth) shall nor be hurt of the second death. Apoc. 2.11. Lo, the second death is after the first, and in another world, and this doth more fully appear by Apoc. 20.14 and by Apoc. 6.7.8. which placles do show, first the place of punishment, secondly the punishment it fe●se, thirdly, the time when, fourthly, the company that shall he there heaped together, first, the place expressed is the lake, secondly, the punishment everlasting pain in fire and brimstone, thirdly, the time is at the last and great day of account when the Books shall be opened, fourthly, the company is the Devil, the Beast, the false Prophet, the fearful, the unbeleiving, the abominable, and murderers, and whore-mungers, and sorcerers, and idolaters, and all liars, etc. of which second death the Lord Jesus the holy one of God underwent to part. Therefore that Doctrine that saith so must be reprobated with the Reprobates. 7. The primitive Churches were admonished to take heed of running after Fables, and reformed Churches have as much need to look about them●men, yea, Scholars, yea, ecclesiastics are as subject now to fables and heresies as ever; it hath been observed that ecclesiastics have ever been the Founders of fables, errors, and heresies: The Apostle gave warning of this to the Bishops of the Churches, and tells them that of themselves men should arise speaking perverse things to draw Disciples after them, Act. 20. 8. Some have not traversed these paths as they should, because they have been so long instituted and catechised in the Doctrine of Hell-Torments, and that Christ the holy one of God was a sinner, yea, the vilest of sinners, and when they are by modest arguing put out of their beaten tract, they run wild and utter sesquipedalia verba, on their brothers, that have and do desire that they and their Children should walk with God in soundness of judgement, and in a godly and sober conversation. 9 Let it be further considered that the first death hath four parts, first, the death of the soul in sin, secondly the death of the body by sickness, thirdly, the separation of the soul from the body, fourthly, the putrefaction of the body: First the death of the soul is thus expressed, dead in Trespasses and Sins, Eph. 2.1.5. and so the Gospel is said to be preached to the dead in Sin, 1. Pet. 4.6. Secondly, the death of the body is effected by fire, water, sickness, etc. Thirdly, the body being dead, than the soul departs to the world of souls until the day of the Resurrection: Fourthly, the putrification of the body is evident by constant experience: The first part of this death, namely the death of the soul in Sin could not betid the Lord Jesus because of his ineffable conception in the sanctified womb: The second part the Lord Jesus underwent when he gave himself a Ransom for the many, when he was put to death as a Malefactor on the Tree; Thirdly his separated soul went from his dead body to the world of souls to the happy part of Hades, to Paradise, to Heaven. The fourth part of this first death the Lord did not undergo, his body saw no corruption, Act 2. 10. Now as no man may say that Christ was spiritually dead in Trespasses and Sins, so neither must they say that he under went the second death, none ever underwent the latter that had not first undergone the former. 11. I will cite two or three godly Authors that expound the second death. First, Mr. Ainsworth speaketh thus on the signification of the word death, in Gen. ●. 17. Finally death is the everlasting perdition of soul and body in Gehenna, from the presence of the Lord, and called the second death in Apoc. 2. & 20. & 21. Mat. 10.28. Mat. 9 he, saith Hell, but Gehenna is in the Text he citeth, therefore I dare be bold to put Gehenna for it, see his Notes on Ps. 16. and see his communion of Saints, last page. Secondly, Trelcatius saith, that by second death is meant Eternal death. Thirdly, Master Perkins in Gal. 3. speaking of the parts of the second death, saith, the second degree is an absolute separation from God, but saith he into this second degree of this death Christ entered not, because the Lord saith in the midst of his passion, my God my God, and saith he this absolute separation could not be without the dissolution of his personal union, Master Perkins was cautelous of going too far in the point of Carists sufferings, and yet it seems he would have the Lord to suffer a part of the second death, and he makes that part to be in this World, and the other part in the World to come (and that he suffered the first and second death together, or rather some part of the second death be fore the first) is this good Divinity, is this Doctrine Orthodox. 12. Master Perkins also saith in Gal. 3. That whole Christ Man-God, God-man was accursed, is not this another fearful speech, though with limitation, and some retractation as it were in the same breath, and yet all that he saith, doth not, nor cannot expiate the horror of the position. 13. Master Perkins also saith further on Gal. 3. The second death is a separation from God's favour and special love, whereby God ceaseth to be their God: This is the second death indeed: But now let any godly man, whether learned or un-learned, bethink himself, whether ever this did befall the humanity of the holy one of God. This speech conferred with some other men's, doth infer that Christ was not Christ for a time. 14. It is affirmed by some that Christ bore our deserved curse for our Redemption: But bring this general position to particulars, and then they make a stand, as first of the spiritual death in sin, secondly, touching the corruption of the body after death, and some are afraid to say that he suffered any part of the second death. 15. It is not man's inventions of Tantundem & Equivalency (as it is urged by some) touching the sufferings of Jesus Christ that will reach and fathom these things: The holy Scriptures are plain for our instruction and consolation, there we may see who hath Redeemed us, and how, and for what, and from what, and unto what: A godly man and diligent searcher into the Scriptures, affirmeth that he hath written thus, or to this sense, to a Reverend Divine, though I have formerly (saith he) used their expressions that oppose the idem, and affirm that Christ only suffered the Tantidem, because I clearly saw that their way of arguing was sufficient to confute them that affirm that Christ for our Redemption did suffer the essential Torments of Hell, yet notwithstanding (saith he) I do not fully approve of their way of arguing from the Tantundem (as if it were the right way of opening Christ's satisfaction, because they also run in the vindictive Court way of Justice (which is not the Scripture way) for most of them that are for the Tantundem (not all) do affirm that Christ suffered the vindictive wrath of God in some degree, according to the Court way of vindicative Justice, though yet they do also deny that Christ suffered Hell Torments. But the way of Christ's sufferings for our Redemption that I approve and follow, is this, namely that he suffered as a combater, from his malignant combater Satan, according to God's declaration of the combat of enmity, between the seed of the woman, and the seed of the Serpent, for God proclaimed a liberty to the Serpent's seed to pierce him in the footstools as a sinful Malefactor on the Cross: And therefore hence it follows, that all Christ's outward sufferings must be inflicted on him, from the enmity of his proclaimed enemy Satan. And secondly, hence it follows that his internal sufferings were from the sense of his outward, or Christ as he was true man, must be tenderly touched, and deeply affected with his evil usage, and therefore it was Gods will and Christ's own covenant, that all h●● internal humane passions of Fear, Sorrow, and sadness in his vital and animal soul, should arise from the evil usage of his malignant combater Satan (namely from the evil usage of Satan's malicious and envious instruments) And thirdly, this way of Christ's sufferings was in God's wisdom ordained to be for his priestly perfection, or for his consecration, before he could make his death to be a most perfect Sacrifice, and this way I believe hath more sound footing from God's declaration, in Gen. 3.15. than the contrary Court way of vindictive Justice, and I believe that all other after Scriptures that speak of Christ's sufferings are but a commentary on God's declaration, in Gen. 3.25. And therefore Gen. 3.15. must be the Standard that must rule and order all our interpretations. Thus he. 16. Let men therefore take heed how they force belief, they know not what, about Hell Torments, and let them not think that what they writ and speak, Ex Cathedra, must be believed of Hearers without double control or examination, truly it is natural to ecclesiastics to affect supremacy, it is as proper a sin to them by nature, as Tyranny is to magistracy. 17. But the Lord Jesus is come down to see the buildings of our instructors, and in some things he doth confound their Language, but I hope and pray that he will also be pleased to send fiery cloven tongues to sit on them, and to touch their lips with a live coal from the Altar to take away all iniquity, that we in our own Language may hear them speak the wonderful works of God. And I doubt not but in due time, our only Doctor Christ will so inform them that they will say with holy Job, once have I spoken but I will not answer, yea twice, but I will proceed no further, I have uttered that which I understood not, things too wonderful for me which I knew not. CHAP. XXXVII. Some Observation on 2. Cor. 5.19, 20, 21. with Gal. 3.13. SECT. 1. He made him to be sin for us which knew no sin, that we might be made the Righteousness of God in him. 1. THe Translation must be considered: It had been well if our godly and learned Translators had rendered it, he made him to be a Sin-offering for us, for so the Geneva * I suppose two millions of Geneva Bihles ●ave been Printed, that have conferred 2. Cor. 5.21. to Exod. 29.14. Translation teacheth to render it, and understand it: I think near a year a go, citing 2. Cor. 5.21. to Exod. 29.14. That phrase, He made him to be sin for us is an Ebraisme; for in the old Testament, the Sin-offering is ordinarily called sin (and no more) but the word Offering is added by our Translators, and by the like Reason it should have been a●ded in 2. Cor. 5.21. and Master Ainsworth in Ps. 40. showeth that it is so to be understood where the same Hebraisme is used, but fully expressed in Heb. 10 Sacrifices for sin, so we have the Translation of the holy Ghost. And if our godly Translators had so Translated, 2. Cor. 5. 21. they had not done amiss, seeing we have such warrant, yea, themselves so translate it in Exod. 29.14 etc. The like Ebraisme in Esai. 53.10. when thou shalt make his soul a Trespass, namely a Trespasse-offering, but the Seventy translate it sin, and then the words must run thus, When thou shalt make his soul sin, that is to say, a Sin-offering, just as it should be in 2. Cor. 5.21. The like Ebraisme is in Dan. 9.24. there the Messiah is said by his death to finish Trespass, and to end sin, that is to say, to finish Trespasse-offering, and to end Sin-offering, these things considered, our Translators had done worthily if they had rendered 2. Cor. 5.21. He made him to be a Sin-offering for us. 2. So Rom. 8.3. Should have been rendered, and by a sacrifice for sin condemned in the flesh. It is well it is in the margin, for what sense (according to our language) is it to say— by sin condemned sin. All tongues have their proper idioms, and we have been taught in our youths in the Grammar Schools diligently to make it, and so it must be in translation of the more learned tongues. This had been plain for us common readers, and so it might have been read of us and our children from their infancy. If this had been so translated, and had been familiar to all our Ministers in their tender years, there would not have been such collections as this. That God made him sin, that is, (say many) God made him a sinner, yea a most vile sinner by imputation in God's account, and many such orthodox expressions are used. 3. The common tenet, which many Divines (not all) from this Text of 2 Cor. 5.21. is, that as our sins are imputed to Christ, so his righteousness, (meaning his obedience to the Moral Law) as most say, is imputed to us. But it is very questionable whether we ought so to teach or believe, for than he is as really a sinner, as we are righteous by him, the reciprocation calleth for that sense, but we may not so say, for his righteousness maketh a change in our state and condition, but the reciprocation calls for thoughts of derestation, the ear cannot endure it. 4. Hence it is, that some Ministers in their Rhetorical amplifications speaking of our sins imputed to Christ, say that Christ was the vilest sinner that ever was; that the essential curse and plague of God pursued Christ with Hue and Cry as a sinner, and therefore they may say, (and it may be some have said) go Hue and Cry, as to attach Ch●istum illum Atheon, Christum illum Dei cultus corruptorem, illum hominem blasphemum, illum Sabbati vinato●em, illum bominem parentibus ●jus non obs●quentem: pursue with Hue & Cry Christum illum homicidum, illum mo●chum soedum & ●o●nicatorem so●d●dum mollem, concabitantem masculinis, illum surem, raptorem, & latronem, illum soenoratorem, conterentem, & pervell●ntem, illum convi●iatorem, detract●rem, & misere perjucatum, illum hominem temper aliorum proprietatum ●varum & ●upientem. Whose ear doth not tingle? Thus some may please themselves to roll in blasphemous Rhetoric. And it should be most abominable to have such words as some have in book and Pulpit. 5. To such Doctrine men have brought themselves about imputations, so to impute (as some teach) our sins to, Christ, is to impart, Mr. Anthony worton (de reconcil) showeth such Doctrine is not orthodox. communicate or make common to him, with us our unconformity to God and his Law: so that he thereby shall be unholy and unjust, both in habit and quality, inwardly and ourwardly in action, and thus it comes to pass, that we making him a sinner, as them of the Priesthood of L●vi who offered for their own sins as for the peoples, but the Holy of Holies, Christ Jesus our high Priest, at that time of offering up himself, was holy, harmless, und●fi●ed, separate s●om sinners, and made higher than the heavens. So his holy Priesthood was infinitely transcend it above the persons and Priesthood of Levi, but some men's Doctrines woul● make him like them. 6. This Doctrine of Hue and Cry, for aught we ever yet did see, must be pursued with Hue and Cry out of Schools, studies, books, and Pulpits, But let us a little further examine what this Hue and Cry tends to, with its great noise. When the hour of our blessed Redeemer was near at hand, no Hue and Cry needed, for he set his face to go to Jerusalem, and said to his Disciples, that he went to be delivered to the sons of men, wicked sinners, and that they would crucify him, Mat. 20. Luke 18. He was sent of the Father, and came of purpose to give his life for his sheep: and when they came to apprehend him, he did not shift nor deny his name, as malefactors do, that are pursued with Hue and Cry, but he asked with a constant mind, whom seek ye? They said, Jesus of Nazareth, than he said, I am he, with which speech there went such an energy, that they fell in a swound to the ground, and there might have lain, unless he had given them leave to rise out of their swound: Then again he asked them, whom seek ye? and offered himself willingly. Pilate with his Romans and Jews could not have had power over him, but by dispensation from above, that is, of Christ himself, with the Father, and the Holy Ghost, for the Lord Jesus had said to Peter, Thinkest thou, that I cannot now pray to my Father, and he shall presently give me more than twelve legions of Angels, Mat. 26. Thus far of the idle expression of Hue and Cry, of which there can be no defence. The Phrases, illustrations, and expressions of the holy Scriptures are most seriously transcendent, and so full that that we need not be so enamoured with our black pin feathered young birds. SECT. 2. Of the several Curses spoken of in Deut. 21.23. and in Deut. 27.26. and in Gal. 3.13. 1. THE Apostle in Gal. 3.13. doth not prosecute the eternal curse cited in verse 10. from Deut. 27.26. But he goeth to another Text for another curse, namely to Deut. 21.23. which is not the eternal curse. For who is able to say, the seven sons and Nephews of Saul died out of the Covenant of God in Christ, therefore none can say, they had the essential and eternal Curse: yet they underwent the Curse of the Law, in Deut. 21.23. for the evil deeds that saul's house had done to the Gibeonites, which brought the Curse of famine on the whole Nation. And so the repenting thief had the curse of God inflicted on him by the gods, the Judges of the Nation, according to Deuteronomy 21.23. 2. If the Apostle had not expressed himself further for any other curse, than Deut. 27. there had not been so much doubt, but seeing he allegeth Deut. 21.23. and doth not dilate on Deut. 27. As God's essence is love, so God's essence is hatred and curse. doubtless he would not have us to think, that the Son of God our holy Mediator underwent that eternal curse that he spoke of in verse 10. He knew it was impossible the most Holy One could suffer the eternal and essential Curse: for he was not the Holy One of God, as touthing humanity only, but in respect of the personal Union of the Divine and humand nature, therefore that speech of Mr. Perkins upon Gal. 3.13. must slot be entertained of the people of God. Whole Christ, Man God, God-Man was cursed, this is an evil saying, although we speak it with retractation, as he doth presently, but his retractation and limitation will not expiate the sin of his former Doctrine. 3. Was it nothing, that the Son of God, the Lord of glory, should so humble himself, as to suffer such shame from the Seed of the Serpent before the Angels of heaven, and men on earth, as Psal. 69. speaketh, Thou hast known my reproach, my shame and my dishonour, mine adversaries are all before thee. Reproach hath broken mine heart, and I am full of heaviness, and I looked for some to take pity, but there was none, and for comforters, but I sound none. Is this nothing, when the Holy of all holiness gave his body and blood a Sacrifice for sin, through such great shame and Sufferings. 4. What would you have us to say? That our blessed Mediator underwent the second death, we dare not say so, absit, absit; it is to be detested. Will you have us to say, that we may say, that the Son of God was not Christ for a time, when he suffered such sorrows as you intimate? This also hath no analogy of faith with Divine revelation, but contradicteth, for it is most blasphemous. Belike our Teachers have this theology from the Philosophers. Due Pless. Trueness of Christian Religion, page 82. Will you have us to say, that the Godhead of the person of Christ hated and cursed his humanity, as you understand curse, this is as full of trembling to be spoken, as the vilest speech that ever was spoken. 5. What shall we say? Tell us from sound Judgement, in few words, from Divine revelation. These Tenets and others, though from some godly Ministers must not be received but contradicted, and contended against, as not of the faith once given to the Saints, but indeed we may as well span the heavens, and dig the Tehom of the first day's Creation, and gather the wind into a sack, and measure the earth with inches, yards, and perches, as to search into these things, and yet we dare affirm the imaginations, and declare the wading of our own never-seen visions. 6. The doctrine of imputation (as some teach it) to make the Holy and Just One, a sinner, hath bred all this stir and trouble. 7. Reverend Teachers of salvation, do not think we beseech you, that out of any sinister end and purpose we thus write, but out of conscience. We know we ought not to maintain error, much less foul here sie, neither ought we to be silent at other men's errors, but to contest for the truth. The Lord Jesus will witness for his poor servants, that we have not written of perverse pravity. As for 2 Cor. 5.21. time I know will wear out some men's interpretations, and sound disquisition will qualify men's minds for the other: and if this fort of mis-interpetation of 2 Cor. 5. be demolished, other things will more easily yield upon quiet parley. 8. In doth not relish well to make Christ a sinner by God's imputation; for the holy Scriptures snew, that at the instant time of his sufferings, he was not in God's account a sinner, nor in the Apostles account (though in wicked men's account he was) and therefore Peter chargeth them with a just and heavy crimination, Ye denied the Holy One and the Just, and again he saith. 1 Pet. 3. He suffered for us, the just for the unjust, that he might bring us to God. He could not have given us manuduction to God the Father, unless he himself had been just. And again at the very time when he offered a propitiatory Sacrifice for sin, he was JESUS CHRIST, the righteous; therefore it cannot be thought he was accounted of God a sinner. Christ Jesus our Lord, the holy of holy, stood not in the state and place of a sinner (as some understand sinner) but as of a Mediator of atonement between God and man for sia. Christ Jesus the Holy One must not be stated of us a sinner, but a Mediateur according to that Law of M●diation, transacted between the Father and him, Heb. 10.7, 8, 9 Psal. 40. and 110. Heb. 7.8. and 9 and this Text of 2 Cor. 5.21. doth evince the same, as is most evident. SECT. 3. THerefore to go on with this most blessed Scripture. He was made a a sin offering for us who knew no sin, that we may be made the righteousness or freedom of God in him. 1. Q. How are we made the righteousness or freedom of God? Answ. God the Father doth justify, doth set free, doth forgive, doth pardon the guilt and punishment of our sins, for his dear sons sake, the sins of all that by faith receive Christ Jesus, and rest on him as the Mediator of our Redemption. This is God the Father's justification, and plentiful Scriptures are answerable, Christ his perfect sin-offering hath procured this justification, righteousness or freedom, mercy, forgiveness and atonement from God the Father; therefore it is said, the righteousness or freedom of God, which is by the faith of Jesus Christ unto all, and upon all that believe, and this righteousness or freedom, is freely bestowed by God the Father, through Christs-Redemption, and through faith in his blood. 2. This is. (as is said) to declare God the Father's Righteousness, or freedom through the Remission of sins, Rom. 3.25, 26. and David and Abraham are brought in for this justification, righteousness, or freedom in Rom. 4. and all Rom. 5. duth not add any new matter to make our justification more complete, but only makes most heavenly deductions from the Doctrine of justification completely laid down in chap. 3.21. to the end of that chapter. 3. The Apostle to the Philippians utters this point most heavenly, and might be found in him, not having mine own righteousness or freedom, dicaiosune, which is of the Law (ex opere operato) but that which is through the faith of Christ, even the freedom, (or righteousness, dicaiosune) of God [the Father] through faith, Phil. 3. 4. Beloved Reader, the unbelieving Rabbins of the Jews did think to justify or free themselves from sins, Observe the pharasaical righteousness Luke 18. 〈◊〉 Mark 7. guilt and everlasting purishment, by their (ex opere operato) bodily exercises of Sacrifices and washings, and contribution * Exod. 30.12. etc. compare with Pet. 18. John 6. of silver, etc. in these exteriours they would be exact and unrebukeable, and they thought and taught the worship of God was so terminated. But our Apostle Paul after that Christ had revealed himself unto him, and had revealed the idol and vanity of his Pharasaisme, he would have no other freedom or righteousness, but that wrought by Christ, when he sacrificed himself, and gave his flesh and blood to be our bread and drink, life, atonement, washing and redemption: For the Apostle had before this written to the Hebrews that it was impossible the blood of bulls and goats, or any Mosaical sprinklings could cleanse the conscience from the guilt of sin, and this he had testified long before this to the Jews in their Synagogues, as we may see, Acts 13.38, 39 * They did wonder and stumble and perish, when the Apostle taught this Doctrine, showing all their bodily exercise was lost labour: therefore this Doctrine they thought aught ought to be persecuted to the death: as destroying and making void the Law, Mat. 5.17. and Rom. 3.31. Acts 22.4. & 26.9. be it known to you therefore men and Brethren, that through this Man is preached unto you the forgiveness of sins, and by him all that believe are justified (freed, or set free) from all things from which ye could not be set free (or freed) by the Law of Moses. This Text doth show what is our justification, or freedom, even forgiveness of sins. Reader, study the Scriptures, and be acquainted with the term justfi●ed, that is freed. And so it is translated in Rom. 6 7. Again Gal. 5. 1, 2, 3, 4. must be well considered, the false Teachers did persuade the Galathians to be circumcised, not knowing their deceit; for if they thought circumcision was of absolute necessity, they were to sacrifice and do all the rites of Moses, that circumcision did initiate them unto, and so they must deny Christ and his Priesthood for ending all Moses, and so christ could profit nothing, for they were bound to observe the whole Law, that is all that the Priesthood of Levi taught them, and so Christ is of no effect, for if they thought by the Law ceremonial or moral, ex opere operato, to be justified, Christ would be of no comfort to them; by this Tenent they denied the grace of free justification by Christ, mind also, Gal. 4 9, 10. 5. Let it be considered from this time forward concerning this point of justification, whether it be not better to use the terms and phrases, setteth free, freeth and freedom; for, seeing our godly, learned, do so translate in some places, we may have Christian liberty so to render and interpret the Noun and the Verb of the Greek in other places, if it may be done with rational understanding according to the analogy of faith. 6. God was in Christ reconciling the world to himself, not imputing their trespasses unto them. The Apostle saith to Philemon, If Onesimus oweth thee aught, compute, count or reckon it to mine account. The word I suppose is the same, a meraphor from debts in books, therefore may it not better be said for clearing doctrine, not counting, not computing, not reckoning their trespasses unto them, in the words, impute, compute, count, or reckon, is not much difference, so the point be cleared to our understanding. 7. Our sins are called debts, which we cannot justify or free ourselves from, nor pay or satisfy for, by all the means that we can use, as from ourselves, and we are naturally so vile, that we care not to be reconciled, and therefore naturally we care not for the word of reconciliation, but are enemies to God, and have a very ill opinion of God, because of love to our sinful appetites, and because of the soulness of offences, which the conscience doth accuse us of. 8. But our merciful God, heavenly Father, determined a way from all eternity to reconcile us to himself, by sending his dear son, a second Adam, to take humanity and in humanity to give himself to death for us, a sacrifice offering of a sweet smelling savour, and for this sacrifice of his beloved son, he doth not count, he doth not reckon our debts and trespasses to us, but doth pardon them, doth forgive them, doth justify us, that is, doth free us from the guilt and * In all these speeches, it is not to be understood temporally, although by the blood of the Covenant, we are comforted in all conditions Zach 9.11 but chief still to be under stood of eternal freedom, redemption, and salvation, Dan. 9.24. Adoption is the fruit of redemption, Gal. 4. punishment of them, and this he doth to all that by the word of reconciliation, are by the mighty work of the Spirit perlwaded to embrace by faith Christ Jesus, the Mediator sent down from heaven from the Father, to be our Prophet, Priest and King, and they that so receive Christ, and believe in him shall have this dignity, to be called Gods adopted children in Christ, and by this most glorious Grace of adoption in the Son of God, believers are stated into a most joyful capacity of being heirs to the inheritance of the Saints in light, for that the spirit of God doth by the same word of reconciliation regenerate them or cause them to be borne again, not of blood, nor of the will of the flesh, nor of the will of man, but of God, to serve God in their spirits in the Gospel of his Son, and so to be meet persons for that inheritance. This was the sum of the Apostles message in his ambassage to the Gentiles. 9 God the Father doth justify for Christ's sake as the first person, for he is the first cause in order of the persons, the father is the first efficient. 2. The Lord Jesus Christ doth justify us as the meritorious cause, and so he is the second efficient, this maketh the Apostle often to say, Grace be with you, and peace from God the Father, and from the Lord Jesus Christ, (the son of the Father, 2 John 3.) and the Holy Ghost proceeding from the Father and the son, doth regenerate us, and qualify us with the grace of faith, as the condition of applying the said justification, and doth seal to our hearts God the Father's justification from the son's redemption. 10. Dicaiosune is the effect of dicaiontai, Acts 13.39. justification (or setteth free) and freedom, differ as the form and applying of the form to the subject. Dicaioumenoi, etc. is the act of God the Father, upon, or to a believing soul, freeing him from the guilt and punishment of sin for the merit of Christ's sacrifice; also dicaiosune, is that freedom, that God the Father bestowed upon the repenting and believing Apostle Paul, Phil. 3. So dicaiosune is the effect of dicaioumenoi and diacontai, the freedom that a godly soul finds in himself, from God that justifieth or setteth free, and the holy Ghost by the word of * The holy spirit dothregenerate by the word John 3. Ephes. 5. Tit. 3. and by this new birth, saith and all other graces are manifested. reconciliation doth work faith, which doth ovidence that soul to be the subject of that freedom, as Gal. 2. and although every godly man hath not (as himself apprehends) that Plerosoria, yet he knows his heart is reconciled to God, to love the Lord and his ways, and doth rest on the Promises of God in Christ for salvation, and only by him. 11. This I suppose, may be thus illustrated, a King's son, that is obedient to all his father's commands, hath a promise, that for such and such performances he shall obtain his favour for any Traitor that he shall please to intercede for, thereupon he doth by the virtue of his Father's promise and his performance intercede the King's dicaiosis, justification of the said Traitor, and the King doth justify, that is, doth pardon, setteth him free from the guilt of his sin and punishment, provided he will repent and accept the said pardon, and therefore that he may be the subject of the said pardon, he doth repent, believe it, and accept it, and so comes out of prison, and when he hath this pardon and freedom under seal granted him, he may truly say, here is my dicaiosune. Justification, freedom and pardon from my guiltinesses and punishment due for them, he will not say, nor cannot say, the personal righteousness, honesty and obedience of the King's son is reckoned to him (for his righteousness) but this is all his righteousness, (and it is enough) even pardon and freedom from his offence and the desert of it, and received into favour, this it a complete atonement and reconciliation, through the King's sons intercession, the offender is not only pardoned, but also is restored to his former, yea to a greater honour and favour with the King, and what can he desire more for the comfort of a subject. From all which, the Delinquent, if he have any ingenuity, will show much love both to the King and his son, and will ever render himself a faithful and trusty servitor. 12. So then God's reconciliation hath these two parts, justification, Acts 26.18. Rom. 8.7. Col 1. that is, the freedom from the guilt and punishment of sin, and receiving into favour or adoption to the heavenly inheritance. 13. And thus I think I have made it evident from 2 Cor. 5. that the not counting our sins to us, but freeing us from them, and pardoning them is the justification or freedom of God the Father, that he freely vouchsafeth to poor sinners, so verese 19 conferred with v. 21. do open one the other plain and easy for God's people to understand. Surely, the holy, sweet, blessed Scriptures rightly conferred are like a benevolent constellation. 14. Let God's people consider what in this translation and explication of 2 Cor. 5. is derogatory to the mediation of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, or derogatory to the comfort of the Saints all their life, or on their death beds for the hope of immortal glory. Much more might be said, but often we darken God's counsel by our words. When things are plain, some Ministers make them harder, and far more knotty than the Text. 15. We may suppose, if from this time forwards God's people be exercised to read the Text of 2 Cor. 5.19, 21. it will not be amiss thus to read it, God was in Christ reconciling the world unto himself, not counting their trespasses to them; for he made him to be a sinne-offering for us who knew no sin, that we might be made the righteousness (or freedom) of God in him. 16. By that time godly, Christians have been accustomed to read 2 Cor. 5.21. a sinne-offering, and rightly understand the terms, justification righteousness, setteth free, vnd freedom. And not counting or not reckoning, or not imputing our trespasses to us, I say by the time of 80 years moe, the people of God will come to a more clear and perfect judgement in the wonderful mysterious Doctrine of a sinner's justification. 17. The terms and Phrases of Justice, righteousness, and justification, are exceeding variously understood, and have been largely handled by divers learned Authors, to whom I refer the Reader, I will instance one Text, wherein the word Righteousness, or Justification, is different from the justification of vindicative Courts, and more like to the justification of voluntary Courts, sometimes are ordained for the trials of combaters, in Apoc. 19.8. To her was granted that she should be arrayed in fine Linen, clean and white, for the fine Linen is the Righteousness of the Saints, this Text is often alleged for the imputation of Christ's legal Righteousness to sinners, to vindictive Courts of Justice, but if the coherence be well looked into, it will appear to have another sense, which is this: The Beast and his marked made the Church mourn in Sack cloth, Apoc. 11. But when the Beasts polity shall be conquered by the constancy of godly Martyrs and Professors, than the Church shall rejoice, and white Garments are here given as a sign of that, so then the Garments of fine Linen, and white was given to signify the Church's joy because of her freedom from the power of those dark and black afflictions that were under the Beasts polity, and for the better understanding of this, read Hest. 4 3. and 8.15, 16. 2. In this sense also must Apoc. 7.9.13, 14. be expounded, for there the Church had been in great afflictions by the Caesar's for 300 years, but by Constantine's special grace and favour, and by the victorious constancy of the godly, the Church had deliverance, and therefore white robes are given to show their great joy for that deliverance and victory. 3. The Robe of (Tz●dek) Righteousness in Isa. 61.10. is translated by the 70. the robe of joyfulness, according to the true sense and meaning of the context, for in v. 1. Christ is anointed with the spirit of the Lord, for this end, namely to preach good tidings to the meek, to bind up the broken hearted, to proclaim liberty to the captives, and the opening of the prison to them that are bound, and in v. 2. to proclaim the acceptable year of the Lord, and to comfort all that mourn, and in v. 3. to give them beauty for ashes, the oil of joy for mourning, the garment of praise for the spirit of heaviness, and in verse 7. he doth promise that everlasting joy shall be upon them, and then in v. 10. the said poor broken hearted Converts do with exultation say thus, I will greatly rejoice in the Lord, my soul shall be joyful in my God, for he hath clothed me with the garments of salvation, he hath covered me with the robe of righteousness, but the 70 (according to the context both before and after, translate it, he hath covered me with the robe of joyfulness, it is called a robe of righteousness in respect of the perrformance of the promise, which was to give the sweet comforts of God. spirit to poor and humbled souls by the preaching of the gospel, and in respect of the sense the said comforts to the converted soul, it may be called the robe of joyfulness, as the Seventy render it, and we may see an example of this robe of righteousness, how it was also a robe of gladness and joyfulness at the conversion of the prodigal son, in Luk. 15.22, 23, 24, 32. 18. This Translation and explication of 2 Cor. 5.21. and of the other Scriptures cited, will rid us of no small trouble, and I hope it will rid others also of doubtings of the truth of the Doctrine of justificatiif they will but with patiented study, mind and mark the true scope and meaning of the Scriptures. I do freely acknowledge, that several Institutions, Common places Catechisms, etc. have been, is, and are a great mercy to the Church of God and shall be while the world standeth: But yet the Lord would have us to try all things, and wisely to hold that which is good. I say also that there are many godly and learned men, some that are departed this life, and some that are yet living that have expounded 2 Cor 5.21. to the same effect as I have done, and I make no question but the generality of our godly Ministers, will in due time be so proselited also, for there is no standing out long against divine reason, where true godliness and true learning doth bare sway: I mean such as will take the pains of the mind to dive into the true sense and scope of the text, and will see it with their own and not with other men's eyes. CHAP. XXXVIII. Our Lord's genealogic conferred with the times of the Judges and with the King. The first, Adam Seth Enosh Kenan Mahalaleel Jared Henoch Methuselah Lamech. Gen. 8. chapters Noah in his 600 years was the flood and the world 1656 years old. Whose are the Fathers, &c of whom concerning the Flesh Christ came who is God over all, blessed for ever Rom. 9 Sem. Arphaxad. S●lah Heber Pel●g Regu Serug Nahor Gen. 9.10, and 11 chapters. Terah he died 427 years after the flood the world than 2083 years old, For he in no sort took on him the angel's nature, but he took on him the seed of Abraham, Heb. 7. Abraham Isaac Jacob Judah Phares Hezron Aram Amminadab The rest of Gen. & Exod. to the 12 ch. of Job Naasson a Prince of Judah in the wilderness 430 years from the promise, Gen. 12.2, 3. to the coming from Egypt, the world than 2513 years old. It is evident our Lord sprang out of Judak, Heb. 7.14. Naasson begat Salmon Boaz Obeb Jessai David Solomon Exod. Levit Numbers Deut. joshua, judges, Ruth, 1. and 2 Samel, and Psalms, and 1 Kings to the 〈◊〉. chap and 1 Chron. Remember that Jesus Christ, of the seed of David was raised from the dead, according to my Gospel, 2 Tim. 2. The incarnation and the Resurrection are the Basis of all, and should be better remembered, and more taught. The Cronology of the Judges and their oppressors The Judges and oppressors mentioned in the book of Judges, all which were contemporary with Solomon, Boaz, Obed; I●ss●i. judges. Othoniel 40. Ehud 80. Shamgar 40. Deborah 40. Barak 40. Jael 40. Gideon 40. Abimelech 3. Tholah 23. Ia●r 22. Iephth●h 6. Ibsan 7. Elon 10. Abdon 8. Samson 20. Eli 40 399 Oppressors. Chusan 8. Eglon 18. jabin 20. Midian 7. Ammon 18. Phil●st. 40. 111. 339 450 And after that he ga●●● unto them ●udges after a sort 450 years, until Samuel the Prophet, Act 13.20. Kings of Israel, King, of judah jeroboam Nadab Baasa Elab Z●m●i, Tibni Om●i Achab Achaziah brethren joram brethren I●hu Io●ch●z loash Ie●ob●am Zacha●iah Shal●um Menachem P●chaiah Pe●ab Hosea David Solomon R●bo●m Abiam Asa josaphat joram A●haziah Athal●ah loash Amaziah Vzziah Jo●ham A●h●z Hezekiah Manasses Amon J●s●●s J●h●jakim Iech●nias Zedekiah in his 11 yea the city jerusalem was taken by N●buchadnezzar, & it and the Temple burned, and that was 427 years from the foundation of it, Bab●l tyrannised full 50 years moe, than the world as 3470 years old. Saint Matthew follows Sal●mons line, to show Christ's Right to the Kingdom of Israel, for Sal●mons line failing in J●chonias, who made S●lathiel his ●●ir, as next of ri●h●. 1 Kings And some of 2 Chr. ' ro. Ec●l. Canticles. Kin. and the rest of Chr & for the kings ‛ Judah and Israel. jonah Hosea joel ●m●s Esaias Micah Nahum Habbakuk ●z●phan●ah Jerem. Lam. Daniel Ezekiel Ohadiah Nathan Mattatha Mainan M●lea Elia●im jonan joieph judah simeon Levi Matthat I●rim Eliezer jose E● Elmodam Cosam Ad●i Melchi Ne●i Salathiel Ped●jah Of these Father's concerning the flesh, Christ came, who is God over all bless●d for ever, Amen. Z●robabel, he was made Prince of I●dah by Cy●u●. Cy●us in the first year of his Reign over Judah, made a Proclamation for the Jews return from Captivity with Zorobabel: from which Proclamation to the doath of our Lord and blessed Saviour Jesus Christ, are 70 Sevens, or 409 years, than the world was 3960. years old. The Kingdom of Israel continued 327 years under 19 or 20 Kings, most of them were stained with the sin of jeroboam that caused Israel to sin, their Royal descen●● changed nine times. The Kingdom of Ashur ended their apostatical Kingdom, and carried the ten Tribes beyond Babel, and so made them Lo-ammi, no● people, that is, not God's people but they were made God's people by the preaching of the apostles, of the Circumcision, Rom. 9.1 Pet. 2.10. Then they looked on him whom they pierced, the last King of Israel was in the days of Hezekiah, King of judah, Pro. 28.2. Tibni stood in competition with Omri for the Kingdom of Israel, but he was not sole King, so he is not reckoned, but if he be, than there is 20. Kings. ZOROBABEL. Abihud Eliak●m Azor Sadoc Acbim Eliud Eleaza● Matthan jacob joseph the husband of the blessed Virgin Mary. St. Matthew follows these of Zorobabel to show Christ's right to the Kingdom of Israel. Ezra, Nehemiah, Esther, Haggai, Zachar. Malachi, daniel's Prophecies, and the stories of the Bear, Leopard, and the fourth Beast, their rising, fall, and afflictions of the Saints of them, the high Trinity, etc. all are in the time of the Seventy-sevens; at the ending of which, the World was three thousand nine hundred and sixty years old, Rhesa. Joanna Ju●ah Joseph Sem●i Mattathias Maach Nag Esly Nahum Amos Mattathias Joseph Janna Melchi Levi Matthat Eli Mary Jesus Christ the second Adam. O● these from Z●r●ba●el did the Lord Jesus Christ take humanity, Luke 3. A little pains in observing the Geneology of Genesis, and this of our Lord will be of great use: you shall find them the Pillars of story both to Geography, Chronology, and to all Narrations through the whole Bible. Labour to wade into the depth of our Lord's Geneology: there is not more use of the Stars of Heaven, than there is of our Lords Ancestors, who all shine like Stars in the holy Story. Let no man think that his Geneology is condemned as Endless, which the Spirit of endless Wisdom hath indicted in his holy Volume. But let all that hope for life know the Family of whom the Lord of life descended, No Family in the World, nor altogether match it; therefore give glory to it. The first fourteen Fathers of our Lord in Mat. 1. do abridge all the holy History from Gin: 1●. to 1 King. 1. The next fourteen do abridge all the Kings and Chronicles, and all the Prophets, except Aggi, Z●chary, Malachi, Ezra, Nehemah, Esther, and most of Daniel: whose Chronology doth stop the mouth of the lying Heathen Chronologie. The third fourteen doth abridge the last named Prophets with much of Daniel, & they make a Commentary for the honour of Zorobabels' house, for whom our Lord face on a fiery Throne to cast the Chaldeans, Medo persians, Macedonians, and S●le●co Lagid● into eternal flames; that so Matthews last fourteen might have an heavenly glory to begin the new Testament, for though their persons were base in the fight of the base World, yet in the holy Angels account, they were Kings of Heaven, Dan: 7.18. Japhets seven Sons and seven Nephews. Gomer Magog Madai Javan Tubal Mesec Thiras Ashcanaz Riphath Togarmah Elishah Tha●shish Kittim Dodanim Cham's Sons and Nephews. Chush Sheba Havilah Sabbatha Regma Sabtecha Sheba Dedan Nimrod Milzraiun still translated Egypt. Ludim Anamim Lehabiim Naphtuchim Pathrusim Castuchim Captorim Philistin Put. Chanaan. Sidon Heth jebusi Aemori Gargasi Hivi Arki Sini A vadi Zemari Hamatbi Sem's Sons and Nephews. Elam Ashur Arphaxad, Sela, Heber Lud Us, Gether Aram Chul, Mash Heber Peleg, Regu, Serug, Nahor, Terah joktan thirteen Sons. joktans thirteen Sons. Elmodad Shalaph Hazahmaneth jerah Hadoram Vzal Diklah Obal Ahimael Sheba Ophir Hanilah johab It is thought the East and West Indians come of these of joktan, because both of them (as Learned say) speak some Hebrew. And the high God is doubtless laying a foundation of comfort for them for their calling to the Gospel. All the Hebrew stories of the old Testament, go upon the Families of Noah's Sons and Nephews, and on the latter offsprings of Terah. It is very necessary for us to mark how the Prophets express these families by their wars, or by their merchandise, or by their calling to the Gospel, Esa: 11. & 66. Ez●k: 27. & 38. etc. All these wicked families despising the Tents of Sem, a King of justice and Peace, were cast off by the confusion of Tongues 2000 yea. and were Lo-ruchama and Lo ammi, not pitied, and no people; that is, nor God's Church, nor people: and did no more hear the Gospel, till the true King of justice and Peace turned that curse of Tongues to a blessing, and to gather his Elect from among them, Acts 2. Then all those families were blessed in Christ, as it was foretold to Abraham, Gen. 12.3. Ter●●, Gen. 11.26, 27. Haren. Lot Moab-Ruth Of him all the Kings of Judah from Rehoboham. Ammon— Of him all the Kings of Judah from Rehoboham. Milcha Sarai Nah●r, of Milcha and Reumah. Uz Kemuel Hazo jidlaph Tebah Tahash Buz (of him Elibu.) Chesed Pildath Bethuel Laban Sons, Lea Rachal Rebecca Sons, Lea Rachal Gaham Maachah Abraham Of Sarah, Isaac Esau, vide his genealogy, Gen. 36. Jacob, of him the twelve Patriarches. Of Hagar, Ishmael, of him twelve Dukedoms in the Land of Chush. They drove Chush further into the South. Of Keturah Zimran Sheba Dedan Ashurim Letushim Leummim jokshan Medan Midian Epha Epher, Abidah Henoch, Eldaah Ishbak Shuach (of him Baldad.) Gen. 12.3. The Apostle opens the blessings in the Epistles to Rome, Corinth, Galatia, Ephesus, Philippi, Colosse, etc. then us Gentiles were Ruchamah, pitied, and a people, Ammi. All these Families were scattered East, West, North, and South, by the confusion of Tongues, for many Generations, and followed Devils, the Prince of the darkness of this world, but being blessed in Christ, by the blessing of Tongues, to be of Abraham's faith, they came from East, West, North, and South, to sit down with Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob in the Kingdom of Heaven, Matth. 8.11. Luke 14.29 The Posterities of these families shown the corruption of nature received from parents, manifesting it by their Idolatries and hatred against Israel, one after another: first by Cham's house, then Sem's, than japhets. And unless the Lord Jesus Christ had sent to seek them, they would never have enquired after him, Acts 26.18. jeremiah and David prayed against these families, Psal. 79. jer. 10. joktans' posterity dwelled in places further remote from Chanaan: for seeing they had so many godly Ancestors, whom they despised and cared not for the blessing to Sem, but followed apostate Nimrod, who built Babel, which brought a Babylonian confusion over all the world, even a scattering from Sems Tents: and in this unexpressable Judgement (but godly meditated) joktans' Sons were cast furthest off from the means of salvation. This should make us have no society in Religion for phrase, nor Apparel, nor Court, with mystical Babylon: the Issue will be scattering. The Kings of the Images and Beassts in Dam 2 & 7 and see Mr. Bro. Preface. I. Babel Nebuchadnezar Evil-Mor●dach Belshazzar When the Golden Head, Babel, was made dust, than the glorious prophecy of the 70 Seavens was brought from Heaven by an Angel, Dan: 9.24. etc. II. Mada● and Pa●as, that is, the M●des and Persians. Darius and Cyrus that sent the jews from Captivity. Artaaxe●xes he hindered the Temple, Ezra 4.23. Assuerus (Heathen call him Darius Hy●taspis) the Husband of Esther, He hindered the Temple, and sought to hav● slain the Jews. Xerxes' the Son of Darius Hystaspis, spoken of only in Dan: 11. Darius-Artaxerxes, a good King, he built the Temple; he as the Jews think was the Son of ●●ther by Darius Hystaspis, he had two names, Ezr. 6.14. it should be translated Darius, which is, artaxerxes: so Mr. Bulling. in an Epistle to one of his Decades, Beroaldus, and many good Authors. Darius N●thu: These three are passed over in Nehemiah. Artaxerxes These three are passed over in Nehemiah. Ochus These three are passed over in Nehemiah. Darius' the Pe●●an, Neb: 12. whom Alexander over-came. III. The Grecians whole Alexander and his posterity, and the whole power of Gre●ia. iv The Grecians parted the Kings of the North and South South. North. Ptol. Lagides, Dan: 11.5. Seleucus Nicator. Amiochus Soter, Dan: 11.5. Ptol. Philadelphus, Dan 11.6. Antiochus Thens. Seleuchus Callinicus, Dan: 11.6. Ptol. Eucrgetes, Da●: 11.7. Antiochus the Great, Dan: 11.10. Ptol. Philapator, Da●: 11.11. Selencus Philopator, Dan: 11.20. Ptol. Epiphanes, Dan: 11.18. Antiochus Epiphanes, Dan: 11.21. All these Kings were hard iron Legs against the Saints; the other Kings after partly Iron, and partly Clay: the Jews now had some strength to resist, as Zach: 9.13, 14, 15. and 10.6, 7. Ptol. Philometor Ptol. Lu●hurus Ptol. Anlaetes Cle●patra Antiochus Eupator Demetrius Soter, son to Philip. Deme●●ius Nicator his son Antiochus, brother to Nicator Antiochus Gryphus Selencus his son. Antiochus Cyzizenus Antiochus his son. Antiochus Asiaticus. I have not written Antio. Sater, and Selen. Callinicus, of the Posterity of them of the North: they were not Horns of trouble to the Jews. After all these the Romans ruled CHAP. XXXIX. The holy Chronicle sundry ways expressed, and every way agreeing to the same number of years, being from the first promise in Gen. 3.15. till our Lord's death, 3960 years. SEe Bro. in Texts of Scripture, From the first promise of Christ to restore life upon death, brought in by the Serpent to the promise of Christ made to Abraham up on the death of Terah, who was the first of our Lords Fathers, that the Serpent drew to idolatry, are years 2083. The said time of 2083 years is secorded by the particular years of the Fathers in Gen. 5. and Gen. 11. From the second promise made to Abraham at the death of Terah, Gen. 12. to the Lamb or to the Law of the Passcover, Ex. 12 which typifyed Christ the Lamb of God are years 430. From the Lamb to the Temples Foundation, 1 Kings 6. A type of the true Temple, are years 480. From the foundation of the Temple to the burning of it. Ez. 4. or rather to the captivity upon that, are years 427. Thence to the end of the Captivity in Babel when Cyru● made a Decree of re-edifying the City and Temple, 2 Chron. 36. are years full 50. Thence until the Temple of our Lord's body arose the third day, are years, 490. The whole Sum is 3960. Observe that in this page it is said, from the foundation of the Temple to the burning of it, is 4227 years, but in chap. 44, it is said, from the sin of Israel to the burning of the Temple is 390 years, which is reckoned from Ezekiel 4. now to this 390. add the 37 of salomon's Reign, and then it is 427. for the foundation of the Temple was laid in the fourth year of Solomon. 2. In the said 44. chapter you will find the number of 518. which is thus cleared. It was from the coming out of Egypt, to the foundation of the Temple 48● years, which was laid in the fourth year of Solomon, to which add 37 years for the rest of salomon's Reign, and the year wherein the Ten Tribes made their Division from Judah, and so you have 518, years: and this way doth also still maintain the general sum of— 3960 years. CHAP. XL. Another expression of the holy Chronicle, which the former Dialogue hath followed. FRom the first Promise of Christ (to destroy Satan's works) unto the Flood (the first general manifestation of wrath and judgement upon the seed of the Serpent for despising the Promise) are years 1656. From the Blood to the promise made to Abraham of restoring blessedness in Christ to the Apostate families, in Gen. 10.11. are years 427. From the Promise to Abraham, to the glorious and mighty Redemption of Israel from Egypt, and the giving of the Law, of the Passeover, Gal. 3, are yea 430. From the coming from Egypt, to the Foundation of the Temple (a figure that the Son of God would make [not the nature of angels, but] the Seed of Abraham his Temple) are years 480. Thence to the burning of the Temple, That Israel should not glory too much in outward Ceremonies, and therefore God did shake them by Babel, are year 427 Thence to the overthrow of Babel's Monarcy by Cyrus, and Darius and sending the Jews home from Captivity are years full 50. Thence to he death of the MASSIAS, and ending of all Moses ceremonies, which is that once more, that Christ said he would shake them, to settle that which should remain until his second most glorious appearance, is 490. The whole sum is 3960. These seven Pillars may well be resembled to those seven that wisdom hewed out, Prov. 9.1. which hath the golden chain of times fastened to them upon which hang the glorious Curtains of needlework, the embroidered prophecies and stories of the eternal wisdom. In which there is a Table spread and furnished with all varieties of grace to feed the soul in Christ, who is the cluster of Redemption, and aught to find a lodging betwixt all faithful breasts. CHAP. XLI. A third expression of the holy Chronicle. IT is glorious to meditate, how the Sun in all his journeys did constant service to the SON Eternal, in a marvellous distinction of times, and most harmonious manner, in which is seen how his Mediatorian Kingdom was exercised mall ages in mercy to the godly, and in severity to the wicked opposers. From the miraculous creation, to the miraculous over flowing the world by waters, are years 1656. From that inundation, to the death of Terah, who was first of the Fathers of the holy Line, that corrupted the true sacrifice to flames of idolatry, are years 427. From the death of Terah, and the promise to Abraham made presently upon his death, to the ending of Israel's peregrination in the Land of ●am 430. Thence MOSES was to Israel a Shepherd in the wilderness, years 40. From M●●es death, to the conquest, and Partittion of the Land of ●anaan by Jesus, a type of JESUS Christ, the Son of God, that hath procured for the people of God, the true Rest, Jos. 14.20. are years 7. Thence by seven Jubilees, the time of the Arks abode in the Tribe of Ephraim, at Shi●oh, at the ending of which Jubilees, the Ark was captived, but Christ gave them it again: then was the Transmigratirn of the Ark to the Tribe of Judah; those seven Jubilees are years 350 Thence by Seventy Sevens, to the first captivity by Babel Then Christ did to Jerusalem in part, as he did to Shi joh, Jer. 2. 490, By judah's captivity, and subjection to Babel: then the Land of Israel kept Sabbath seventy years, as Moses foretold, Levit. 26. 70. Lastly by the most comfortable Prophecy and Promise of Reconciliation by the death of CHRIST, at the end of Seventy Sevens of years, Dan. 9 24. 490. The whole Sum 3960. 7 jubilees are, 350. 70 Sevens are, 490. 10 Sevens are 70. 70 Sevens are, 490 1400. 28 jubilees, or 1400 years from the conquest of the Seed of the Serpent by joshua to the victory of our Lord jesus CHRIST over sin, death, and the grave, and over him that had the power of death, the Devil. CHAP. XLII. Of the Geometrical Frame of the process of Times. THE Stones in salomon's Temple were not more curiously fitted for the building then the times of the holy Scriptures are from Moses death; neither is any army more orderly composed then the times revolution by the infinite providence of CHEST. Seven years of conquest and partition of Chanaan. Seven Jubilees, the Tabernacle of Moses and the Ark of the Covevenant, at Shile for Ephraim glory. Seven Seavensies began with the Transmigration of the Ark of the Covenant, for Judah's glory, Psal 78. Seven Tenns for Captivity to feel jeremies' Lamentations. And then again the former measure of Seven Seavensies to find comfort in servitude, which none but the poor in spirit and mourning will ever find. Vid Mr. Br. in Advert. 72. CHAP. XLIII. Further Considerations of these 28 Jubilees, that the godly student may delight in the holy Book of God. THE plainness of God's dealing still calleth us to mind of a first Sabbath, by a like account of Sevens, which also is usual through the Scriptures, and especially from Moses times. And that cannot be denied: Now that the whole record of the Sun's service for twenty eight Jubilees, unto the Sun's service prophesied Dan. 9.24. etc. which was spoken by an Angel, to make us shine in Justice, and that it may shine in plainness, diligently ponder, and observe. 1. Moses in Levitions chap. 25. telleth that the Jubilee shall be an holy year, and the old Hebrew Doctors thereupon in the Zohar, (as learned say) writ thus, In the jubilee year, Shecinetha, that is, the Majesty of God having his Tabernacle with us, will be Freedom, Redemption, and Sabbatisme to Israel, by the Angel gabriel's years, the last jubilee that ever the Jews had in their Land, shall fall out at our Lord's death, in which year the Majesty shown itself upon the Mountain to Peter, james and john, with Moses and Elias, and became to us freedom (i. e. justification) and redemption, and finisher of Mosaical Sebbaths, consider the proceeding of times herein. 2. Seven years were spent before Israel had conquered and parted the Land. Before the Partition, the jubilees could not begin, and by Moses words the next year after was to be the first of fifty for the jubilee. Thence unto our Lord's death are 28. jubilees, exactly year, 1400. 3. In that we have a long time broken the whole frame of both Testaments, by suffering heathen Olympic toys to call us from the wisdom which Gabriels healthy and heavenly message had, and offereth to us, we must confess that God hath been angry with us justly, in giving over the world unto blindness, whereas that Prophecy would have lightened all the Scripture. (Of Olympic vanity more below) The 26. Levit. running still in Phrase upon Sevens, in the punishments, cometh at last to the captivity for ten Sevens of years, and foretelleth such a confession of sins, as Daniel maketh, and how God will remember his Covenant, which Gabriel there mentioneth, Moses and the Prophets shall be vilely disjointed through quite; if here we hold not the plain propriety of time. 5. These former parts of time, be no less clear in Scripture, than the stars in the Sky, that in the Seventh year the Land was parted that * That is 42 years. six seven Israel held it in quietness: that Chusan held it the whole Seventh Seven. That in the jubilee Othoniel turneth them into their possession. The golden Candlesticks with seven branches, bowls 22. (as the Hebrew letters) knops half so many, flowers thrice three, all 42, commended not Bezaleets wisdom more, and obedience to the prescript, than we are bound to mark how the holy volumes record, the Hebrew stories, to fall out in times according to their ceremonies Thence the seventh jubilee reacheth to † A kindler 〈◊〉 the golden candle-sticks, land an erector, and Rector of the Schools of the Prophets. samuel's happy times. Thence. to the captivity of Babel's seventy Sevens. Moses did closely allude unto that space. Now the Seventy years of captivity Moses and Ezra compareth with the Sabbath, Levit. 26. 2 Chron. 36. 6. The Prophecy of Dan. 9.24. surmounteth all, easy for memory and celestial for Meditation. It had not been so harmonious to have chains of the time hitherto most certainly fixed, if hence we should un clasp the links of it: But we have the chains of times fastening hitherto-more closely than the Fins of the Leviathan stick one to another, job 41. All the works of God have perfection, and so is the time from the Creation to the Redemption, Mr. Bro. ex manus. CHAP. XLIV. A fourth expression of the holy Chronologie from the Creation to the Redemption. THE golden chain of times are evident, which draw from the apostasy of our first Parents unto our Lord's Resurrection which when they are all known do bring unto Christ, and we shall find much comfort and edification, if we often think upon them for they are a greater ornament to the Scriptures, than any chains of the finest gold or of the most rare or polished Jewels to the neck. The first is from the beginning of time, since Satan's fiery tongue did set the wheel of the whole Creation on flame, that nothing but the flood of waters (nor that) could quench it. The second is from the Flood to the death of Terah, Arahams' father, the author of idolatry in Christ his Line, and thereby causing to cease the royal accounting of the Church's annals, by the ages of the Fathers, Gen. 11. Jos. 23. The next beginneth upon his death, with a new promise of CHRIST making Abraham heir of the world, not through the Justification of the Law of Circumcision, but through the justification of faith in the promise of blessedness in Christ to the Families Gen. 12. This Chain draweth along to the Lamb, that is the Law of the Passeover, Exod. 12. The fourth chain is from the Lamb to the Temple, the allurement of the Nations unto the worship of him that made the Temples of the heavens, From the lamb to the Temple, 480. Salomons 37. and year of division, all 518. who in fullness of time would come to make humane nature his Temple to dwell with the children of men. And further this chain teacheth to salomon's death: his idolatry (as Terah) was worthy to have this chain ended, for which his Kingdom was parted, and jeroboam did set up calves for God, which doing, is called the sin of Israel. These sums with the year of the Division of the ten Tribes from judah are years 518. The fifth chain is from that apostasy of Israel to the burning of the Temple, that space is 390 years. judah now is only God's Kingdom. In that time is contained the books of the Kings, Ezek. 4. and 2 Chron, and most of the Prophets, as the table before will show. Here must be considered jerusalems' ruin by Babel, the flames of the Temple, and the ending of salomon's race and Kingdom, the breaking of the golden candlestick, yea the Ark, the special sign of Christ's presence (which had the two Tables of the Covenant) was no more, as jerem. 3. They lost it at Shiloh, but found it again in the woody field of Ki●iath jaharim, Psal. 132. All Moses, curtains Babel carried away for a spoil, and all that Hyram the King and Proselyte procured, and Hyram the artificer made, etc. all these goodly things, left the Temple and shown Christ his severity. * Christ by Babel shook his own ceremonies by Moses, and ended them by Rome, that is, the meaning of that speech in Aggei, Yet once more I will shake, never to have any setting: yet some in their writings will re-edify the low Jerusalem, etc. But as Israel had a first and second Temple: so Jerusalem was twice builded by David, Solomon and Nehemiah, and twice razed: now no other Jerusalem, ever shall be, but that which is from heaven, and no material Temple ever shall be, for the Lord God of Hosts, even the Lamb, is the Temple in the heavenly Jerusalem. Thus in part he did shake these similitudes of heavenly things: that they might look to the sure mercies and holy things promised in CHRIST unto David, Acts 13.34. The sixth showeth the earthly glory of this world's Monarches, with their abasement and sudden destruction: all this is seen in the golden head, Babel's Kingdom, which Christ made as chaff before the wind. Now the Jews had seen the end of salomon's progeny, the fall of his Kingdom, their hope, the burning of the Temple their glory, and the fall of Babel, the glory of Nations, by Cyrus and Darius, Solomon foresaw all this, and said, all is vanity, Eccl. 1 The seventh is from Cyrus' Proclamation of bringing back the people of God from Babel's yoke to the eternal freedom the Lord Jesus Christ purchased. This time is the glorious and shining Prophecy of the Seventy Sevens, Dan 9 This chain began with Cyrus, of Sem, and Darius, of Japhet, both which Princes proclaimed the God of heaven, the God of Israel over an hundred and twenty Nations, who gave Israel a liberal subsidy to comfort them in returning to Zion, who by that faith in that joyful Prophecy left great Babel for Jerusalem yet in her dust, Psal. 102. And this year the faith of Gods elect, stopped the mouth of Lions, etc. And this chain endeth most comfortably by the death of Messiah, the Holy of Holy: which endeth all Sacrrifice and offering in the low Jerusalem, and it endeth the peculiar. Prerogative of Israel, and it bringeth the Gentiles into equal covenant, and breaketh down the Partition wall, and blotteth out the hand writing of Ordinances, and maketh the shadows flee away, and with commandment of showing the Kingdom of heaven to all Nations, etc. etc. Thus the SUN'S labours have glorious stories through all ages, till Christ shown a new world, and a new jerusalem from heaven by the preaching of the holy disciples, who went forth by the Lord's Commandment, and turned the families of No from darkness to light, from the power of Satan to God, that they might receive forgiveness of sins, and an inheritance among them which are sanctified by the faith which is in Christ Jesus. From these various expressions of the holy Chronologic, we may see the marks which the holy Spirit aims at in the ages and generations of the Bible. These are the joints to which the holy Chronicle is fastened, fit for Christians to know concerning the Son of God, that was to come into the world, to be a Second Adam, That by these, as a part of the holy revelation of the Spirit of God, we might be made wise unto salvation, through the faith which in is Christ jesus; For the Testimony of JESUS is the Spirit of Prophecy. It would be wished, that people were somewhat educated in that course of study, of a book called the Consent of Scripture: That study I suppose would more establish us in sound principles of Christian Doctrine, against light and vain errors, and bad opinions, than many books of sa● greater volumes: much more might be said, the Lord bless endeavours, and make our hearts upright with him. THE books of Chronicles reach from adam's to Babel's captivity, and to Cyrus first, thence Daniel reacheth to our Lord's death, and the fall of jerusalem, thence the Apocalypse holdeth on to the fall of the world: the confusion of this narration is a cursed piece of work. Seven times Daniel speaketh of the Chaldeans, seven times of the Medo-Persians, seven times of Javan whole, seven times of javan parted. Daniel comforteth the holy jews, and no other Nation afflicted for Religion by the Kings of the East, and before the incarnation, showing, that as every one of his predictions shall fall out in their times, and they of Antiochus, in exact foretold number of days, so the exact number of days should be most surely kept for our Redemption, and the three years and half for our Lords preaching, when he must begin, even when he began to be thirty, and at the first of those 30. open records of Kittim Italy's power, Numb. 24. should show that the image Dan. 2. was broken in pieces. Now the Holy Ghost in the New Testament keepeth Daniel clear, that the captivity to Babel began with his captivity, that Saint Matthew showeth that jechonias was begotten a little before the captivity to Babel, at the second captivity he was 18. years old. So where the image is made chaff, and the tree cut, but not at the root, and the Beasts cast into the fire, john Baptist from matters past doth teach the jews how they rejecting MESSIAH. Christ shall be used, the axe shall be put to the root of the tree, and the chaff shall be burnt in fire unquenched. Upon stories past this standeth plain, if daniel's stories had been yet to come, the grace of the speech had been lost, but john speaking of punishments foretold and felt, pierceth more the wise hearer, that the jews shall feel what he foretold. So where after the four Beasts are consumed, One like unto the SON of Man, cometh into the world, and again ascendeth our great God and Saviour, naming himself the SON of Man and Rock, Deut. 32. upon which the jews stood in the boisterous sea, whence the four beasts came forth, teacheth us, that those four Beasts were consumed, speaking to the whole consent of the Jews. So Saint Stephens pleading upon the Angel gabriel's words, and having the Angel's face, sheweth, that the whole Nation agreed in time, from the return from captivity, or beginning of the Seventy Sevens, as they could not choose. And whereas the acts of Antiochus the vile, are much in Daniel chap. 7. and 8. and 12. and concluded in chap. 11. with mention of resurrection to glory for his afflicted, the Macchabees company, and of resurrection to shame for God's enemies, as the jews in the third of Macchabees, and in Josephus, note well, and as chrysostom noted from them, so Saint Paul before all noted the same, speaking of tormented in Antiochus manner, that they would not be delivered, because they looked for the better resurrection, Heb. 11. Moreover while the affliction of the jews, were in visions that described not their Nation plainly, that they were the tendered of God, and so they were without danger, they were penned in Chaldee, spread over the East, out when the speeches plainly name the afflicters, and the jews the afflicted, than they are written in Adam's tongue, lost, but in Schools, and not spoken in the world. And this showeth, that the jews are the only afflicted in Daniel, and that he hath not one syllable of the Romans afflicting the jews before the Birth of our Lord, nor one word to bring them within his pictures. But the Apocalypse plainly distinguisheth them from daniel's Kingdoms, a Woman, that is a State settled, and a Beast coming out of the Sea, made of all the four, that are in Daniel. Thus Daniel is a Bridge from the Chronicles to the Apocalypse, and the breaker of this bridge cuteth off all passage from the old Testament to the new, and worketh a Babylonian confusion, missing in the Nations, Countries, or Times. Daniel pictureth East Kingdoms only, he maketh stories agree to the proportion of a man's image, head, arms and breast, belly and sides, and two legs, our notes would make but one leg, and six times longer than the proportion of a man's body would suffer. Daniel bringeth an Angel to comment upon his Visions, applying them to stories which Greeks explain. But none can apply our notes to fit stories. CHAP. XLV. An Advertisement to the Reader, to take heed of embracing the evil tenants of two men especially, that have lately put forth irreligious opinions about the Chronology of the Book of God, namely Mr. Sarson, and Mr. Parker, they deny the certainty of Chronologie from the first promise, to the death of Christ. 1. AS for Mr. Sarson, let him take heed he be not degenerated into a Sarrason, by bringing upon the holy Bible a Leprosy of Chronologic, that it should be of no greater authority, than Machomer's Alcoran. 2. Mr. Parker saith, there is not truth nor certainty in the holy Angel gabriel's Seventy Sevens, when they should begin or end, his words in his book of the Visions, and Prophecies of Daniel page 51 are these. Mr. Broughton and his followers, denying the truth of heathen Chronologie, constitute the years without ground, D.R. on the other side, (and that worthily), allowing and maintaing the heathen Chronologie, and finding no way how to accommodate those years' untoi●, affirmeth that no certain time is meant, but an uncertain, and undetermined duration in allusion to the seventy years of the Babylonian captivity, etc. To say, there is not truth nor certainty in the holy Chronologie of the Scriptures. 1. Let us take such heed that they deny not the truth and certainty of other doctrines of faith. 2. It may be truly said, because men have not loved the truth by a diligent search of the holy Bibles Chronologie, they have been given up to believe the lies of heathen Chronologies, 2 Thes. 2.11. 3. The holy Chronologie of the Book of God is a doctrine of faith, as clear and certain as any other doctrine of faith, and therefore that speech of the holy Apostle beareth supremacy in our hearts: That the holy Book of God doth not only teach and instruct us of the truth of its Chronologie, but it doth also correct and convince the heathens Chronologie to be most false and abominable doctrines, as some produce them, 2 Tim. 3. 4. It is said, that the holy Scripture is given by inspiration from God, and is able to make (children yea) the man of God wise to salvation through the faith which is in Christ jesus, and this must be understood of, Scripture Chronologie, as well as of any other doctrine of the holy Bible, and he that will rightly consider the holy Chronologie, as it is above expressed by sundry calculations, will say, that the holy Scripture Chronologie teacheth doctrine of faith, which is in Christ JESUS, and (in him) by it wisdom to salvation. 5. It is said, we have a more sure word, (2 Pet. 1. and that was the old Testament) but now heathen Chronologie of the devilish worships of Apollo, the heathens Olympiads are by some made more sure and certain criptures, than the oracles from heaven. We have more cause to yield to the Locusts that defend their Apolluon, that allege Fathers and Councils, than to yield to men that authorize the vain Olympiads of Apollo of Delphos. Therefore let us that are Christians hearken to the words and commandments of the Apostle of our Lord and saviour. Beware lest any man carry you for a spoil through Phlosophy and vain deceit after the rudiments of the world, and not after CHRIST, Col. 2. it is the holy scriptures that have ditted up the mouths of Apolluon and his Locusts, by the RR. Jewel, Fulk, Cartwright, Perkins, Calvin, Beza, &c, etc. we doubt not but the holy scripture shall do the same to them that plead for the gamestry of Stanicall, Olympian reckon. Verily all the scriptures should as well take a check, as the wisdom touching the time of the seventy sevens, be controlled by heathen. We may as well believe the heathen spoke true (when the Sun went back) that for Hercules' birth the Sun made a longer night, but the word of Christ shows, that he that ruleth the heavens made it, and did show to all the world, but specially to Israel, that the heaven's order was not so stable as God's covenant in Christ: for then that miracle was to confirm the faith of the church in Christ promised, so the sun performed service to the SON of righteousness: surely the motions of the heavens declare the works of God in the harmonious measure of times. Although many men be great Scholars and godly, yet some of them do not consider that the sun did run his race for the glory of Christ and his word. For it is said, All things were created by him, and for him the second Adam. For Him, for his honour and glory, not for Satan's sports and pastimes of the Olympiads. 6. What a grossness and cross is this? because we cannot make the heathens accounts to agree with the holy Scripture-Chronologie, therefore we fly upon the word of the living GOD, the Lord of hosts our God, reproaching it, and exclaiming against it, that there is not truth nor certainty in many parts of it, but we should say and do the contrary: and should say, let God and his word be true, and the heathens and their Chronicles, lies, and liars. For there is more to be said. ¶ If that the Angel taught not Daniel certainty of knowledge and understanding for the Chronologie, he taught him nothing that he knew not. Daniel knew all the rest of the Message, but the time of performance. And so we make the holy Angel a deceiver, an evil spirit, a Satan. And therefore D.R. and Mr. P. and all that follow their course, have sorrily dealt with the Church of Christ Jesus our Lord. 7. Mr. P. saith, that Mr. Bro. and his followers, etc. Let Mr. P. know, that Mr. Bro. and those that use his godly and learned labours do adhere to, and follow the lively oracles of the living God, sent from him by an Angel from heaven, to teach Daniel knowledge and understanding, and to teach all faithful Christians by him. And therefore we are confident in the Lord, and dare not otherwise say, but that the holy Angel from God stake a true plain, and proper speech, and a most certain chronology for the beginning and ending of the seventy sevens, and that their beginning was from daniel's prayer, and their ending at the abolishing of sacrifice and offering, and confirmation of the Testament for the Many, by the blood and death of the MESSIAH. It is true, many have objected against the holy Scriptures Chronologie before Mr. P. and Mr. Sarson (which is to be lamented) but we know there are many graceless speeches and objections against the very fundamental truths of Christian Religion. But this I think, 1. That it is good that the Scriptures chronology should be clear and certain, Isa. 5. and can we think that God hath omitted this good for his church? 2. Men should deem, or aught so to do, that the Scripture hath truth and certainty for chronology, though they see it not, and they that oppose it should think and say, they err not knowing the Scriptures, and they should think that the works of God, the rock are perfect, and that he that began the chronology for the glory of Christ by the genealogy of his holy ancestors, Gen. 5. and 11. would perfect it. 3. To affirm truth and certainty in Heathen chronology, and to deny it in the holy Scriptures, is an opinion scelerate and flagitious: we cannot think how great the evil is: and therefore Mr. P. hath done ill in justifying D.R. saying the holy Angel in his heavenly Oration to Daniel meant no certain time, whereas the Angel taught him perfect wisdom for the chronology of it, and so professeth that he came to give skill of understanding that very thing. 4. Whereas Mr. P. saith, that Mr. Bro. denying the truth of heathen chronology, constituted the year of the seventy Sevens, without grounds Mr. P. in this saying, puts a stumbling block before the blind, and causeth him to go out of the way, and falls into a great offence of untruth, not only against Mr. Bro. (for that's little) but against the Angel from heaven, who said to Daniel, at the beginning of thy prayer came forth the word, which I am come to tell thee, because thou art greatly beloved, therefore conceive the word, and perceive the clear vision. Which is, seventy Sevens of years are accounted for thy people, and for thy holy City, to finish trespass (offerings) and to end sin (ofierings) and to make reconciliation for iniquity, and to bring righteousness everlasting, and to seal vision and Prophet, and to show Christ the holy of holy, etc. Thus we see the groundwork of Mr. Bro. is a Rock as firm and stable as Mount- Zion, (that we might build on Christ the Rock) spoken by an Angel. So the Angel speaking from heaven, makes the begininng of the seventy Sevens to be from daniel's prayer, and their ending to be at the glorious manifestation of MESIAS, i.e. Christ, to be the Holy of Holy, which was seen in his healthy passion, and glorious Resurrection 5. Let us further consider the speech of the Angel, which I noted before, and think it worth the noting again, who saith to Dantel, Conceive the word, and perceive the clear vision. By this commandment doubled for more vehement charge, he condemneth the world, that regard not to be instructed in this Doctrine sent from heaven by an Augel unto Daniel, and penned for all Nations use. Wherefore We must give better heed unto that speech, lest we wilfulyswerve, for if the word spoken by Angels fall our sure, and every trespass received just recompense, How shall we escape neglecting so great a charge of our King unto out own salvation? where the vision is so clear, that no doubt can be moved by any plain heart, that will rest in the clearness of the most bright message by the Angel of glory, who coming to teach all the world, was to shine in words, as Stephen by him did in the face, when he spoke the Angel's words, Acts 6. That Jesus of Nazaret would deftrroy the place, city and Temple, and change the Laws which Moses gave. To this day the blind Jews stand in this, that the Laws of Moses shall continue for ever. Maymon. Tom. 1. de lege, Perek. 9 Therefore God seeing their dullness would have an Angel of light to teach them by this Prophecy 490 years, when from the year of that Message unto Daniel, the Laws of Moses should have their end. And none of the Scribes, when Herod was affrighted, objected disagreement for the time, which thing had been done, if any colour of disagreement could be brought, so none in all the new Testament touched disagreement in the time, Mr. Bro. upon Daniel. 6. Who would think to say the sveenty Seven are a time not certain, when as the holy Angel divides them into three parts, seven sevens, and sixty two sevens, and one seven, for the seven sevens he showeth the troubles, the ●●●dly returned from captivity should undergo, before the Temple should be built, and City walled, and Christ's should be born towards the latter part of the 62 Sevens, and the last seven, the last half of it our Lord would by his preaching and teaching three years and an half, and by his death, confirm the Covenant. 7. Another weighty reason, though noted other where, That there was great need, that Gods Israel, and all the world should have & know a definitive sentence from God how long Canaan and Jerusalem and Temple should have their Prerogative, and how long sacrificing should be there lawful and acceptable, and when the partition-wall should be broken down, and when the Gentiles should be brought into equal Covenant, and this definitive and determinate time is most graciously demonstrated to us in the seventy Sevens. It is not man's * V●. Mr. P. his Epistle prefixed Eulogia, nor his Chrestologia (nay rather) nor his Mateologia, that shall disannul the holy Chronologia of the holy Bible. And therefore most cordially we do protest against the unworthy dealing of Mr. Sarson and Mr. P. in the premises, not doubting, but one of them will seriously think of his do and be humbled (though he saith he is unmoveable, pa. 65) and that hence forward he will adhere and subscribe to the propriety of the word (for tropes may not be sought where propriety standeth well enough) and cleave to the lively. Oracles of jehovah the God of Israel. And what Chronologie can be plainer than those of the holy Scriptures on which we rest and rely? First, on the accounts of the Fathers to the Flood: Secondly, the Father's ages to the death of Terab, upon whose death the promise to Abrabam was given: Thirdly, From that promise to the Law of the Passeover, Exod. 12. Fourthly, Thence to the building of the Temple, 1 King. 6. Fis●hly, Thence to the burning of it which was in the nineteenth of Nebuchad●ezay: Sixthly, Thence to the ending of the Captivity in Babel: Seavenshly Thence that sweet Heavenly scripture (the I amp of all the Old Testament, and the Abridgement of the New) the Seavensy Seaveus which began from Dani●lls prayer, and ended at the death of Christ. All these Journeys of the Sun (before largely showed, now briefly expressed) were created to serve the Son of righteousness, and are sure, clear, and certain, and in their holy use have the power and strength of the Almighty. But as for the Olimpiad accounts in this respect, D.R. and Mr. P. etc. would have us fall into the plame of 2 Tim. 4.4. we do not reston them but detest to take up their names into our lips, it was the offering to a strange God, to Devils, to new Gods which came newly up, which the holy Patriarches and Prophets, and Saints of old feared not, nor served. What is this? must we and our children regard the * fabulous toys, stories and accounts from this man that won the Stadion this Olympiad, or from that man that won it in another, or from that man that acted his part bravely as a gladiator this Olympiad, or from him that acted the next Olimpiad, or from this foot race, and this horcerace, that this man atcheived at this Olympiad, or the foot race and horse-race, that another man archieved at another: or from the accounts of the Archontes, of Athens, or from the accounts of the building of Rome, or from the accounts of the lying Chaldeans (as Daniel ever found them so to be) Must I and our children hearken to these abominations and neglect the word spoken by an Angel from Heaven, no, surely, but let all this cobweb-stuff of Doctrines of Devils, be left to them, to whom it belongs (we are sure not to Christians) this further warning I give to the people of God our Brethren. For it is a shame that our godly learned, Mr. Bro. in Advertis. pa. 25. or any should contend to teach or to be taught by these Olym piads how to understand an * Angel of light sent by the grace of God to teach all the simple world, into whose lips if grace were not poured to be unnerstood as soon as he spoke, Heaven would say Daniel saw no Angel. CHAP. XLVI. That the point of Chronology was a chief part of the Angel's Message to Daniel, for Daniel knew all before the Chronology. 1. HE knbw that Salem, Daniel saith, Seavens; Seavens o'er exactly ●●●●u●ted for thy people, and for thy holy City. Sem's Tents and people should not always have peculiar glory, and that one day, the postericy of Japhet should be persuaded to embrace the faith of Sems Tents, he knew that all Families that apostated, Gen. 11. should be blessed in CHRIST, Gen. 12 and that he would also confirm firm the Covenant of his grace for them: The blessedness promised and the confirming the Covenant are all one. 2. He knew as well as Esaias that the Temple and holy place should not always be regarded, as Stephea citys Esaias and Daniet, Act. 6. & 7. Esai. ●6 1. Dan. 9 26.27. that the holy place, Christ would destroy. 3. He knew that Esaias had said, from Month to Month, and from Sabbathto Sabbath, all flesh shall come to worship before me, saith the Eternal, Esai, 66.23. This showeth an utter abrogation of Moses, seeing all Nations cannot come every week to Jerusal●m, Mr. Br. in the latter end of Ecclesiastes. 4. He knew the Priest hood of Levi, should be changed, from Psal. 110. And he knew, if the Priest hood be changed, of necessity, there must be a change of the Law, and therefore the Law of all manner of Sacrifices of Beasts and Birds, etc. should be abolished, this he knew from Psal. 40. And all faithful, as Habel thus expected and believed, and by that their faith they were made heirs of the justification that is by faith. And Daniel showeth the same, that Messiah should by his once offering of himself make reconciliation for iniquity, and bring an everlasting justification, and so seal and confirm all the visions and premises and prophesres, that himself was the end an scope that all aimed at. 5. He knew from Esaias, that Cyrus should send the Jews home from Captivity, and build City and Temple, read Esai 44, & 45, & 46. & Jer. 30.18. But in what time after the return from Captivity, Esaias told not. But the holy Angel did show the time, that within the Seven Seavens from daniel's prayers, and the return of the forty nine thousand, Jerusalem should be builded Street and Wall. 6. He knew that HE, the holy seed of the Woman, of Abraham, of David, etc. should destroy Satan's works, that by the Seed of the Serpent his foot sole should be bruised, that he should be slain not for himself but for us. 7. He knew that Esaias had prophesied of the acceptable year● of the Lord (in the Jubilee) in which should be preached good tidings unto the meek, to bind up the broken hearted, to proclaim liberty to the Captives, and the opening of the prison to them that are bound, etc. Now Daniel told of the last Jubilee, when all should be performed, Levit. 25. seeing all the promises of God in Christ are yea, and amen, we are bound to mark the Jubilees beginning and ending, and to join the last to our LORDS death, for indeed they do so most exactly fall out. When the Angel had told the Prophet Daniel of the Seavensy Seavens; Then the godly Teachers before the holy Incarnation could say, the Majesty of God dwelling in our Tabernacle will be Redemption, freedom (i. e. justification) and Finisher of Sabbaths to Israel in a jubilee (this speech is worthy of golden Letters) This they might easily account. For they knew how many Jubilees had been past, and how many would be the last year of the Seavensy Seavens. The last Jubilee falls out with the last year of the Seavensy Seavens. Simeon the just knew this, and he wa●ted for the M●ss●as, the consolation of Israel, and it was reveiled unto him that he should not see death, till he had seen the MESSIAH of the Lord. Luk. 2. All this glorious meditation of the Jubilees, and this last Jubilee Master P. defaceth, utinam bec illi ne imputetur. Num. 33 56. Deut. 28.66. Esai. 66. P●●l. 95. Ez●k. 16. 8. He knew from Moses and the Prophets that Christ the King would destroy his own people as with a Flood of No, that they should be shaken out of their own Land, and that that Land should not be their Rest, nor an holy Land, nor holy Mountain, no more than any place under heaven, after the ending of the Seavensy Seavens, the Jews shall be converted, they will believe that City and Temple shall never be restored, and then they will not much regard the Land. Now the holy Lord God sent his Angel from heaven to tell the time of the accomplishment of all these (they are unutterable) wonderful things and glorious mercies, that from the beginning of daniel's prayer, this exactly accounted time should begin, Mr. Bro● 〈◊〉 Daniel, and end at the showing of CHRIST to be the most holy Redeemer, in declaring the power of God in his passion and resurrection, as is foretold in Dan. 9 Because the passion marveilously shown Christ to be the most Holy when he sanctified himself, joh. 17.17. and the Centurion said doubtless he was the Son of God: and his resurrection shown that he was indeed the Son of Gon. I will add a little to the eighth Section above. If the Jews had known the words of the Prophets, they would not have stoned Stephen, for saying Jesus of Nazaret should destroy the City and the holy Place. Great error hath herein been committed by not marking the force of noah's words pursued by Moses, by Gabriel, by the Lord, and by their full Event, and by the glorious erecting of the Church, termed the Jerusalem from Heaven, instead of it. julian the Apostate to satisfy our Lords words endeavoured to repair Jerusalem, but he felt the wrath of Christ for it. So in after ages, * Anno 1100. & 1200. the Pontificality stirred the Princes of the West to war for Low. Jerusalem, but Christ plagued Christendom to this day, for that vanity. Yea, at this day, people study not, nor believe the words of the Prophets, but as the Jews are susperstitious, so are many, the superstition of the Jews is in part expressed by a godly Teacher: And it seems their vanity pleaseth us to write so of them as we do: Christians now a-dayes are so foolish and erroneous as thinking of going to Jerusalem. (I could name some) But it is better for them to alter their opinions, and if I might give them counsel (to do as it is reported Jews do about their dead bones) let them give order to some Feoffee to have care of their dead bones, and when they have a sufficient Cargosie to freight some Vessel to Joppa, and to consign them to some Reverend Mussel-man, that he by Wagons may transport them to Jerusalem to be interred. Ah, let Teachers consider whether they have not been an occasion to people to stumble at the Law, in teaching and writing about the jews repairing of Jerusalem in Chanaan, and of the great businesses that will follow thereupon. Some Teachers have filled the Churches full of mateologie, and fond expectations. CHAP. XLVII. That Daniel is alleged in the New Testament to prove the Messiah to be already come. MR. P. saith in pa. 52. That in no place in the New Testament, this prophecy [of Dan. 9.24, 25, 26, 27.] is used against the Jews to prove the Messiah already come. Of this assertion, I suppose I may and aught to say (if I say no more) that it is un beseening a man of God, and a Minister of Messiahs' Gospel, so to say, For, 1. Stephen's speeches to those that disputed with him, and to the Council, sheweth that he spoke the words and Doctrine of the holy Angel, Act. 6. & 7. and as he had the Angels words, so he had his countenance. This I have noted, and it seems there is necessity to note it often, and to say as the thing is, Stephen's contestation is the sum of the Angel's message, if M●ssias shall destroy the holy Place, and change the Mosaical customs, then no longer an holy Mountain, than no holy City, than no peculiar people, than no holy Land, all these depend each upon other, but the Lord God doth give us further illustration, For 2. Where ●ver we read the attribute Christ in the new Testament, we must remember it to be the attribute of Messiah from Dan. 9 there given as a proper name of the Son of God, & so used of his Nation in expectation of him, and no place in the old Testament, but Daniel, useth it as a proper name, the Hebrew word is in Greek letters, and that in the mouth of the simplest, as Andrew the fisher man, and the Samaritan women showing, that the Sama●it●ns, as well as Jews, knew when Christ should come into the world. Job 1.4, 3. Our Lord teaching to forgive, as God in Christ forgave us, alludeth to this Oration of the holy angel, teaching Peter to forgive seventy times sev●n times, Mat. 18. 4. The Angel Gabriel saith, that Christ shall make reconciliation for unrighteousness. The Epistle to the Hebrews goeth upon this point, that the Son of God the M●ssia●, the holy of holy by himself, should purge our sin●, should procure remission of sins, and should be the reconciliation for our sins, Rom. 3.1 John 1. and 2. 5. The angel saith, Christ shall bring everlasting justification, the Apostle saith to the Hebrews, Christ by his own blood, entered once into the holy place, the very heavens, and found eternal redemption for us. 6. The angel saith, Messiah shall seal vision and prophecy. The visions and propheciess and ceremonies all tended to our redemption by the Son of God. When that was manifested, young men and maids might be said to see the visions and dreams, because they saw the performance of the best part of them. They saw Acts 2 what the first Adam looked for, Gen. 3.15. How Christ the second Adam by death overcame him that had the power of death, to work freedom for them which all their life time with fear were guilty of, or subject to bondage, Heb. 2. ●5. They saw how the great God of Sem after the flesh persuaded the sons of japheth in their own language, as noah's allusion, japh and japheth told, they saw in whom from Abraham all the families apostared, Gen. 10. & 11. were to look for the blessing, Gen. 12. They saw the last jubilee gave us an open recovery of our possession of the heavenly Paradise. Luke 23.43. Rom. 15 8. They saw how the Lamb of God had taken away the sins of the world, having a better Tabernacle than Moses made, a sacrificehood better than Aharons', a sacrifice better than oxen, goats, & sheep, and birds, & a covenant of greaterforce, larger extent, not only to the Jew, but also to the Gentile. They knew what Nathan told David of the eternal Throne, and what Daniel dreamt of it, chap. 7. and what Gabriel told Mary, Luke 1.32. This they knew clearly, how all the promises of God in Christ were sealed with yea and Amen. Yea the Lord jesus Christ hath sealed and confirmed the holy doctrine of the old Testament in the holy Evangelists, and his holy Apostles in their Epistles, and in a wonderful manner in his Apocalyps, showing how new enemies under old terms did strive against the doctrine of his heavenly jerusalem, and the phrases of holy speech are so couched in the Apocalypse from Moses and the prophets that no one article of new doctrine of faith is taught to the churches. 7. The angel saith, Messiah shall suffer, but not for himself, so it is said, he once suffered for sins, the just for the unjust, 1 Pet. 3●18. 8. The angel foretold that Messiah should confirm the Testament, for many, the latter half of the last seven, and the Lord Christ beareth witness to his message by the angel, that he was now ready to do that which was foretold and he took the cup, and gave thanks● and gave it to them, saying Drink ye all of it, for this is my blood of the new Testament, which is shed for many for the remission of sins, Mat. 26.28. 9 When Christ the King had suffered & confirmed the covenant, the angel foretelleth, that afterward in the next generation (so Mat. 24, 34.) by loathsome Infidels he would destroy the city and holy place, and his own people, with most bitter wars to a final judgement of utter desolations, and Messiah foretelling the same again, as he had done by his angel, that when they see jerusalem besieged by an host, and the abominable infidels standing in the holy place, Let him that readeth Daniel consider [the whole doctrine of the seventy Seven] Mat. 24 Mark 13. Luke 19 and 21. CHAP. XLVIII. Showing how the holy Evangelists, express the Attributes, MESSIAH, or CHRIST. 1. JAcob begat Joseph the husband of Mary, of whom was born JESUS, which is called CHRIST, Mat. 1. ●6. Chap. 2. When JESUS was born in Bethlehem of Judea, in the days of Herod the King, Behold, there came wise men from the East to Jerusalem, saying, 2. Where is HE, that is born King of the Jews, for we have seen His Star in the East, and are come to worship him. 3. When Herod the [usurping] King had heard these things, he was troubled, and all Jerusalem with him. 4. And when he had gathered all the chief Priests and Scribes of the people together, he demanded of them where [Messiah] Christ should he born. The Magis (from Persi●, we may suppose) They asked, Where is the King of the Jews? But Herod the usurper, he demanded of the learned of the Nation, where Messiah, i.e. Christ should be born, so this plainly looketh to Dan. 9 where the Lord jesus is called Nagid, Bas●●●us, Messiah the King, Mat. 2.1, 2, 3, 4. 3. In the godly, and ravishing society of Messiah, Andrew, Simon, Philip, and Nathanael, What joyful heavenly conference have they about Dan 7. and 9 and Gen. 28, saith Andrew to his brother Simon, We have found that Messiah, which is by interpretation the Christ, and Phili●i finds Nathanael, and said unto him, we have found him of whom Moses, in the Law and the Prophets did write. All the Prophets did write of Christ, but none named him Messiah, the attribute of a proper name, but Daniel from the Angel's message, and the same Angel was sent to Mary, to name him Jesus, so both those names were given to the SON of GOD, not by man, but from heaven: so in their blessed and heavenly society these speeches were uttered, and confessed Christ to be the Son of God, to be the Son of man, to be the King of Israel, and the Messiah the Holy of Holiness, and the Ladder of all comfort. 4. And Martha's conference with our Lord is most comfortable and full of faith, showing what they all expected and believed, I believe thou art the Christ, the Son of God, that should come into the world, to be our life and Resurrection— John 5. 5. pilate's speech to the Jews is of great force. What shall I do then with JESUS which is called MESSIAH Christ? They all said, Let him be crucified. This looks to Dan. 9 Psal. 22. where it is said, Messiah shal● suffer, Mat. 27. 6. The questions that were in agitation among the Jews at this time, will brighten this matter; the signs of the times, as our Lord speaketh, gave them occasion of moving many questions, when John Elies came teaching and baptising, the Jews sent Priests and Levites to ask him, Who art thou? and he confessed, and denied not, and plainly confessed, I am not the Messiah the Christ. Yea the Jews did so expect the Messiah, that all men mused that John was the Messiah, & they were hardly driven off from the conceit, they were to taken with him, Luke 3.15. john 1. Therefore this is a strong argument, that Dan. 9.24. etc. must of absolute necessity be believed to be a proper speech and definitive for the time, MESSIAH coming to satisfy the consciences of the faithful. And for that also our Lord foretold of false Christ's that would arise, as immediately they did, and deceived many, as our Lord said unto them, I am come in my Father's name, and ye receive me not, if another shall come in his own name him ye will receive, John 5. Therefore he said, Search the Scriptures, etc. and very likely Mr. P. if he had then lived, would have been a deceiver, and deceived, and a false Prophet or a false Christ, if he had not believed daniel's Prophesy to be a most clear, exact, and definitive time from daniel's prayer to the death of MESSIAH. So john-elias sent his disciples to Christ to establish them in that which he their Master had acknowledged. When john being in prison heard of the works of Messiah, i. e. Christ, he sent two of his disciples, and said unto him, Art thou he that should come, or shall we look for another? The times did call for all these questions, being but a little before the ending of the seventy sevens. 7. The adjuration of the Priest to the Lord, is very considerable. Mr. P. If he had been of the Council, he xitld have objected to him, that the seventy sevens were ended long before he was b●●n, The high Priest, and the whole Synedrion could not, nor did challenge the Lord for the time of 70. sevens: so where no doubt or question was, ●●va answer needed, but the high Priest and most of the Jews thought him too base for such a Messiah as they expected, and so adjured him to answer to this: I adjure thee by the living God, to tell us, if thou be the Messiah the son of the blessed God, and Christ answered affirmatively. 8. Many weighty arguments depend on these things of Dan. 9.24. as 1 john 4. Every spirit which confesseth jesus to be the Messiah [the Holy of Holy] is come in the flesh [to be a son of man, Dan. 7.] is of God, and every spirit that confesseth not Jesus to be the Messiah, the Christ is come in the flesh, [to be a son of man] is not of God, 1 john 5.1. whosoever believeth, that jesus is the Messiah, is born of God, not simply, or barely, a confession of the attribute Messiah, i. e. Christ, but a right apprehension of his person and offices, Rom, 10. his person, that he is the son of man Dan. 7. and the holy of holy, as touching the spirit of holiness that raised him from the dead. God dwelled in the Messiah, who is God blessed for ever: nor only to confess this of his person, a Locust from the bottomless pit (as Satan) will chirp out this, but to confess jesus to be Messiah experimentally in our minds and hearts, in his offices as he is Prophet Priest and King, All the three Offices of Christ as he is Prophet, Priest, and King, are in Dan. 9.24 etc. to be Messiah, Nagid, Christ the King, that all power is his by donation from the Father to command and rule the Church, to restrain apostasy, and all adverse power, and that he suffered not for himself but for us, who by his precious death hath abolished our sins, and wrought reconciliation for iniquity, and hath brought everlasting justification, by his once offering up of himself, and that he hath sealed vision and Prophecy, that we need not expect new revelations: that he made himself manifest to be the holy One of God, by his Resurrection, Ascension, and sitting at the right hand of the Power, in the higstest heavens, and from thence sent gifts to furnish his Church with Offices and officers to teach, and gather the elect out of the world, to open their eyes, to turn them from darkness to light, from the power of Satan to God, that they might receive forgiveness of sins, and inheritancce among them which are sanctified by the faith which is in him. Christ hath confirmed in his Testament all this holy doctrine for the many, Jew and Gentile, and the Jews for despising the blood of the Covenant have felt to this day the heavy burden of their own imprecation, Matth. 27 25. as their Fathers, Num. 14.2. etc. All this the holy Apostle john meant, (and much more unutterable) that the Lord Jesus Messiah became such a person to be such a mediator, and that testimony in due time, according to the prophecy, 1 Tim. 2.6. And the spirit is peremptory, and saith, whosoever transgresseth, and abideth not in this doctrine of [Messiah, which is called] Christ, hath not God: he that continueth in this doctrine of Christ, he hath the Father and the Son, 2 john 9 9 It will not be useless altogether to observe what Taci●us Suctonius, & josephus speak, that in all the Roman Empire it was divulged in Augustus' caesars days, that a King should arise in judea, that should rule all the world. This is evident by the Persique Magi. They having discerned an unusall Comet in the air, which did argue to them the birth of some noble and famous light, even that Star of jacob, that should * Num. 24, ●id wonderfully expounded in 2 Cor. 10 4.5. unwall all the sons of Seth) that was now come into the world) and whither shotld they direct their journey, and steer their course, but thither the star guided them, and that was to judea. It should seem by the good hand of God, that Daniel * As the Apostle Paul did in Caesar's Court, Phil. 1.13. and 4.22. celebrating the cause of Christ by the angels seventy sevens; at the City Susan, where was the Royal Palace of the Kings of Persia, Let these godl Authors be consulted with about those things. Mr. Rollock. Du Plessis. Beroald. Mr. Bro. Mr. wolphius, and many others. there were some that did expect continually the completing of the seventy Sevens, of which this celebrious Comet appearing, gave them an undoubted hint. For we are not to doubt, but the seventy Sevens was a glorious Prophecy to lighten all the East. And the Evangelist Luke ch. 3.1, 2, 3. doth show, that he bringing in the Emperor's annals into the Church's stories, and John, Elias Ministry to settle the stories of the times, do make a sweet consent of all these things. But to make things yet more plain, it is said, Luke 19 That the Nation of the Jews did expect * This scripture was spoken but few days before our Lord's death and resurrection. the Kingdom of heaven should immediately appear, according to the Prophecies of Dan. 2. and 7. and 9 no Prophecy showed the time as Daniel, and all falls our fit'ly, according to the world's expectation, especially the Church of God. 1. Mr. P. objecteth, in page 52. If the restauration of the city, Dan. 9.25 is of the material Jerusalem after Nebuchadnezars captivity, it must begin the first of Cyrus from which time seventy weeks of years will fully expire long before the birth of Christ. Answ. It is most true, the seventy Sevens do begin at Cyrus first year of the reign of his monarchy. In this Mr. P. saith true, but to say, they end long before the birth of Christ, is a most manifest untruth, for it is said they end at his confirmation of the Testament for the Many, by his sufferings and death in the last Seven. He must be born the Son of man, before he could suffer death to redeem the sons of men. I will stir no more in this, for it is too too bad, and that which hath been said, will I hope, make this assertion to vanish. I am persuaded all the godly Churches in christendom hold MES-SIAS, Yea Papists, vide Cornelius a Lapide; he hath many excellent passages on Dan. 9 but yet none but what the learned and godly reform have and had (yea more completely) before him. in Gabriels' message, to be the Son of God our Redeemer. Scotland, Heydelberg, Geneva so doth, and our dear native country, by divers learned Expositors, and in our Bible notes (I think above eighty years since) it is said, In this last week of the seventy shall Christ come, and preach and suffer death. And a little after, speaking of Christ confirming the covenant, the note saith, by preaching of the Gospel, he confirmed his promise, first to the Jews, and after to the Gentiles. And that Christ by his death and resurrection, caused sacrifice and oblation to cease. Are not we to mourn and lament, that our ministers should thus deal to take us off from holding to the Messiah, the Rock of salvation, as it was taught to Daniel by the holy Angel from heaven. The Angel spoke matter of salvation plain, and fortified by Scripture, and it is fortified also by learned Expositions recoived in all Orthodox churches, but by Mr. P. is added much impertinent and false matter. I will briefly recapitulate some things, and let the people of God study the holy Scriptures, and judge. 1. The angel continueth the holy chronicle to the death of Christ, Vide Mr. Bro. Advertis. pag. Mr. P. breaketh it off altogether concerning that. 2. The Angel nameth the Redeemer of the world, Messiah; Mr. P. doth utterly deny that, and will have Zisca the Bohemian to be his Messiah. 3. The Angel saith, Messiah shall confirm the convenant for many, that is, for the elect of all Nations, both Jews and Gentiles, Mr. P. telleth us of a covenant that Antichrist shall make with his antichristians and their favourites, page 62. and 63. 4. The Angel prescribed for our Lord his preaching three years, and an half, and that is the compass of the Evangelist Marks Gospel, and of the Evangelist john, as it hath been noted by old and later writers, by four Paschatas, that is, by four Passovers, which he kept after his Baptism to his last Supper, which proveth that public administration of his office to be three years and an half, or the half seven. See Dr. Lightfoots harmony. All this Mr. P. disgraceth. 5. The Angel taught how long jerusalem should be an holy City for use of sacrifice, and how long Israel only should be Cod's holy people, and peculiar treasure, namely from the time of daniel's prayer, seventy Sevens were exactly accounted for his people, and the holy City. But Mr. P. taketh from the Church (which God hath gathered from the Gentiles) these meditations & c. &c. 6. Some ancient principal Rabbins confess, that by Messiah Christ the Redeemer is meant. Mr. Bro. on Dani. Christians that dare put forth books to deny this against the honour of Christian name, should think that here they do not well, and Christians should loathe such Treatises, even as the godly converted did their books at Ephesus, and account them, and make them anathema, as the Prophecies of Achab and Zedekias. Much more might be said, of Mr. P. Expositions of Dan 9 (and of all his book) It is said, by the great Rab●oni, the Lord Christ. We be to the world because of offences, and Mr. P. must, yea he will lay it to heart, yea it is marvel, that the godly Teachers of new England did not question him for it in some of their Synods: they have not convented a Synod for a greater matter than the agitation which that Book called for, and I hope some godly and more learned men will consider of that book especially about Dan. 9 and by the fire of sound judgement consume it, as hay, stubble, and rotten wood, and God's day shall declare it, that that work is worthy of no better an end, 1 Col. 3. CHAP. XLIX. A Conclusion of the point of Chronologie. 1. IT hath been observed, that the holy Spirit of endless wisdom, and foresight hath perfectly made up the holy Chronologie of the old Testament, and that the seventy Sevens doth that, by ending the Chain of Jubilees, and all the ceremonies in the death of Messiah. 2. The first coming of Christ was most needful to be known for the assured comfort of Jew and Gentile, Little did Mr. P. consider the state of time that the holy spirit did testify in the Prophets for the coming of Mesas, and his sufferings and glory that should follow in his Resurrection, ascension and sending gifts to convert the Nations, 1 Pet. 1.11. by his death to confirm the promises made to the faithful, and to be the truth of all the types, which were all sponsorious of a better hope, but of the time of his second coming, there was not that need to know; For it is said, But of the times and seasons brethren, ye have no need that I writ unto you: for yourselves know perfectly, that the day of the Lord shall come as a thief in the night, 1 Thes. 5. 3. Of the Chronologie of the New Testament, the spirit of Christ hath not disposed an orderly process of times, neither historically nor prophetically from his death. There is no time cast in the Apocalypse; For God would not begin to account the times after the death of Christ, but he must have gone through with it: else it had been a fault in art but that he would not, because of the end of the world, he would conceal, that no man nor angel knoweth it: the Son (in respect of his humanity) is said not to know the time, who yet giveth the Apocalypse to john, but nothing is unknown to his Godhead who is the first and the last. The thousand years are spoken of for the losing of Satan, Apoc. 20. but the history is not cast by course of time, the thousand years begin (we may best suppose) from the writing of the Apocalypse. 4. But behold the wisdom of God, To teach us in whom we have rest. that most graciously ordered times most exactly, till the death of Christ, in a most pleasant Sabbatick * account, tres-remarkable from JESUS the son of Nun, to our JESUS, that saveth us from our sins. Thus he did, that the whole Nation of the Jews should not miss (but by wilful and despiteful swarving) to receive him the true Messiah, Heb. 2. & 1. & 6. and 10. to leave all the ceremonies, and to look to him the end and scope of all, and this time was it (often noted, and needful often to be noted) wherein the Gentiles should begin to be brought to S●ms Tents, and thence to learn salvation. 5. When all this was done, there needed no times to teach us ceremonially of Christ to come, for his government and offices are perpetual, and shall never be abolished, as Levies Priesthood, till he re deliver up the Mediatorian Kingdom to the Father, and till that time we all should joyfully look in watching when the Bridecrome will come. 6. The Gencalogie and Chronologie served to the promised Lands glory, The noncontinuance of genealogies after the apostles times shall be to-ched else. to the people of Israel's glory, to the Tabernacles glory, to jerusalems' glory, to the Temples glory, and to salomon's Kingdoms glory, for the glory of all these ended when the Chronologie and Genealogy ended, for all the time of the old Testament, they had that heavenly and glorious use. 2. Blessed be the name of the Lord God for ever and ever, for wisdom and strength are his, and he it is that hath altered times, places, and persons, to the glory of the unchangeable Priesthood, and never ending Kingdom of his dear Son our Lord jesus Christ, to whom be glory and praise everlasting, Amen. CHAP. L. Being a Caveat to beware of such Satanical spirits that prattle about the expectation of new Apostles and new Revelations. 1. AS is said, for the Chronologie and Genealogy of the the old Testament, that the infallible use of them did cease after the new Testament was written, so we may say, for the other holy Doctrine of Christ, that we need not to regard, the vanity of wretched men, in expectation of new Apostles, and new Revelations, but studiously to cleave to what is left and ordained, to us in the holy writings of the Prophets, Evangelists, and Apostles. 2. As our Lord and Saviour said, He that will not hear and believe Moses and the Prophets, will neither hear nor believe, if one should rise from the dead: so truly we may say, he that will not hear and believe the holy Evangelists, and the holy Apostles writings, who wrote of the doctrine, life, death and resurrection of Christ, is as far from holy faith as ever any Sadducie was; for Christ is risen from the dead, and after his Resurrection gave commandment what his Apostles should preach unto the Nations, and we see what it was they taught by the four Evangelists, by the book of the Acts, by their Epistles, and by the Son of God in his Apocalyps. 3. And that we might not be deceived by the ungodly, 1 Cor. 4s to look for new Apostles, mark what the apostle Paul saith plainly, that himself and Earnabas, and other Apostles then living, were the last apostles. 4. Wherefore the apostles, seeing the Churches began to be troubled with false apostles, and with grievous and gangrenating errors and heresies, and foretold of worse and more perilous times, that men would not endure sound, and wholesome doctrine, but having sore ears, should after their own lusts get them an heap of Teachers, and should turn their ears from the truth, and should be given unto fables, therefore they gave warning, as is seen in all their writings, and have thus charged us from Christ. That we be mindful of the words, which were spoken before by the holy Prophets, and of the commandment of us the apostles of the Lord and Saviour, 2 Pet. 3.2: and judas Thaddeus saith thus in his Epistle. But beloved, remember the words which were spoken before of the apostles of our Lord Jesus Christ. And the Apostle John saith, He that knoweth God heareth us, he that is not of God beareth nos us, hereby know we the spirit of truth, and the spirit of error, 1 John 4. 5. The faithful obeyed this charge and commandment for many years after the apostles, for the apostles had said, what they had taught to the faithful then living, should be communicated to other faithful for the instruction of others, for above an 100 years after their days, we have not writings of the Ancients, they kept themselves to the holy Scriptures of the Prophets and apostles. 6. And when the Ancients of the Primitive Churches began to write, much about the second Century, and after, it is manifest they adhered to the holy Scriptures, and commended them much to the people, and some of the Ancients did so admire and advance the holy Scriptures, that they adored the sufficiency of them for Doctrine of faith and manners. 7. This is most clear, for it is said, the faithful martyrs for 300 years suffered for the Word of God, and the Testimony of Jesus, Apoc. 6.9. and so the two witnesses suffered under the Beast of the Pit, King Abaddon, For the keeping of the commandments of God; and the saith of JESUS, Apoc. 14.12. sofar off they were from expecting new apostles, and new revelations, but harkened to the apostles directions, Col. 2.18, 19, etc. 8. Doubtless, divine revelation in the Prophets and Apostles writings is a mercy beyond comparison, no tongue is able to express the goodness of God in this his grace to the Church, so the Saints ever have thought. Psal. 103.7. and 147.2 Tim. 3.15, 16, 17. 9 And let us beware of Satanical spirits that prattle about the expectation of new apostles: Apoc. 22.18, 19 and new revelations, for else we shall fall into the curse of the Lord jesus, who wrote his Apocalyps to the Churches, where his apostles had laid the foundation of the holy faith, and all Churches then, and now we are admonished to hearken to that which: Christ the Lord spoke to the Churches. All the apostles, as it is thought, but john, were departed this life when the Apocalypse was written. 10. And let such take heed of illuminations & new light (as they speak) yea to take heed of lying wonders, of visible lights, and sights, and strange audible voices, jannes' and jambres heardened Pharaohs heart by such. Satanical delusions. And under the new Testament Satan and his instruments, do, and will do so to deceive. Men and women so bewitched are hardened in pride, stubbornness, and curiosity, etc. that the holy Scriptures are but of mean estimation with such, and prayer and praising of God, and the seals of the covenant, and an able and faithful ministry, yea godly magistracy: these inestimable mercies are of no repute with them; and Family exercises are deserted of them as things of bondage, but the godly soul ever hath, and shall find that the cleaving to the Prophets and apostles writings will be a most sure foundation for truth of Doctrine, and for a godly, righteous and temperate life, and of joyful hope when our eyes are closed in the dust. 11. Without question those that expect new apostles and new revelations. Satan hath new Revelations; for even our first Parents, because they stuck not fast to the revelation of God's will, but harkened to new revelations, from that counterfeit angel of light Satan, they were deceived, and still Satan doth labour to bewitch men's minds with corrupt and bad opinions, and with vile courses of life. 2 Tim. 3. I. 109. being not content with the Scriptures of the Prophets and apostles, which are not scaled, but made known to us by Messiah coming who hath in them told us all things needful to be known: Therefore it is said, concerning this very thing, He that is unjust, let him he unjust still, and be that is filthy, let him be filthy still, and he that is righteous, let him be righteous still; and he that is holy let him be holy still, 12. I will conclude this to the godly Reader, with that of the apostle Peter. Ye therefore beloved, seeing ye know these things before, beware lest ye also being led away with the error of the wicked, fall from your own steadfastness: but grow in grace and in the knowledge of our Lord and Saviour jesus Christ; to him be glory both now and ever Amen. CHAP. LI. The Exposition of the times mentioned in in the Apocalypse. 1. THere is mention made in chap. 11. of 42. months, and 1260. days, those show the rage and cruel persecution of the Beast of the Pit against the two witnesses. 2. In chap. 12. There it is told 1260 days, and of a time, times and half a time: which are spoken of the Dragon's cruelty in the Caesars. 3. In chap. 13. There is also mention made of 41 months, which is to be understood, both of the Tyranny of the Caesars, the sixth head that was wounded to death; and of the Tyranny of the Beast, like a Lamb that healed the wounded head of the Government of the Empire. 4. By these times so variously expressed in divers chapters, Beroald and M. Broughton ancient and later Expositors show that by them is meant the quality of State, not length of years (namely) that the Church should be afflicted with the afflictions of Christ, who was persecuted three years and half by the seed of the old Serpent. 5. The like analogy is from Isa. 49. and 61. Luk. 4. and 2 Cor. 6. As by the acceptable year of the Lord is meant the jubilee year, in which Messiah Christ our Lord was given for a covenant, and laid down his life for our justification, redemption and ending all Moses ceremonies: But now all time of the Gospel to the end of the world is the accepted time, and the day of salvation, and the acceptable year of the Lord. The like force is in 1 Cor. 5. That all in the Church must keep the feast of Christ our Passeover, who was sacrificed for us with the unleavened bread of sincerity and truth, to the end of all Ordinances, that is till the Son of man come to deliver up the Mediatorian Kingdom; 1 Cor. 11.26. The time of Tyranny under the Caesars, was three hundred years, yet by Metonomia, meaning the argument of persecution from our Lord's time, it is called three years and half: the matter showeth twice in chap. 11. and twice in chap. 12. and once in chap. 13. that proper time cannot be meant: and the same is to be understood of the persecution of the Beast of the Pit. They who think to get any certainty from these numbers, deceive themselves and their Readers. The allusion is most heavenly, calling Christ still unto mind. Our Lord preached 42 months or 3 years and an half, or days 1260, or a time, two times, and an half: so that these numbers in the Apocalypse mean no certain time, but the manners from a like time is meant. The persecuting Pharisees and Sadduces, were revived and continued by the Caesars and Popes. The Caesar's Persecution, as is noted, lasted 300 years, and the persecution of the false Lamb lasteth yet, and will, till the Lord cast him and his deceived into the Lake of fire and brimstone. 7. The seven Seals, the seven Trumpets, and the seven phials, are not distinguished in time in the Apocalypse, none of these are, or properly can be referred to any exact time. 8. I will add a little more in brief, of the times of the New Testament, which will give some light to all that may read the Histories of the Church: Mr. Patrick Symson, of the History of the Church, will much help the Reader. The ten Persecutions lasted three hundred years by the Infidel Roman Emperors; the sixth head of the Roman Beast: from Nero to Constantine, that time was an age of violence. Thence to Phocas (who murdered his Master the Emperor Manritius) who confirmed the Papacy to Boniface the Third, about the year six hundred and six; and than Mahomet risen about that time, or somewhat after. This time of three hundred years was an age of fraudulence by Heretics: Arius, Pelagius, Donatus, Martion, Nestorius, etc. they were confronted by Fathers, Athanasius, Hillary, Basil, Nazianzen, Cl●ysostome, Augustine, etc. The times following were also times of violence and fraud in Pope and Turk; Popish superstition still increasing exceedingly. till by the two Witnesses it was resisted, by Waldenses, Wickliff, Hus, Jerom of Prague, and Luther, etc. and Mahometism greatly prevailed, to the removing of the Candlesticks of the Churches of Asia, as it was threatened against them, Apoc. 2. & 3. and evils in the Churches of the East prevailed by the strength, deceit, and falschood of the Papacy, till that the Turk possessed Constantine's Empire and City. The Kingdom of Christ our Lord and Saviour under the new Testament, was first impugned in the time of the Caesars, and in the growing on of the mystery of iniquity. Then this Prophetical Office: and at last his Priestly Office was striven against, which was almost desperately corrupted in the height of the mystery of iniquity in the tenth Century. This last was first contested against by Waldenses, Wickliff and Luther, etc. Then his Prophetical Office was upheld by the faithful in cleaving to the Divine Oracles of the holy Scriptures: and at this day this is the greatest contestation. And his Kingly Office hath been but in few places executed; for Christian States do not consider as they should, the benefits thereof that will redound unto them by true Ecclesiastical Discipline: and much opposition there hath been and is about it. But as Christian Governors and Teachers have embraced the two former, they will also the other, rejoicing to defend only Christ's Ordinances, and hate to maintain any thing of the Beasts marks, that they may make good that Scripture of the Apostle of us Gentiles: 1 Tim: 6.13. I give thee charge in the sight of God who quickeneth all things, and before Christ Jesus; who before Pontius Pilate witnessed a good profession. 14. That thou keep this Commandment without spot. unrebukable, until the appearing of our Lord Jesus Christ. 15. which in his times he shall show who is the blessed and only POTENTATE, the King of Kings, and Lord of Lords. 16. Who only hath immortality, dwelling in the light, which no man can approach unto, whom no man hath seen, nor can see, to whom be honour and power everlasting, Amen. CHAP. LII. Of the Attributes or Titles of God Essentially considered. AELohim. Almighty's; or Almighty Powers: but in Greek the Apostles do always render it singularly, Theos, God. Aelohah. Omnipotent, or Almighty, Job 12.4. Ael. Puissant, or mighty, Gen. 14 18. Jehovah. Being of himself, and giving being to all things. Elion The most High. Elionin A Plural. Shaddai. Almighty, or All-sufficient. Gen. 17.1. Adonai. My Stays, my Pillars. Gen. 15.2. Job 28.28. Ehieth. I am, or I will be: Ex. 3.14. Jah. In notation much like Jehovah. Yzur. The Rock; the seventy translate it Theos, and sometimes Ctistes. Goel. Redeemer. Ghosai Plural, sig. my Makers. Job 35.10. Abba Father The Power. Matth. 26.64. The Fear. Gen. 31.57. Psal. 76.12. Name. Theos. God. Curios. Lord. Creator. Master. Mal. 1.6. Eph. 6. Eternal God. Gen. 21.33. Sabbaoth. When he warreth against the wicked he is called Jehovah Sabbaoth. the Lord of Hosts: or when he performeth great intendments for his Church. From these Attributes sundry Uses may be gathered. 1. From the Attribute or Title Aeloim. 1. Aelohim is a form plural, to teach the mystery of the Trinity which is most necessary to be well marked; or else that form were dangerous. I say it were dangerous, if necessity did not require us to be thereby taught the knowledge of the Divine persons. 2. But sometimes it is joined with a word singular: as in Gen. 1.1. Aelohim He created, because there is but one Godhead; but the plural form of speaking when it is joined with a word singular, doth necessarily call upon us to know the mystery of the Trinity in the unity of the Godhead. 3. This plural Attribute Aelohim, though it be commonly joined with a word singular (for the reason aforesaid) yet it is sometimes also joined with a word plural; as Aelohim, He went: 1 Chron. 17.21. and so Aelohim, They went, 2 Sam. 7.23. and so in Jos. 24.23. He is holy Gods: and in Jer. 10 10. He is living Gods; but in Gen. 20.13. it is also joined with a word plural, They Gods caused me to wonder: and in Gen. 35.7. They Gods were revealed to him. The Wisdom of God thought these Expressions to be necessary for our instruction in the mystery of the Trinity, and in the Unity of the Godhead, or else it had been dangerous, for Idolatry, so to declare himself to us. 2. Hence we may learn, that though sometimes words of the plural Number be joined with the plural Attribute Aelohim, yet God did no way intent thereby to teach to worship a plurality of Gods, as the ignorant and negligent in the Scriptures are ready to understand it, because he hath taken good order to clear it from that errtour by other Scriptures, especially to such as are diligent in the study of the blessed Scriptures: he hath cleared his Attribute Aelohim, from being taken for many Gods; because he hath often put this Attribute into the form singular: as by Eloah in Job 12.4. and sometimes by a shorter form El, The Mighty, in Gen. 14.18. And secondly by joining it often to a word singular; and thirdly by limiting this plural Attribute Aelohim only to three persons, or Existences in the unity of the Godhead: as in Psal. 33. 6. By the word of Jehovah the Heavens were made, and all the Hosts of them by the spirit of his mouth. And saith Ains. in Gen. 1.1, The ancient Hebrew Doctors have left Records of this mystery; Though at this day that Nation doth not understand it. Come and see (saith Rab. Ben jochai) The mystery of the word Aelohim: There are three degrees, and every degree by itself alone (that is, distinct) And yet notwithstanding (saith he) They are all One, and are not divided one from another: And saith Ains in Numb, 15.25. Rabbi Men●●hem on these two Phrases [Unto the Lord] and [Before the Lord] saith, from their former ancient Rabbins: This it meant of him and his Judgement Hale, and no Judgement Hale had less than three: by which it appeareth, that the mystery of the Trinity in the Godhead was formerly believed by the Jews, though now they do oppose the same: And the Lord Duplessie in his Trueness of Religion, page 74.75.76.78. doth prove, that the ancient Hebrew Doctors held the Trinity. But (blessed be God) our New Testament doth tell us most clearly. 1. That the Father is the Creator. Eph. 3.9. 2. That the Son is the Creator. Eph. 1.8.10. Col. 1 16. 3. That the holy Spirit is the Creator. Gen. 1.2. Psal. 33.6. Psal. 104. 30. And hence it is that Solomon would have young men to make it their care to Remember their Creator in the days of their health. Eccles. 12.1. 4. Hence we may learn, that God is Almighty for the protection of those that fear him, and that trust in his gracious promises; and he is Almighty to ruinated his Church's Adversaries: Surely there is an Aelohim that judgeth in the Earth. Psal. 58.13. 2. From the Attribute, or Title, Jehovah, we may learn, 1. That Jehovah is the only true God; for this Attribute signifies one that hath Being of himself, and that gives Being to every Creature, and that can take away their being at his pleasure; and therefore it is an incommunicable Attribute, for none hath being of himself but he alone. 2. There is none that can give being to all other things but he alone. 3. None can take away the Being of all other things, but he alone. But for the better understanding of the large signification of this Attribute, see Ains. in Ps●l. 83.19. and in Gen, 2.4. and in Gen 6.3. and in Gen. 15.2. and in Numb. 6.24. and in Levit. 24.16. 2. This Attribute may be a sufficient ground of encouragement to such as the Lord is pleased to call forth to do any difficult service: as for example; when it pleased God to call Moses to go on his Embassage to persecuting Pharaoh, he was of himself unwilling because of his inability of speech: But Christ Jesus said unto him in Exod. 4.11. Who hath made the mouth of man? or who maketh the dumb, or the deaf, or the open eyed, or the blind? have not I Jehovah; therefore go now and I will be with thy mouth, etc. And in like sort Christ shown himself to be Jehovah, when he said unto his Disciples in Luke 21.15. I will give you a mouth and wisdom which all your adversaries shall not be able to gain say or resist: and hence we may also gather, that that Jehovah which spoke unto Moses, was the Son of God, the Angel of God's presence: and so Christ must be still understood to be called Jehovah from Exod. 3. to the end of Deuteronomy. 3. After that Moses had been discharged, and by Pharaohs threatening both against him and against Aaron in Exod. 5. then the Lord did still encourage Moses by this Attribute in Exod 6.2. saying unto Moses, I am Jehovah: as if he had said in more words, be not discouraged, but go, for I will now in vers. 8 give a being of performance to that promise which I formerly made to Abraham, that I would give unto him the land of Canaan. 4. This Artribute is for terror to all persecutors of God's people; for Christ is Jehovah that gives a being to the performance of all his promises, and of all his threaten he told Moses in Ex●d. 6.6. I am Jehovah, I will bring you out from under the burden of the Egyptians, and I will redeem you with a stretched out arm, and with great judgements: And thereupon he bade Moses say to Pharaoh in Exod. 7.17. Thus saith Jehovah. In this thou shalt know that I am Jehovah: Behold I smite with the Rod that is in my ba●d upon the waters which are in the River, and they shall be curned into blood. And in Exod. 8.1. Thus saith Jehovah, Send a●ay my people, if thou refuse to send them away; behold I will smite thy borders with Frogs, that thou mayest know (as verse 10.) that there is none like Jehovah our God: And in verse 20. Say to Pharaoh, thus saith Jehov●h, send away my people, or else I will send conjoined swarms upon thee, and upon thy servants, and upon thy people. And in verse 22. There shall be not (such) conjoined swarms in Gashen, that thou mayest know that I am Jehovah. And thus after this sort did Jehovah Christ give a being to his threaten; and though Jesus Christ did suffer jannes' and jambres to resist Moses in the execution of his miracles with their counterfeit miracles for a time; yet at last Christ Jesus did not suffer them to courterfeit all the miracles of Moses, and thereby he made their madness, namely, their mad zeal evident: 2 Tim. 3 8. 5. This Attribute is for instruction to all God's people to take special notice of the powerful actings of this Jehovah for his people, and against their adversaries: for as it is in Exod. 10.1. lehovah said unto Moses, Go in unto Pharaoh, for I have made his heart heavy, and the heart of his servants, that I may set these my signs in the midst of them; and that thou mayest tell it in the ears of thy son, and of thy son's son, &c, that ye may know that I am jehovah. The like arguing is in Psal. 78.5.6. etc. and the like is in Exod. 6.6. Say unto the sons of Israel, I am jehovah: I will bring you out from under the burdens of the Egyptians. And in verse 7. I will take you unto me for a people, and I will be to you a God: and ye shall know that I am jehovah your God. 6. This Attribute is prefixed and affixed to the ten Commandments, in Exod. 20.2. for the comfort of them that are in Covenant with God, and that keep his Commandments by faith in Christ; and for the terror of such as transgress his Commandemants through the want of faith in Christ, for no other obedience is acceptable, but that which is mixed with faith. 7. This Attribute jehovah is often pressed upon the people of Israel that were in Covenant with God, that they may walk in holiness as a people in Covenant ought to do: as in Levit, 18. and in Levit, 19 and often elsewhere, as a band to tie them to yield all holy obedince to all God's Laws, both to his Ceremonial and judicial Laws, as well as to the Decalogue; and therefore obedience to all the Ceremonial Laws is enforced on this ground: Because I am jebovah your God: and in Levit. 11.44.45. You shall not make yourselves unclean by any creeping thing that moveth upon the earth; for I am jehovah that bringeth you up out of the Land of Egypt to be a God unto you, and ye shall be ho●y at I am holy: And this duty is also urged on the faithful dispersed jews in the new Testament: 1 Pet. 1.15.16. 3. From the Attribute Elion the most High. 1. We may learn not to be daunted with the big looks of such as do oppose us in a good Cause: and therefore Melchisedek did most pertinently use this Title of God in his blessing to Abraham; He called him the most High: namely, over his Enemies the four Kings, when he returned with Victory over them, Gen. 14.18. And then also Abraham told the King of Sodom in verse 22. That he had lift up his hand unto [jehovah, Ael, Elion] The Lord God most High, the Possessor of Heaven and Earth, that he would not take any thing that was his. 2. The like instruction we may learn from this Attribute in the form plural, Elionin, Eccles. 5.7. Mr. Bro. reads it thus: If the oppression of the poor, and robery of judgement and justice, thou do behold in a Country, marvel not at the matter, for an higher than the high one doth mark; and there be high above them, namely, Elionin, the high Trinity: as his Marginal Note is. 3. jeremy in Lam. 3.35.38 doth twice over complain to Elionin against the wicked high States of judah, whom they felt and should feel in his judgements, to be higher and mightier than they. 4. The Saints of Zorobabels' house are called the Saints of the most High, in Dan. 7.18. and they are comforted with this Attribute in Chaldy, against the four persecuting Empires there expressed, which ended with the parted Greek monarchy: namely, that though they should by their tyraany be deprived of the possession of an Earthly Kingdom, yet they should still be the Saints of (Elionin) the most High, and shall hold a Kingdom for ever, yea for ever and ever. This Chaldy term in the plural is put for the singular; as Aben Ezra noteth; and we may be sure that it was so spoken to note out of the Trinity of persons in the unity of the Godhead: and in this place it was fit to be plural, because it hath relation to the distinct vision of the Son and of the Father; and upon the same account Thrones are also plural, in verse 9 5. Therefore such as are Saints must pay their Vows to God most, high, Psal. 50, 14. as Abraham did in Gen. 14.22. and the most High, in Luke 6.35. is called Our Father which is in Heaven, in Matth 5.45. 4. From the Attribute Shaddai, the Almighty or the All-sufficient. 1. Hence we may learn, that it is good for us in all our temptations to rest or stay our Souls upon his promises; for if we be qualified with faith and grace according to his Covenant, as Abraham was, in Gen. 17. 1. we may be sure he will be Ael Shaddai, the Almighty, or All-sufficient to perform his promises, and threaten, though they seem never so unlikely to natural reason, as in performing his promise to Abraham, by making Sarahs' dead Womb to conceive and bring forth: and in performing his threaten on the wicked, though in their reason they do often thing themselves compassed about with Rocks of security: yet God saith, that Shod [destruction] shall come from Shaddai [the Almighty] Isa. 13.6. 5. From the Attribute Adonai, which is plural, and importeth, my Pillars, or stays. 1. Hence we may learn to rest and depend upon him for the certain fulfilling of his promises, if we be but rightly qualified according to the conditions required of us in his Covenant of Grace, Abraham said in Gen. 15.2. Adoni Jehonith, what wilt thou give me seeing I go childless; or seeing I am going out of the world childless, for I have no hope in nature of a child: but yet notwithstanding I do call thee Adonai, the Pillar and stay of my weak saith, in that gracious promise now propounded, in verse 6: Fear not Abraham, I am thy shield, and thy reward shall be exceeding great: namely, The Messiah shall be born from thy loins; Abraham replieth in verse 2. Adonai, Jehonith, what will thou give me, seeing I go childless? And so those sweet promises before given in Gen. 12.3. and Gen. 15.15 of the Messiah, shall be frustrate: but yet I call thee Adonai, Jehonith, as still making thee my pillars and stays, and the giver of being to thy promises, and therefore I do by my interrogation expect a further answer to stay my faith upon. 2. Job, in chap. 28.28. is thus translated by Bro. Mark. The Fear of Adanai is wisdom, and to eschew evil is understanding. His Marginal Note is this; Adonai is used first in Gen. 15.2. of Abraham: and is plural for note of Trinity, and signifies, My stays. 6. From the Attribute Ehieth, I am, or I will be. 1. Hence we may learn to establish our faith in Gods unchangeable promises for the good of his Church, and of his threaten for the destruction of their Enemies. 2. This is also observable, that when his promises are confirmed with his oath, or confirmed by signs, as his promise of Canaan was to Abrah. posterity, than God applies his name Ehieth to it, as in Ex. 3.14. I am that I am, or I will be that I will be: & so in Rev. 1.4. God is called, he that is, and that was, and that will be; in which word the name Ehieth is opened, and also the name Jehovah: and it is applicable to the certainty both of his promises of support to his faithful ones under their persecutors; and also to his threaten of their enemy's destruction: and the same Title is given to God in Rev. 16.5. chief to assure the godly of those times, of the certain destruction of their antichristian adversaries. This Title is also given to Jesus Christ, in Heb. 13.8. Jesus Christ yesterday, and to day, and the same for ever: because of the certain effects of his Mediators Office. 7. From the Attribute Jah, Breathing, in Exod. 15.2. 1. Hence we may learn, that in Jah we live and move and have our breath and being. 2. Hence we may learn, that Jah doth take away the breath and being of his Church's enemies when it pleaseth him, and therefore in Exod. 15.2. Israel in their Song of triumph did praise God that had given breath and being to them in the midst of the Red-sea, and that had taken away the breath and being of Pharaoh and all his Host in the Red-sea. 2. This Attribue do the Saints give, in Revel 19.1.3.46, to Christ their being, for their deliverance or preservation from the prevailing power of Antichrist, saying Halalujah. 3. Isa. in chap. 16.4. doth exhort to faith and confidence in this jah; saying, Trust in the Lord for ever, for in Jah, Jehovah is the Rock of Ages 4. His Title jah, in Psal 68.4. is there used in that exhortation to praise God for his mercies by his name jah. 5. This Title Halalu jah is in Psal. 104.35. where the consuming of sinners is mentioned, alluding therein to the destruction of the Sodomites, and of Pharaoh and his Host in the Red-sea, as in Psal, 105.44.45. 6. This title Halalu-jab is also used in Revel. 19 where the destruction of Antechrist is foretold. 8. From the Attribute Tzur the Rock, it is first used in Deut. 32.4.18.30.37. and in 2 Sam. 22. and in 2 Sam. 22.2.32. 1. Hence we may learn, that no Rock is like this Rock; and therefore if we have right unto him by the Covenant of grace, we may depend upon him in all straits and temptations for protection and preservation: for this Rock is Christ, as it is expounded in 1 Cor. 10.4. and and so the Rock in Matth. 16.18. is not Peter but Christ; for Peter said in verse 10. Thou art Christ: Christ's answer is, Upon this Rock I will build my Church, land the gates of Hades shall not overcome it. Mr. Bro. saith, that the term Rock in commendations of a person, must ever be taken for God; and therefore (saith he) He that takes it for Peter, doth make him a God: and saith he, it is used for Christ only in the usual name of God. 2. The term Rock in Psal. 31.5 is by the seventy translated Ctistes, which is translated the (faithful, or sure) Creator, in 1 Pet. 4.19. 9 Ghosai, a plural signifying My Makers. 1 Hence we may learn, that there is a Trinity of persons in the Unity of the Godhead: it is used in lob 35.10. and Psal. 149.1. 2. Hence we may learn, that God hath not only made us to have a being in his visible Creation, but also that he doth make his Elect to have a being in his invisible Creation, namely to be his people by a spiritual Creation; as the double reading in Psal. 100.3. doth well expound the sonse. 10. Goel, Redeemer. This is most usually applied to the second person, because he paid the price of our redemption: But yet redemption is also often attributed to the first person in trinity, as in Isa. 63. because all our actual liberation is from him. The second person paid the price; But the actual Attonemont by which redemption is complete, is the act of the first person: and the qualification that belongeth to the persons that are to be redeemed, is the act of the third person: and in this sense all the three persons may be called Redeemers. 11. The other Attributes, the Power, the Fear, etc. are coincident with the former Titles, and with their Expositions and uses. Conclusion. Seeing Elohim is the mighty Creators, and jehovah is Being of himself, and giving being to all other things, and the most High and only Potentate to maintain and defend his Saints that are in Covenant with him, and seeing he is our All sufficient, four Pillars and stay, always unchangeable, and ever the same, our breath, in whom we live and move and have our being, in whose hand is our breath and all our ways; and seeing he saith, that he is our Father and Redeemer through the everlasting Covenant confirmed in the blood of his dear Son, we may well make all the Trinity in that eternal Covenant, to be our Rock and Refuge for our Redemption, Reconciliation, Justification, Adoption, and Eternal Salvation, Amen. CHAP. LIII. Of the Attributes of the Divine Nature of the second Person in Trinity. JEhovah, in Gen. 6.3. Rock. Son. The Word. Wisdom. Immanuel. Lord. God Angel Michael. Puissant. Name, Act. 3.14. Alpha and Omega, Beginning and Ending, First and Last. 1. Jehovah is the Attribute of the second person, as in Gen. 6.3. there the Spirit of Jehovah, is in 1 Pet. 3.19. called the Spirit of Christ. 2. Jehovah, in Isa. 6.8.9. is expounded of Christ, in john 12 37.38. 3. In Icr. 23.6. that Christ is called Jehovah our Righteousness, because he is by God made unto us Righteousness, 1 Cor. 1.30. and 31. And saith Bro. in Ecclesi●stes, the Hebrew Doctors do commonly say from Jer 23. as in Bathra, Sect 1. fol. 75. B. that the Messiah is jehovah our Righteousness. 4. In Gen. 19.24. Jehovah, from Jehovah reigned fire and brimstone, etc. hence we may learn, that the second person as Mediator doth speak and work from the Father, as john 5.17 to verse 30. The Father must evermore be considered as the first in the order of working in the Trinity. 5. From john 5.17 etc. we may see the reason why the Title Jehovah is so usually to be understood of Christ, except in those places where the Father is distinguished, as in Gen. 19 24. Psal. 110.1. and some few other places, as in Isa. 26.4. there Jehovah is said to be in jah [the Father] and our Lord doth thus insinuate the sense of that and such like places, to Philip, in john 14.10, 11. Believest than not that I am the Father, and the Father in me: so in Exod 23.21. My name is in him, is thus opened in 2 Cor. 5.19. God was in Christ. 2. Hence we may learn that all the attributes that are given unto God essentially, are likewise given to the second and third persons, as well as to the first. 6. Christ is called the Angel that Jacob invocated: The Angel that appeared unto Moses in the Bush, Exod. 3. The Angel of God's presence Esa. 63. And the Angel of the Covenant, Mal. 3 1. Likewise the Titles Jehovah, Aelohim, etc. used by Moses, in Geneses, Exodus, Leviticus, Numbers, Deutrenomy, and used by David and all the Prophets: These Titles are applied by the Apostles to Christ, in 1 Cor. 10 and Stephen, called Christ the Angel, in Act. 7.38. 7. The title God is applied to Christ, as in Psal 78.1. Let Aelohim [God] arise, and in v. 19 Thou art ascended on high, is expounded of Christ, in Eph 4 8.9. and the former sentence, Let God arise, is taken from Numb. 10.35. and there it is, Rise up jehovah: and in these words Moses also hath respect unto the promise, in Exod. 23.20, 21. Behold I send and Angel before thee, etc. Beware of him and hear his voice, etc. for my name is in him: and in Gen. 31.13. he is called the God of Beith●l. 8. The title Son is applied to Christ, in Psal. 2 12 Kiss the Son lest he be angry; likewise in Prov. 30.4. What is his name, and the name of his Son, if th●u canst tell. Likewise God the Father doth call him Son: This is my beloved Son in whom I am well pleased, hear him, Matth. 3.17. Matth. 17.5. 9 Word, as in 2 Sam. 7.21. For thy words sake; but in 1 Chron. 17.19. repeating the same thing, it is for thy servants sake: So in the new Testament, the second person is called the Word, john 1.1. he as Mediator is also so called in relation to the eternal Covenant, which he in his Godhead made with his Father for man's redemption; and that he is called the servant of God, because he assumed our nature in relation to do the Office of a Mediator, Matth. 12.18. compared with Esa. 42.1. 10 Christ is called the Wisdom of God, first in Pro. 8.1. and secondly, he is so called in the new Testament, Luke 11.49. 1 Cor. 1.24. 11. He is called the Father of Eternity, in Esa. 9.6. because he did in his Godhead from Eternity covenant to undertake the Office of a Mediator, by which means he procured the spirit for our Redemption, and so consequently for our Adoption, and thus Christ is called the Father of Eternity: and in this respect he hath taught us to pray unto all the Trinity by this title Our Father, Matth. 6.9. 12. He is called Michael the Archangel, by judas Thaddae is, v 9 but this very person is called jehovah, in Zach. 3.2. being cited thence. 13. He is called God's Fellow, in Zach. 13.7. with Mat●h. 26.31. for he thought it no robery to be equal with God, Phil. 2.6. 14. He is called God over all blessed for ever, Rom. 9 and the God of Beithell, Gen. 31.13. and the mighty God, Tit. 2.13. 15. He is also called the Lord, in Rom. 10.9. But that place is taken from Deut. 30 10. etc. and there he is called Jehovah; and in 1 Cor. 2 8. he is called the Lord of Glory, and in Jam. 2.1. our glorious Lord Jesus Christ. 16. He is called Name, in Exod. 23.21. My Name is in him, and in Heb. 1.3. he is said to be the express Image of God's person; and in 2 Cor. 4.4. he is called the Image of God, and in Col. 1.15. he is said to be the Image of the invisible God, begotten before all the Creation, for by him were all things created, which are in Heaven and which are in Earth, the visible and the invisible, whether Thrones, or Dominions, or principalities, or powers, all things were created by him and for him, and he is before all things, and by him all things consist: yea, he is called the beginning of the Creation of God, Rev. 3.14. and hence it follows by necessary consequence, that seeing all things were created in the first six days, both the visible and the invisible Creation, both the earthly and the spiritual Creation, namely, because some of all these kinds were then created, it must needs be, that Adam & Eve were then created (not only for an earthly Paradise) but for a spiritual and for an heavenly Paradise, for he presently lost the possession of the earthly Paradise; and therefore seeing some were elected to an heavenly Paradise, Adam and Eve must be belonging to that kind of Creatures that were elected to that place, for there were no other that should be created for that Paradise in the first six days but Adam and Eve, or else if they were not then created a new for that place in the first six days, than it will also follow, that God did not finish all the Hosts of Heaven and Earth in the first six days. But it is affirmed that he did finish all the said Hosts, namely, some of every Host in the first six days, and therefore it doth necessarily follow, that Adam and Eve were then created as a part of the Host of the spiritual Paradise here, and as a part of the Host of the heavenly Paradise hereafter, by a re-creation on the same sixth day in which they were created, and fell. 17. He is called the blessed and only Potentate, the King of Kings, and Lord of Lords, who only hath immortality, and dwelleth in light that none can approach unto, whom no man hath ever seen, nor can see: To whom be honour and power everlasting, Amen. 1 Tim. 2.15. These, and many other Texts which are cited in the new Testament from the old, do prove the Godhead of Christ by an undeniable consequence, against Turks, Jews, and Arrians. CHAP. LIV. Of the Attributes of the humane nature of the second Person. THe Seed of the woman. The seed of Abraham. The seed of David. The root of Jesse. The offspring of David. The Son of God, the Son of Man. Shiloh. Immanuel. 1. Christ in his humane nature is called the seed of the woman, in Gen. 3.15. Then God said thus to Satan, I will put enmity between thee and the woman, and between thy seed and her seed, he shall break thy head plot, and thou shalt pierce him in the foot sole. This seed of the woman must not be expounded in a not collective sense for Christ and his members, but of Christ only, because he only could break the Devil's headplot. 2. God said to Abraham, in Gen. 18. In thy seed Shall all the Nations of the earth be blessed. This word seed is expounded in a collective sense but of the individual person of the Mediator, and of his humane nature only, as it is expounded in Gal. 3.16. 3. It is said in Rom. 1.3. That he was made of the seed of David according to the flesh, though it was also united personally to his divine nature: as, in Mat. 9.27 O thou Son of David have mercy on u●: let the beams of thy divine nature show forth its power in thy humane nature, taken from the loins of David,. 4. Christ is called the Root, and the Offspring of David. in Rev. 22.16. as it was prophesied in Isa. 11.10. In that day there shall be a root of jesse, which shall stand for an ensign of the people, to it shall the heathen seek, and his rest shall be glorious. 5. He is called Shiloh, in Gen 49.10. The Sceptre shall not departed from Judah, nor a lawgiver from between his feet until Shiloh come, and unto him shall the gathering of the people be. 6. The titles Son, Son of God, and Son of man, are often applied to the humane nature of Christ: as for example, 2 Sam 7.14. I will be to him a Father, and he shall be unto me a Son: this word Son is applied to his humane nature in personal union with his Divine, in Heb. 1.5. because he doth there make him above the angels. 7. God called him Son, in Psal. 2.7. Thou art my son, I this day begat thee. Now Christ is called God's son, in sundry respects. 1. He is God's son from Eternity by divine generation. 2. At his incarnation, when his humane nature was conceived by the Holy Ghost, in the Virgin's womb, and therefore that holy thing was called the Son of God, Luke 1.35. 3. He was called God's Son in Psal. 2.7. by being begotten into the Mediators office, when he was extrinsecally installed by the visible anointing of the Holy Ghost, when we was baptised of John at Jordan, Mat. 17. and of this begetting of Christ the Apostle speaks in Acts 13.23. 32, 33. Of this man's seed, (namely of David's seed, as verse 22.) hath God according to his promise (in Es. 11.1, 2.) raised or begotten, as it is after expounded, unto Israel a Saviour Jesus: and this raising he takes up again in verse 32, 33. We declare unto you glad tidings, how that the promise which was made unto the Fathers, God hath fulfilled unto us their children, in that he hath raised up Jesus (again) as it is also written in the second Psalm, Thou art my son, this day have I begotten thee (The word again is not in the Geneva, nor in Ains. who translates the verse in Psal. 2.7. and being added, it carries the sense to the Resurrection of Christ, which is not intended in this verse, though it be intended in the next verse) but that which is intended in this verse, in the beginning of the raising up of Christ on the spiritual throne of David, to be a King, Priest, and prophet, by his extrinsecall anointing into the Mediators office, which was not done till he went to Jordan to be baptised, than the Holy Ghost did anoint him visibly before Johus Auditory, by sitting like the dove upon him, and Christ's extrinsecall instalment into the Mediators office is also proved by Heb. 5.5. from the second Psalm, Christ glorified not himself to be made an high Priest, but he that said unto him, Thou art my Son, to day have I begotten thee: hence it is evident, that he called him his son, glorified him with the visible anointing of the holy Ghost at his Baptism before all john's auditory: and in this respect he is said to be his son by being begotten extrinsecally into the Mediators office. 4. He was also begotten from the dead, by the power of God in his Resurrection, and of this begetting or raising up his son, the apostle also speaks in Acts 13.30.31, 34. This twofold raising of Christ, spoken of in Acts 13. ought to be well marked, because it will then clear the citation of Psalm 2.7. to be alleged only for the proof of Gods begetting his son by his extrinsecall instalment into the Mediators office when he began to be 30 years of age, even as Daniel was not united to the extrinsecall execution of his Kingly office, until he was extrinsecally anointed, and so Christ his raising or begetting into the extrinsecall execution of his Mediators office, is also spoken of in Deut. 18.15.18. Luke 1.6, 9 jer. 23.5. Acts 2.30 Acts 22.26. Hence than it follows, that the humane nature, as it was taken into personal union with the divine, is called God's son, Luke 1.35. and 22. as it was glorified by his extrinsecall anointing to the public execution of the Mediators office, he is also called God's son: this day have I begotten thee, Psalm 2.7. and in this sense must Paul be understood in Heh. 1.5. Unto which of the angels did he ever say, Thou art my son, this day have I begotten thee, by my visible anointing thee into the Mediaatours' office: and then God also gave this public testimony of him. This is my beloved son in whom I am well pleased, Mat. 3.17. and this day have I glorified thee, or begotten thee, to be a High Priest, Heb. 5.5. and the reason why all is made subject to man, in Ps. 8. is because God would Tabernacle in our nature, as it is well observed by Mr. Bro. in Melchizedech. 8. The Genealogy of Christ's humane nature in Luk. 3.23. is first drawn up to Adam, and then in v. 38. He in his humane nature, and not Adam (as many mistake) is called the Son of God according Luke 1.35. 10. Christ's humane nature, namely as it is considered in personal Union, with his Divine nature is called a child borne, and a Son given to the Church of Beleivers, in Es. 9.6, 7. unto us a child is born, unto us a Son is given, the Government shall be upon his shoulders, and his name shall be called wonderful, councillor, the mighty God, the Father of Eternity, the Prince of peace, and of the increase of his government and peace, there shall be no end upon the throne of David, and upon his Kingdom, to order it and establish it with judgement and Justice, from henceforth even for ever: The zeal of Jehovah of Hosts will perform this. 11. Christ is called the Son of man, in Dan. 7.13. Lo, in the clouds of Heaven, came one like a Son of Man: Afterward he went to the ancient of Days: When our Lord continually termeth himself the Son of man in the four Evangelists he doth (saith Bro, on this verse) most graciously call us to weigh this Text. 12. He is called the word that was made flesh, and dwelled among us or that did tabernacle in our nature, Joh. 1.14. 13. He is called a man in a Virgin, for thus saith Agu● in Prov. 30.19. Three things are too wonderful for me, yea four that I know not, the way of an eagle in the air, the way of a serpent on a rock, the way of a ship in the midst of the sea, and the way of [Geber] a man in a virgin; for the Hebrew word for virgin, doth always signify a virgin that never knew man. 14. Christ in his humane nature personally united to his divine, is called Immanuel, in Es. 7.14. Behold, a virgin shall conceive and bear a son, and shall call his name Immanuel, this doth Matthew show to be fulfilled by the birth of Christ, Mat. 1.23. and the Angel said unto Mary, That holy thing that shall be born of thee shall be called the son of God, Luke 1.35. and hence it is said, that in the fullness of time, God sent forth his son made of a woman, Gal. 4. 15. The holy Law in the old Testament doth often give terms to God from man's body and afflictions: This (saith Bro.) was so done to prepare the faithful of those times, to believe the son's incarnation. So in Gen. 18.1, etc. he that appeared unto Abraham (with two angels) is called both a man, verse 2.22. and Jehovah, and Abraham took him for both, (saith Estwick contra Biddle, page 4, 24.) he is called Jehovah, verse 1.13, 14, 17, 20, 26, 32. and in verse 33. Jehovah went his way when he left communing with Abraham, but he appeared to Abraham in the figure of a man, he walked and talked, and did eat, etc. this was a praesudium to his future incarnation, and for this and the like apparitions, our Saviour saith, Abraham saw my day (my coming in the flesh) and rejoiced, John 8.56. CHAP. LV. Of the Attributes of the Mediators Office. ANgel. Servant. Messiah, in Greek Christ, or the anointed. Jesus. A Saviour, a Redeemer, a Captain, a King, Priest, and Prophet, Palmoni. Archangel. David. Solomon. Bishop. Apostle. High Priest. Advocate. Shepherd. 1. Christ is called an Angel, in relation to his Office of Mediatorship. 1. The Title angel doth signify one sent on a message: and so God sent forth his son to be made (man) of a woman, Gal 4 4. but God could not as his supreme send him forth, because the second Person thought it no robbery to be equal with God: therefore, in that he was sent forth, it argues that it was done by his voluntary condescension, according to the articles of a mutual Covenant. 2. Christ is called the angel, or messenger of the covenant which God made with fallen man, long before he came in the flesh, Mal. 3.1. 3. He did often appear to our Fathers in a most excellent shape, even as an angel for their direction in matters of faith, and for their protection from evil, if they did obey his voice, Exod. 23.20, 21. 4. Hence it is, that Jacob said, the angel which redeemed me out of all adversity bless the lads, Gen 48.16. 5. Christ is called the angel of Jehovah in Exod. 3.2. The angel of Jehovah appeared unto Moses in a flame of fire out of the midst of a bramble bush, and this angel in verse 6. calleth himself the God of Abraham, and by this it is evident, that the God which did so often appear unto Abraham was Christ. 6. In all their afflictions he was afflicted, and the angel of his presence saved them, Es. 63.9. It is said in Hos. 12.3, 4. that Jacob had power with God, and had power over the angel, and prevailed, he wept and prayed unto him, he found him in Bethel, and there he spoke with us: but in Gen. 32.34. (from whence this of Hosea is taken) he is called a man; for men that are excellent in form and in qualities, are often called angels, hence it is evident, that it was Christ, that did appear both to Abraham and to Jacob in a most excellent humane shape, fairer than the sons of men, as he is styled in Psal, 45.2.2. It was Christ wrestled or combated with Jacob, and that suffered himself to be overcome with Jacob for the sake of his gracious promise with Jacob, laid hold on by faith, and because that Jacob did importunately urge that promise in verse 9 for the blessing in this angel of God's presence was revealed to jacobs' posterity for their protection, in case they did obey his voice, Exodus 23.20, 21. 2. Christ is called a servant in relation to his office of Mediatorship. 1. David doth style him God's servant, in 1 Chron. 17.19. O Jehovah for thy servants sake, but his prayer was first expressed thus, in 2 Sam. 7.21. for thy words sake, and so John doth style him John 1.1. 2. After that Christ was pormised to come out of David's loins, than David proyed unto God in the name of his servant David, sometimes he said, O Jehovah, for thy servants sake (as above) and sometimes for thy Servant David's sake, in Psal. 1.32.10. and God doth call his son Christ his servant David in Ezek. 34.23. Ezek. 37.24. likewise he doth call his servant Israel, Isa. 49 3. and his sevant Zorobabel, Hag. 2.24. and all this must be understood in relation to his office of Mediatorship, and God calls him his servant by the name of the aforesaid persons, because he was promised to come out of their loins, and so in Zach. 3.8 he is called the branch, my servant. Peter speaks thus to the Jews in Acts 3.26. First unto you hath God raised up his servant Jesus: and in verse 13. the God of our Fathers hath glorified his servant Jesus: so Bro. doth render it in these two verses. 4. God said thus, in Isa. 42 1. Behold my servant, whom I uphold, namely by the unction of my spirit, in the execution of his Mediators office. 5. God calls him his righteous servant in Isa 53.11. because he did exactly keep himself to the laws of the combat with his malignant combater Satan, as it was first declared in Gen 3.15. and then as soon as he had in perfection of obedience finished that combat, he did then make his death to be a most perfect, and a most acceptable sacrifice for the procuring of God's reconciliation to all believing sinners, and in this respect he is styled Gods righteous servant, and in the former part of the verse it is said thus, by the knowledge of him, that is to say by faith in him (so Peter Murtyr doth translate and expound this text in Rom. page 392.) Shall my righteous servant justify many; and so Bullenger expounds it in his Decades page 48 and our larger annotations and others. 6. Christ as Mediator saith thus, in Psalm 40.6. mine ear hast thou boared, according to the badge of most willing and perpetual Servants, in Exod. 21 6. and Deut. 15.17 but the Seventy put body for ear, and their Translation doth Paul follow, in Hebrews 10.5.10. and thence it follows, that Moses names the ear for the whole body by the figure Synecdoche, because that member doth hearken and attend to the Master's command, as faithful servants ought to do. 7. Christ is said in Phil. 2.7. to take on him the form of a Servant. But first he is said to make himself of no reputation; namely, he that was in the form of God, verse 6. emptied himself, or made himself of no reputation, namely, i● condescending by his mutual Covenant to take our humane nature into the unity of his divine person. And then secondly, he is said to take upon him the form of a Servant; not a humane nature only, as most do expound the word Servant, but to do the office of a Servant in combating his envious Combater Satan, according to God's declaration in Gen. 3.15. or as it is expounded in verse 8. being found in fashion as a man, he humbled himself as a Servant, or Combator, and became obedient unto the death, even the death of the Cross; though his Combator Satan hath liberty to try his patience and obedience, by his ignominious and painful suffering as a Malefactor on the Cross; yet he could not disturb his patience, and therefore he could not pervert him in his obedience, and therefore consequently he could not hinder his death from being made a most perfect and acceptable Sacrifice for the purchasing of God's reconciliation to all his believing Children: wherefore it follows in verse 9 that God also hath highly exalted him, and given him a name which is above every name, etc. and to this sense must that prophecy be understood, in Esa. 52.13. etc. Behold my Servant shall deal prudenty (in the execution of his Office of Mediatorship, and especially in his office of combating with his proclaimed malignant Combator Satan, and then it follows as it doth in the said place to the Philippians, he shall be exalted and extolled, and be very high. 3. Christ is called a Prince, or Captain, in relation to his Office of Mediatorship. 1. In Iosh. 5.14, 15. He is called the Prince or Captain; for he appeared to joshua in the form of a man, and said unto him as a Captain of the Lords Hosts, Am I now come to destroy the Canaanites, according to God's promise, in Exod. 23 20.22, 23. In like sort he is called the Prince or Captain of our salvation, in Heb. 2.10. because of his undertaking of the office of a Combator, with his proclaimed malignant Combator Satan, for man's redemption from Satan's head plot, according to God's Declaration of the combat, in Gen. 3.15. 2. He is called the Prince of the Army, in Dan. 8.11. Broughton doth render the Text thus: And it (namely the little Horn) became great against the Prince of the Army: and in verse 25. he is called the prince of princes; and in Dan. 10.13. he is called Michael the first of the chief princes, and in verse 21. there is none (saith the Angel G●driel) that strengtheneth himself with me in this thing but Michael the prince: And in Dan 12.1. At that time shall stand up Michael the great prince. And why else is he called the great prince, but because he is the prince of princes, and King of Kings, Rev. 1.5. yea the prince of Angels, and therefore he is called the Archangel, in Judas verse 9 from this place of Daniel, and from Exod. 23.20.22. compared together. This Attribute your prince, and Michael, sheweth, that the term Angel here must not be understood of a created Angel, but of the Archangel, the Captain of the Lords Host, according to the promise in Exod. 23.20. and he is also called Michael, which signifieth one that thought it not ●obery to be equal with God. These titles of prince and Captain are here applied to Christ, as he is the King of his Church and people: but the like title is given him as he is our high priest and the captain of our salvation in his combat of suffering from Satan, until he conquered him by his obedience, and in that obedience did make his death a most acceptable Sacrifice of Reconciliation. 4. Christ is called the Prince of life, in relation to his Office of Mediatorship. 1. Peter tells the multitude of the Jews, in Act. 3.14, 15. Ye killed the Prince of life; why else is he called the Prince of life? but because he broke Satan's headplot by his combat of suffering, and by his sacrifice of obedience, even through all the said sufferings, and by that means he redeemed the Elect from the death of sin, which Satan by his cunning headplot had brought upon them all, and so in this respect he is called the Prince of life, alluding to that Combat and Victory over Satan, in Gen. 3.15. and to that in Psal. 2.2. The Kings of the Earth set themselves, and the Princes do plot together against Jehovah and against his Christ: and the fulfilling of this combat is thus expressed, in Act. 4.27, 28. Of a truth Lord against thy holy child Jesus whom thou annointedst, gathered were both Herod and Pontius Pilate, to do whatsoever thy hand and thy Council had determined before to be done; according as he had declared, it in Gen. 3.15. namely, That the seed of the Woman should combat with his proclaimed Enemy Satan and his seed, and that by his obedience to the Laws of the combat, he should break the Devil's head plot for the redemption of the Elect, from the death of sin to the life of grace, and so at last to the life of glory: and in this respect lie hath merited the Title, Prince of life; and to this effect did Peter speak to the Council of the high San●d●im, in Act: 5.31. Him God made high with his right hand, a Prince and a Saviour to give repentance to Israel, and forgiveness of sins: and in this respect Christ is also styled the King of Justice and the King of Peace, Esay 7, 2. And the Prince of Peace, in Esay 9.6 and in Ezek 34 23 24. God calls him One Shepherd, And his Servant David, And a Prince among them; and so in Ezek. 37.25. 5. Christ is called the King of Israel. 1. Nathaniel makes this confession of his Faith to Christ, in John 1. 49. Rabbi thou art the Son of God, thou art the King of Israel: In this speech Nathaniel had respect to Dan. 9.25. where he is called Messiah, the Prince, or King, as Broughton in his last Edition reads it. 6. He is called the Messiah. In Dan. 9.25, 26. He is twice called the Messiah which in Greek is Christ, that is Anointed; and so in John 1.41. Andrew found his Brother Simon and said unto him, We have sound the Messiah, and in verse 45. Philip found Nathaniel, and said unto him, We have sound him of whom Moses did write in the Law (Deut. 18.18) and in the Prophets, Esa. 4.2. and in John 4.25. The woman of Samaria said unto him, I know that Messiah cometh w●ich is called christ, or the Anointed: and this Title was given him in relation to his Victory, in breaking Satan's headplot for our redemption, as it was first implied in God's Declaration of the Combat and Victory, in Genes. 3.15. 7. He is also called the Apostle and high Sacrasicer of our profession, in Heb. 31. And the Shepherd and Bishop of our Souls in 1 Pet. 2.25. and our Advocate, in 1 john 2. If any man sin, we have an Advocate with the Father, Jesus Christ the just, who is the reconciliation for our sins. 8. Christ hath many Titles given him in relation to his Office of Mediatorship, from Metaphors and Similitudes: 1. My Husband, Hos. 2.7. 2. The morning Star, in the Title of Psal. 22. and in Rev. 2.28. and Rev. 22.16. 3. A Nazaren, Math. 2 23. He was not a Nazarite according to Num. 6. (as some through heedlessness do take it) for he both drank Wine and was polluted by the dead, Luke 7.33.34. Luke 8.49.54. Mat 9.25. Luke 7.14. which a Nazarite might not be; but he was a Nazaren, of the Town of Nazareth, which Towns name is derived from Nazar the Branch out of the root of Jesse, in Esa. 11.1. And saith Bro. Nazar in the Thalmud, is the Messiah, from Esa. 11.1. and saith he in his Consent 2830. Nazar is a Spring, or Branch, Esa. 11.1. and saith he, the Town Nazareth alludeth unto that in Mat. 2.23. 4. He is called the brightness from on high: hath visited us, Luke 1.78. 5. He is called the Bud of the Lord, in Esa. 4.2. Zach. 3.8. Zach. 6.12. 6. The Son of Righteousness, Mat. 4.2. 7. A Son and Shield, Psal. ●4 12. 8. The way, the truth, and the life, John 14.6. 9 The Door, Job. 10.7. 10. The bread of life that came down from Heaven, John 6.35.48.51. 11. The true Vine, John 15.1.5. 12. The Lamb of God, John. 1.29. 13. The chief corner stone, Eph. 2.10. 1 Pet. 2.6. 14. The head of the body of the Church, Eph. 1.22. Col. 1.18. 15. The head of all principality and power, Col. 2.10. 16. The first fruits of them that sleep, 1 Cor. 15.20.23. 17. The Lion of the Tribe of judah, Rev. 5.5. 18. The horn of salvation. Luke 1.69. These and such like Attributes do show the effects and the operations of Christ's Mediatorship sundry ways, both for the comfort of the godly, and also for the terror of the wicked enemies of his Church and people. CHAP. LVI. Of the Attributes of the holy Spirit. HE is called the Holy Ghost, Act. 28.25. Paul said to his offended Hearers at their departure: Well spoke the Holy Ghost by Esay as the Prophet unto our Fathers, etc. But in Esay he is called jehovah, Esay 6.8, 9, 10. so also the Title holy Ghost, in Heb. 10.15. is taken from Ier: 31.33 and there he is called jehovah, which is an incommunicable Attribute to any Creature; and hence it is evident, that jehovah the Father, jehovah the Son, and jehovah the holy Ghost, in the unity of the Godhead and in the Trinity of persons, did make the new Covenant for all the Elect: and therefore they will certainly give the gift of faith to all the Elect, that so they may be partakers of all the blessings that are therein contained. 2. The said Holy Ghost is called the Spirit, john 1.32, 33. Mar. 1.10. 3. The Spirit of Aelohim, Gen: 1.1, 2. 4. The spirit of God, Mat: 3.16. Act- 5.3, 4. 5. The holy Spirit, Psal: 51.11. Esa. 63.10. Luke 11.13. 6. The holy Spirit of God, Eph: 4.30. 7. The holy Spirit of promise, Eph: 1.13. 8. The Spirit of the Father, in john 14.16, 17. I will pray the Father (saith Christ) and he will give you another Comforter which is the holy Ghost, whom the Father will send in my name, and so consequently, the Spirit proceeds from the Father, as in john 15.25. 9 The Spirit of the Son, Gal: 4.6. and therefore he proceeds from the Son as well as from the Father: If I depart (said Christ to his Disciples that were so full of sorrow for his departure) I will send the Comforter to you, john 16.7. and in john 15.26. I will send the Comforter to you from the Father, for our Covenant and Contract was so from eternity, that in case I did perform the conditions of the Mediators Office, I should have a joint hand with my Father in the sending of the holy Spirit. 10. He is called the Spirit of his mouth, namely, the Spirit of jehovah, Father and Son, Psa●: 33 6. 11. He is called the Finger of God, in Luke 11.20. by which the humane nature of Christ did his Miracles. 12. He is called the power of God, Luke 1.35. The Angel said unto Mary, The holy Ghost shall come upon thee, and the power of the most High shall thee, namely, as it did the confused Chaos in the Creation, as Mr. ●rap speaketh. 13. Peter calls the Holy Ghost God, in Act. 53, 4. These and such like blessed Attributes of the third person in Trinity, are sufficient to convince any jew, Turk, or Arrian, that the holy Spirit is true God: except such as God hath given up to the Spirit of slumber, and to the hardness of their own hearts, to perish in their own impenitency. CHAP. LVII. Of the Attributes of the Holy Ghost, in relation to its operations and effects in the various manner of his working. 1. AS the Spirit of Aelohim in the beginning, did move upon the face of the waters, to the producing of the visible Creation, Gen: 1.1. so it moved also upon the water of God's word to Adam, and so to all the elect for the producing of the spiritual Creation, For except a man be born of Water and the Spirit he cannot enter into the Kingdom of God, john 3.5. And there are three that bear witness in the earth, the spirit, and the water, and the blood, and these three agree in one, 1 john 5.8. And so Moses Doctrine is compared to rain, in Deut. 32.1. and so Tit. 3 5. 2. Saith God in Gen. 6.3. My Spirit shall not always strive with man, for that he is but flesh: Hence take notice of the Spirits working or striving with men that are given to the flesh; it doth often strive along time with such, but if after some time they will not hearken, than God saith, it shall not always strive, but it shall at last give them up to their own hearts lusts to perish in their sins: Noah ●a a preacher of righteousness to the old world for a hundred and twenty years, and this long time the Apostle calls the long suffering of God, 1 Pet. 3.19.20. 2 Pet. 2.5. 3. It is said in 1 Pet. 3.18. That Christ was quickened by the Spirit, by which he went and preached to the Spirits that now are in prison, that were disobedient in the days of No: hence two things are observable. 1. That Christ was called jehovah, in Gen: 6, 3. 2. That the Sp●rit by which Naah preached to the disobedient world is here called by Peter, The Spirit of Christ. 4. In Esa. 6.10. They rebelled and vexed his holy Spirit (which did strive with them for their conversion by the preaching of his Prophets). Therefore was he turned to be their enemy, and he fought against them, as he threatened to do if they did not obey his voice, Exod. 23.21. and he did also fulfil it in Psal. 78.40. etc. and 1 Thes: 5.19. 5. God saith thus to his Elect, I will put my Spirit within you, and cause you to walk in my Statutes, and ye shall keep my Judgements and do them, Ezek. 36.27. This is the operation of God's Spirit in the Elect at one time or other while they attend upon him in his Ordinances, for the walking in his Statutes, and the keeping (or doing) of his Judgements; doth imply the obedience of faith to all his statutes in their spiritual sense and meaning, as in Ezek. 11.19, 20. and Ezek. 36.27. and in Rom: 2.26. Yea the Spirit doth by its operations work upon baptised Infants that belong to God's Election, by virtue of the Covenant, which is the word of promise for their Regeneration and knitting to Christ, if they die before they come to knowledge by the outward hearing of the word, as Esa. 59 21. 6. It is said in Esa: 11.2. That the Spirit of the Lord shall rest upon the root that shall proceed out of the stem of Jesse: and the Prophet doth repeat some heads of those endowments of the Spirit, whereby the humane nature of the Messiah should be furnished: But the said heads are expressed in such large and copious words, that it implies he should be furnished with the whole Spirit, and with all the gifts and graces of that Spirit, and from thence it is said in Reve: 1.4. that he hath the seven Spirits of God; that is to say, the whole Spirit, and all the graces of the Spirit, and this Endowment of his is often repeated, as in Revel: 3 1. Revel: 4.5. and Revel: 5 6. 7. It is said in 1 Cor. 1●. 4. That there are diversities of gifts, but the same Spirit. And in verse 8. to one is given by the Spirit the word of wisdom, and to another the word of knowledge by the same Spirit, &. And in verse 13. by one Spirit we are all baptised into one body. 8. It is said, because ye are sons, God hath sent forth the Spirit of his son into your hearts, which hath this operation, it inables you to cry Abba, father, Gal. 4.6. and in this Text the holy Trinity is also expressed. 9 Sundry operations are ascribed to the Spirit in Rom. 8. 1. in verse 5. They that are after the spirit, do mind the things of the spirit. 2. In verse 6. The wisdom of the spirit is life and peace. 3. In verse 11. If the spirit of him that raised up Jesus from the dead dwell in you, etc. he shall also quicken your mortal bodies by his spirit. 4. In verse 13. If ye mortify the deeds of the flesh by the spirit, ye shall live. 5. In verse 14. As many as are led by the spirit are the s●ns of God. 6. In verse 15. Ye have received the spirit of adoption, whereby ye cry Abba Father. 7. In verse 16. The same spirit beareth witness with our spirit, that we are the children of God. 8. In verse 26. The spirit helpeth our infirmities, for we know not what to pray as we ought, but the spirit itself maketh request for us with fight and groans that cannot be expressed. 9 In verse 27. The spirit maketh request for the Saints according to the will of God, These sundry operations of the Spirit are expressed in this vl chapter. 10. Sundry operations of the spirit are in Gal. 5. 1. In verse 16. Walk in the spirit, and ye shall not fulfil the lusts of the fl●sh. 2. In verse 17. For the Spirit lusteth against the flesh. 3. In verse 18. If ye be led by the spirit, ye are not under the law. 4. In verse 12. The fruit of the spirit is love, joy, peace, long-suffering, gentleness, goodness, saith, meekness, temperance, against such there is no law. 5. In verse 25. If we live in the spirit, let us also walk in the spirit. 11. It is said in Ephes. 6.17. The sword of the spirit is the word of God, and in verse 18. Pray in the spirit. 12. Quench not the spirit, 1 Thes. 5.19. 13. The holy Ghost doth renovate our corrupt natures, as in Tit. 3.5. Of his mercy he saved us, and by the washing of the new birth, and the renewing of the holy Ghost. 14. The spirit and the Bride say come, Rev. 22.17. 15. The grace of our Lord Jesus Christ, and the love of God, and the Communion of the Holy Ghost, he with you all Amen, 2 Cor. 13.14. Sundry other Attributes are ascribed to the holy Ghost, in relation to its operations and effects, from metaphors and similitudes, as by fire, water, seed, an earnest, and to the oil of gladness, etc. All which, with many more, will be of heavenly use to every godly Christian, that will take delight to meditate in God's book, as David did both night and day, Psalm I therefore say, as David said, O how love I thy law, it is my meditation all the day, Psal. 119.97. FINIS. A Table of Chief Heads. Chap. 1. OF the Unity of the Godhead, and Trinity of Persons, also of their properties and works page 1. If the knowledge of God in Trinity had not been the ground of life, God would never have given himself names in the Plural number p. 1. The Spirit of Elohim is sometimes called the Spirit of the Father, and sometimes the Spirit of the Son p. 2 It is good to mark how the Attributes and Titles of God are often interchangeably used the one for the other p. 5 Chap. 2. How Redemption was taught from Gen. 3.15. to the Flood of Noah p. 14 Gods purpose was not declared to bring fallen man for life, by theremains of any natural abilities p 23 The place of holy Convocations was wont to be called the presence of God p 36. 298. Chap. 3. How Redemption was taught from the Flood, till the promises to Abraham, also the seed of Sem is explained p 40 The subduing of ours and of God's enemies, is a benefit that God hath tied to our constancy in Religion p 42 Chapter 4. How Redemption was taught from the Promise made to Abraham till the Law of the Passeover, and the coming of Israel out of Egypt p 52 We may not pray for, nor expect any blessing, either temporal, spiritual, or eternal, but according to the promise and Covenant of grace in Christ p 61 Covenants go before Seals p 66 The Covenant of grace was not made only to believing Parents, but also their Infant children p 70 Chap. 5. and Chap 6. How Redemption was taught from the time of the Passeover, till the building of the Temple p 74 How Christ was the end of all Moses Law p 75 76 77 82 83 85 86 It is a point of rare faith to believe that Christ gave the Law p. 84 n. 3 Chap. 6. How Redemption was taught unto David and others p 92 How they of the old Testament understood the Doctrine of Justification p 95 n. 5 and p 100 n. 5 p 356 Chap. 7. How Redemption was taught from the foundation of the Temple to the burning of it p 102 Chap. 8. But it is misprintd How the Covenant of grace was taught and opposed in this time, namely from the burning of the Temple, to the end of the Babylonian captivity p 117 Chap. 9: How Redemption and the Covenant of grace was taught and opposed in the time of the Seventy Sevens, as it is expressed in Dan 9.24 p 137 The endeavour of some Scholars is by necessary consequence very profane, by teaching us to confute daniel's propriety of the seventy sevens, by the building of Rome, and by the Mayors of Athens, and by the Satanical chronicles of the Olympic games p 160 and see more towards the end of the book. Chap. 10. How God by his wise providence did order the several captivities of his people to build Synagogues for the planting of Religion among the heathen nations, as a preparation to the speedy preaching of the Gospel, by the Apostles and Disciples that were dispersed into those Countries at the death of Stephen p 162 Chap. 11. Giving divers reasons, why there were no more Prophets after Malachi (or after Ezra, for he is holden to be Malachi) to our Lord's Incarnation. p 170 The 49000 that returned from Babel were godly, and l●ft a godly seed after them p 173 174 175 Many of Judah and Israel did continually return after the 49000 were returned p 178 271 Daniel foretold of the falling away of many of the Jews from the faith p 176 The Saints the Jews in the time of the 70 sevens had sundry enemies, before & after the death of Antiochus Epiphanes p 179 but Christ did strengthen the godly Jews against the tyranny of Javan p 179 The Kings of the North were Gog and Magog in Ezek. 38. and Ezek. 39 p 179 129 The Hebrew tongue after the return from Babel, ceased from common use p 180 The Rulers and people of the Jews did not know the meaning of their own Prophets, after that the Prophets, and Vrim and Thummim did cease, Acts 13.27. p 181 Chap. 12. Being an answer to the complaint of the Jews for the loss of five things under the second Temple, which they enjoyed under Solomon's Temple p 183 Fire from heaven to burn their sacrifices, was a testimony of God's gracious acceptance, of the types of Christ's death p 183 If they had had the fire from heaven after the captivity, they should after some time have been deprived of it by Antiochus Epiphanes, when he took away the daily sacrifice for three years and a half p 184 Vrim and Thummim they needed not when John Elias came p 182 184 Though after the captivity they wanted the Ark of the Covenant, yet Christ told them they should have godly Teachers in the place of it, Jer. 3.15, 16. p 184 Chap. 13. How the new Covenant and the way of Redemption was taughe and opposed under the first preaching of the Gospel p 187 How the heavenly Jerusalem began first to be builded in the earthly Jerusalem p 198 Chap. 14. Showing who they are that have the spiritual blessings of the Covenant of grace; and who the curses 201 The Jews and Romames for their despising of the Kingdom and sacrifio●hood of Christ were greatly plagued p 202 Chap. 15. Proving that Rome in God's just judgement is the place that Christ hath given to the power of Satan for the setting up of the mystery of iniquity p 215 Chap. 16. Proving that the mystery of iniquity began to get head from Constantine's time p 229 Chap. 17. Of the two Witnesses, and of the mark of the Beast, and of the decay of the mystery of iniquity p 235 Chap. 18. Of the seven Trumpets in Apoc. 8, 9.10, and 11 chapters, in which the Pope's rising to his Antichristian Hierarchy is first described, compare with the seven Phials, in chapter 16. under which the Antichristian Hierarchy doth fall & is consumed by degrees p 261 Unlearned Scholars that affected Superiority in the several Centuries after Constantine's time, turned all to ambition and heresy, and politicians to profaneness. p 262 There shall be persecution from the seed of the Serpent in one place or other, as long as the Church remaineth in this world, notwithstanding, all that is alleged for Christ's glorious personal reign here on earth p 266 None of the Phials is poured on the Turks Tyrannical Kingdom, p 267 Chap. 19 The dead bones in Ezek 47. must not be understood of the Jews c●ling after our Times: But only of their return from Babel, p 2●7 The calling of the Jews yet to come shall be in all places of their dispersion, ●269 The Jews do hope for the rebuilding of Jerusalem, and do pray daily for their return to Canaan, and many Christians do Judaize with them in teaching their return thither, and to be a glorious Church there again, p 269 Chap. 20. Of the two sticks in Ezek. 37. in confutation of them that say, It is not yet fulfilled, that Ephraim was joined to Judah in the return, from Babylon, p 271 178 Also some observations on Zach. 2. Zach: 8. Zach: 9, 10, 11. chapters p 271 Chap: 21. Of the Jews calling: that Zach: 12, 13, & 14. chapters, cannot be applied to the Jews calling yet to come, as many Minister's d● too unadvisedly teach, p 284 Chap: 22. Expounding Zach: 12.10, 11, 12, 13, 14. verses. The subservient Typical Covenants of works after some time was made such an Idol of Justification by the Jews, that it made them despise Messiah the King, and his justification, p 288 Chap: 23. Expounding Zach: 12.19, 11, 12, 13, 14. with Zach: 14.10.11, etc. p 291 Chap: 24. Gog and Magog, in Ezek: 38. & Ezek: 29. must be taken properly: but God and Magog in Apoc. 20. must be taken in a mystical sense, p 294 179 Corporation-speeches must be marked for the right accommodation of the true sense of the blessed Scriptures, p 298 Chap. 25. Some Observations on Jeremi●h 30, 31, 32, 33: chapters, p 299 Chap. 26. That the Covenant of grace made with Israel in Dan. 29. is the same that God made with Israel in Exod, 20, and the one is no more a Covenant of works than the other p 301 Chap. 27. Short Collections out of Genesis, Job, and some part of Exodus, showing, that the Gospel was taught among the faithful before Moses wrote the same 304 alias misprinted 296 The Sabbath was a sign of Sanctification to them by the death of Christ p 304 alias 297 296 In Moses and the Prophet's holy Convocations are called the presence of God p 298 alias 305 p 36 Chap. 28. Of Divine Tradition p 302 From the Creation till Israel's coming from Egypt (or from the promise of Christ in Gen. 3.15. till the Passeover in Egypt) is 2513 years in which space of time the Church had not the written word, but was taught by Tradition. Chap. 29. Being an answer to them that say, that the polity of Christ given to Moses was not a Covenant of grace p 306 Chap. 30. Showing that Israel (under Moses Law) were under a covenant of grace p 313 Finis operis intends all that live under the visible Church (as once all the world had a being under the Church in Adam's days, and under Sem) none are excluded from being under the Covenant of grace to outward apprehension, though finis operantis is for the elect as Moses speech shows in Deuth 29.29. p. 314 Divers brief Arguments to prove the Jews under Moses Law were under a covenant of grace p. 315 Chap. 31. A Prosopopeia of Solomon's fall, by granting liberty of conscience to his idolatrous Wives p. 316 Chap. 32. Brief Considerations about Sheol, Gehenna and especially about Hades, as it relates to the Article of the Creed, he descended into hell p 328 Chap. 33. Of the phrase of Abraham's Bosom p 335 Faithful Factors need not fear to be called home from foreign parts, so when the good servants were called to give an account for their trading by the Talents, they feared not p 336 Comforts to the godly against the fear of death, p 336, 337 Chap. 34. Some propositions and expostulations concerning the true nature of Christ's sufferings, p 338 Job doth tell us, that it is not good to defend God's cause with an Error, pretending Religion, p 339 The second Adam had power over his affections more than ever the first Adam had in his Innocency, for he had power to trouble himself with grief and sorrow, which Adam in innocency had not, p 340 Christ in his sufferings was not under God's vindicative wrath for one minute of an hour, p 840, 341 The assertion, That our Lord suffered Hell torments in this life in his soul or in his body, appeareth not true by any Scripture, p 341 In Heb: 9: 14, 15. Christ offered himself by his eternal Spirit, etc. That by means of death for Redemption, etc. This death cannot be expounded of the second death, because it is compared with the bodily death of such as do thereby confirm their Testaments, p 341 A just reproof of them that affirm, That Christ in his sufferings did combat hand to hand with his angry Father, p 343 Chap: 35. Observations upon that distinction which some make between a local and a poenall Hell, which Poenall Hell some say Christ suffered, p. 345 Some say Christ suffered a poenall Hell out of a local Hell; they say, Local Hell is but a circumstance: they may as well say, That the glorious place of heaven is but a circumstance, and so in this sense all created things in respect of God are but circumstances, p 345 Our old English Saxon word Hell doth not answer to Hades, but to Gehenna Hell, which our ecclesiastics must clear, p 346 Christ underwent a poenall Hades in this world, but not a poenall Gehenna, p 346 Chap: 36. Observations on the second death which some say Christ suffered, p 347 When Christ was in his sad Agony in the Garden, there was an Angel from heaven to strengthen him, which doth evidence, that he was not then under the second death, for if he had, than it had been impossible for an Angel, or for all the Angels in heaven to strengthen him, p 348 If Christ had suffered the second death which is indeed the Effect of the Essential wrath of God, he could not have said, My God my my God why dost thou leave me: And, Father into thy hands I commend my Spirit, etc. p 348 When did our Lord suffer the second death? was it before his bodily death? We know by divine Revelation, that the second death is after the first: or else if we by our wit and learning will affirm the contrary, we shall destroy God's order, p 348 The Doctrine of making Christ a sinner by God's Imputation, numb: 8. is dangerous, p 349 It is not man's inventions of Tantundem, and Equinalency touching the sufferings of Christ, that will reach and fathom these things, p 350 Chap: 37. Some observations on 2 Cor: 5.19, 20, 21. with Gal: 3.13. p 350 I suppose two millions of Geneva Bibles have been printed that have rightly conferred, 2 Cor: 5.31. to Exod: 29 14. p 350 This assertion, That as our sins are imputed to Christ, so his righteousness of the moral Law is imputed to us: Calls for thoughts of detestation; the care cannot endure it, p 353 So to impute (as some teach our sins to Christ, is to impart, communicate, or make common to him with us our unconformity to God and his Law, p 353 355 Of the several distinct courses spoken of in Deut: 21.23. & Deut: 27. 26. with Gal: 3.13. p 354 How the righteousness of God the Father doth justify sinners, p 356, p 357 Chap: 38. Our Lord's Genealogy conferred with the times of the Judges, and with the Kings, p 363 Chap: 39 The holy Chronologie sundry ways expressed, and every way agreeing to the same number of years, Beginning from the first promise, in Gen 3.15. till our Lord's death, 3960. years. p 369 Chap: 40. Another way of casting up of the holy Chronicle to the said number of years which the former Dialogue hath followed, 370 Chap: 41. A third expression of the holy Chronicle to the said number of years, p 371 Chap: 42. Of the Genealogy frame of the process of Times, p 373 Chap: 43. A further consideration of the said twenty eight Jubilees, that the godly student may delight in the holy book of God, p 374 Chap: 44. A fourth expression of the holy Chronologie from the Creation to the Redemption, p 375 Chap 45. An Advertisement to the Reader, to take head of embracing the evil Tenets of two men that have lately put forth irreligious opinions about the Chronologie of the Book of God. p 380 The holy Chronologie of the Book of God is a Doctrine of Faith clear and certain as any other Doctrine of faith, p 381 The Heathen Chronologie by Olympiades', is by some regarded as more certain than the Scriptures Chronologie, p 381 If the Angel taught not Daniel to understand the certainty of Chronologie, he taught him nothing, p 382. 385 Who would think to say the seventy Sevens are a time not certain: whereas the holy Angel divides them into three parts, 1. Into seven Sevens. 2. Into sixty two Sevens. 3. Into one Seven, p 383 Chap: 46. That the certainty of Chronologie was a chief part of the Angel's Message to Daniel, for Daniel knew all things else before the Angel came to him, p 385 Some Teachers, in teaching and writing about the Jews repairing of Jerusalem: and many great businesses that will follow thereon, have filled Churches full of Matrologie and fond expectations, p 387. Chap: 47. That Daniel is alleged in the New Testament to prove the Messiah to be already come, p 388 Chap: 48. Showing how the holy Evangelists express the Attributes, Messiah, or Christ. p 390 All the three Offices of Christ, as he is Prophet, Priest, and King, are in Dan: 9.24. p 392 Mr. P. his false and impertinent assertions, on Dan: 9.24. p 393 Chap. 49. A conclusion of the Point of Chronologie, p 395 The New Testament doth not keep the Chronologie of the times to the end of the world, as many labour in vain to prove out of the Apocalypse: Though the Old Testament did exactly keep the Chronologie of the times, from the first promise to the death of Chris, p 395. 399 Neither is the genealogy of the Tribes kept after the death of Christ p 396 Chap. 50. Being a Caveat to beware of such satanical spirits, that prattle about the expectation of new Apostles, and new Revelations, p 396 Chap: 51. An Exposition of the times mentioned in the Apocalypse, p 399 Chap: 52. 1. Of the Attributes, or Titles of God, essentially considered, p 401 2. What is to be learned from the Title Jehovah, p 403 3 What is to be learned from the attribute Elion the most High, p 405 4. What is to be learned from Shaddai the Almighty, p 406 5. What from Adonai, ibid. 6. What from the attribute Ehieth, I am, or I will be, p 407 7. What from the attribute Jah, Breathing, ibid. 8. What from the attribute Tzur, The Rock, p 408 9 What from Goshai, My Makers, p 408 10. What from Goel, The Redeemer, p 409 Chap: 53. Of the Attributes of the Divine Nature of the second Person in Trinity. How his is said to be begotten before all the Creation, Col: 1.15. p 412 Chap: 54. Of the Attributes of the humane Nature of the second Person, p 413 Chap: 55. Of the Attributes of the Mediators Office, p 416 Crist is called a Servant in relation to his Office of Mediatorship, p 418 Christ is called a Prince, or Captain in relation to his Office of Mediatorship, p 419 Christ is called the Prince of Life in relation to his Office of Mediatorship, p 420 Christ is called the King of Israel, and the Messiah in relation to his Office of Mediatorship, p 421 Chap. 56. Of the Attributes of the holy Spirit p 422 Chap 57 Of the Attributes of the holy Ghost in relation to its operations and effects in the various manner of his working, p 424 A TABLE of some few Scriptures (among many others) that are Expounded, or Illustrated. GEn: 1.1, 2. page 1 3. 15. p 11 14 22 26 34 42 53 60 61 66 194 302 344 413 418 419 420. 3.22.24. p 23 9.26. p 41 11.2, 3. p 52 60 290 567 17.5. p 70 18, 19 p 335 19.24. p 11 20, 21. p 299 21, 22, 23. p 298 alias 205 305 309 22.18. p 60 26.5. p 302 304, alias 296 298 335 34.14. p 59 47.12. p 304 bis 49.10. p 57 Exod: 3.15. p 60 61 198 19. 2.●1 p 407 17.15, 16. p 168 19.4. p 314 19.5. p 56 20.24. p 36 23.15. p 89 23.20, 21, 22.23. p 188 311 412 417 419 28.38. p 100 30.12. p 311 Levit: 14 6. p 98 18.5. p 311 Lev: 25.23. p 203 315 26.2. p 89 26.15. p 154 26.23, 24, 25. p 111 Numb: 19.18. p 98 14.2. p 392 24.20. p 168 Deut. 5.2.3. p 302 Deut: 6.4. p 1 28 49. p 66 28.68. p 161 30.6. p 17 32.4.18. p 408 32.21. p 156 61 32.47. p 85 33.26. p 109 Jos: 19.50. p 175 1 Sam. 7.9, 10. p 107 2 Sam: 7.14. p 188 2 Sam: 7. 2●. p 147 1 King: 11.32. p 286 1 King: 17.1. p 159 2 Chron: 3.17. p 131 2 Chron: 6.18. p 102 106 2 Chron: 11.15. p 108 Neh: 2.10. p 143 Neh: 6.63, 64, 65. p 155 Neh: 9.2. p 155 Job 21.14, 15. p 301 Job 22.17. ib. Psal: 2.2. p 420 Psal: 2.7. p 414 Psal: 2.8, 9 p 194 9, 10. p 155 16.10. p 334 20.1, 2. p 305, alias 298 22.1. p 339 348 40.6, 7. p 81 418 45.3, 4, 5. p 109 51.7. p 98 51.12. p 100 68.18. p 81 69.19, 20. p 355 69.22. p 110 78.1, 2, 3. p 61 102.13, 14. p 149 171 105.8. p 60 105.42. p 60 126.6. p 171 132.10. p 188 137.5, 6. p 149 Prov. 3.3. p 98 9.13. p 108 10.12.23. p 42 30.4. p 188 30.18.19. p 107 102 415 Esay, 2.1, 2, 3.4. p 23 127 2.6, 7, 8. p 108 4 5. p 109 5.19.23 ib. 6.9 10. p 105 6.17. p 164 7.9.14. p 299 300 8.14. p 110 9.2. p 282 9.6. p 188 411 415 26.4, p 410 42.1. p 61 188 418 42.4. p 85 42.6, 7. p 27 45.6.14. p 164 46.11. p 164 48.15. p 164 53.11. p 418 55.1, 2. p 135 61.10. p 361 66.23. p 141 293 Jer: 3.15, 16.18. p 184 271 3.16. p 132 9.26. p 58 22.29. p 134 28, 29. p 159 30.18. p 299 31.23. p 299 31.38.39. p 17 299 36.30. p 130 44.26. p 66 51.50. p 149 174 286 Lam: 1.14. p 159 4.13. p 159 Ezek. 6.9. p 108 9.6. p 159 11.2. p 109 14.14. p 39 16.38. p 108 21.27. p 134 23.8. p 72 28.13. p 299 36.37. p 99 37.11, 12. p 267 37.26.27. p 89 271 37.21. p 281 38.16.21. p 295 299 39.23. p 297 Dan: 7.9, 10. p 143 7.18. p 154 176 7.17. p 222 8.11. p 184 419 8.24, 25. p 177 8.31. p 160 9.23. p 383 9.24. p 90 170 270 383 388 390 391 9.24, 25, 26, 27. p 137 9.26. p 385 9.27. p 136 385 389 10.2, 3, 4. p 148 11.14. p 176 301 11.30, 31, 32. p 301 11.33. p 176 11.35. p 177 12.3. p 176 12.4. p 176 12.10. p 177 Hos: 2.3. p 105 4.14. p 159 4.17. p 110 10.10. p 107 12.3, 4. p 25 417 13.1. p 111 Amos 6.1. p 160 7.10. p 159 9.1. etc. p 270 Zeph. 319. p 66 Hag. 219. p 186 Hag. 2.6 p 376 Zach. 1.12, 13. p 143 21. etc. p 269 26, 7.4 p 281, 286 4.2.11. p 185 8.12, 13. p 224, 282 8.23. p 175, 297 9, 11. p 149 9.13. p 178, 179, 282, 368 10.6, 7. p 368 11.6.10. p 177, 282 11.7.11. p 184 11.10.11. p 173. 178. 283 11.12. p 171 11.15, 16, 17. p 178 12.6. 198. 284, 285 12, 10. p 151, 287, 291 13.7. p 411 13.7, p 411 14, 1, 2, 3, 4. p 161, 288 14.10.11. p 293 14: 12. p 172, 289 14.16: p 289 14: 17, 18. p 294 Mal. 1.11. p 293 211.12. p 159 3, 14, 15, p 177 3.16. p 12 175 4. 1● p 175 4▪ 4● p 180, 182, 282. 301, 309 Mat: 1: 12: p 131 1.23 p 416 2: 1. p 163, 390 3.2. p 142 3, 2 p 98 415 6.9. p 311 5.3, 4, 5. p 101 8.11, p 367 10.34. p 253 11.13, 14 p 181.182 11.23. p 225 12.21. p 85 16.18. p 325 408 16 19 p 222 17.5. p 188 19.13. p 70 21.43. p 57 23.35. p 222 24, 34. p 389 26.26. p 100 26.28, 389 27.25. p 392 28.18. p 11. 28.20. p 196 Mark 8.38 p 252 16.10. p 151 Luck 1.32, 33. p 134. 270. 389 1.35. p 415 1, 51. p 134 1.70. p 26 3.27. p 14 3.28. p 415 9.26. p 252 12. 4●. p 304 bis 15, 22, 23. p 361 16, 15. p 84 16.19 p 336 17.20. p 153 19.11. p 164, 153. 393 19.27. p 126 19.57. p. 252 20.35, 36, 37. p 59 21.24, p 233 21.36. p 208 22.43. p 344. 347. 23.28, 29, 30. p 161 24.45. p 40 John 1.1, 2. p 2 418 1 12. p 42 1.14. p 6 25 102 1.41. p 338 3 1. p 155 3.36 p 127 4.23, 24. p 157 5.17, p 125 6, 27 p 83 6.63. p 85 8 44. p 68, 155 9.34. p 149 15.26. p 6 18 37 p 194 19.15. p 48 Acts 1.2. p 198 1.14. p 291 1.8 15, p 165 2.1, 2. ib. 2 27. p 334 2.37 p 151 291 2.39. p 71 3.14, 15. p 420 3.21. p 23. 26 3.25. p 60 3. ●6. p 53 71 4.27, 28. p 420. 5.31. p 23 6.13, 14, 15 p 148. 388 7.38. p 85 7.47. p 110 12.23. p 114. 413 13.27. p 181 13.30.31. p 413 13, 41. p 39 138 ●68 13.38, 39 p. 67. 357, 359 13.40, 41. p 288 13.48. p 200 15.11. p 85 26.67. p 308 28 20 p 57 28.25. p 422 31.41. p 156 Rom. 3 21. p 27 Rom. 3.25 26. p 61, 357 51. p. 100 6.7. p 357 7.4. p 101 8.3. p 82 103. p 84 10.6, 7, 8, 9, 10, 11, p 77, 85 10.19. p 156 11, 1, 2, 3. p 291 12.12. p 107 16.17. p 209 16.26. p 305 1 Cor. 1.30. p 410 1 Cor 7.13.14, p 56 4.9. p ●97 104. p 400 11.26. p 399 14.11, 12. p 242 15.30. p 333 15 51. p 249 15.34.58. p 337 2 Cor. 1.9. p 268 2 Cor. 5.4. p 249 5.19. p 411 5.21. p 98 ult. 350, 356 6.16. p 89 6.18. p 149 71. p 89 10.45. p 392. Gal. 3.6. p 60 3.7. p 29 155 3.8, p 60, 64, 198 3 13, 14. p 53.354 3.16. p 60, 41● Gal. 44. p 53, 417 4.6. p 423 5.1.2.3. p 357 6.16. p 70 Eph. 1.10. p 38, 107, 222 2.10, 11, 12. p 155, 59, 61 2.12. p 79 2.15. p 90, 141 2.18. p 99 ●. 19.21, 22, p 200 3.6. p 41 3.15. p 38, 107 3.21. p 62 Phil. 1.13. p 392 Phil, 1.21. p 337 Phil. 2.6, 7. p 418 3.2, 3. p 155 3.10. p 214 3.20. p 336 Col. 1.11. p 154 1.15. p 412 1.20. p 107, 149 1.26. p 51 2.14. p 141 2.15. p 27 2.18, 19 p 398 1 Thes. 2.15, 16. p 199 2 19 p 156 5.1, 2, 3 p 152 5.8. p 184 2 Thes. 1.8. p 23 2.6. p 204 2.15. p 305 bis 1 Tim. 2.6. p 308 1 Tim. 4.1, 2, 3. p 178 2 Tim. 2.8. p 85 3.1, 2, 3. p 178, 205, 398 4.4 p Tit. 1.1.2.3. p 22 2.14. p 309 Heb. 1.1. p 153 1.3. p 90 412 1.5. p 415 2.5. p 27 2.15. p 389 2.16. p 53 5.1, 2. p 98 5.6, 7. p 340 6.8. p 288 7.22. p 84 8.6. p 84 9.14, 15. p 341 10.5. p 418 10.15. p 422 10.27. p 156.288 11.1.2. p 208 11.4. p 36, 183 11.9. p 285 11.13. p 59 11.24, 25, 26. p 149 11.26. p 58 11.28. p 75 11.32. p 101, 107 11.33. p 165, 176 11.34. p 163, 165, 176 12.23. p 155 12, 26, 27. p 81, 132, 136, 151 14.6.10. p 288 1 Pet. 1.2, 3, 4, 5. p 308 1 Pet. 1. 11.● p 395 1.19, 20, 21. p 157 2.9, 10. p 105 2.23. p 344 3.18, 19 p 40, 389 4.4. p 39 2 Pet. 1.4. p 22 3.2. p 397 1 John 3.12. p 155 3.23. p 83 5.11, 12, 13. p 61 5.20, 21. p 156, 194 2 John v. 9 p 43 Apoc. 1.5. p 419 Apoc. 1.9. p 259 2.17. p 185 3.18. p 12 6.9. p 259, 397 6.10. p 344 7, 9, 13, 14. p 361 9.20. p 232 10. Expounded, p 258 10.3. p 257 11. p 399 11.8. p 39 247 11.11. p 20 11.15, 19 p 242, 247 12. p 399 12.10. p 242 12.17. p 259 13. p 399 13.11, 12. p 222 13.16. p 247 14.1. p 290 14.12. p 259 16.13. p 110 18.13. p 232 18.23. p 234, 247 19.8. p 360 19.10. p 304 bis 19.11. p 246 19, 14, 15. p 247, 257 20.2. p 395 20.4, 5. p 252, 259, 299, 395 20.6, 7, 8. p 232, 233, 299 21.1, etc. p 289 21.22. p 376 FINIS. Errata. PAge 12, line 4. read mark. p 24 l 21. r could not but with admiration say, the eye hath not seen, p 25. l 4. r. viatory, p. 26. l 26. r. viatory, p 26. l 32 r. Gen. 19 p 27. l 36. r wickednesses, p 30. l 20. r. Temple, p 30. l 21. r praise, p 35. l 41. r. were kindled, p 37 l 9 deli (of the) p 52. l 2. deal Annor & add chap. 4. p 53 l. 9 r. in this manner the p 56 l 16. r. and not to rest, p 60. l 11. r. in verse 16. p 82 l 37. add, give, p 98. l 24. r. how they expound, p 107. l 36. add not, p 111, l 30. r. godless, p. 115. l 41. r. Lagida, p 139 margin r. is by, p 149. l 33 r. preferred p. 171. l 10. r. considered p 171. l 25. r. Daniel p 179. l 28. & p 209 l 17 r for p 234 l 34. add, to advance p 310. l 26. r. external. p 345. l 7. r. the l 8. r. he, p 351, l 15. r. for p 370. l. 2. r. 427 years, p 387. l 21. r. falsify.